Skip to main content

Full text of "A defence of the church-government, faith, worship & spirit of the Presbyterians : in answer to a late book intituled, An apology for Mr Thomas Rhind, or, An account of the manner how and the reasons for which he separated from the Presbyterian party and embraced the communion of the Church"

See other formats


A 


DEFENCE 

OF    THB 

CHUKCH-GOVERNMENT, 
FAITH,  WORSHIP,  AND  SPIRIT, 

or  THtl 

PRESBYTERIANS ; 

ANSWER  TO  A  BOOK, 

BNTITLEO, 

AN  APOLOGY  FOR  MR  THOMAS  RHIND, 

SEPARATING  FROM  THE  PRESBYTERIAN  PARTY,  AND  EMBRA- 
CING THE  COMMUNION  OF  THE  CHURCH  OF  ENGLAND. 


By  JOHN'aNDERSON,  M.  A. 

lOMB    TIME  MINISTKR  OF  THB  GOSPEL,    DUMBAKTOK. 


1  John.  ii.  IP.— TAe_y  went  out  from  ut,  S^c. 


EDINBURGH: 

Printed  iy  Michael  Anderson^ 

rOR  ALEXANDER  THOMSON,   SKENE  STREET,  AND  WILLIAM 
TROUP,  GALLOWGATE,  ABERDEEN. 

1820. 


The  PxjBLiSHEU  has  consulted  with  the  fol- 
lowing eminent  Divines,  for  whose  judgment 
he  has  the  liighest  respect^  who  have  express- 
ed their  approbation,  and  hearty  concur- 
rence, in  the  republication  of  this  Work  ; — - 
illustrative  of  a  subject,  which  it  is  highly  ne- 
-cessary  should  be  thoroughly  understood  by 
the  People  of  this  Country,  and  peculiarly  im- 
portant at  the  present  time ;   viz. 


Professor  KiDD,  Aberdeen ; 
Professor  PAXTONjEdiuburghj 
Dr  CoLQUHOUN,  Leith  ; 
Dr  Peters,  Dundee ; 
Dr  M'Crif,,  Edinburgh  ; 
Rev.  D.  Dickson,  jun.  ditto  ; 
llev.  A.  Thomson,  ditto; 
Rev.  William  Burns,  Dun; 
Rev.  J.  AiTKEN,  Kiiriemuir ; 
Rev.  James  Aird,  Rattray  ; 
Rev.  Hugh  Ross,  Fcarn  ; 
Rev.  N.  Kennedy,  Loggie ; 


Rev.  H.  Bethune,  Alness ; 
Rev.  D.  Waddell,  Shiels ; 
Rev.  P.  Robertson,  Craig- 

dani ; 
Rev.  J.  BuNYAN,  Wliitehill ; 
Rev.  Jas.  Miller,  Huntly ; 
Rev.  S.  Somerville,  Elgin  ; 
Rev.  John  Monro,  Nigg  ; 
Rev.  D.Anderson,  Boghole; 
Rev.    Adam  Blair,    Perry 

Port-ou-Craig. 


TO    THE   RIGHT    HONOURABLE, 

ARCHIBALD, 

EARL      OF     I  SLAY, 

LORD  JUSTICE-GENERAL  OF  THE  KINGDOM  OF 
SCOTLAND, 

OKE  OF  THE  EXTRAORDINARY  LORDS  OF  SESSION, 
AMD    aOVERNOR    OV    l)UMBAl|TON    CASTLV. 


My  Lord, 

I  HAVE,  upon  more  accounts  than  one,  pre- 
sumed to  shelter  this  Book  under  your  Pa- 
tronage. 

The  great  family  whence  you  are  sprung, 
and  whereof  you  are  so  bright  an  ornament, 
has  always,  since  the  first  dawn  of  the  Refor- 
mation, patronized  the  cause  therein  defend- 
ed. They  have  managed  it  by  their  wisdom, 
protected  it  with  their  sword,  adorned  it  by 


VI  DEDICATION. 

tlieir  lives,  and  too  often  sealed  it  with  their 
blood.  Yet,  even  this  was  a  fate  rather  to 
be  envied  than  lamented.  For,  to  fall  a  sa^ 
crifice  at  once  for  their  God  and  their  coun- 
try ;  to  be  transmitted  to  posterity  under  the 
united  characters  of  martyr  and  patriot ;  this, 
my  Lord,  was,  next  to  the  enjoyment  of 
heaven,  the  highest  glory  great  and  virtuous 
souls  could  attain  to. 

I  need  not  tell  your  Lordship  that  the 
same  cause  is  still  in  hazard.  It  is  lampoon- 
ed in  the  tavern,  declaimed  against  from  the 
pulpit,  scribbled  at  from  the  press,  and  its 
ruin  projected  by  the  dealers  in  the  politics. 
Yet  all  the  nation  is  persuaded,  that  it  is  no 
less  the  inclination,  than  it  is  visibly  the  inte- 
rest of  the  family  of  Argi/le,  heartily  to  es- 
pouse it :  And  all  the  owners  of  that  interest, 
that  is,  the  wiser  and  better,  and  far  greater 
part  of  the  nation,  have  necessarily  such  an 
opinion  of  the  personal  sufficiency  of  the  prin- 
cipal members  of  that  house,  as  to  found  the 
greatest  expectations  thereon. 

Your  illustrious  brother,  the  Duke,  has 
raised  himself  to  an  unrivalled  glory,  and  dis- 
tinguished himself  as  the  hero  of  the  age. 

You,  my  Lord,  not  contented  to  excel 
in  those  exercises,  which  are  too  often  the 


DEDICATION.  Vll 

only  accomplishment  of  persons  distinguish- 
ed by  their  birth,  not  satisfied  to  have  adorn- 
ed your  mind  with  that  which  is  called  the 
polite  part  of  learning ;  and,  by  a  true  taste 
of  the  Belles  Lettres,  and  uncommon  advan- 
ces in  the  Mathematics,  and  all  the  most  va- 
luable parts  of  Philosophy,  to  make  your  con- 
versation both  shining  and  instructive  :  Not 
satisfied,  I  say,  with  all  this,  you  have  besides, 
that  you  might  be  a  public  good  to  your 
country,  stocked  your  soul  with  so  exact  and 
extensive  a  knowledge  of  the  Laws,  that  you 
are  distinguished  on  the  bench  by  your  abili- 
ty no  less  than  by  your  quality :  And  the 
whole  nation  finds  itself  happy  in  her  Majes- 
ty's wise  choice  of  your  Lordship  to  bear  so 
great  a  part  in  those  Courts,  on  the  sentences 
of  which  their  liv-es  and  fortunes  depend. 

Though  then,  my  Lord,  the  weaknesses  of 
the  book  are  mine  only,  and  so  can  no  way 
affect  your  Lordship  ;  yet  the  subject  of  it, 
and  the  cause  it  appears  for,  necessarily  entitle 
it  to  the  patronage  of  a  person  of  your  charac- 
ter. You,  my  Lord,  know  that  the  Presby- 
terian establishment  in  Scotland  can  never  be 
overthrown  ;  without  breaking  through  what- 
ever has  been  hitherto  held  sacred  amonop 
men.  And  your  Lordship  knows,  there  is  no 
cause  why  it  should  be  attempted.         .i^^'^-cr^C    ^^-. 


'^.<. 


"^'Mi  DEDICATION. 

Though  the  High  Church  faction,  with 
whom  modesty  and  moderation  are  reckoned 
scandal,  has  taught  her  proselytes  to  charge 
the  Presbyterians  with  a  Spirit  diametrically- 
opposite  to  that  of  the  Gospel ;  yet,  you,  my 
Lord,  from  your  own  personal  acquaintance 
with  them,  know  how  false  and  calumnious 
that  charge  is  :  As  it  is  evident,  to  the  obser- 
vation of  all  the  world,  that  they  are  the  most 
'serious  Christians ;  so  your  Lordship  is  abun- 
dantly convinced,  that  they  are  the  most  faith- 
ful subjects  her  Majesty  has  on  this  side  the 
Border^ 

They  do  not  indeed  allow  of  a  Worship 
fringed  with  ceremonies  of  human  invention 
and  imposition.  Eut  I  am  persuaded,  a  per- 
son of  your  Lordship's  reflection  must  needs 
be  sensible,  that  a  Minister  of  God  never 
makes  a  more  unsightly  figure,  than  when  ap- 
pearing in  a  party-coloured  dress,  and  prac- 
tising motions  and  postures  his  Heavenly 
Master  never  enjoined  him.  It  is  true,  the 
Presbyterians  do  not  restrict  themselves  to 
forms  in  praying  to  Almighty  God.  But,  I 
suppose,  your  Lordship  does  not  think  a  beg- 
gar ever  the  less  sincere,  though  he  do  not 
always  ask  his  alms  in  the  same  studied  cant. 

It  is  confessed  likewise,  there  are  several 
Articles  of   Faith  taught  by  the  Presby- 


DEDICATION.  IX 

terians,  which  are  above  the  comprehension 
of  our  finite  minds  :  But  your  Lordship,  who, 
every  day,  in  the  search  of  nature,  finds  so 
many  appearances  perfectly  unaccountable 
from  the  laws  of  mechanism,  without  having 
recourse  to  the  First  Mover  and  great  Author 
of  nature,  cannot  be  surprised  to  find  articles 
in  religion  not  otherwise  to  be  resolved,  but 
by  believing  that  God's  judgments  are  un- 
searchable, and  his  ways  past  finding  out. 
Nor  will  your  Lordship,  I  presume,  be  strait-, 
ened  to  believe,  that  the  whole  Christian 
Church,  which  has  taught  those  articles  equal-. 
ly  with  the  Presbyterians,  is  as  likely  to  be  in 
the  right,  as  an  upstart  sect  of  yesterday, 
whose  confidence  is  their  most  useful  qua- 
lity. 

In  a  word,  my  Lord,  the  Presbyterians 
disown  a  Prelacy  amonoj  the  Ministers  of  the 
Gospel :  And,  on  this  score,  High  Church 
finds  in  her  heart  to  damn  them  by  the  lump, 
and  mercifully  to  consign  them  to  everlasting 
flames.  But  your  Lordship  has  a  juster  no- 
tion of  the  kind  Author  of  our  being,  than 
to  believe  that  he  v/ill  ruin  his  creatures,  for 
not  submitting  to  a  Government,  which  its 
freshest  and  most  learned  patrons  own,  is  not 
to  be  found  in  the  Oracles  of  Truth. 

I  HAVE,  therefore,  adventured  to   inscribe 


X  DEDICATIOX. 

this  piece  to  your  Lordship  ;  not  doubting, 
but  how  weak  soever  the  performance  may 
be,  that  yet  an  Essay  to  defend  so  very  good 
a  cause,  wherein  not  only  truth,  but  peace, 
charity  and  good  neighbourliood  are  so  much 
concerned,  will  not  be  quite  ungrateful  to 
you. 

That  your  Lordship  may  be  always  blessed 
with  the  richest  favours  of  Heaven,  is,  and 
shall  be  the  daily  prayer  of, 

My  Lord, 
Your  Lordship's 

Most  humble,  and 

Most  obedient  servant, 
JOHN  ANDERSON. 


CONTENTS. 


Prefack,  p.  xlx. 

Thk  Introduction,  p,  1- 

CHAP.  I. 

Containing  preliminary  Remarks,  p.  2. 

Sect.  1. 

Containing  Remarks  on  the  Title  of  Mr  Rhind's  Book,  ib.  Re- 
mark I.  That  the  title  of  an  Apology  was  ill  chosen,  the 
Book  itself  wanting  the  Apostolic  requisites  of  an  apology, 
viz.  meekness  and  fear,  ib.  This  proved  from  his  character 
of  the  Presbyterians,  which  is  shewn  to  be  malicious,  p.  4.— 
false,  p.  4,  5.  Truly  and  indeed  the  character  of  Pligh  Church, 
p.  5,  6.  Remark  II.  Upon  his  concealing  what  Church  it  is 
whose  communion  he  has  embraced,  p.  6.  Proved,  That 
there  is  no  Church  on  earth  whose  communion  he  can  in  rea- 
son claim  to,  p.  6 — 11. 

Sect.  IT. 

Containing  Remarks  on  iNIr  Rhind's  Preface,  p.  12. — Remark!, 
On  the  date  and  motive  of  his  separating  from  the  Presby- 
terians, ib.  Remark  II.  On  his  own  character  of  his  Book, 
p.  14.  Its  true  character,  Vanity,  p.  15.  Dogmaticalness,  ib. 
Profaneness,  16'.  Remark  III.  On  his  bespeaking  civil  usage 
for  himself,  p.  16.  Remark  IV.  Whether  Mr  Rhind  is  the 
true  Author  of  the  Apology,  17.  See  also  the  Preface,  p.  xxvii. 

Sect.  III. 
Containing  Remarks  on  his  narrative  of  the  manner  Iiow  he  se- 
parated from  the  Presbyterians,  p.  18. — Remark  I.  Demon- 
strated that  his  narrative  is  pure  poesy,  p.  It) — 23.  Re- 
mark II.  The  dreadful  consequences  (upon  his  own  princi- 
ples) of  his  having  been  baptised  by  a  Presbyterian  minister. 


XII  CONTENTS. 

p.  2S.  Remark  III.  That  he  does  not  ascribe  to  God  his  se- 
parating from  the  Presbyterians,  p.  24.  Remark  IV.  On  his 
mentioning  his  Obligations  to  the  Presbyterians,  25.  Re- 
mark V.  That  he  refused  the  communion  of  the  Church  of 
Rome  on  a  quarrel  which  equally  obliges  him  to  refuse  com- 
munion with  the  Church  of  England,  p.  26.  Remark  VI. 
Upon  his  charging  the  Presbyterians  with  want  of  respect  to 
the  Fathers,  p.  27.  Remark  VII.  Upon  his  character  of  the 
Episcopal  authors,  p.  30.  Remark  VIII.  Character  of  Mr 
Dodwell,  p.  yj,  and  of  Mr  Sage,  p.  36 — A  short  Digression 
on  the  late  Vindication  of  the  Fundamental  Charter  of 
Presbytery,  p.  37. 


CHAP.  II. 

Mr  Rhind's  first  reason  for  separating  from  the  Presbyterians, 
viz.  That  they  are  Schismatics  in  point  of  Government,  ex- 
amined, p.  40, 

Sect.  I. 

His  Principles  and  Corollaries  examined,  p.  41.  They  are  not 
admitted  by  the  Presbyterians,  p.  42.  Much  less  by  the 
Church  of  England,  p.  43.  Proved,  That  if  the  Presby- 
terians are  Schismatics,  eo  ipso,  it  will  follow  that  they  are 
not  without  the  Church,  p.  47. 

Sect.  II. 

His  state  of  the  debate  betwixt  the  Presbyterians  and  Episco- 
palians examined,  p.48. 

Sect.  III. 
His  Arguments  for  Prelacy  summed  up,  p.  53. 

Sect.  IV. 

His  Arguments,  for  proving  that  Christ  and  his  Apostles  were 
under  a  necessity  of  instituting  a  Prelatic  form  of  Govern- 
ment, examined,  p.  54. 

Art.  I.  His  Argument  from  the  Nature  of  the  Thing,  for  prov- 
jng  that   Necessity,   examined,  ib — Proved  that  the    argu» 


CONTENTS.  Xili 

ment,  Iti,  is  not  modest,  p.  56  •,  2<//y,  not  secure,  ib.  Sdly, 
tliat  it  is  impertinent,  ns  lie  has  laid  it,  p.  57.  His  enforce- 
ment of  that  Argument,  ]st,  from  the  British  Monarchy,  p. 
57 ;  2dli/,  from  the  Principles  of  the  Presbj'terians,  p.  59  ; 
5d/t/,  from  their  Practice,  p.  Cl.  The  Presbyterians  Plat- 
form justified  from  the  Roman  Senate,  the  two  Houses  of 
Parliament,  and  the  Court  of  Session  in  Scotland,  p.  66. 

Anr.  IJ,  The  argument  from  the  form  of  Government  in  the 
Jewish  Church  for  proving  that  Necessity,  examined,  p.  67. 
— Proved,  that  as  he  has  laid  it,  it  is  horribly  Impious,  p.  68  ; 
That  his  management  of  it  against  the  Presbyterians'  is  ridi- 
culous, p.  70.  That  it  is,  in  itself,  weak,  and  concludes  no- 
thing to  the  purpose,  in  this  controversy,  p.  71.  That  if  it 
conclude  at  all,  it  concludes  for  a  universal  Papacy,  p.  73. 
That  it  is  rejected  as  insufficient  by  the  Episcopal  Authors, 
p.  76. 

Aht.  III.  The  Argument,  from  Political  considerations,  in  com- 
pliance with  the  Jews  and  Romans^  for  proving  that  Necessity, 
examined^  p.  77.— Proved,  Ut,  as  to  the  Jews,  p,  78;  2dl^, 
as  to  the  Romans,  p.  79  ;  that  the  Argument,  so  far  as  it  con- 
cludes, makes  directly  for  Presbytery.  The  design  of  the  Ar- 
gument from  Political  Necessity,  discovered,  p.  81. 

Sect.  V. 

The  Proofs  for  evincing  that  Prelacy  actually  was  instituted, 
examined,  p.  82. — The  Institution  of  it  not  to  be  found  in 
the  Scripture,  confessed  by  Mr  Dodwell,  ib. 

Art.  I.  The  Proof  for  evincing  that  Prelacy  obtained  in  Christ's 
days,  examined,  p.  S3. — Proved  that  then  the  Christians  wer6 
imder  no  form  of  Church-Government  distinct  from  the  Jew- 
ish, 81-.  That  neither  the  XII  nor  LXX  were  Church-Officers 
till  after  Christ's  Resurrection  j  or,  supposing  they  had  been 
such,  that  yet  they  had  both  the  same  power,  p.  S6. — The 
text,  Matthew  xx.  25,  '  The  Princes  of  the  Gentiles,'  &c. 
largely  vindicated,  p.  9*. 

Art.  II.  The  Proof  for  evincing  that  Prelacy  obtained  in  the 
days  of  the  Apostles,  examined,  p.  97 — Proved  that  if  the 
Government,  which  at  first  obtained  among  Christians,  as 
such,  was  unalterable,  (as  Mr  Rhind  says  it  was),  then  Pre- 
lacy is  ruined^  ib.     Mr  Rhind's  general  Reasonings  from  the 


XIV  CONTENTS. 

Acts  and  Epistles  examined,  p.  99.  A  succession  in  the 
Apostolate  clearly  disproved,  p.  101.  Harangues  against  Pa- 
rity, hew  ridiculous,  p.  103.  Tlie  Civil  War  amongst  the  Epis- 
copal Authors,  p.  110.  The  demonstration  for  Prelacy  from 
its  being  confirmed  by  Miracles,  examined,  p.  113. 

Art.  III.  The  Argument  from  the  Episcopacy  of  Timothy  and 
Titus,  examined,  p.  116. — Proved  from  Scripture  that  they 
were  extraordinary  Officers,  p.  117.  Mr  Dodwell  confesses 
it,  p.  118.  The  Postscripts  no  proof,  p.  118.  The  Ancients  of 
the  three  first  centuries  perfectly  silent  of  their  being  Bishops, 
p.  120.  Their  Episcopacy  cannot  be  inferred  from  any 
thing  in  the  Epistles  directed  to  thuiii,  p.  121. 

AjiT.  IV.  The  Proof  from  the  Apocalyptic  Angels  examined, 
p.  124. — Those  Angels  not  the  fixed  Bishops  of  these  Churches, 
p.  125.  Not  numbered  by  Seven,  p.  126.  Not  characterized  as 
single  persons,  confessed  by  Dr  More  and  Mr  Dodwell,  and 
proved  at  large  from  the  II.  and  III.  Chapters  of  the  Revela- 
tions, ib.  Proved  to  be  false,  that  all  ancient  and  mo- 
dern Commentators  have  supposed  these  Angels  to  be  single 
persons  and  the  Governors  of  the  Churches,  p.  127.  Beza 
has  said  nothing  on  this  Argument  that  favours  the  Epis- 
copal cause,  p.  131.  Dr  Hammond's  Scheme  entirely  ruins 
this  Argument,  p.  132.  as  it  also  does  the  Argument  from  the 
Jewish  Priesthood,  and  from  the  subordination  of  the  LXX  to 
the  XII.   This  noticed  and  confessed  by  Dr  Whitby,  p.  137. 

Art.  V.  The  Testimonies  for  Prelacy  from  Antiquity  Exa- 
mined, p.  137.  Dr  Bedell  and  Medina  confess  the  Fathers  to 
be  on  the  Presbyterian  side,  p,  1.'38,  Dr  Sherlock's  and  Chilling- 
worth's  Judgment  of  the  Weight  of  the  Testimony  of  the  Fa- 
thers, ib.— Jgnatius's  Epistles  discoursed,  p.  13,9.  Proved 
in  four  particulars,  that  they  quite  destroy  the  Modern  Epis- 
copacy, and  the  Principles  on  which  it  is  built,  p.  ItO.  Proved 
that  as  to  the  main  of  the  Controversy,  they  contain  nothing 
contrary  to  the  Presbyterian  Scheme,  p.  143.  No  Evidence 
that  the  Ignatian  Presbyters  did  Preach  or  administer  the 
Sacraments,  p.  145.  Proved  that  the  Ignatian  Epistles  are 
cither  not  genuine,  or  at  least  are  vitiated  and  interpolated, 
p.  M9. — Clemens  Komanus  gives  no  testimony  for  Prelacy, 
p.  1G3. — Nor  the  Emperor  Adrian,  p,  167- — Nor  Ircnaus,  p. 
168. — Nor  Terlullian,  p.  170. 


CONTENTS.  XV 

Anr.  VI.  The  argument  for  Prelacy  from  the  Impossibility  of 
its  obtaining  so  early  and  universally,  if  it  had  not  been  of  Dir 
vine  Institution,  examined,  p.  l72. — Proved  that  such  an  Ira- 
possibility  cannot  be  inferred,  either,  1st,  From  the  Piety  and 
Zeal  of  the  Primitive  Times,  p.  173.  Nor,  2dly,  From  the 
Universal  Spread  of  Episcopacy,  p.  175.  Nor,  Sdly,  From  the 
Vigilance  of  the  Governors  of  the  Church,  p.  176.  Nor,  4thly, 
From  the  Unparalleledness  of  the  Case,  p.  177.  Nor,  5thly, 
From  the  Non-Opposition  made  to  the  Change,  p.  179 Tes- 
timonies for  Presbytery  from  Antiquity,  p.  181. — From  Cle- 
mens Romanus,  ib.  Ignatius,  p.  182.  Polycarp,  ib. 
Justin  Martyr,  p.  183.  Irenaeus,  ib.  Tertullian,  p.  184.  Cle- 
mens Alexandrinus,  ib.  Origen,  p.  185.  Gregorius  Thau, 
maturgus,  p.  186.  Cyprian,  I87.  Basilius  Magnus,  ib. 
^rius,  ib.  Ambrose,  p.  188.  Chrysostom,  189.  Augustine 
p.  ipo.  Theodoret,  ib.  Primasius,  p.  19I.  Sedulius,  ib. 
ConciHum  Hispalense  Secundum,  ib.  Theophylact,  192.  G£« 
cumenius,  ib.  The  Canon  Law,  p.  193.  Jerome,  ib.  The 
Exceptions  against  Jerome's  Testimony  examined,  p.  195. 

Sect  VI. 

Mr  Rhind's  Reasonings  against  the  Presbyterian  Ruling  Elders, 
and  Deacons,  examined,  p.  200. 

Abt.  I.  His  Reasonings  against  the  Presbyterian  Ruling  Elders, 
examined,   ib. 

Art.  II.  His  Reasons  against  the  Presbyterian  Deacons,  exa- 
mined, p.  211. 

The  Conclusion  of  the  Chapter  concerning  Church-Government, 
p.  213. — An  Address  to  the  Gentlemen  of  High-Church  Prin- 
ciples, shewing  the  Uncharitableness  of  thcni,  and  how  de- 
structive they  are  of  the  whole  Protestant  Interest  tlirou^h 
the  World,  p.  214.  Their  confidence  upon  their  Principles 
so  much  the  less  tolerable  that  they  are  Groundless,  p.  218. 


CHAP.  III. 


Mr  Rhind's  Second  Reason  for  Separating  from  the  Presbyte- 
rians, viz.  Tliat  their  Articles  of  Faith  are  fundamentally 
False  and  Pernicious,  examined,  p.  22^. 


XVl  CONTExSTS* 


Sect.  I. 


Mr  Rhind's  Objections  against  their  Articles  of  Faith  Consider- 
ed, p.  224 — His  Objections  against  the  Doctrine  of  the  De- 
crees in  General,  examined,  ib.  His  Objections  against  their 
Doctrine  of  Predestination,  p.  228.  Against  their  Doctrine 
of  the  Efficacy  of  Grace,  p.  236.  Shewed  not  to  be  incon- 
sistent with  a  Good  Life,  or  unable  to  persuade  one  to  Re- 
form, in  a  Dialogue  between  a  Calvinist  Teacher  and  a  De- 
bauchee of  the  Party,  p.  238. — His  Objections  against  the 
Doctrine  of  Perseverance,  p.  243. 

Sect.  II. 

The  Presbyterian  Articles  of  Faith  the  same  with  those  of  the 
Christian  Church,  p.  251. — Proved,  that  they  are  the  doc- 
trine of  the  Foreign  Reformed  Churches,  ib.  Of  the  Epis- 
copalians in  Scotland,  p.  253.  Of  the  Church  of  England, 
p.  254.  The  Defences  of  some  modern  Divines  against  this 
imputation  particularly  considered,  p.  255.  The  Calvinistic 
Doctrines  asserted  to  be  the  Doctrines  of  the  Church  of 
England:  1st,  By  the  English  Universities,  p.  257*  2dly, 
By  the  Supreme  Ecclesiastical  Governors  of  the  Church, 
p.  258.  3dly,  By  the  Court,  p.  260.  Lastly,  By  the  Eng- 
lish Delegates  to  Foreign  Synods,  ib.  Proved  that  the  Doc- 
trines objected  against,  are  the  Doctrines  of  the  Catholic 
Church,  p.  262. 


CHAP.  IV. 

Mr  Rhind's  Third  Reason  for  separating  from  the  Presbyte- 
rians, viz.  that  their  worship  is  fundamentally  corrupt  and 
imperfect,  examined,  p.  265. 

Sect.  I. 

His  Objections  against  the  Presbyterians'  Prayers  examined, 
p.  266. 


CONTENTS.  XVH 

Art.  I.  His  Argument,  and  Ten  Instances  for  proving,  that  the 
matter  of  them  must  be,  and  is  corrupt,  examined,  266. 

Art.  IK  His  exceptions  against  the  manner  of  the  Presbyte- 
rians' prayers,  examined,  p.  282. — The  alleged  Disadvan- 
tages of  extemporary  prayer  considered,  ib.  His  arguments 
for  proving  the  excellency  of  the  Liturgic  way,  examined, 
p.  286.  His  argument  for  it  from  the  nature  of  the  thing, 
ib.  2dly,  From  universal  practice,  p.  293.  8dly,  From 
Heaven's  approbation  of  it  under  the  Old  and  New  Testa- 
ment, p.  29.5.  4thly,  From  the  usage  of  it  in  the  Primitive 
and  Ancient  Church,  p.  297.  Lastly,  From  the  practice  of 
the  Reformed  Churches,  p.  298. — Mr  Rhind's  Answer  to  the 
Objection  against  restricting  People  to  Forms,  viz.  that  they 
stint  the  Spirit,  considered,  p.  299.  His  horrid  comment  oa 
the  Spirit's  helping  our  infirmities,  p.  301. 

Sect.  II. 

The  Objections  against  the  Presbyterian  Doctrine  concerning 
the  Sacraments,  and  exceptions  against  their  manner  of  dis- 
pensing them,  considered,  p.  309. — These  discoursed:  1st, 
As  to  Baptism,  ib.  2dly,  As  to  the  Lord's  Supper,  p.  317.— 
Some  Remarks  on  the  Scots  Episcopal  Liturgy,  p.  S^l. 


CHAP.  V. 

Mr  Rhind's  Fourth  Reason  for  separating  from  the  Presbyte- 
rians, viz.  that  their  spirit  is  diametrically  opposite  to  that 
of  the  Gospel,  examined,  p.  329. — The  meaning  and  intend- 
ment of  this  reason,  ib.  Several  things  charged  on  the 
Presbyterians,  wliich  they  not  only  confess,  but  avow,  p.  331. 
Mr  Rhind's  profaneness  in  burlesquing  the  Scripture, 
p.  333. — This  reason  considered  as  to  its  weight,  and  proved, 
that  though  it  were  true,  yet  it  alone  would  not  justify  his 
separation,  p.  f536.  His  reason  examined  as  to  its  truth, 
p.  337.  The  Presbyterian  spirit  not  enthusiastical,  p.  838. 
Not  an  Animal  or  Mechanical  Spirit,  p.  3i'3.  Not  a  partial 
damning  Spirit,  p.  345.    Not  a  narrow  or  mean  Spirit,  p.  347. 


XVlll  CONTENTS. 

Not  a  malicious  or  unforgiving  Spirit,  p.  349.  Not  an  un- 
conversible  Spirit,  p.  355.  Not  a  disloyal  or  rebellious  Spi- 
rit, p.  357 — A  short  Digression  on  the  Right  Honourable 
the  Earl  of  Cromarty's  Historical  Account  of  the  Conspira- 
cies  by  the  Earls  of  Gowry,  p.  361. — The  Presbyterian  Spi- 
rit not  a  Spirit  of  Division,  p.  377.  Not  an  unneighbourly, 
cruel,  or  barbarous  Spirit,  p.  379. 

The  Conclusion,  p.  889, 


PREFACE 

TO  THE  FIRST  EDITION,  1714. 


Being  sensible  that  books  always  occasion  an  ex. 
pense  of  money,  and,  which  is  much  more  valuable, 
of  time  ;  I  think  myself  obliged  to  account  why  I 
have  given  the  public  the  trouble  of  this. 

How  soon  the  Apology  appeared,  that  party, 
which  is  distinguished  by  the  name  of  High  Churchy 
gloried  both  in  the  author,  and  in  the  service  he 
had  done.  They  spread  his  book  with  great  in- 
dustry into  the  several  parts  of  the  nation,  recom- 
mended it  as  a  perfect  piece  in  its  kind,  and  at 
length  boasted  it  made  proselytes. 

I  hate  to  grudge  even  an  adversary  his  due  praise. 
I  frankly  own,  Mr  Rhind  has  done  as  well  as  the 
subject  was  capable  of.  I  own,  his  book  is,  of  its 
bulk,  the  most  comprehensive  in  its  subject  I  have 
seen.  Some  authors  have  attacked  us  upon  the 
head  of  government^  some  upon  our  doctrine,  some 
upon  our  worsJiip,  and  some  too  (though  these  not 
always  excessively  qualified,  eitlier  morally  or  intel- 
lectually, for  such  an  undertaking^,  upon  our  spirit 
;and  practice.  But  Mr  Rhind  has  widened  the  com- 


XX  PREFACE. 

pass,  and  taken  all  four  within  his  circle,  hinting 
at  every  thing  of  a  general  nature,  that  has  been 
wont  to  be  objected  to  us ;  and  all  this  in  so  very 
pointed  a  style,  that,  had  his  probation  been  equal, 
there  had  been  an  end  of  the  matter,  and  the  world 
had  heard  its  last  of  Presbytery  for  ever. 

It  might  then  possibly  have  argued,  either  too 
much  indolence,  or  an  ill  conscience,  to  have  ne- 
glected such  a  book,  without  either  answering  or 
confessing  to  it.  Nor  is  it  quite  improbable  that 
silence  would  have  heightened  the  vanity  of  a  party 
abundantly  remarkable  already  for  that  quality.  I 
cannot  deny  but  these  considerations  somewhat  in- 
fluenced me  to  write. 

But  then,  that  which  determined  me,  was  the 
consideration  of  the  design  of  Mr  Rhind's  book, 
and  of  the  effect  it  must  naturally  have,  so  far  as  it 
persuades.  And  who  knows  how  far  it  may  do  so  ? 
Mankind  grows  daily  more  corrupt  j  and  Mr  Rhind 
is  very  far  from  being  singular  in  what  he  has  ad- 
vanced, most  part  of  books  we  get  from  High- 
Church  being  of  the  same  strain,  and  breathing  the 
very  same  spirit. 

Now  what  else  is  the  design  of  Mr  Rhind's  book, 
but  to  overturn  the  most  sacred  and  important 
truths  ?  And  what  else  can  the  effect  of  it  be,  so 
far  as  it  obtains  credit,  but  the  utmost  contempt  of 
seriousness  and  piety  ;  which,  God  knows,  is  at  too 
low  an  ebb  already  on  both  sides !  What  else  is  the 
design  of  it,  but  to  exasperate  the  one  half  of  tlie 
nation  into  rage  and  fury  against  the  other  ?  And, 
should  it  gain  faith,  how  dire  must  the  consequent 


PREFACE.  XXI 

ces  be  ?  Then  must  love,  peace  and  charity  be  for 
ever  banished,  a  state  of  universal  hostility  instant- 
ly commence,  persecution  in  all  its  most  terrible 
forms  take  place,  till  not  only  Presbytery  be  abo- 
lished, but  the  whole  generation  of  Presbyterians 
be  extirpated  from  off  the  face  of  the  earth,  which 
I  suppose  will  hardly  ever  be,  so  long  as  there  is  a 
Bible  on  it. 

That  unhappy  fellow  De  Foe,  some  ten  or  twelve 
years  ago,  put  all  England  in  a  ferment  by  his 
Shortest  "uoay  xvith  the  Dissenters.  But  what  else  is 
his  shortest  way,  but  the  immediate  use  of  the  doc- 
trine laid  down  in  Mr  Rhind's  book,  and  indeed, 
generally,  in  all  the  controversial  books,  and  oft- 
times  in  the  sermons  of  High-Church  ?     For, 

If  the  Presbyterian  pastors  are  no  ministers— ^if 
their  Sacraments  are  null — if  all,  who  are  of  that 
communion,  are  out  of  the  ordinary  road  to  hea- 
ven, and  can  have  no  rational  hope  of  salvation. 
Does  it  not  unavoidably  follow,  that  it  is  the  duty 
of  our  civil  governors  to  overturn  their  settlement? 
Is  it  not  plain  that  they  are  in  a  state  of  deadly  sin 
so  long  as  they  leave  it  undone  ?  Were  it  not  an  act 
of  great  mercy,  and  Christian  compassion,  to  compel 
us  to  come  in,  though  it  were  by  the  rough  argu- 
ments of  heading,  hanging,  and  such  like,  rather 
than  suffer  us  to  go  into  hell  fire  ourselves,  and 
lead  others  thither  with  their  limbs  entire  ?  If  Pres- 
byterians are  not  only  without  the  church,  but  ene- 
mies to  it,  what  can  the  state  in  conscience  do,  but 
declare  them  to  be  denuded  of  all  those  immunities 
and  privileges  which  the  law  had  secured  them  in, 
and  which  hitherto  they  have  enjoyed  in  common 


XXll  PREFACE. 

with  their  neighbours,  upon  the  presumption  of 
their  being  Christians  ?  If  Presbyterian  parity  is  so 
inconsistent  in  its  own  nature  with  monarchy,  are 
not  the  civil  powers  obliged,  for  their  own  security, 
to  crush  a  society  of  so  dangerous  a  constitution  ? 
If  the  Presbyterian  spirit  is  diametrically  opposite 
to  that  of  the  gospel,  what  eternal  animosities  must 
there  be  betwixt  true  church  and  such  a  party  ?  Is 
it  possible  but  that,  upon  such  a  supposition,  there 
must  be  constant  and  mortal  feuds  in  every  the 
same  city,  the  same  congregation,  the  same  fami- 
ly, and  oft-times  in  the  same  bed  ?  For,  what  should 
an  Episcopal  husband,  who  would  not  pass  for 
hen-pecked,*  do  with  a  wife  who  is  incorrigibly 
Presbyterian  ?  Shall  he  still  cherish  the  serpent 
in  his  bosom  till  she  sting  him  to  death  ?  Shall  he 
hug  the  charming  tempter  till  she  tease  him  into 
the  devouring  jaws  of  the  old  serpent  by  her  be- 
witching importunities  ?  Must  not  then  all  things 
run  into  confusion  upon  such  principles  ?  It  is 
true.  Almighty  Providence  may  restrain  such  dis- 
mal effects,  or  good  nature  may  overcome  bad 
principles,  but  such,  I  am  sure,  are  the  native  con- 
sequences of  them,  and  are  daily  put  in  practice 
in  all  the  Popish  countries  ;  too  sure  a  sign  (besides 
the  proof  of  former  experience)  that  not  will,  but 
power  only,  is  wanting  to  act  the  same  tragical 
scenes  in  Britain.  And  what  less  should  be  ex- 
pected from  a  party,  which  justifies  all  that  carnage 
the  French  king  has  made  of  his  Protestant  sub- 
jects ? 

This,  tiien,  being   the  natural   product  of   the 

*   See  (he  Apology,  p.  205,  &c. 


PREFACE.  XXIU 

principles  of  Mr  Rhind's  book,  I  thought  I  owed 
this  service  not  only  to  the  truth,  but  to  my  coun- 
try ;  and  that  I  was  obhged  to  bring  ray  bucket, 
though  a  shallow  one,  to  quench  that  flame  which,., 
if  not  suppressed  in  time,  must  needs  consume  it 
to  ashes,  and  bring  us  to  the  same  miserable  state 
which,  Josephus  tells  us,  the  zealots  brought  Jeru- 
salem into  before  its  destruction.  This,  I  hope, 
will  not  only  excuse  but  justify  my  writing. 

But  then  the  next  question  will  be,  Why  so 
largely  ?  Was  it  so  very  hard  a  matter  to  answer 
Mr  Rhind,  that  no  less  than  a  book  about  four 
times  the  bigness  of  his  could  serve  the  turn  ?  His 
singularities  are  but  few,  and  might  have  been 
quickly  discussed ;  nor  had  the  reader  been  at 
any  great  loss,  thougli  they  had  been  quite  ne- 
glected. What  else  he  has  advanced  has  been 
brought  into  the  field  a  hundred  times  before,  and 
it  might  have  been  sufficient  for  answer,  to  have  re- 
commended the  reader  to  former  writers  on  the 
same  subjects.  Besides,  he  has  very  often,  through 
his  book,  and  upon  the  Spirit  of  the  Freshyterians 
always,  contented  himself  with  mere  assertion  : 
And  in  such  cases,  it  is  still  as  honourable  to  deny 
without  a  reason,  as  it  was  to  assert  without  ai 
proof. 

All  this  I  acknowledge  is  very  true  ;  and  such  a 
conduct,  it  is  plain,  had  brought  my  book  within 
a  very  moderate  compass :  but  then,  too,  such  a  con- 
duct had  sunk  its  usefulness  proportionally  with 
its  bulk  J  for  I  did  intend  by  it,  and  shall  be  sorry 
if  the  reader  find  himself  disappointed,  somewhat 
more  than  a  simple  confutation  of  the  Apology :  I 


XXIV  TREFACE. 

designed  it  should  be  of  universal  use  in  this  con- 
troversy ;  and  therefore  have  not  barely  denied, 
which  in  very  many  cases  had  been  enough  for  our 
Apologist,  and  would  have  very  much  shortened 
the  work  ;  but  I  have  disproved  too :  nor  have  I 
put  off  the  reader  with  answering  Mr  Rhind,  but 
have  said  as  much  as  I  thought  sufficient  to  satisfy 
the  argument  itself,  by  whoever  it  were  managed. 

Plainly,  I  designed,  in  the^rst  place,  to  say  as 
much  as  was  needful  to  vindicate  the  Presbyterians 
from  those  imputations  in  fact  which  fill  so  many 
hundreds  of  the  Episcopal  sermons,  books  and 
pamphlets,  and  are  so  much  the  subject  of  their 
conversation.  If  in  doing  this,  I  have  mentioned 
any  facts  on  their  side,  the  hearing  whereof  may 
be  grating  to  them,  they  have  themselves  to  blame  ; 
For  every  one  must  own,  it  was  a  very  proper  way 
in  me,  for  disproving  the  reasons  of  Mr  Rhind's 
conduct,  to  make  it  appear,  that  the  side  he  had 
espoused  lay  every  way  as  open  to  exceptions,  as 
that  he  had  deserted.  Here,  then,  the  old  apology 
takes  place 

—— Sciat 
Responsum,  non  dictum  esse,  quia  laesit  prius. 

But  then,  which  will  sufficiently  distinguish  my 
management,  the  reader  may  promise  himself  to 
find  my  assertions  verified,  in  all  cases  needful,  by 
the  most  authentic  and  unexceptionable  docui. 
ments,  a  piece  of  drudgery  which  Mr  Rhind  has, 
and  the  writers  of  his  party  generally  do  excuse 
themselves  from,  ^^/j/,  I  designed  to  say  as  much 
as  I  thought  needful  for   convincing  any  man's 


TKEFACE.  XXV 

conscience,  that  the  Presbyterian  Communion  is 
not  only  safe,  but  the  best,  both  as  to  government, 
faith  and  worship.     And  as  the  reader  will  find  all 
the  arguments  for  prelacy  particularly  discoursed  j 
so,  which  I  doubt  not  will  be  surprising  enough, 
he  will  find  my  reasonings  against  them  fortified  by 
the  judgment  even  of  the  most  eminent  divines  of 
the  Church  of  England,  who  habitually  reject  each 
others  arguments  for  prelacy,  and  are  so  very  un- 
happily situated,  that  they  cannot  possibly  defend 
against  popery  but  upon  Presbyterian  principles, 
nor  impugn  Presbytery  but  upon  Popish  ones.     I 
hope  then,  the  reader  will  easily  pardon  me,  that  I 
have  run  out  into  such  a  length  when  my  subject 
and  design  was  so  large. 

As  for  that  which  is  called  style,  I  have  taken  just 
as  much  care  about  it  as  was  needful  to  make  myself 
understood.  Any  furtht^  niceness,  I  judged  super- 
fluous upon  a  subject  of  this  nature,  which  I  sus- 
pect is  not  very  capable  of  dress,  unless  one  in- 
tend a  harangue  instead  c>f  a  dispute. 

Ornari  res  ipsa  negat,  contenta  duceriv 

My  greatest  care,  next  to  that  of  the  matter,  was 
that  1  should  not  be  intricate  or  perplexed,  as  con- 
troversies are  apt  to  be :  And  this  1  hope  I  have 
obtained  ;  For  I  have  never  made  any  blind  refe- 
rences to  Mr  Rhind*s  book,  but  have  always  given 
his  sense,  and  almost  always  in  his  own  words, 
which  is  another  considerable  cause  that  my  book 
is  so  large. 

To  both  which  I  may  add  a  third,  viz.  That  I  have 


XXVI  PREFACE. 

inserted  some  few  digressions,  thoiigli  not  I  hope 
from  the  purpose,  yet  from  the  thread  of  Mr  Rhind's 
book.    That  upon  the  late  Vindication  of  the  Fun- 
damental Charter  of  Presbytery,  which  the  reader 
will  find,  p.   S3,   is  but  short :    And  though   one 
would  think  that  Scotchmen  ought  to  be  very  lit- 
tle concerned  with  the  English  liturgy,   yet  that 
being  the  dispute  of  the  day,  I  understand  that  tlie 
author  of  the  Countryman's  Letter  to  the  Curate, 
against  which  that  Vindication  is  directed,  intends, 
if  God  spare  him,  a  second  edition,  in  one  volume, 
on  a  fine  paper  and  type,   both  of  the  Dialogues 
concerning  the  English  liturgy,  and  of  that  letter, 
&;c. ;  wherein  the  subject  of  the  liturgy  is  to  be 
more  largely  discoursed,   and   whatever  has  been 
advanced  against  the  Dialogues  by  Mr  Barclay  and 
others,  and  against  the  Letter  by  the  vindicator, 
either  in  reason  or  history,  is  to  be  considered.  The 
largest  digression  I  have  made,  which  tlie  reader 
will  lind  p.  361,  is  that  on  the  Earl  of  Cromarty's 
late  book.     Besides  that  it  was  necessary  in  point 
of  self-defence,  I  persuade  myself  that  his  Lord- 
ship will  be  pleased  with  it,  because  it  may  help 
to  exactness  in  a  piece  of  history,  which  his  Lord- 
ship has  so  much  contributed  to  the  enlightening 
of. 

As  to  the  conduct  of  the  whole  book,  I  am  sen- 
sible how  much  I  shall  want  the  reader's  indul- 
gence. But  this  piece  of  justice  1  crave,  that  he 
would  not  censure  any  one  part  of  it,  till  he  have 
read  through  the  whole ;  because,  what  he  might 
perhaps  expect  to  find  in  one  place,  I  may  have 
possibly  thought  fit  to  reserve  for  another,  where 
I  fancied  it  might  stand  to  greater  purpose,  or  with  a 


PREFACE.  XXVll 

better  grace.  Farther,  I  must  advertise  the  reader, 
that  having  used  the  word  whigy  in  some  few  places, 
I  meant  it  in  the  original  Scotch  sense,  as  signifying 
a  Presbyterian,  except  when  by  the  context  it  ap- 
pears, that  it  is  to  be  understood  in  that  more  com- 
prehensive notion  use  has  now  fixed  to  it. 

I  hope  the  reader  will  be  merciful  as  to  the  er- 
rors in  printing.  Such  as  are  of  any  moment  are 
but  few ;  and  both  these  and  the  lesser  escapes  in 
spelHng,  pointing,  or  dividing  of  syllables,  I  expect 
will  be  excused  upon  the  account  of  my  distance 
and  necessary  absence  from  the  press. 

After  all  I  have  said,  p.  17,  there  are  some  would 
still  persuade  me,  that  not  Mr  Rhind,  but  another 
person  of  a  much  higher  character  is  the  true  au- 
thor of  the  Apology »  But  it  is  the  same  thing  to 
me,  whether  it  be  so  or  otherwise  :  For,  I  never 
thought  that  external  character  could  either 
heighten  or  diminish  the  intrinsic  value  of  a  book  : 
Nor  did  I  intend  to  dispute  against  any  man's  per- 
son ;  but  though  I  ordinarily  name  Mr  Rhind  only, 
yet  I  generally  mean  his  party  :  And,  therefore, 
though  he  complains  that  the  Presbyterians  have 
exhausted  all  their  common  places  of  slander  a- 
gainst  him,  yet,  for  my  own  part,  I  have  consider- 
ed him  merely  as  the  writer  of  the  Apology y  with- 
out so  much  as  touching  upon  his  personal  quali- 
ties or  circumstances  in  any  private  concern.  I 
know  the  public  could  have  been  very  little  edi- 
fied with  personal  objections  ;  and  I  did  not  think 
I  wanted  such  adminicles,  the  argument  itself  hav- 
ing given  me  sufficient  advantage. 


XXVlll  PREFACE. 

Plainly,  I  persuade  myself  that  every  one  who 
has  read  Mr  Rhind^s  book,  will,  upon  the  reading 
of  mine,  allow  that  I  have  kept  more  temper  than 
perhaps  was  due  to  such  a  piece.  For,  when  a  set 
of  people,  about  whom  there  is  nothing  extra- 
ordinarily Christian  appearing,  will  needs  put 
such  a  jest  upon  mankind,  as  to  monopolize  the 
name  of  Church  to  themselves,  and  belch  out 
their  fire  and  venom,  without  fear  or  wit,  against 
the  whole  reformed  interest,  and  yet  at  the  same 
time  will  have  us  to  believe  them  Protestants  j  iiji 
such  a  case  I  must  needs  own,  that 

1  ifficlle  est    atyram  non  scribere. 

However,  I  have  restrained  myself  as  much  as  the 
matter  could  admit  of,  or  either  justice  pr  charity 
required. 

I  reckon  upon  it,  that  my  book  will  be  answers 
ed  ;  and  it  is  hardly  possible  to  foresee  what  kind 
of  argument  may  be  used  against  me  ;  but  there 
is  one  which  I  deprecate,  viz.  that  powerful  one-r 
damn  me.  I  don't  fear  that  any  of  their  laity  will 
attack  me  with  it— I  have  a  better  opinion  of  their 
piety  and  manners  ;  but  I  dare  not  promise  so 
much  on  their  clergy's  head  :  For,  what  has  been,* 
may  be.  However,  by  way  of  prevention,  I  own 
it  to  be  an  unanswerable  kind  of  argument ;  and 
tlierefore,  they  may  save  themselves  the  trouble  of 
it  ;  so  much  the  rather,  that  they  carinot  be  great 
losers,  though  they  omit  it. 

But  I  am  sensible,  that  by  the  length  of  this 
Preface,  I  add  to  the  transgression  of  the  book. 

*  See  Mr  Caldei's  Miscellany  Numbers,  Number  IV. 


TREFACE.  XXlX 

After  all  I  can  say,  I  know  it  must,  as  all  other 
books  have  ever  done,  take  its  fate  according  to 
the  inclinations  or  capacity  of  its  different  readers. 
And,  therefore,  as  it  is,  I  send  it  forth  into  the 
world  with  its  father's  blessing,  heartily  praying 
that  the  God  of  truth  and  peace  may  prosper  it, 
to  the  preserving  among  us  two  such  valuable  en- 
joyments. 

March  17tfi,  1714. 


Mr  RHIND'S 

APOLOGY 

DISPROVED. 


THE 

INTRODUCTION. 


-L  HE  general  method  of  Mr  Rhind's  Book  is,  I 
acknowledge,  abundantly  distinct.     Therein,   after 
the  history  of  the  manner,  how  he  gives  an  account 
of  the  reasons  for  which  he  separated  from  the  Pres- 
byterian party ;  to  wit,  because,   upon  inquiry,  he 
found  their  government  to  be  schismatical,  their  ar- 
ticles oi  faith  fundamentally  false  and  pernicious, 
their  worship  scandalously  corrupt,  and  highly  im- 
perfect; and  their  spirit  diametrically  opposite  to 
that  of  the  gospel — a  heavy  enough  charge  truly;  and 
if  but  one  half  of  it  hold  true,  every  good  Christian 
must  needs  at  once  justify  his  separation,  and  con- 
gratulate his  escape- 
But  it  is  the  design  of  the  following  Sheets  to  ex- 
amine his  performance ;  and  if,  in  the  issue,  it  shall 
be  found,  that  there  is  neither  truth  in  his  asser- 
tions, strength  in  his  arguments,  proof  for  his  al- 
legeances,  nor  modesty  in  his  characters ; — then,  I 
hope,  it  will  follow,  that,  how  much  reason  soever 
some  other  party  may  have  to  be  fond  of  their  nevr 


REMARKS    ON 


proselyte,  yet  the  Presbyterians  have  no  such  cause 
to  be  swallowed  up  of  overmuch  sorrow  for  their 
loss,  but  that  they  may  hope  the  days  of  their 
mourning  may  wear  over,  and  they  may  be  com- 
forted. 


CHAP.  I. 

CONTAINING  PRELIMINARY  REMARKS. 

Though  his  Tiile^  Treface,  and  Narrative,  have 
no  great  influence  on  the  main  subject ;  yet,  that  I 
may  proceed  in  order  ;  for  clearing  the  ground,  I 
shall  beg  leave  to  take  them  under  review  in  some 
few  remarks : — the  rather,  because  the  doing  so  will, 
I  hope,  sufficiently  distinguish  the  spirit  of  the  Au- 
thor J  perhaps,  too,  help  to  enlighten  his  Book. 


Sect.  I. 
Contaming  Remarks  on  the  Title  of  Mr  Rhinos  Boole, 

I.  Mr  Rhind  has  given  his  Book  the  Title  of  An 
Apology.  But,  I  apprehend,  when  the  book  itself 
is  looked  into,  it  will  appear  to  be  very  ill  chosen. 
The  Apostle  Peter  enjoins  *  Christians  to  be  always 
ready  to  make  an  apology  (so  it  is  from  the  original) 
to  every  one  that  asks  a  reason  of  the  hope  that  is 
in  them.  But,  though  that  Apostle  had  as  much 
edge  on  his  temper,  and  possibly  was  as  forward  in 

*  I  Epist.  chap.  iii.  15. 


MR  RHINd's  title-page. 


his  zeal  as  Mr  Rhind  ;  though  the  cause  of  Chris- 
tianity was  at  least  of  as  great  importance  as  that  of 
Prelacy,  and  the  enemies  the  Church  had  then  to  do 
with  little  better  natured  than  the  Presbyterians ;  yet 
he  would  not  allow  them,  in  putting  in  an  apology 
even  for  Christianity  itself,  though  against  Jews  and 
Pagans,  to  use  rudeness  or  bitterness,  far  less  calum- 
ny and  slander ;  but  expressly  charges  them  to  do  it 
with  meekness  and  fear.  Mr  Rhind  was  not  igno- 
rant of  this  precept ;  he  has  fronted  his  book  witli 
it :  But,  since  ever  apologies  were  in  fashion,  I  very 
much  doubt  if  ever  any  v/as  v/ritten  with  so  unchris- 
tian a  spirit,  so  absolutely  void  of  both  these  requi- 
sites. I  do  not  beheve  the  reader  would  think  him- 
self much  gratified,  by  entertaining  him  with  a  col- 
lection of  all  the  passages  in  the  Apology  that  might 
contribute  to  prove  this  character  I  have  given  of 
it ;  yet  it  is  necessary  I  produce  one,  lest  any  should 
suspect  I  charge  him  falsely ;  and  one,  I  am  persua- 
ded, will  be  fully  sufficient  for  that  purpose.  I  shall, 
therefore,  without  adding,  altering,  or  diminishing, 
transcribe  one  paragraph  from  him,  wherein  he  has 
drawn  the  character  of  the  Presbyterians ;  distin- 
guished, too,  into  its  periods,  for  the  reader's  more 
distinct  conception.     It  is  thus  : — 

*   1.  They  (the  Presbyterians)  are  naturally  rigid 

*  and  severe ;  and  therefore  conclude,  that  God  is 
'  such  a  one  as  themselves.  2.  They  damn  all  w4io 
'  differ  from  them,  and  therefore   think  that  God 

*  does  the  same.  3.  And  because  they  love  them- 
'  selves,  they  are  pleased  to  persuade  themselves, 
'  that  they  are  his  special  favourites.    4.  In  a  word, 

*  they  are  respecters  of  persons,  and  therefore  think 
'  to  patronise   their  partiality   with    his   authority. 

*  5.  Hence  they  conclude,  that  they  owe  them  no 

*  civilities   whom   God   neglects,   nor   kind    offices 

*  whom  he  hates.  6.  He  neglects,  and  hates  all 
'  who  are  not  capable  of  his  grace,  which  none  are 

*  (say   they)  who- are  not  of  their  way.     7.  This 

*  wicked  persuasion  sanctifies  not  only  the  ill  man- 
5  ners,  but,  which  is  worse,  the  ill  nature  of  the 


*  REMARKS    ON 

*  party,  towards  all  who  differ  from  them.  It  cott- 
'  tradicts  the  ends  of  society  and  government,  and  is 

*  only  calculated  to  advance  the  private  interest  of 
'  a  partial  and  designing  set  of  men  !'  Thus  he, 
p.  20S. 

Now,  if  in  all  this  paragraph,  there  is  the  least 
allay  of  meekness,  he  would  very  much  oblige  us, 
if  he  would  tell  us  what  bitterness  and  malice  is. 

But  though  his  zeal  swallowed  up  his  meekness, 
yet,  was  there  no  place  for  fear,  (the  other  requi- 
site), I  mean  a  reverence  and  regard' to  truth  ?  Might 
he  not  have  thought  it  necessary  to  offer  at  least  at 
some  instances  for  supporting  the  said  character  ? 
Did  he  fancy  it  would  be  believed  on  his  bare  word  ? 
He  must  be  abundantly  sanguine,  if  he  did.  How- 
ever, Presbyterians  do  not  think  themselves  much 
in  hazard,  from  writers  that  sacrifice  their  veracity 
to  the  pleasure  of  breathing  their  spleen.  They  are 
accustomed  to  have  the  most  black  characters  drawn 
of  them  by  the  rampant  High  Church  authors ;  but 
they  do  not  feel  themselves  much  hurt  thereby,  be- 
cause they  are  as  notoriously  false  as  they  are  black. 
It  is  difficult  to  name  that  ill  thing,  which  a  Heylin, 
a  Hicks,  a  Lessley,  a  Sacheverel,  Calder,  or  some 
other  very  Reverend  Divine  of  the  like  probity,  has 
not  written  of  them,  or  imputed  to  them.  Who 
were  the  instruments  that  procured  the  Spanish  Ar- 
mada to  invade  England  in  1588  ?  The  Whigs.  * 
Who  burnt  London  in  1666  ?  The  Whigs,  t  Who 
piloted  in,  and  assisted  the  Dutch  to  burn  the  Eng- 
lish fleet  at  Chatham  ?  The  Whigs.  X  Nay,  who  cru- 
cified Jesus  Christ  ?  who,  but  the  Whigs ;  the  very 
children  are  taught  to  lisp  out  that.  §  Calves-head 
feasts  are  with  these  authors  true  history.  Why  ? 
Because  one  of  themselves  wrote  it,  and  the  rest  cite 
it,  II  and  who  dares  doubt  it  after  that  ? 

But,  suppose  it  was  below  an  author  of  Mr  Rhind's 
soaring  genius,  to  adduce  proof  for  his  assertions,  or 

*  Cassandra,  Numb.  ii.  p.  57.  f  New  Association,  Part  II. 
p.  58'  j:  Ibid.  §  Calder  on  the  Sign  of  the  Cross,  Numb.  VIII. 
P*  32.  II  Cassandra,  Numb.  I.  p>  46. 


MR  RHIND  S  TITLE-PAGE.  D 

to  regard  so  small  a  circumstance  as  truth  in  his  cha- 
racters ;  yet  might  he  not  have  used  so  much  com- 
mon prudence,  as  not  to  draw  the  Presbyterians  in 
the  habit  of  High-Church  Tories,  and  to  twist  them 
with  that  whereof  himself  and  fellows  are  notorious- 
ly guilty,  beyond  what  was  ever  heard  of  among  any 
party  of  Christians,  except  the  Church  of  Rome  ? 
His  fore-cited  character  turns  mainly  upon  un chari- 
tableness.    The  Presbyterians,  saith  he,  '  damn  all 

*  that  differ  from  them,  and  therefore  think  that  God 
'  does  the  same.'  But  is  not  this  ever  the  distin- 
guishing principle  of  a  High-flyer  ?  Has  not  Mr 
Dodwell,  whom  Mr  Rhind  so  much  admires,  and 
upon  whose  principles  he  professes  to  have  formed 
his  own,  p.  24,  25.,  expressly  taught,  that  there  is 
no  communicating  with  the  Father  or  the  Son,  but 
by  communion  with  the  Bishop.     *  It  is,'  saith  he, 

*  one  of*  the  most  dreadful  aggravations  of  the 

*  condition  of  the  damned,  that  they  are  banished 
'  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord,  and  from  the  glo- 

*  ry  of  his  power.     The  same  is  their  condition,  al- 

*  so,  who  are  disunited  from  Christ,  by  being  dis- 

*  united  from  his  visible  representative  (the  Bishop).* 
Nay,  has  he  not  shut  up  even  the  small  cranny  of 
the  uncovenanted  mercies  of  God,  which  might  have 
let  in  some  faint  ray  of  hope,  against  all  the  world 
but  Episcopalians  alone,  by  declaring,  in  that  same 
place,  *  That  it  is  extremely  uncertain,  and  at  least 
'  infinitely  hazardous,  (and  what  can  be  beyond  in- 

*  finite  ?)  that  ever  they  shall  share  in  them.'  D^ 
not  scores  of  their  other  authors  talk  at  the  same 
rate  ?  But  why  do  I  speak  of  others  ?  Is  not  thi; 
the  very  design  of  Mr  Rhind's  book  ?  Was  not  thai 
the  reason  why  he  separated  from  the  Presbyterians 
because  they  are  not  in  the  ordinary  road  to  heaven  i 
p.  31 :  Nay,  I  hope  to  make  it  good  to  every  man'' 
conviction,  ere  I  have  done,  that  he  has  damned  th( 
whole  Christian  Churches  on  earth,  the  Church  o 
England  herself  too  among  the  rest,  excepting  somi 

•  One  Priesthood,  Chap.  XIII.  Sect.  14. 


6  REMARKS  ON 

High-flyers,  who  can  no  more  be  said  to  be  of  the 
Church,  than  an  overgrown  wen,  or  some  monstrous 
tumour  on  the  body,  can  be  called  a  part  of  it. 
Think,  now,  how  well  calculated  Mr  Rhind*s  Book 
is  to  bear  the  title  of  an  Apology ;  how  wisely  and 
justly  his  meek  and  Catholic  spirit  charges  the 
Presbyterians  with  rigour  and  uncharitableness.  I 
would  advise  him,  if  ever  his  book  come  to  a  second 
edition,  to  alter  the  title  a  little  j  and  instead  of  an 
Apology,  to  call  it  a  Libel. 

II.  In  his  title,  he  promises  to  give  an  account 
of  the  reasons    for  which  he  separated  from  the 
Presbyterian  party,  and  embraced  the  communion  of 
the  church.     I  cannot  but  wish  he  had  been  a  little 
more  particular,  and  told  us  of  what  church.     It  is 
true,  the  church  is  but  one  ;  yet  there  are  several 
communions.     There  is  the  Roman,  the  Lutheran, 
the  Church  of  England  communion,  with  too  many 
others,  which  diifer  from  each  other  in  very  consi- 
derable points ;    but  though    I  have  read  his  book 
with  all  the  application  I  was  capable  of,  I  sincerely 
declare  I  cannot  find  out  that  church  whose  com- 
munion he  can  reasonably  claim  to.  • 

The  Presbyterian  party  is  that  which  he  hath  a- 
bandoned.  He  hath,  though  indeed  in  very  modest 
terms,  disclaimed  the  communion  of  the  Church  of 
Rome,  p.  14,  15.  The  Greek,  Armenian,  Ethio- 
pic  Churches,  &c.  lay  too  far  out  of  his  road.  The 
lesser  fractions  and  sects  among  Christians  he  gave 
not  himself  the  trouble  to  enquire  about,  from  a  just 
fear  lest  if  he  had,  he  had  ended  his  days  ere  he  had 
formed  his  confession  of  faith,  p.  14.  What  church, 
then,  can  it  be,  whose  communion  he  has  embraced? 
He  has  given  us  three  hints  to  find  her  out  by,  but 
none  of  them  sufficient  to  give  light  in  the  matter, 
and  determine  the  inquiry. 

1.  He  tells  us,  p.  '28,  it  is  the  communion  of  the 
Catholic  Church.  But  this  Catholic  is  a  hackney 
which  every  party  press  into  their  service  ;  every 
church  claims,  and  the  Church  of  Rome,  which  yet 
he  disowns,  appropriates  to  herself. 


MR  RHIND  S  TITLE-PAGE.  7 

2.  He  tells  us,  in  the  beginning  of  his  Preface, 
that  it  is  the  communion  of  the  Suffering  Church, 
by  which  he  means  the  Prelatists  in  Scotland.  But 
though  he  hath  joined  himself  to  them,  yet  that  he 
is  not  of  them,  nor  within  their  communion,  I  shall, 
ere  I  go  further,  make  abundantly  evident  upon  this 
single  postulatum,  that  that  church  is  the  same  in  her 
principles,  now  she  is  suffering,  that  she  was  while 
flourishing. 

She  was,  while  flourishing,  Erastian  in  her  go- 
vernment, Calvinist  in  her  doctrine,  her  worship 
without  a  liturgy,  her  discipline  exercised  by  lay 
elders.  All  which  is  directly  contrary  to  the  prin- 
ciples of  Mr  R hind's  book. 

First,  I  say,  his  suffering  church  was  Erastian  in 
her  government.  Besides  the  tract  of  our  history 
and  many  acts  of  Parliament,  Archbishop  Glad- 
stones has  given  emphatic  testimony  that  it  was  so 
in  the  time  of  King  James  VI.  In  his  letter  to 
that  prince,  of  the  date  August  31,  1612,  he  has 
these  remarkable  words:  *  For,  besides  that  no  estate 
'  may  say,  that  they  are  your  Majesty's  creatures, 

*  as  we  may ;  so  there  is  none  whose  standing  is  so 

*  slippery,  when  your   Majesty  shall  frown,  as  we. 

*  For  at  your  Majesty's  nod  we  must  either  stand  or 

*  fall.'  Thus  also  it  was  in  the  late  times,  after  the 
restoration  of  King  Charles  II.  as  appears  by  the 
act  of  Parliament  redintegrating  the  estate  of  bishops: 
For  therein  '  the  disposal  of  the  external  government 

*  and  policy  of  the  church  was  declared  to  be  in  his 

*  Majesty  and  his  successors,  as  an  inherent  right  of 

*  the  crown,  and  that  tliey  might  settle,  enact,  and  Ji- 
'  mit  such  constitutions,  acts,  and  orders  concerning 

*  the  administration  of  the  external  government  of 

*  the  Church,  and  the  persons  employed  in  the  same, 

*  and  concerning   all   ecclesiastical  meetings,   and 

*  matters  to  be  proposed  and  determined  therein,  as 

*  they,  in  their  royal  wisdom,  shall  think  fit.*  Did 
she  alter  this  principle  upon  the  Revolution?  No. 
In  the  year  16'J2,  no  fewer  than  ISO  of  the  Episco- 
pal clergy,  with  Dr  Canaries  on  their  head,  in  their 


0  REMARKS  ON 

own  name,  and  in  that  of  the  whole  body  of  the 
Episcopal  clergy  in  the  North,  addressed  the  Ge- 
neral Assembly  to  be  assumed  into  ministerial  com- 
munion, and  a  share  of  the  church-government, 
upon  a  formula,  whereof  the  first  words  are, — I, 
'  A.  B.  do  sincerely  declare  and  promise,    that  I 

*  will  submit  to  the  Presbyterian  government  of  the 

*  church,  as  it  is  now  established  in  this  kingdom.* 
This  they  could  not,  without  exposing  themselves 
to  damnation,  have  promised  to  do,  had  they  judged 
Presbyterian  government  to  be  schismatical ;  but 
their  doing  so  was  very  well  consistent  with  the  Eras- 
tian  principles.  Now,  Mr  Rhind's  principles  are  di- 
rectly opposite  to  these  ;  for  he  hath  not  only  taught, 
'  That  the  church  is  a  society  independent  upon  the 

*  state,'  p.  29,  but  that  Prelacy  is  the  only  govern- 
ment of  the  church  by  divine  right,  and  that  ex- 
clusive of  all  others.  This  is  the  avowed  design  of 
almost  one  half  of  his  book. 

Secondly,  His  Suffering  Church  was  Calvinist  in 
point  of  doctrine.  Knox's  Confession  of  Faith  was 
formed  in  the  year  1560 ;  exhibited  to  and  ratified 
by  the  Parliament  that  same  year,  and  oftentimes  af- 
terward. It  was  owned  as  the  only  confession  of 
this  church,  without  rival,  without  controul,  either 
by  Prelatists  or  Presbyterians  for  almost  sixty  years. 

1  need  not  tell  any  body  who  has  seen  it,  that  it  was 
Calvinist  all  over.  In  the  year  1616,  the  General 
Assembly  at  Aberdeen,  wherein  Archbishop  Spotis- 
wood  was  moderator,  formed  a  new  confession  of 
faith,  which  we  have  at  length  in  Calderwood's  His- 
tory, from  p.  638.  This  was  yet  more  expressly  and 
rigidly  Calvinist  than  the  other.  In  the  late  epis- 
copal times,  Knox's  Confession  of  Faith  was  again 
revived  and  sworn  to  in  the  oath  of  the  test.  The 
whole  Episcopal  clergy,  except  some  few  that  were 
Whiggishly  inclined,  and  refused  it  on  other  ac- 
counts, went  into  that  oath  :    And  therein  not  only 

*  declared  that  they  believed  the  said  confession  to 
'  be  founded  on,  and  agreeable  to  the  written  word 

*  of  God  3  but  also  promised  and  swore  to  adhere 


MR  riiind's  title-page.  9 

*  thereto  during  all  the  days  of  their  life-time,  yea, 
'  and  to  endeavour  to  educate  their  children  there - 

*  in.'  After  the  Revolution,  the  Westminster  Con- 
fession of  Faith  was  ratified  and  established  as  the 
avowed  confession  of  this  church.  How  much  Cal- 
vinist  that  is,  every  one  knows.  Yet  in  the  year 
1692,  the  Episcopal  clergy,  who  desired  to  be  as- 
sumed upon  the  formula  before  mentioned,  promis- 
ed, '  that  they  would   subscribe  the  said  Confession 

*  of  Faith,  and  larger  and  shorter  Catechism  con- 

*  firmed  by  act  of  Parliament,   as   containing  the 

*  doctrine  of  the  Protestant  religion  professed  in 

*  this  kingdom.'  This  promise,  if  it  signified  any 
more  than  a  juggle,  which  we  ought  never  to  suppose 
a  clergyman  guilty  of,  could  import  no  less,  than 
that  they  owned  the  doctrine  of  the  said  confession 
and  catechisms  to  be  true,  at  least,  that  they  did  not 
judge  them  to  be  fundamentally  false  and  pernicious. 
This  is  a  short  history  of  all  the  confessions  of  faith 
that  were  ever  received  in  Scotland  since  the  refor- 
mation. All  of  them  were  formed  upon  the  Calvinis- 
tic  scheme — all  of  them  have  been  assented  to  by 
the  Episcopal  clergy  ;  yet  all  of  them  directly  con- 
trary to  Mr  Rhind's  book  in  the  doctrine  of  the 
decrees,  predestination,  perseverance,  universal  re- 
demption, universal  grace,  &c. 

Thirdly^  His  Suffering  Church  had  her  worship 
without  a  liturgy.  Knox's  liturgy  was  falling  into 
desuetude  ere  Episcopacy  was  established  in  the  time 
of  King  James  VI.  Besides,  ministers  were  never 
bound  to  constant  observance  of  it.  On  the  con- 
trary, the  book  of  itself  allows  them  to  use  the  se- 
veral forms,  or  the  like  in  effect.  And,  saith,  one  of 
its  rubrics,  *  It  shall  not  be  necessary  for  the  minis- 
'  ter  daily  to  repeat  all  these  things  before  men- 

*  tioned,  but  beginning  with  some  manner  of  con- 
'  fession  to  proceed  to  the  sermon ;  which  being 

*  ended,  he  either  useth  the  prayer  for  all  estates  be- 

*  fore  mentioned,  or  else  prayeth  as  the  spirit  of 

*  God  shall  move  his  heart,   framing  the  same  ac- 

*  cording  to  the  time  and  matter  which  he  hath  en- 


10  REMARKS  ON 

*  treated  of/  It  is  true,  there  was  an  attetnpt 
made  in  the  time  of  King  Charles  I.  to  bring  in  a 
liturgy,  much  after  the  Enghsh  model.  But  I 
need  not  tell  the  world,  that  it  miscarried.  No 
wonder  :  For,  not  only  the  body  of  the  nation  and 
the  bulk  of  the  Presbyters,  but  even  the  wisest  and 
most  experienced  of  the  bishops  were  against  it. 
This,  Gilbert  Burnet  has  ingenuously  confessed  ;* 
this  the  author  of  the  Short  Account  of  Scotland, 
though  episcopal,  frankly  owns,  page  56  :    *  It  was 

*  set  on  foot  by  a  foreigner  (Abp.  Laud)  upon  the 
« importunity  of  some  young  bishops  in  the  Kirk 
'  of  Scotland,  who  made  it  their  business  to  oppose 

*  the  ancients,  and  thought  it  matter  of  triumph  to 
«  carry  any  point  against  them.'  Thus  he.  In  the 
late  times,  before  the  revolution,  the  episcopal  cler- 
gy did  not  so  much  as  essay  to  bring  in  a  liturgy. 
For  many  years  after  the  revolution,  none  of  them 
pubHcly  used  any,  either  in  their  churches  or  meet- 
ing-houses. And  to  this  day  some  of  the  best  of 
them,  to  my  certain  knowledge,  are  against  the 
English  liturgy.  Hov/  then  can  Mr  Rhind  pretend 
to  be  of  their  communion,  when  he  argues  not  only 
for  the  excellency,  but  even  the  necessity  of  forms  ; 
and  declares,  '  That  flat  impertinencies,  substantial 
<  nonsense  and  horrid  blasphemies  are  unavoidable 
« in  the  extemporary  way.'t  And  yet  I  have  heard 
the  extemporary  prayers  of  Episcopal  ministers  five 
hundred  times.  It  seems  I  have  been  well  employ- 
ed. And  I  have  known  five  hundred  people  ha- 
rassed in  the  late  times  for  not  going  to  church  to 
hear  such  prayers.  It  seems  it  was  a  merciful  go- 
vernment that  persecuted  people  for  not  putting 
themselves  under  the  imavoidable  necessity  of  hear- 
ing horrid  blasphemies  by  way  of  address  to  God 
Almighty. 

Fourthly/,  His  Suffering  Church  exercised  her  dis- 
cipline by  lay-eiders  ;  and  this  every  one  knows 
that  lived  before  the  revolution.     I  conclude,  then, 

*   Memoirs  of  the  House  of  Hamilton,  p.  32-25i 
t  P.  156,   157. 


MR  rhind's  title-page.  H 

that  Mr  Rhind  is  not  of  the  communion  of  the  suffer- 
ing church,  either  in  point  of  government,  faith,  wor- 
ship, or  discipline,  unless  that  he  can  prove  that  she 
hath  changed  her  principles  in  all  these  within  a  score 
of  years  or  so  ;  which  I  suppose  it  will  be  hard  for 
him  to  do.  And  when  he  has  done  it,  I  cannot 
think  it  will  contribute  much  to  the  raising  her  cha- 
racter to  represent  her  as  a  changeling. 

Let  us  go  on  in  our  search  after  his  church.  He 
gives  us  a  third  hint  for  finding  her,  by  telling  us, 
p.  169,  '  That  he  has  embraced  the  communion  of 

*  that  church  whose  worship  is  the  best  in  the  world, 

*  with  respect  to  both  matter  and  manner.'     By 
which  character   he  would   have  us  to  understand 
the  Church  of  England.     But,  though  he  has  em- 
braced her,  yet  she  is  so  far  from  embracing  him, 
that  he  stands  de  facto  excommunicated  by  her.     I 
shall  have  ample  occasion  to  shew  this  when  I  come 
to  consider  his  second  reason  for   his  separation. 
In  the  mean  time,  to  satisfy  the  reader's  longing, 
I  shall  give  one  instance  for  proof  of  it.     Among 
the  other  Presbyterian  doctrines  which  he  has  de- 
clared fundamentally  false  and  pernicious,  &c.  he 
reckons  this  as  one,  That  the  best  actions  of  men, 
without  grace,  are  but  so  many  splendid  sins.*     The 
truth  of  this  Presbyterian  doctrine  is  obvious  even 
to  common  sense  :     For,  how  busy  soever  a  servant 
may  be,  yet,  if  he  has  no  regard  to  the  will  of  his 
master  in  what  he  does,  can  his  diligence  be  reckon- 
ed obedience  ?     Nay,  must  not  the  neglect  of  his 
master's  authority  be  imputed  to  him  as  a  fault? 
But  it  is  not  the  truth  of  the  doctrine  I  am  now 
concerned  about.     Be  it  true  or  false,  is  it  not  the 
doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England  as  much  as  of 
the  Presbyterians  ?     Hear  her. 

'  ART.  XIII. 

*  Works  done  before  the  grace  of  Christ,  and 

*  the  inspiration  of  his  spirit,  are  not  pleasant  to 

*  God  J  for  as  much  as  they  spring  not  of  faith  in 

•  P.  136,  1S7,  ISt; 


12  REMARKS  ON 

*  Jesus  Christ,  neither  do  they  make  men  meet  to 

*  receive  grace,  or  (as  the  school  authors  say),  de- 

*  serve  grace  of  congruity :  yea,  rather,  for  that 
'  they  are  not  done  as  God  hath  commanded  and 
«  willed  them  to  be  done,  we  doubt  not  but  that  they 

*  have  the  nature  of  sin.' 

It  is  plain,  then,  that  he  has  impugned  and  re- 
jected the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England. 
Now  let  us  hear  what  censure  she  has  awarded 
to  such  as  do  so. 

*  CANON  V.  1603. 
'  Whosoever  shall  hereafter  affirm  that  any  of  the 

*  XXXIX.  articles  agreed  upon  by  the  Archbishops 
'  and  Bishops  of  both  provinces,  and  whole  clergy  in 

*  the  convocation  holden  atLondon,in  the  year  of  our 

*  Lord  1562,  for  the  avoiding  of  diversities  of  opi- 

*  nions,  and  for  the  establishing  of  consent  touching 

*  true  religion,  are  in  any  part  superstitious  or  erro- 

*  neous,  or  such  as  he  may  not,  with  a  good  con- 

*  science,  subscribe  unto ;  let  him  be  excommuni- 
'  cated  ipso  factOy  and  not  restored  but  only  by  the 

*  Archbishop,  after  his  repentance  and  public  revo- 
5  cation  of  such  his  wicked  errors.' 

Who  now  will  say  that  Mr  Rhind  is  of  the  Church 
of  England  communion,  when  she  has  excommuni- 
cated him  ?  I  conclude,  then,  upon  the  whole,  that 
it  is  not  possible  to  find  that  church  wherein  he  can 
be  classed,  I  mean,  here  on  earth.  As  for  the  wi- 
spotted  church  *  of  which  the  late  Edinburgh  ad- 
dressers professed  themselves  to  be,  I  don't  believe 
it  to  be  on  this  side  the  clouds. 


Sect.  II. 
Containing  Remarks  on  Mr  RhincCs  Preface. 
I.     Our  apologist  is  earnest   to  have  his  readers 
•  See  London  Gazette,  Numb;  5080; 


MR  rhind's  preface.  13 

believe  that  it  was  not  upon  any  sinful  bias  or 
worldly  consideration  that  he  changed  sides.  And, 
therefore,  in  the  beginning  of  his  Preface,  tells  us, 

*  That  a  forcible  conviction,  which  was  the  refu- 

*  sal  of  an  impartial  inquiry,  determined  him  to  a- 

*  bandon  the  Presbyterian  party  some  years  ago, 
'  when  the  church  was  under  severe  pressures  in  this 
'  nation,  and  when  there  were  small  hopes  of  de- 

*  liverance.'  But,  he  has  been  too  general  in  the 
date  of  his  conversion,  and  some  people  are  tempted 
to  think  there  was  a  reason  for  it.  Her  Majesty 
was  pleased,  some  years  ago,  to  write  a  gracious  let- 
ter to  her  Privy  Council  of  Scotland,  of  the  date, 
February  4,  1703,  in  favours  of  the  Episcopal  clergy 
and  others  of  that  profession.  Her  Majesty  was 
so  far  from  intending  that  the  said  letter  should 
have  any  ill  influence  on  the  Presbyterian  esta- 
blishment, that,  on  the  contrary,  she  recommended 
it  to  her  Council  to  give  them  all  due  countenance 
and  encouragement.  Yet  it  is  abundantly  well 
known  in  this  nation,  that  the  Episcopal  party  con- 
structed the  said  letter  as  a  preface  to  the  overturn- 
ing of  Presbytery  and  the  re-establishment  of  Pre- 
lacy ;  as  if  her  Majesty,  like  a  kind  mother,  teased 
with  hungry  children,  had  bid  them  content 
themselves  a  little  with  that  morsel,  till  she  could 
get  dinner  provided  for  them.  And,  in  op- 
position to  all  her  Majesty's  promises  and  assu- 
rances to  the  contrary,  the  distinction  betwixt  a 
secret  and  revealed  will  was  industriously  propa- 
gated. And  from  that  time,  some  young  divines, 
who  hitherto  had  been  warmed  and  fledged,  under 
the  wings  of  Presbytery,  began  to  look  with  a  kind- 
ly eye  towards  the  Prelatic  party,  and  to  alter  their 
conduct  accordingly.  If  Mr  Rhind's  separation 
was  prior  to  that  time,  there  is  the  more  charity  to 
be  had  for  him,  and  he  was  not  kind  enough  to  him- 
self in  not  signifying  so  much.  But  if  it  was  after 
it,  I  can  see  nothing  extraordinary  in  it :  For,  to  run 
from  under  a  falling  house,  and  to  worship  the  ris- 
ing sun,  is  what  people  do  every  day. 


14  REMARKS  ON 

Besides,  how  little  encouragement  soever  Mr 
Rhind  might  hope  from  the  suffering  Church  in 
Scotland,  yet  he  might  very  reasonably,  upon  his 
revolt,  expect  more  elsewhere  than  ever  he  could 
have  found  among  the  Presbyterians.  A  Presby- 
terian minister  is  like  the  heath  in  the  wilderness, 
that  never  grows  higher.  When  once  he  got  him- 
self possessed  of  a  church,  however  shining  his 
parts  are,  there  is  a  ne  plus  ultra  set  to  his  ambition. 
But  in  the  Prelatic  way,  there  are  various  degrees 
of  dignity  to  animate  the  generous  spirit.  It  is  pos- 
sible one  may  rise  from  a  curate  to  a  rector,  from 
thence  to  a  dean,  archdeacon,  or  so — at  length  obtain 
a  mitre,  and  never  cease  advancing,  till  he  hath  lodg- 
ed himself  in  Lambeth.  Though  I  will  not  sup- 
pose Mr  Ilhind  so  airy  as  ever  to  have  dreamed  of 
mounting  the  highest  pinnacle  of  honour  ;  yet  had 
he  so  humble  an  opinion  of  himself  as  not  to  allow 
himself  to  think,  that  he  might  one  day  merit  some 
of  the  greater  church  dignities  ?  Was  it  no  motive 
to  him  to  know,  that  there  are  people  in  the  world 
much  fonder  of  a  proselyte  from  Presbytery  than  from 
Paganism ;  and  that  the  writing  of  an  Apology 
might  very  much  contribute  to  his  advancement  ? 
He  does  not  seem  to  be  so  very  much  a  stranger 
to  good  authors,  as  not  to  have  heard  of  Juvenal's 
secret  for  rising  in  the  world. 

Would'st  thou  to  honours  and  preferments  climb, 
Be  bold  in  miscliief,  dare  some  mighty  crime, 

DiiYDEN,  Sat.  i,  1.  73. 

And  is  not  Dr  Sacheverel  a  fresh  instance  of  the 
wisdom  of  that  precept,  whose  high  misdemeanours 
made  him  at  once  the  idol  and  the  darling  of  Pligh 
Church,  the  theme  of  her  praise,  and  object  of  her 
bounty. 

II.  He  has  been  pleased  in  his  Preface  to  give  his 
own  favourable  judgment  of  his  performance,  of  the 
plainness  of  his  style  and  thought,  the  linking  of  his 
arguments,  and  so  on.  And  1  think  it  cannot  be  a- 
niiss  to  give  mine  to,  before  I  enter  on  the  book  it- 
self.   Besides  the  ill  nature  (already  noticed)  which 


MR  rhind's  preface.  15 

bewrays  itself  almost  in  every  page,  and  is  sometimes 
continued  through  many,  without  so  much  as  one  ray 
of  truth  to  qualify  it-  Besides  this,  I  say,  his  book 
bears  three  other  characters,  none  of  the  most  lovely 
indeed,  yet  too  remarkable  to  escape  notice. — I  mean, 
vanity,  dogmaticalness  and  profaneness. 

1.  Vanity.  With  a  very  distinguishing  air  he  as- 
sures the  reader,*  *  That  he  meant  something  else 

*  by  the  length  of  his  Narrative  than  to  add  to  the 

*  number  of  his  pages.'  This  was  so  necessary  an 
inuendo,  so  pretty  a  phrase,  that  he  thought  fit  to 
repeat  it  again  in  his  own  favours,  p.  79.  He  had 
before  told,  in  his  printed  Sermon  on  Liturgy,  that  his 
genius,  and  the  course  of  his  studies,  had  habituated 
him  to  some  application  of  thought.  This  was  of  so 
great,  moment  to  be  known,  perhaps  so  hard  to  be 
gathered  from  his  writings,  that  he  now  tells  it  over 
again  in  his  Apology,  p.  159«  Again,  p.  199,  he  dis- 
penses with  himself  from  writing  a  lecture  on  the 
animal  economy,  and  accounting  mechanically  for 
all  the  phenomena  of  the  Presbyterian  devotion,  be- 
cause he  wants  leisure.  No  doubt.  Yet  some  people 
think  it  had  been  not  only  as  modest,  but  as  true  an 
excuse  to  have  said,  he  wanted  ability.  In  the  mean 
time,  he  is  not  so  just  as  to  own  that  what  he  has  al- 
ready advanced  on  that  head,  he  owes  to  Dr  Scott, 
in  his  sermon  on  bodily  exercise,  from  1  Tim.  iv.  8. 
and  other  places  of  his  works. 

2.  Dogmaticalness.  He  writes  with  the  same  po- 
sitive air  as  if  he  were  infallible.  Everv  thinff  adduced 
on  the  Presbyterian  side  is  with  him  weakness,  pre- 
judice, an  argument  of  a  desperate  cause,  and  the 
like.  What  he  himself  advances,  is  put  beyond  all 
doubt,  and  he  hopes  every  discerning  and  unpreju- 
diced reader  will  take  the  hint,  and  be  convinced  as 
well  as  he.  Nay,  it  shall  be  an  impeachment 
of  the  Divine  wisdom  to  think  differently  from 
him.  Nay,  our  Lord  himself  behoved  to  do  ac- 
cording to  Mr  Rhind's  dictates.  Repeated  instances 
of  this  presumption  we  shall  meet  with  afterwards. 
The  most  learned  of  the  Arminian  side  in  the  church 

*  Preface,  p.  2. 


IG  REMARKS  ON  , 

of  England  have  owned,  that  the  Calvhiista  Iiave  to 
say  for  their  opinions  on  the  controverted  points, 
what  is  not  to  be  easily  answered.  But  there  is  no- 
thing too  hard  for  Mr  Rhind.  Conditional  Decrees, 
Freewill,  the  Apostacy  of  the  Saints,  Universal  Re- 
demption, Universal  Grace,  are  all  as  clear  to  him  as 
Self-evident  Propositions.  Nay,  so  strong  has  his 
fancy  wrought ;  that,  as  if  he  had  for  ever  decided 
the  Episcopal,  Arminian,  and  Liturgical  Controver- 
sies, he  concludes  his  book  in  the  mathematical 
style,  with  a  Q.  E.  D. 

3.  Frofaneness.  He  sets  himself  industriously, 
from  p.  189.  to  p.  207.  to  put  the  most  sacred 
things  in  the  most  burlesque  air  possible.  The 
Presbyterians,  saith  he,  p.  200,  tell  a  long  but  sense- 
less story  of  the  manner  of  God's  dealing  with  the 
souls  of  his  elect ;  how  the  work  of  grace  is  carried 
on  there  ;  and  how  their  regeneration  is  completed. 
It  is  true,  the  Presbyterians  do  talk  of  these  things  ; 
but  how  long  and  senseless  soever  the  story  is,  the 
substance  of  it  is  what  every  good  man  feels  :  It  is 
what  the  spirit  of  God  works :  It  is  a  story  which 
the  Church  of  England  divines,  the  most  judicious 
of  them,*  bishops,  too,  amongst  the  rest,  have  told  a 
thousand  times  over,  and  some  of  them  very  lately .t 
I  am  not  to  repeat  the  rest  of  his  impious  stuff  vo- 
mited out  on  that  head  j  once  printing  it  was  too 
much.  I  only  wish  that  our  prelatic  writers,  though 
they  do  not  regard  man,  yet  would  at  least  fear  God. 
For  I  suppose  that  no  man  that  reads  the  latter  part 
of  Mr  Rhind's  book  will  stick  to  acknowledge  that 
Lucian,  Celsus,  Vanlnus,  Spinosa,  Blount,  may  be 
reckoned  modest  Christians  in  comparison  of  him. 

III.  Towards  the  end  of  the  Preface,  Mr  Rhind, 
apprehending  some  one  or  other  might  essay  to  dis- 
prove his  Apology,  thinks  fit  to  bespeak  civil  usage 
for  himself;  with  certification,  that  in  case  he  is  not 
thus  used,  he  will  expose  the  Presbyterians  yet  more 
fully  to  the  world.  Were  I  of  his  council,  I  would 
advise  him,  ere  he  proceed  further,  once  to  prove 

•  See  Hooker's  Sermons,   subjoined  to  hia  Eccles.  PoUt.  Edit. 
London,  1705.  f  Bishop  Hopkins,  Dr  Edwards,  Ac. 


MR  nillND's  PREFACE.  17 

the  characters  whereby  he  has  already  attempted  to 
expose  them,  least  he  establish  a  character  upon  him- 
self,  and  the  party  he  serves,  that  will  be  none  of  the 
most  honourable.  Nor  let  him  fear  it  will  be  reckon- 
ed pedantry  to  stud  his  margin  with  vouchers  :  For 
I  can  assure  him,  the  world  is  now  so  much  infidel, 
Whigs  especially,  as  not  much  to  regard  assertion 
without  probation.  If  the  Presbyterians  are  such  as 
he  has  represented  them,  he  cannot  expect  civil  us- 
age from  them.  And  if  they  are  not  such,  he  may 
be  sensible  he  has  not  deserved  it.  However,  to 
make  him  easy,  I  shall  promise  him  all  fair  quarter, 
and  resent  his  invectives  no  otherwise  than  by  ne- 
glect: Or  if  I  chance  at  any  time  to  draw  his  picture, 
it  shall  be  with  canvas  and  colours  of  his  own  fur- 
nishing. 

IV.  I  am  now  to  enter  on  the  book  itself.  I  have 
beard  it  both  from  Prelatists  and  Presbyterians,  that 
it  was  not  done  by  Mr  Rhind  himself,  but  that  his 
separation  having  given  the  occasion,  a  better  hand 
than  his  did  the  work,  and  borrowed  his  name  to  it. 
The  Prelatists  possibly  give  out  this  to  gain  the 
greater  reputation  to  the  performance.  But  if  so,  it 
is  a  very  mean  politic  :  For,  by  how  much  it  magni- 
fies the  book,  it  disgraces  the  man,  and  at  once  les- 
sens their  own  trophy  and  the  Presbyterians'  loss. 
The  Presbyterians  found  on  this,  that  while  he  at- 
tended his  studies  among  them,  though  his  zeal  a- 
gainst  the  Prelates  was  flaming  high,  yet  his  other 
accomplishments  did  not  seem  proportional.  In  a 
word,  that  he  did  not  make  such  a  figure  as  promis- 
ed an  author.  But  this  conjecture  also  is  too  weak. 
For  years  and  application  do  oftentimes  make  surpris- 
ing changes  on  young  persons.  I  do  indeed  believe 
that  the  book  was  written  at  the  desire,  and  publish- 
ed upon  the  approbation  of  the  leaders  of  the  party. 
But  1  as  firmly  believe  Mr  Rhind  to  be  the  true  fa- 
ther ;  and  seeing  he  owns  the  book,  and  none  else 
claims  it,  I  can  see  no  reason  why  any  body  should 
believe  otherwise.  I  am  so  much  convinced  it  is 
his,   that  I  take  the  whole  book  to  be  pieced  up  of 

B 


iB:  REMARKS  ON 

Sermons  he  had  preached  at  several  occasions,  or  at 
least  of  large  shreds  of  them  artfully  tacked  toge- 
ther. Some  such  sermons  were  necessary  to  ingra- 
tiate h'm  with  his  new  masters:  his  haranguing  way 
seems  rather  adapted  for  sermons  (according  to  the 
Episcopal  v/ay  of  sermonizing)  than  for  a  dispute. 
And  which  confirms  all,  I  find  a  good  part  of  his 
Sermon  upon  Liturgy,  which  he  preached  and  print- 
ed in  the  year  1711,  engrossed  verbatim  into  his  A- 
pology,  though  he  has  not  acquainted  his  reader 
therewith. 


Sect.  III. 

Containing  Remarks  on  Mr  RhincCs  Narrative,  of  the  manner 
how  he  separated  from  the  Presbyterian  party.  From  /?,  1. 
top.  29, 

The  sum  of  his  Narrative  is,  that  he  was  educated 
Presbyterian,  turned  sceptic  upon  choice,  that  he 
might  find  out  the  truth  ;  the  result  of  which  was, 
that  he  separated  upon  conviction.  He  has  indeed 
gone  far  to  scar  one  from  quarrelling  the  account  he 
has  given,  by  promising,  p.  6.  to  deliver  the  same 
with  as  much  sincerity,  as  shall  be  these  words  with 
which  he  hopes  to  commend  his  soul  at  last  to  God. 
And  yet  I  must  needs  declare,  I  do  not  find  myself 
obliged,  even  in  charity,  much  less  in  justice,  to  be- 
lieve it.  I  cannot  help  thinking  it  is  a  piece  of  poesy 
rather  than  history  ;  a  handsome  fiction  of  the  me- 
thod he  thinks  he  ought  to  have  taken,  rather  than 
a  real  account  of  what  in  fact  he  did  take.  I  am  a- 
ware  how  hardly  this  my  judgment  may  be  con- 
structed of.  But  I  crave  to  be  heard,  and  then  let 
the  reader  give  sentence. 

By  Mr  Rhind's  own  account,  p.  6.  he  was  edu- 
cated Presbyterian.  When  he  had  run  through  the 
ordinary  course  of  the  languages  and  philosophy,  and 
commenced  Master  of  Arts,   he  applied  himself  to 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  19 

the  study  of  divinity.  After  several  years  attend- 
ance on  that,  he  went  home  to  his  own  country,  the 
shire  of  Ross,  to  undergo  trials,  in  order  to  be  li- 
censed a  preacher. 

All  this  while,  he  was  so  far  from  being  suspected 
to  incline  to  prelacy,  that  he  received  particular 
favours  from  the  Presbyterians,  as  he  himself  owns, 
p.  7.  And  as  he  was  not  suspected,  so  indeed  there 
was  no  apparent  reason  why  he  should :  For  he 
owns,  p.  8.  not  only  that  he  was  really  Presbyterian 
in  his  judgment,  but  that  he  was  a  zealot  in  that 
way. 

By  all  this  account  we  find  him  at  least  21  years 
of  age  complete ;  for  no  sooner  do  the  Presbyterians 
admit  men  to  be  preachers,  or  enter  them  on  trials 
for  that  end.  And  yet  all  this  time  he  had  not  en- 
tertained a  thought  of  separating  ;  nay,  he  had  not 
brought  his  mind  to  a  suspence  or  equilibrium  about 
the  controversy :  For  how  could  he  essay  to  com- 
mence preacher  amongst  the  Presbyterians,  while 
he  was  undetermined  to  the  one  side  or  the  other  ? 

Again  he  tells  us,  p.  152,  that  he  was  but  22  years 
among  the  Presbyterians.  There  is  then  but  one 
year  left  for  doing  all  these  things,  and  making  all 
these  enquiries  he  mentions  in  his  Narrative,  and  at 
last  determining  himself.  But,  if  he  did  them  all  in 
one  year,  I  dare  be  bold  to  pronounce  it  was  a  miracle; 
being  well  assured  it  would  have  employed  any  or- 
dinary man  seven.  A  short  abstract  of  his  Narrative 
will  sufficiently  demonstrate  this. 

1.  When  the  lucky  minute  was  come  that  was  to 
give  a  beginning  to  his  conversion,  he  conceived  a 
very  just  suspicion,  that  the  many  opinions,  where- 
with he  found  his  mind  crowded,  were  not  all  either 
well  come  by  or  right  founded.  From  this  he  con- 
cluded, that  therefore  it  was  reasonable,  if  not  neces- 
sary, to  examine  and  bring  them  to  the  test.  But,  in 
order  to  this,  prejudices  were  to  be  shaken  off; 
p.  9,  10.  Every  body  that  has  a  competent  know- 
ledge of  himself  will  allow  that  this  was  not  to  be  done 
without  time. 

B  S 


so  REMARKS  ON 

2.  Thus  prepared,  he  made  the  first  experiment 
in  some  philosophical  points.  And,  after  a  most 
impartial  and  accurate  examination,  found,  that  what 
formerly  he  had  admitted,  upon  a  supposed  scienti- 
fic evidence,  was,  in  itself,  absolutely  false  ;  p.  11. 
Every  one  will  own  that  this  was  not  to  be  done  at 
a  start. 

3.  Thence  he  proceeded  to  try  whether  his  reli- 
gious opinions  were  not  as  ill  founded  as  his  philo- 
sophical ones.  For  that  end  he  threw  himself  into 
a  state  of  absolute  scepticism,  and  found  that  he  had 
yielded  too  implicit  an  assent  to  them  ;  p.  12.  Sup- 
posing this  had  been  lawful,  yet,  I  hope,  it  will  be 
granted  it  was  not  th-e  work  of  a  day. 

4.  After  all  this  labour  to  unhinge  himself,  he 
next  began  to  search  where  he  might  fix.  To  that 
purpose  he  entered  upon  the  most  impartial  and  ac- 
curate examination  of  the  essential  articles  of  re- 
ligion he  was  able  to  make  ;  and  ceased  not  till  be 
was  rationally  persuaded  about  the  truth  of  a  natural 
reh'gion  J  p.  13.  This,  considering  how  many  fine 
books  have  been  v/rit  on  that  subject,  and  how  many 
shrewd  things  have  been  advanced  against  it  by  such 
as  are  called  the  wits  of  the  world,  and,  which  Mr 
Rhind's  curious  genius  would  undoubtedly  engage 
him  to  peruse,  would  be  sufficient  to  exercise  him  a 
very  considerable  time. 

5.  He  next  carried  his  enquiries  to  revealed  re- 
ligion J  and  examined  the  necessity  of  revelation, 
the  certainty  of  that  which  is  owned  as  such  by 
Christians, — in  a  word,  the  truth  of  the  Christian  re- 
ligion and  the  divinity  of  the  Holy  Scriptures.  Ibid. 
What  a  large  subject  of  disquisition  this  is,  and  how 
much  time  it  would  require,  may  be  easily  conjec- 
tured. 

(j.  When  he  had  got  himself  convinced  of  the 
truth  of  the  Christian  religion,  his  labour  was  but 
beginning;  for  Christians  being  multiplied  into  so 
many  sects,  which  of  them  could  he  believe  in  the 
right,  when  each  of  them  pretended  to  be  so  ?  He 
resolved,  then,  only  to  examine  the  pretensions  of 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  21 

the  most  considerable  parties,  viz.  the  Roman  Ca- 
tholics and  Protestants.  For  that  end,  he  laid  a- 
side  all  prejudices,  and  seriously  examined  all  that 
is  commonly  adduced  for  or  against  the  Roman  Ca- 
tholic way;  p.  14,  15.  Now,  who  knows  not  that 
the  Popish  controversies  are  so  very  large  a  field  as 
to  require  several  years  travel  to  get  through  them 
to  purpose  ? 

7.  He  parted  ways  with  this  infallible  church  ; 
though,  upon  a  very  small  quarrel,  as  we  shall  hear 
afterward.  But  then  he  found  the  Protestants  can- 
toned into  so  many  parties,  that  he  was  in  a  great 
quandary  where  to  find  rest  for  the  sole  of  his  foot : 
Wherefore,  to  shorten  his  work,  he  resolved  to  con- 
fine his  examination  to  the  Episcopal  and  Presby- 
terian persuasions.  And  here  it  cost  him  both  time 
and  pains  to  divest  himself  of  his  prepossessions  in 
favours  of  Presbytery,  and  to  shake  off  the  prejudices 
he  had  contracted,  or  been  educated-  in  against 
Episcopacy,  and  to  fortify  his  soul  against  the  temp- 
tations of  persecution  and  want  in  case  he  were  de- 
termined to  the  Episcopal  side  ;  p.  16 — 20. 

This  being  done,  he  entered  upon  a  very  huge 
task  : 

1.  He  did  read  the  Old  and  New  Testament  all 
over  ;  p.  '20.  Now,  though  a  shift  may  be  made  to 
get  through  that  book  in  a  short  time,  yet  it  is  a 
large  one,  and  when  one  applies  himself  to  read  it, 
with  a  view  to  be  determined  by  it  in  controverted 
points,  which  was  Mr  Rhind's  case,  he  will  find  it  a 
considerable  labour. 

2.  After  the  Bible,  he  engaged  himself  in  reading 
the  works  of  the  Fathers,  especially  those  of  the  three 
first  ages.  In  which  course  of  reading,  he  narrowly 
observed  whatever  could  serve  to  determine  the 
controversies  in  hand  j  p.  2 1 ,  22.  This  was  a  yet 
larger  task  than  the  former ;  for  though  he  hail 
never  gone  beyond  the  tliird  uge ;  yet,  to  get 
through  the  works  of  Clemens  Romanus,  Barnabas, 
Ignatius,  Polycarp,  Hermas,  Justin  Martyr,  Atlu^n- 
agoras,  Theophilus,  Tatianus,  Irena?uf,  Tertullian, 


22 


REMARKS  ON 


Clemens  Alexanilrinus,  Minutius  Felix,  Origen, 
Cyprian,  Arnobius,  Lactantius,  &c. — To  get  through 
all  these,  I  say,  with  the  histories  relating  to  their 
times,  was  sufficient  to  employ  one  a  longer  time 
than  Mr  Rhind*s  account  can  well  admit  of. 

3.  And  yet  he  was  not  near  an  end  of  his  toil  j 
for  being  curious  to  know  whatever  was  written  on 
the  head  of  government,  he  read  the  controvertists, 
of  both  sides,  on  all  the  subjects  in  debate.  In 
which,  he  declares,  he  was  so  scrupulously  exact, 
that  he  does  not  remember  any  author,  of  any  name, 
whom  he  did  not  peruse,  except  Salmasius  alone, 
which  he  could  not  come  by  ;  p.  22 — 25.  This  was 
to  be  diligent  in  good  earnest ;  For,  to  read  on  the 
Episcopal  side,  Andrews,  Bancroft,  Biison,  Burges, 
Chillingworth,  Dounham,  Dodwell,  Hooker,  Hall, 
Heylin,  Hammond,  Honneyman,  Maurice,  Monro, 
Saravia,  Sage,  Scot,  Sutlivius,  Tilen  :  On  the  Pres- 
byterian side,  Beza,  Bain,  Bucer,  Blondel,  Baillie, 
Cartwright,  Calderwood,  Clarkson,  Gillespie,  For- 
rester, Jameson,  Rutherford,  Rule,  with  a  long  et 
cetera  on  both  sides  ; — to  read  all  these  authors,  I  say, 
and  to  read  them  so  as  duly  to  weigh  the  arguments, 
objections,  answers,  exceptions,  and  replies,  was  a 
Herculean  labour.  But  where  is  there  time  for  it, 
by  Mr  Rhind's  account  ?  And  yet  he  had  not  done 
with  it.    For, 

4.  As  to  the  other  controversies  that  relate  to 
doctrine,  worship,  &c.  he  consulted  the  respective 
authors  pro  and  con. ;  p.  26.  That  is  to  say, 
he  studied  the  Arminian  and  Liturgical  contro- 
versies, which,  every  one  knows,  require  both  much 
time  and  great  application.  Yet,  after  all  this,  he 
was  only  shocked,  not  absolutely  determined.     For, 

5.  To  the  study  of  books  he  added  conversation 
with  learned  men ;  he  collected  his  observations  on 
the  spirit  and  principles  of  the  party  of  which  he 
had  so  long  been  ;  and  took  time  to  inform  himself 
about  what  he  did  not  know  of  the  other ;  and 
narrowly  observed  how  the  spirit  and  principles  of 
both  discovered  themselves  by  overt  acts.     AH  this 


MR  RHIND  S   NARRATIVE. 


23 


lie  did,  not  once,  but  many  times  :  and  after  all  this 
he  had  his  soul  to  work  up  to  a  due  seriousness  and 
intention  of  thought ;  and  then  once  more  recollect- 
ed what  he  had  learned  from  men,  books,  or  his  own 
experience  for  or  against  either  principle  or  party. 
Not  till  this  was  done,  and  the  aid  and  direction  of 
God  invoked,  was  he  determined  in  his  judgment. 
And  even  when  he  was  determined,  bashluliiess  or 
fear  restrained  him,  till  at  last  a  forcible  conviction, 
and  the  severe  remonstrances  of  his  conscience, 
obliged  him  publicly  to  declare  himself  j  p.  2G — 2i9. 

This  is  his  account;  but  now,  how  a  man  could 
do  all  this  within  the  space  of  22  years,  when  he 
had  not  so  much  as  a  thought  of  doing  any  thing  of 
it  at  an  age  wherein  he  was  capable  to  be  a  preacher, 
which  we  cannot  suppose  earlier  than  21  ;  that  is, 
in  a  word,  how  Mr  Rhind  could  do  that  in  one  year 
which  would  have  kept  any  ordinary  man  constantly 
busy  seven  years,  he  has  yet  to  account  for  to  the  world; 
and  till  it  be  done,  he  must  excuse  his  readers,  me 
at  least,  from  believing  the  sincerity  of  his  Narrative, 
notwithstanding  the  solemnity  of  his  asseveration. 
And  so  I  proceed  in  my  remarks. 

II.  Though  Mr  Rhind  has  told  us,  p.  6,  that  he 
owes  his  birth  to  Presbyterian  parents,  yet  he  has 
concealed  his  having  been  baptised  by  a  Presbyterian 
minister.  Did  it  look  like  sincerity  to  dissemble 
that  which  was  of  so  great  moment  to  be  known  ? 
I  seriously  declare  I  do  not  intend  banter  or  raillery 
by  this  particular ;  but  touch  upon  it,  because,  ac- 
cording to  Mr  Rhind's  principles,  it  is  of  the  last 
consequence,  not  only  to  himself,  but,  possibly,  to 
many  others.  He  is  in  a  much  worse  condition  than 
if  he  had  been  baptised  by  a  mere  layman  or  mid- 
wife in  the  Church  of  England ;  for,  though  bap- 
tism, as  dispensed  by  them,  is  irregular,  yet,  being 
Christians,  within  the  church,  and  having  at  least 
the  connivance  of  the  Bishop,  it  is  not  invalid,  and, 
therefore,  is  not  repeated,  ordinarily,  at  least.  But 
Presbyterian  ministers  are  no  Christians.  They  are, 
by  his  scheme,  not  only  without  the  church,  but 


24  REMARKS  ON 

enemies  to  it.    Their  baptism,  then,  is  null,  and  can 
have  no  effect,  even  though  the  person  is  afterwards 
confirmed  by  the  Bishop:  For  what  is  in  its  own  nature 
null,  can  never  be  madevalidbyaposterior  deed:  And, 
therefore,  as  Dr  Hicks  informs  us,*  the  Church  has 
provided  the  office  for  the  baptism  of  those  of  riper 
years,  which  was  not  originally  in  the  liturgy,  on 
purpose  to  answer  the  case  of  persons  in  such  cir- 
cumstances.   This  must  needs  afiect  Mr  Rhind  very 
heavily ;  for,  according  to  his  own  principles  con- 
cerning baptism,!  he  is  no  Christian — is  without 
grace — incapable  of  salvation — can  neither  be  priest 
nor  deacon,  consequently  the  baptism  dispensed  by 
him  to  otliers  is  null  j  consequently,  by  his  principles 
they  must  all  be  damned,  if  extraordinary  mercy  in- 
terpose not.     I  could  not  think  of  all  this  without 
horror,  and,  therefore,  am  in  pain  till  I  hear  how  he 
extricates  himself.     By  all  I  can  apprehend,  there  is 
but  one  way  to  save  him  and  prevent  further  mischief, 
viz.  to  get  Episcopal  baptism.    If  he  is  not  convinced 
of  the  necessity  of  this  by  what  I  have  said,  I  re- 
commend to  him  to  read  Mr  Laurence's  late  book 
of  the  Invalidity  of  Lay- Baptism,  where  he  may  have 
all  objections  answered,  and  both  arguments  and  an 
example  to  persuade  him. 

IlL  Mr  Rhind  still  professes  that,  while  he  was 
among  the  Presbyterians,  he  was  without  the  church, 
and  incapable  of  salvation.  One  would  think,  there- 
fore, that  he  should  have  ascribed  to  God  the  first 
hint  was  given  him  to  make  his  escape  out  of  so 
dangerous  a  state.  Even  the  Church  of  England 
Divines  themselves,  who  have  gone  ofi*  the  Calvinian 
scheme,  do  yet  acknowledge  a  preventing  grace. 
But  does  Mr  Rhind  this  ?  No.  He  ascribes  it  to 
himself  and  his  own  thought ;  and  that,  as  I  take 
him,  under  a  favourable  planetary  aspect.    *  When  I 

*  had  arrived,'  saitli  he,  p.  i).  *at  a  competent  age,  in 

*  some  lucky  minute,  my  thoughts  suggested  to  me  the 

*  reasonablenessofmy  enquiring  into  my  opinions  about 
'  things.'    God  is  not  brought  into  the  account  here  ; 

•  Piefxce  to  the  Invalidity  of  Lsj-Eaptism.       f  P.  177.  &c. 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  25 

nay,  he  has  not  so  much  as  a  hint  of  addressing  him 
by  prayer,  till  he  had  determined  himself  as  to  natural 
religion,  till  he  had  got  himself  persuaded  of  the  truth 
of  the  Christian  religion, — and  till  he  had  resolved 
himself  against  the  Romish.     After  all  this,  and  no 
sooner,  did  he  address  the  God  of  all  truth,  p.  19. 
This  conduct  of  his  was  designed  and  founded  upon 
two  reasons,  which  thereadermay  weigh  at  his  pleasure. 
First,  he  is  so  much  an  enemy  to  enthusiasm,  that  he 
did  not  think  it  would  become  him  to  impute  any 
motion  in  his  soul  to  the  spirit  of  God  :  For  the  man- 
ner of  God's  dealing  with  the  souls  of  his  elect,  is 
but  a  senseless  story,  and  it  was  below  his  philoso- 
phical genius,  to  ascribe  that  to  a  divine  etliciency, 
which  might  otherwise  be  accounted  for.     Secondly, 
His  story  would  not  have  told  right,  if  he  should 
have  owned  God.     For  he  was  resolved  to  throw 
himself  into  a  state  of  scepticism,  wherein  he  was  to 
suspend  the  belief  of  the  being  of  a  God.     And  in 
that  state  it  had  been  very  unaccountable  to  pray 
to  him  :  For  every  one  that  comes  to  God,  must  be- 
lieve that  he  is.    It  will  therefore  be  very  necessary, 
that  Mr  Rhindjin  his  next,  explain  a  little  upon  the 
lucky  minute,   because  people  are  much  in  the  dark 
about  it. 

IV.  Mr  Rhind,  p.  7-  makes  mention  in  general  of 
his  obligations  to  the  Presbyterians.  But  did  he  in- 
tend thereby  to  testify  his  gratitude  ?  No.  The 
whole  strain  of  his  book  is  evidence,  that  he  had  lost 
all  impressions  of  that  j  but  he  does  it,  that  he  may 
raise  his  own  character,  by  shewing  how  great  temp- 
tations to  the  contrary,  he  had  se})arate  from  them, 
and  upon  what  disinterested  views  he  had  come  over 
to  the  Episcopal  side.  This  is  plain  from  his  own 
words,  p.  8.  *  And  if  now  1  am  none  of  theirs,  and 

*  if,  after  having  received  so  many  discourtesies  from 

*  them,  I  do  still  entertain  a  grateful  resentment  of 

*  their   favours,  imagine  how  deep  the  impression 

*  must  have  been,  and  how  much  I   would  be  pre- 

*  judicate  in   their   belialf,   wlien   actually   allowed 
'  \QTy  liberal  expressions  of  their  fiivour  and  esteem/ 


26  REMARKS  ON 

— I  cannot  persuade  myself,  that  such  artifice  would 
become  a  man  recommending  his  soul  to  God  in  his 
last  minutes. 

V.  I  said  before,  that  he  parted  ways  with  the 
Church  of  Rome  upon  a  very  slender  quarrel.  What 
was  it?     Take  it  in  his  own  words,  p.  15.  *  Though 

*  I  had  been  convinced  of  the  truth  of  all  the  articles 

*  of  Pope  Pius's  creed,   (which    you  may    think 

*  would  argue  a  strong  faith,  and  a  great  deal  of  vio- 

*  lence  offered  to  my  reason,)  yet  could  I  never  be 

*  persuaded,  that  the  damning  of  all,  who  did  not  be- 
'  lieve  as  I  did,  should  be  a  condition  of  my  salva- 

*  tion.     In  a  word,  the  absq,  qua  fide^  ^c,  which 

*  they  had  made  a  term  of  communion  and  an  ar- 

*  tide  of  their  faith,  was  so  choking,  that  it  would 

*  not  believe  for  me.  And  as  the  disbelief  of  this 
'  one  article  would  hinder  their  receiving  me  into 

*  their  communion  :  so  indeed,  this  alone  abundant- 

*  ly  convinced  me,  that  I  should  never  enter  into 

*  it.'  For  understanding  this,  the  reader  must  know, 
that  Pope  Pius's  creed,  after  a  rehearsal  of  the  several 
articles,  hath  this  affixed:  'and  the  same  true  Catholic 

*  faith,  without  which  no  man  can  be  saved — I  the  same 

*  N.  do  vow  and  swear.'  This  damning  clause  was  the 
quarrel  j  but  I  affirm,  that  supposing  he  had  been 
convinced  of  the  truth  of  all  the  other  articles,  it 
was  no  good  one,  because  he  has  already  done  the 
same.  The  Church  of  England,  to  which  Mr  Rhind 
has  joined  himself,  hath  engrossed  the  Athanasian 
Creed  in  her  liturgy :  And  yet,  that  creed  has  at 
least  two  such  damning  clauses,  and  in  harder  words 
too ;  one  in  the  beginning,    *  Whosoever   will   be 

*  saved,  before  all  things,  it  is  necessary  to  hold  the 

*  Catholic  faith,  which  faith,  except  every  one  do 

*  keep  holy  and  undefiled,  without  doubt  he  shall 

*  perish  everlastingly.'  Another  at  the  end  :  '  This 
'  is  the  Catholic  faith,  which  except  a  man  believe 
«  faithfully,  he  cannot  be  saved.* 

Why  then  did  he  refuse  the  Roman  Catholic  com- 
munion, for  that  which  he  has  approved  of  in  the 
Church  of  England  communion  ?  I  camiotsay  it  was 


MR  uhind's  narrative.  27 

unwisely  done  :  For  the  smaller  the  quarrel  was,  the 
easier  may  the  reconciliation  be. 

VI,  While  Mr  Rhind  is  giving  an  account  of  his 
own  study  of  the  Fathers,  he  falls  heavily,  p.  21,  upon 
the  Presbyterians,  for  their  want  of  respect  to  them. 
But  has  he  adduced  in  all  his  books  one  instance  from 
the  writings  of  the  Presbyterians  to  prove  his  charge  ? 
Not  one.  What  meant  he  then  ?  Why,  he  knew 
that  was  a  common-place  for  declaiming  on  among  his 
party,  and  it  had  been  a  pity  to  miss  it.  No  other 
proof  has  he  for  his  charge,  unless  you  will  be  so  kind 
as  to  take  his  own  assertions.     *  They  who  had  the 

*  directton  of  my  studies,*  saith  he,  *  never  recom- 
'  mended  to  me  the  reading  so  much  as  of  one  Fa- 

*  ther.'  No  wonder,  truly  ;  it  was  soon  enough  to 
begin  the  study  of  the  Fathers  at  the  age  of  22. 
Most  part  of  young  men  are  not  sooner  ripe  for  it ; 
and  at  that  age,  Mr  Rhind  separated.  Bishop  Bur- 
net is  thought  to  have  tolerable  good  skill  in  training 
young  theologues,  now  hear  him  :  * — '  It  may  seem 
'  strange,  that  in  this  whole  direction,  I  have  said 

*  nothing  concerning  the  study  of  the  Fathers  or 

*  Church  history.  But  1  said  at  first,  that  a  great 
'  distinction  was  to  be  made  between  what  was  ne- 
'  cessary  to  prepare  a  man  to  be  a  priest,  and  what 

*  was  necessary  to  make  him  a  complete  and  learn- 

*  ed  divine.     The  knowledge  of  these  things  is  ne- 

*  cessary  to  the  latter,  though  they  do  not  seem  so 

*  necessary  for  the  former.  There  are  many  things 
'  to  be  left  to  the  prosecution  of  a  divine's  study, 

*  that  therefore  are  not  mentioned  here,   without 

*  any  design  to  disparage  that  sort  of  learning.'  Thus 
he.  But,  proceeds  Mr  Rhind,  I  frequently  heard 
them  talk  contemptibly  of  them  and  their  works,  ex- 
cepting still  St  Augustine'sbooks  of  predestination  and 
grace.  That  excellent  person,  Mr  George  Meldrum, 
late  Professor  of  Divinity  at  Edinburgh,  was  he  who 
had  the  direction  of  Mr  Rhind's  studies.     If  he  talk- 

.    •  Pastoral  Care,  p,  179. 


28 


REMARKS  ON 


ed  contemptibly  of  the  Fathers,  I  can  say,  from  my 
own  personal  knowledge  of  him,  to  be  confirmed  by 
naany  thousands  yet  alive,  that  it  was  what  he  hard- 
ly ever  did  of  any  body  else.  Mr  Rhind  then  must 
prove  this  ere  he  is  believed. 

But  while  he  charges  the  Presbyterians  so  fiercely 
on  this  head,  why  does  he  himself  give  such  a  con- 
temptible hint  of  Augustine?  Why,  p.  114,  talks  he  so 
contemptibly  of  Jerome,  that  he  contradicts  himself, 
&c.  ?  Why,  Augustine  was  for  the  doctrines  of  predes- 
tination and  grace,  and  Jerome  for  Presbytery,  both 
which  are  Mr  Rhind's  aversion  ;  yet  one  would  think 
he  should  not  deny  that  freedom  to  Presbyterians 
which  he  takes  to  himself.  The  Presbyterians  will- 
ingly acknowledge,  that  the  Fathers  have  done  excel- 
lent things ;  yet  they  don't  believe  they  were  infal- 
lible. They  stick  not  to  say,  that  the  Fathers  were 
subject  to  the  same  infirmities  with  other  men,  and 
their  works  as  full  of  gross  escapes,  as  these  of  latter 
authors,  and  that  they  wrote  (as  themselves  acknow- 
ledge,) crowdedly  and  loosely,  till  heresies  and 
schisms  arising,  taught  them  more  correctness. 
And  do  not  the  Church  of  England  Divines  talk  as 
contemptibly  of  them  as  all  this,  or  whatever  else 
Presbyterians  have  said  of  them  can  amount  to  ?  Yes. 
Never  was  there  a  set  of  writers  in  the  world,  that 
treated  the  Fathers  more  homely  and  coarsely  than 
they  do.  The  only  difference  is,  that  they  fall  into 
this  strain,  when  they  find  the  Fathers  to  be  against 
them.  But  then,  when  they  either  are  one,  or  can 
be  screwed  over  to  their  own  side,  oh  then  !  the  Fa- 
thers are  all  oracles,  and  it  is  the  sin  of  Cham  to  open 
a  mouth  against  them.  Need  I  cite  instances  to 
prove  all  this  ?  No.  It  is  clear  to  every  one  who 
is  acquainted  with  their  writings  ;  yet  1  shall  give 
one  or  two  for  satisfying  the  reader.  One  of  Mr 
Rhind's  learned  brethren  of  the  clergy,  *  has  lately 
appeared  \Qry  loudly  in  defence  of  tiie  book  about 

*  Mr  Caldcr. 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  S9 

Antichrist,  ascribed  to  Hippolitus,  though  no  man 
tliat  had  not  quite  prostituted  his  sense  would  have 
done  it.  He  has  been  told  how  Coke,  Fulk,  Whit- 
aker,  three  famous  divines  of  the  Church  of  England, 
have  disparaged  it,  and  how  Monsieur  le  Fevre, 
that  eminent  critic,  hath  made  a  jest  of  it,  and  how, 
supposing  it  were,  what  he  would  have  it  to  be, 
yet  makes  nothing  for  his  purpose.  Yet  he,  like  a 
true  Teague,  is  resolved  to  keep  his  text,  whatever 
he  say  on  it.  To  put  him  in  liumour,  then,  after  so 
much  wrath,  it  shall  be  allowed  that  Hippolitus's 
book  is  genuine.  Now  hear,  with  what  profound  re- 
spect. Jewel,  bishop  of  Salisbury,  treats  *  the  re- 
verend Father  and  his  work.  *  *Tis  a  very  little 
'  book,  of  small  price,  and  as  small  credit.     It  ap- 

*  peareth  that  it  was  some  simple  man  that  wrote  the 

*  book,  both  for  the  phrases  of  his  speech  in   the 

*  Greek  tongue,  which  commonly  are  very  childish, 

*  and  also,  for  the  truth  and  weight  of  the  matter,* 
He  beginneth  the  first  sentence  of  his  book  with 
Enim,  which  a  very  small  child  would  scarcely  do. 
After  a  recital  of  several  of  his  blunders,  he  adds, 

*  And  this  he  saith,  without  either  warrant  of  the 

*  Scriptures,  or  authority  of  the  church. — He   al- 

*  legeth  the  Apocalypse  of  St  John  in  the  stead  of 

*  Daniel,  which  is  a  token  of  great  ignorance,  or  of 

*  marvellous  oblivion.'  Say  now,  what  discipline  a 
Presbyterian  had  deserved,  had  he  treated  so  worthy 
a  Fatlier  so  familiarly.  Take  another  instance. 
Bishop  Wlytgift  f  runs  a  comparison  betwixt  the 
Fathers  and  the  English  Bishops  in  truth  of  doc- 
trine, honesty  of  life,  and  right  use  of  exernal  things, 
and  very  mannerly  gives  the  preference  to  himself 
and  his  colleagues  in  all  the  three.  If  these  instances 
are  not  sufficient,  Mr  Rhind  may  have  five  hundred 
more  upon  demand,  and  perhaps  some  of  them  be- 
fore we  have  done.  To  put  an  end  for  ever  to  this 
topic  of  declaiming  against  the  Presbyterians,  I  here 

•  Reply  to  Mr  Hartling's  Ans.  Art.  1.  Div.  5. 
f  Defence  of  the  Aus.  p  472. 


so  REMARKS  ON 

challenge  the  Episcopalians  to  make  a  collection  of 
all  the  contemptible  things  the  Presbyterians  have 
written  of  the  Fathers.  And  if  I  do  not  make  as 
large  a  collection  of  as  contemptible  things,  that  the 
Episcopal  authors  have  written  of  them,  it  shall  be 
owned  they  have  reason  for  their  declamations.  If 
they  refuse  this,  they  must  give  us  a  reason  why  they 
may  make  bold  with  the  Fathers,  and  the  Presby- 
terians not.  Have  Prelatists  only  the  privilege  of 
railing  at  them  ? 

VII.  Mr  Rhind  gives  an  ample  enough  commen- 
dation to  the  writers  of  his  own  way.  *  I  found  them 
'  all,  saith  he,  p.  23,  to  be  men  of  discretion  and  sense, 

*  so  that  should  I  name  all  whom  I  thought  to  have 

*  acted  their  part  handsomely,  I  should  leave  none  un- 

<  named.'  Is  this  the  sincerity  he  promised  ?  Could 
he  find  never  one  senseless  author  on  the  Episcopal 
side  ?  Why,  certainly  he  has  looked  on  them  with  a 
lover's  eye ;  for  who  is  there  that  knows  not,  that 
the  confusion  of  languages  at  Babel  was  never  great- 
er than  is  among  the  Episcopal  writers  ?  Where 
shall  we  find  any  two  of  them  that  go  entirely  upon 
the  same  scheme  ?  Does  not  every  body  know  how 
they  mutually  reject  each  other's  arguments  ?  Should 
I  instance  any  of  their  writers  whom  I  judge  to  have 
performed  but  so  and  so,  I  know  I  would  be  declined 
as  a  partial  judge  ;  but  let  us  hear  one  of  themselves 
giving  the  character  of  his  fellows  that  went  before 
him.  Mr  Thomas  Edwards  asserts*  of  them,  that 
as  to  their  proofs  out  of  Scripture,  *  they  understood 
«  notwhattheysaid,  nor  whereof  they  affirmed.'  And 
in  a  later  book,t  he  is  so  far  from  repenting  of  these 
hard  words,  that  *  he  hopes  every  body  will  grant  he 

<  had  reason  for  them.'  And  he  would  not  have  this 
meant  of  one  or  two  only  of  his  fellow  writers,  but 
of  the  whole  bulk  of  them.  And  therefore,  he  pulls 
down  the  whole  frame  of  Episcopacy,  to  build  it  after 
his  own  new  and  better  fashion.  Now,  either  Mr 
Edwards  has  not  acted  his  part  handsomely,  or  none 

•  Discourse  against  Extemporary  Prayer, 
f  Diocesan  Episcopacy  proved  from  Holy  Scriptures,  p.  231.^ 


MR  RHIND*S  NARRATIVE.  St 

of  the  rest  have  :  For  it  is  sure  but  a  sorry  way  of 
acting,  when  one  knows  not  what  he  says,  or  where- 
of he  affirms. 

VIII.  Of  all  the  Episcopal  authors,  Mr  Rhind 
gives  the  preference  to  Mr  Dodwell  and  M.  Sage.* 
To  the  first  particularly  for  his  book  of  Schism,  and 
that  of  the  One  Priesthood  and  One  Altar;  and  to  the 
latter  for  his  Principles  of  the  Cyprianic  Age,  and 
the  Vindication  thereof. 

That  Mr  Dodwell  was  a  man  of  vast  reading  and 
abstract  life,  every  one  must  acknowledge  ;  but  that 
his  books  are  of  a  most  pernicious  tendency,  I  am 
well  persuaded  no  one  ought  to  deny.  For  in  order 
to  make  room  for  planting  Prelacy,  he  hath,  so  far 
as  his  principles  prevail,  not  only  destroyed  charity, 
but  grubbed  up  the  very  roots  of  Christianity,  yea  of 
natural  religion.  Whether  this  be  an  unjust  cen- 
sure, I  refer  it  to  the  reader  upon  hearing  of  the  fol- 
lowing account. 

His  book  against  Schism  he  published  in  the 
year  1679,  when  the  civil  government  did  not  want 
to  have  a  bad  opinion  of  the  Non-conformists.  There- 
in he  attempts  to  prove,  not  only  that  the  separatists 
from  Episcopal  government  are  Schismatics,  but  t 
that  no  prayers  made  by  themselves,  nor  by  others 
for  them,  can  find  acceptance  with  God,  except  such 
prayers  as  are  put  up  for  their  conversion  from  the 
Schism,  and  that  their  separation  is  the  sin  unto  death, 
spoken  of  by  St  John,  1  Ep.  chap.  v.  ver.  16.  That  t 
that  dreadful  text,  Heb.  vi.  4,  5,  6.  *  It  is  impossible 
*  for  those  that  were  once  enlightened,' — is  applicable 
to  them.  That§  they  are  guilty  of  the  same  crime, 
and  as  real  enemies  to  Christ,  as  those  who  in  terms 
professed  him  to  be  an  impostor.  That  ||  such  se- 
paration is  a  sin  against  the  Holy  Ghost,^  and  an 
interpretative  disowning  Christ  for  our  master.  Nay,** 
that  it  is  as  criminal  as  the  sin  of  the  angels,  and  the 
old  world,  and  the  Sodomites,  and  the  Israelites  in 
the  wilderness.     In  a  word,  that  nothing  is  effectual 

*  P.  24.     f  Chap.  xi.  sect.  7-     %  Chap.  xlil.      §  Ibid.  sect.  IS. 
II  Chap,  siv.         f  Ibid.  sect.  20,        **  Ibid.  sect.  22. 


S2  REMARKS  ON 

to  salvation,  without  being  in  the  Episcopal  cont- 
munion.  I  pose  now  Mr  Rhind  to  find  any  thing 
more  impious  and  scandalous  in  Spinosa's  book,  to 
which,  he  says,  the  Presbyterians  compare  Mr  Dod- 
well's. 

This,  one  would  have  thought,  was  enough  for 
one  man  in  his  whole  life.  But  Mr  Dodwell  did  not 
think  so.  The  parliament  of  England,  considering 
the  great  danger  the  nation  was  in  from  Popery, 
saw  it  was  necessary  to  have  better  thoughts  of  the 
Dissenters,  and  to  give  them  more  countenance  than 
would  have  followed  upon  his  principles.  And 
therefore,  shortly  after  the  pubHshing  of  his  book^ 
viz.  upon  the  10th  of  January  1680,  the  Common* 
declared  by  their  vote,  nemine  contradicente,   *  It  is 

*  the  opinion  of  this  house,  that  the  prosecution  of 

*  Protestant  Dissenters,  upon  the  penal  laws,  is  at 

*  this  time  grievous  to  the  subject,  a  weakening  the 

*  Protestant  interest,  an  encouragement  to  Popery, 

*  and  dangerous  to  the  peace  of  the  kingdom.'  This 
was  plainly  to  blast  all  hopes  of  the  fruits  might 
otherwise  have  been  expected  from  Mr  Dodwell's 
book.  Whereupon  he  makes  a  second  attack,  and  in 
the  year  1683,  published  his  book  of  the  One  Priest- 
hood, One  Altar,  wherein  he  over  again  attempt- 
ed to  prove  the  Non-conformists  Schismatics,  and 
imagining  he  had  done  it,  infers*  that  they  can  lay 
no  claim  to  the  one  altar,  nor  to  the  one  priesthood, 
to  the  favour  of  God  here,  nor  the  enjoyment  of  him 
hereafter. 

It  was  no  wonder  he  was  thus  severe  upon  the 
Dissenters  :  For  he  proceeded,  and  made  the  Church 
of  England  herself,  upon  the  revolution  establishment, 
schismatical,  and  in  the  year  1704,  published  his 
Latin  book,  entitled  Parcenesis  adeMeros  de  nupero 
Schismate  Arigiicano,  to  advertise  foreigners  thereof. 
What,  you  will  say,  was  his  quarrel  with  the  Revolu- 
tion Church  of  England  ?  Was  it  her  injuries  to  the 
late  King  James  ?  No.  W^as  it  her  renouncing  the 

♦  Chap.  xiii.  tcct.  9.  12,  13,  U. 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  3S 

doctrines  of  passive  obedience  and  non-resistance  on 
any  pretence  whatsoever  ?  No.  Was  it  the  scandal- 
ous new  prayers  she  had  put  into  the  liturgy  ?  No. 
All  these  things  he  expressly  tells  us,  p.  3.  He, 
with  those  of  his  principles,  made  a  shift  to  bear 
with  ;  perhaps  so  much  the  more  easily,  that,  as  the 
writer  of  his  life  tells  us,  he  had  been  proclaimed  a 
rebel  for  not  coming  in  and  taking  part  with  the 
forces  of  the  said  K.  Jam.es,  when  they  endeavour- 
ed to  keep  possession  of  Ireland,  in  the  year  1689. 
What  was  it  then  disobliged  him  ?  Why,  the  Bishops* 
mitre  was  touched,  and  that  was  of  more  considera- 
tion than  the  king's  crown.  The  non-juring  Bishops 
were  dispossessed ;  their  vacant  sees,  after  much 
patience,  filled  with  as  good  men  as  themselves. 
That  was  never  to  be  digested,  and  therefore  he  de- 
clared the  establishment  a  schism. 

This  was  a  pretty  high  flight,  and  yet  he  was  not 
at  his  pitch.  In  the  year  1706,  he  published  his 
Epistolary  Discourse,  proving  from  the  Scripturesand 
first  Fathers,  that  the  soul  is  a  principle  naturally 
mortal;  wherein  is  proved,  that  none  have  the  power 
of  giving  the  divine  immortalising  spirit,  since  the 
apostles,  but  only  the  bishops.  Here  was  a  very 
new  and  surprising  scene  opened.  The  heathens 
that  never  heard  of  Christ  were  made  happy  by  it. 
The  w^orst  they  had  to  fear  was,  that  their  souls 
should  vanish  into  thin  air.  But  then  sad  was  the 
case  of  all  separatists  from  the  Episcopal  communion : 
For  though  their  souls  were  neither  by  nature  im- 
mortal, nor  immortalised  by  Episcopal  baptism  ;  yet, 
he  found  a  cue  to  have  them  immortalised  actually 
by  the  pleasure  of  God  to  punishment.  Was  ever 
such  horrid  doctrine  heard  of  among  Christians  ? 
However,  that  book,  though  perhaps  the  very  worst 
ever  saw  the  light,  had  by  accident,  one  very  good 
efJ'ect.  For,  such  as  were  before  in  danger  of  being 
implicitly  carried  into  his  principles  by  the  fame  of 
his  learning ;  when  they  saw  that  he  would  force 
even  the  Scriptures  and  Fathers  to  vouch  for  the  na- 

c 


34  REMARKS    ON 

tural  mortality  of  the  soul,  very  justly  presumed,  that 
his  reasonings  from  them  in  his  other  books  were  to 
be  suspected. 

It  is  now  worth  the  while  to  see  how  Mr  Rhind 
refines  on  this. 

*  It  is  true,*  saitli  he,  p.  24.  *  Mr  Dodwell  seemed 

*  to  have  given  his  enemies  a  handle  against  him,  by 

*  the  uncouth  thoughts  which  he  vented  in  his  book 

*  of  the  soulj  but  this  he  did  in  a  manner  so  learned, 

*  and  so  far  above  the  comprehension  of  ordinary 

*  readers,  that,  allowing  his  opinion  to  be  erroneous, 

*  yet  would  not  many  be  in  hazard  of  being  pervert- 

*  ed   by  it.      Withal,  I  considered  that  my  then 

*  search  was  not  to  be  employed  about  that  sup- 

*  posed  singular  opinion  of  his  j  for  Vvhat  I  was  then 

*  desirous  to  know,  was  only,  whether  his  arguments 

*  for  Episcopacy  were  forcible  or  not  ?' 

Here  is  a  text  worth  the  commenting  on.  Did 
Mr  Dodwell  seem  only,  did  he  not  really  give  a  han- 
dle not  only  to  his  enemies,  but  to  all  the  world  that 
had  any  regard  for  religion  ?  Bat  why  does  Mr 
Khind  call  it  his  book  of  the  soul  ?  Why  does  he 
not  call  it  his  book  for  Episcopacy  ?  Episcopacy  was 
the  conclusion  intended,  the  morality  of  the  soul 
only  a  medium  for  enforcing  it.  Why  does  he  say 
it  was  writ  above  the  com.prehension  of  ordinary 
readers  ?  Did  he  not  write  it  in  English  ?  And  is 
not  this  a  tolerable  presumption,  that  he  designed 
that  he  should  be  understood  ?  Is  not  the  doctrine, 
to  wit,  the  mortality  of  the  soul,  so  plain,  that  every 
ploughman  may  understand  it.  But  Mr  Rhind  is 
right  : — For  the  arguments  of  proving  this  doctrine 
are  above  the  comprehension,  not  only  of  ordinary 
readers,  but  of  extraordinary  too,  even  of  all  under- 
standing. This  I  am  sure  of,  that  the  fioribility  of 
the  wills  of  dead  souls,  *  separate  souls  receiving  water 
baptism,  t  and  the  like,  are  notions  as  much  above  the 
capacitiesof  Presbyterians  as  Jacob  Behmen*s  lucubra- 
tions are.  I  hope  many  are  not  in  hazard  of  being  per- 

*  S«et.  4l.p.  17S.  t  Sect.  42. 


MR  riiind's  narrative.  S5 

verted  by  it.  Bat  Mr  Rhind  himself  is  so  unhappy  as 
to  be  one  ;  for  it  is  nothinc^  but  a  supposed  singular 
opinion,  he  will  not  positively  say  it  is  erroneous  ;  but 
allowing  it  to  be  so,  it  is  not  dangerous  because  of  its 
obscurity.  But  how,  in  all  the  world,  could  he  suf- 
fer these  words  to  drop  from  him,  '  That  his  search 

*  was  not  to  be  employed  about  that  singular  opi- 

*  nion  of  Mr  Dodwell's,  but  to  know  whether  his 
'  arguments  for  Episcopacy  were  forcible  or  not  ?* 
Is  not  the  natural  mortality  of  the  soul,  and  its 
baing  immortalised  by  Episcopal  baptism,  or  in  de- 
ject of  it,  by  the  pleasure  of  God  to  punishment, 
one  of  his  arguments  for  Episcopacy  ?  What  meant 
Mr  lihind  by  such  a  juggle  ?  Thinks  lie,  Mr  Dod- 
well's book  is  not  extant,  or  that  all  the  world  is 
turned  quite  senseless,  and  w^ants  eyes  to  read  it  ?  I 
cannot  think  that  Mr  Rhind  himself,  upon  a  review, 
will  say,  that  he  has  used  the  sincerity  that  would 
become  an  expiring  soul. 

But  to  go  on  with  the  history  of  Mr  Dodwell. 
As  he  had  proved  the  Dissenters  and  Low-Church 
schismatics,  so  the  Nonjuring  High  Church  Tories, 
who  continued  the  separation  after  the  death  of  the 
deprived  Bishops,  must,  in  their  turn,  be  declared 
schismatics  too.  For  this  purpose,  he  published  a 
book,  the  last  he  wrote,  entitled,  The  Case  in  View, 
now  in  Fact,  proving,  that  the  continuance  of  a 
separate  communion  without  substitutes,  in  any  of 
the  late  invalidly  de})rived  sees,  since  the  death  of 
William  Lord  Bishop  of  Norwich,  is  schismatical ; 
with  an  Appendix,  proving,  That  our  late  invalid- 
ly deprived  Fathers  had  no  right  to  substitute  suc- 
cessors, who  might  legitimate  the  separation,  after 
that  the  schism  had  been  concluded  by  the  decease 
of  the  last  survivor  of  those  same  Fathers.  Thus,  I 
think,  there  were  very  few  in  England,  Episcopal, 
or  Dissenter,  of  High  Church  or  Low  Church,  that 
were  not,  successively  at  least,  schismatics  by  Mr 
Dodwell's  account.  Plainly,  his  head  was  turned  with 
immoderate  zeal ;  and  therefore  schism,  schism,  was 
his  everlasting  clack.    Mr  Rhind,  indeed,  has  given, 

C  2 


S6  REMARKS  OX 

p.  25.,  another  character  of  him,  viz.  *  That  he  has 

*  stated  the  controversy  fairly,  that  his  authorities 

*  are  pertinent  and  justly  alleged,  and  that  his  de- 

*  ductions  from  them  and  all  his  other  reasonings,  do 

*  proceed  in  a  mathematical  chain.'  This  character 
I  shall,  ad  kominem,  allow :  For,  whenever  I  shall 
find  Mr  Dodwell's  and  Mr  Rhind's  reasonings  quite 
contrary ;  which  I  hope  not  seldom  to  find  in  the 
following  Sheets,  it  will  necessarily  follow  that  Mr 
Khind  is  fully  answered,  a  mathematical  chain  be- 
ing more  inviolable  than  an  adamantine  one-  So 
much  for  Mr  Dodwell. 

As  for  M.  Sage,  our  Apologist's  other  celebrated 
author,  all  he  says  of  him  is  : — *  And  in  truth,*  saitli 
he,  p.  25.,  '  it  is  as  much  as  can  be  said  of  any  man, 
'  That  he  thought  he  pursued  the  argument  in  the 

*  same  manner  with  Mr  Dodwell,  and  improved  up- 

*  on  it.' 

Of  this  character,  the  panegyrical  part  is  hyper-- 
bolical,  the  historical  part  false.  First,  I  say,  the 
panegyrical  part,  viz.  that  it  is  as  much  as  can  be 
said  of  any  man,  is  hyperbolical.  No  man  that  is 
not  blindly  partial,  will  make  him  a  standard.  It  is 
true,  he  was  master  of  several  good  qualities ;  of  a 
good  capacity,  and  great  application ;  but  the  Re- 
volution had  soured  his  temper,  which  carried  him 
out  often  to  transgress  the  rules  of  religion,  as  well 
as  decency ;  witness  his  Fundamental  Chai^ter  of 
TresbyterTj,  particularly  his  long  Preface  prefixed  to 
it ;  upon  the  account  of  which,  I  acknowledge,  he 
deserves  the  character  of  an  incomparable  author : 
For,  he  has  therein  treated  his  adversary  after  a  fa- 
shion, which,  to  say  no  worse  of  it,  will  not  be  ea- 
sily paralleled  ; — and  which  makes  it  so  much  the 
more  intolerable,  is,  that  he  did  it  upon  some  points 
of  history,  in  which  his  own  friends  *  have  at  last 
acknowledged  he  was  mistaken.  And  how  false  and 
w^eak  his  historical  arguings  were  in  the  said  charter, 
upon  the  usage  of  the  English  Liturgy  in  Scotlanda, 

•  YiaiUcatioa  ef  tlit  Fuadameatal  Charter,  p.  79.. 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  87 

has  been  sufficiently  shown  in  the  Country-man's 
Letter  to  the  Curate,  on  that  subject. 

It  is  true,  there  is  lately  puljhshed  a  Vindication 
of  the  Fundamental  Charter,  in  opposition  to  the 
said  Letter.  But,  I  hope,  upon  comparing  the  two, 
the  Vindication  will  appear  to  be  a  very  harmless 
piece.  For,  1.  Who  is  likely  ever  to  be  moved  by 
an  author,  that  tells,  as  that  Vindicator  does,  p.  165, 

*  That  it  is  not  sufficient  proof,  that  a  thing  is  not, 

*  because  the  historians  are  silent  about  it,  no,  not 
'  suppose  they  should  all  contradict  it.'  Has  that 
gentleman  his  history  by  inspiration  ?  No,  but  he 
would  have  us  to  judge  by  histories  yet  to  be  written, 
P.  166.  p.  13.  2.  Who  will  be  moved  by  his  ar- 
guings  on  Buchanan,  when,  notwithstanding  that 
Buchanan  is  ackuowledged  to  be  the  sole  relater  of 
what  he  argues  for,  he  yet  says,  '  That  Buchanan 
'  was  doating  when  he  wrote  his  History,  if  it  came 

*  from  his  hands,  as  we  have  it  in  all  the  editions 
«  hitherto  published,'  p.  165.  3.  Who  that  pro- 
fesses, as  the  Vindicator  does,  p.  9.,  to  write  with  all 
possible  candour,  would  say  with  him,  p.  164,,  that 
Buchanan  contradicts  himself  about  Arthur's  Oven, 
when  no  man  ever  dealt  more  candidly  than  Bu- 
chanan has  done  in  that  matter,  even  though  it  was  of 
no  consequence.  He  begins  the  Civil  History  of  his 
nation  at  the  Fourth  Book.  There,  in  the  reign  of 
King  Donald  L,  he  says,  *  That  work,  now  called 

*  Arthur's  Oven,  some  have  falsely  related  to  have 
«  been  the  temple  of  Claudius  Caesar.     We,  so  far 

*  as  we  can  guess,  believe  it  to  have  been  the  tem- 

*  pie  of  Terminus.'  You  see  he  makes  but  a  guess 
of  it.  To  the  civil  history  of  his  nation,  he  thought 
fit  to  prefix  the  geography  of  it,  and  an  account  of 
its  antiquity ;  and  there,  like  a  most  candid  soul,  he 
retracts  his  former  guess  upon  better  information  ; 
and,  in  the  First  Book,  delivers  himself  thus  : — '  1  in- 

*  deed  was  once  induced  by  a  conjecture,  (by  this  it 

*  appears,  that  the  Civil  History  was  written  before 

*  the  Geographical  part),  to  believe  it  to  have  been 

*  the  temple  of  Terminus,  which  (we  have  learned) 


J58  REMAnKS  ON 

*  used  to  be  built  round,   and  open  above.'     But 
then   he  tells  us,  *  that  he  was  informed   by  ere- 

*  ditabie  persons,  that  there  were  several  other  build- 

*  ings  of  the  same  form  in  other  places  of  the  na- 
'  tion.     This,'  saitli  he,  *  forced  me  to  suspend  my 

*  opinion.' — Say  now,  good  reader,  is  there  any  doat- 
ing  here  in  Buchanan,  when  lie  is  so  watchful  even 
over  his  escapes  in  guessings  ?    Is  there  any  contra- 
diction here  ?     Did  not  Augustine  write  two  full 
books  of  retractions,  and  one  of  them,  too,  of  what 
he  wrote  when  he  was  a  Bishop  ?  And  does  not  eve- 
ry man  applaud  his  ingenuity  for  doing  so  ?  Nay,  has 
not  Mr  Dodu'ell  himself  retracted  *   even   in   point 
of  history — and  yet   who   blames  him   for   it  ?     4, 
Who,  to  avoid  the  force  of  Dr  Burnet,  now  Bishop 
of  Sarum  his  testimony  from  the  pulpit  before  the 
House  of  Commons,  concerning  what  he  had  seen, 
and  papers  he  had  had  in  his  hands,  would  put  off 
the  matter  by  telling,  as  the  Vindicator  does,  p.  36. y 
that  the   Bishop  is  not  infallible,  and  that  all  he 
preached  in  1688  was  not  gospel,  and  that  he  some- 
times preached  extempore  ?     Was  not  this  a  most 
bitter  way  of  giving  him  the  lie,  and,  which  makes 
the  treatment  still  the  more  rude,  he  at  the  same 
time   declares,   that   it   were   uncivil   and  unchari- 
table in   him    to    question    the   Doctor's    candour 
and   veracity.     Is   this   the   grave   Vindicator !    Is 
the   world   so  far  lost,  as  to   take  slyness  for  sin- 
cerity, and  affectation  for  gravity  ?     5.  Who  that 
reads   the   Doctor's   sermon,    knows  his   character, 
or   ever   heard   of   his   concernment   in    the    pro- 
ject of  comprehension,  will  allege  his  words  to  be 
capable  of  any  other  entendre  than  the    Country- 
man has   put  on  them  ?    6.  Who  would  deny,  that 
the  Doctor's  testimony  bears,  *  That  the   ceremo- 

*  nics  missed  narrowly  of  being  thrown  out  by  an 
'  act  of  the  Convocation,  when  it  was  carried  by 
'  the  greatest  number  of  the  voices  of  the  Members 

♦  that  were  present  in  the  lower  House,  that  they 

*  Parsenes,  Sect.  15.  p,  61. 


MR  rhind's  narrative.  S9 

'  should  be  laid  aside;' — and  when  the  Bishops, 
(who  made  the  upper  House)  were  the  same  way  af- 
fected ;  the  Queen's  stiffness  in  maintaining  them, 
saith  the  Doctor,  not  flowing  from  their  counsels, 
but  from  disguised  papists  ; — will  any  man,  that  de- 
signs not  to  trifle,  deny  that  this  was  a  narrow  miss  ? 
But  the  Vindicator  overlooked  the  Bishops  in  the 
Doctor's  testimony.  7.  The  author  of  the  Char- 
ter had  affirmed,  that  our  Country-man  Aless  was  a 
member  of  the  English  Convocation.  The  Country- 
man had  proved,  beyond  contradiction,  that  Alcss 
was  not  a  member.  What  says  the  Vindicator  to 
this  ?  It  was  only  an  impropriety  of  speech  in  the 
accurat*  author.  Every  man  ought  to  despair,  af- 
ter such  an  answer,  to  convince  the  Vindicator,  that 
it  is  light  at  mid-day.  But  the  answer  is,  indeed,  as 
solid,  as  the  epithet  of  Accurate  is  judiciously  chosen 
in  that  place. 

But  I  acknowledge  all  this  is  a  digression  from 
Mr  Rhind's  Book.  I  have  only  adduced  these  in- 
stances, to  convince  the  reader,  that  if  the  Coun- 
try-man, who  is  my  good  friend  and  next  neighbour, 
do  not  give  himself  the  trouble  of  making  any  re- 
turn to  the  said  Vindication,  it  is  plain  it  is  because 
it  needs  none.  The  reading  over  his  Letter  once 
more  after  the  Vindication,  being  at  once  an  easy 
and  sufficient  answer  to  it.  I  return,  then,  to  Mr 
Rhind. 

In  the  second  place,  his  historical  part  of  M.  Sage's 
character,  viz.  that  he  has  pursued  the  argument  in 
the  same  manner  with  Mr  Dodwell,  is  false.  Mr  Dod- 
well,in  all  his  books  upon  church  government,*  asserts 
the  Bishop's  sole  power ;  and  though  he  is  content  to 
give  a  consultory  power  to  the  Presbyters,  which 
every  Christian  man  and  woman  has,  it  being  law- 
ful to  all  or  any  of  the  people  to  say  to  Archippiis, 
'  Take  heed  to  the  ministry,* — yet  he  peremptorily 
refuses  them  a  decretory  power.  M.  Sage,  on  the 
other  hand,  not  only  denies  the  said  sole  power,  but 

*  See  Dissert.  Cypr.  Numb.  13,  14,  15.  Parsenes.  Sect.  «?. 
Proemonition  to  tlio  Epiitolary  Discourse,  p.  49,  *c. 


40  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

applies  himself,  in  his  Vindication  of  the  Principles 
of  the  Cyprianic  Age,  to  disprove  the  Bishops* 
claiming  of  it.  Was  this  to  pursue  the  argument 
after  the  same  manner  ?  That  excellent  person,  Mr 
Jameson,  wrote  his  Cyprianus  Isotimus  in  answer 
to  the  said  Vindication  ; — and  answer  it  he  did  be- 
yond possibility  of  reply.  M.  Sage  himself  was 
abundantly  sensible  of  this  :  He  lived  half  a  dozen 
years  after  Mr  Jameson's  book  was  published,  but 
never  essayed  to  make  a  return.  He  could  not  but 
see  how  he  had  mistaken  his  measures,  and  prejudged 
the  cause.  And  therefore,  as  he  could  not  with  any 
ground  of  reason,  so  he  would  not,  out  of  love  to 
the  cause,  insist.  And  I  doubt  not  but  it  was  very 
heavy  to  his  spirit  to  survive  the  reputation  of  his 
principal  book ;  and  to  think  that  he  should  have 
wasted  the  precious  lamp  of  life  in  so  voluminous  a 
work,  for  proving  that  Bishops  did  not  claim  a  sole 
power,  when  not  only  his  learned  adversary  had 
proved,  beyond  contradiction,  that  they  did  so  ;  but 
the  most  learned  of  his  own  party  allowed,  that  it 
was  their  right  to  claim  it.  So  much  for  Mr 
Rhind's  Narrative. 


CHAR  n. 


WHEREIN  MR  RHIND  S  FIRST  REASON  FOR  SEPARATING 
FROM  THE  PR.ESBYTErvlAN  PARTY,  VIZ.  THAT  THEY 
ARE  SCHISMATICS  IN  POINT  OF  GOVERNMENT,  IS  EX- 
AMINED,   FROM  P.  29.  TO  P.   1  19. 

For  justifying  this  reason  of  separation,  Mr  Rhind 
uses  the  following  method  : — First,  He  lays  down 
two  principles,  from  which  he  subsumes  some  corol- 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  41 

laries.     2dly,  He  states  the  debate  j  and,  Sdly,  Ad- 
vances his  arguments. 


Sect.  I. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Principles  and  Corollaries,  p,  29.,  are 
Examined^ 


His  two  principles  are  : — *  I.  That  the  Church  is 

*  but  one.  H.  That  it  is  a  Society  distinct  from,  and 
'  independent  upon  the  State.' 

From  the  first  of  these  principles,  he  infers  these 
two  corollaries: — *  I.  That  the  ordinary  means  of 

*  salvation  are  confined  to  the  Church.  II.  That 
'  whoever  are  without,  (but  more  especially  they  who 
'  separate  from  its  communion),  are  out  of  the  ordi- 
'  nary  way  of  salvation.' 

From  the  second  of  these  principles,  he  infers 
these  three  corollaries. — '  I.  That  the  Church  has 
'  distinct  laws,  and  a  government  and  governors  of 
'  its  own,  which  can  serve  all  the  purposes  of  the  So- 

*  ciety.     II.  That  that  which  does  properly  denomi- 

*  nate  one  a  Member  of  the  Church,  is  the  acknow- 

*  ledgment  of  its  laws  and  government,  and  a  sub- 

*  mission  to  the  authority  of  its  governors  :  Nor  is 

*  the  owning  any  one  of  those  enough  without  the 

*  other.     III.  That  the  contempt  either  of  its  laws, 

*  or  lawful  governors,  requiring  no  terms  of  com- 

*  munion  that  are  truly  sinful,  justly  deprives  one 
'  of  the  privileges  of  this,  as  well  as  any  other  so- 

*  ciety.' 

From  all  this,  he  concludes,  p.  30,  81.  *  That  that 

*  society,  which  is. not  only  defective  with  respect  to 

*  that  form  of  government,  that  obtained  in  the  days 
'  of  Christ  and  his  apostles,  and  downwards,  (which 
[  is  undoubtedly  the  rightful  one),  but  does  likewise 


42  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

*  disown  and  oppose  those  who  govern  after  that 

*  manner,  is  without  the  Church  by  the  third  corol- 

*  lary,  and  consequently  out  of  the  ordinary  road  to 

*  heaven,  according  to  the  second  corollary  from  the 

*  first  principle.'  And  that  the  Presbyterians  are 
thus  defective  in,  and  disown  and  oppose  that  go- 
vernment, he  is,  after  stating  the  debate,  to  make 
good  by  arguments. 

This  is  his  scheme,  but  notwithstanding  its  mathe- 
matical face  ;  as  it  will  not  please  the  Presbyterians, 
so  yet  far  less  the  Church  of  England,  which  he  has 
joined. 

First,  It  will  not  please  the  Presbyterians,  as  he 
too  confidently  presumes.  For,  though  they  wiHing- 
ly  admit  his  first  principle,  that  the  church  is  but 
one,  and  do  firmly  believe  that  there  is  but  one  go- 
'vernment,  by  divine  right,  viz.  the  Presbyterian, 
and  zealously  wish  that  it  might  obtain  all  the  world 
over ;  yet  by  no  means  will  they  assert  that  such  as 
either  oppose  or  want  that  government  are  without 
the  church.  The  government  of  many  of  the  Pro- 
testant churches  in  Germany  is  Superintendency, 
that  of  New  England  Independency,  that  of  Old 
England  Prelacy.  The  Presbyterians  believe  they 
are' each  of  them  in  an  error,  the  last,  especially, 
in  a  hugely  great  one  ;  and  yet  they  believe  them 
all  to  be  within  the  Church,  and  capable  of  salva- 
tion,if  they  are  otherwise  good  Christians ;  and  that, 
as  an  English  poet  has  it  somewhere. 

The  God  that  parJons  sin  will  pardon  errors  loo. 

They  own  the  road  to  heaven  is  narrow,  yet  they 
do  not  believe  it  so  narrow,  but  that  they  can  charit- 
ably hope  that  one  company  may  walk  to  it  with 
a  Presbyterian  Minister  on  their  head ;  and  another 
(though  not  in  so  straight  a  line),  v;ith  a  Bishop  on 
theirs.  It  is  told  of  Mr  Rhind,  (and  he  allows  us, 
p.  9,  to  represent  him  to  have  been  a  Presbyterian 
of  the  most  rigid  kind),  that  while  he  was  studying 
theology  at  Edinburgh,  among  the  Presbyterians, 
he  made  it  a  question,  in  a  society  of  his  fellow 
students,  Whether  an  Episcopal  Minister,  dying  in 


PBESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  43 

that  opinion,  could  be  saved?  I  suppose  he  was  the  first 
Presbyterian  ever  started  the  question,  and,  possibly, 
may  be  the  last.  But  some  people's  brains  are  figur- 
ed for  bigotry,  on  whatever  side  they  are.  Whether 
it  be  by  nature  or  accident  they  are  so,  I  refer  it  to 
such  as  have  skill  in  the  animal  economy. 

Secojidlj/,  I  say  Mr  Rhind's  scheme  will  yet  far 
less  please  the  Church  of  England,  which  he  has 
joined  ;  which  I  shall  make  good  in  two  particulars  ; 
when  once  I  have  premised,  that  by  the  Church  of 
England  I  do  not  mean  only  this  or  the  other  parti- 
cular doctor,  but  that  I  mean  her  articles,  homilies, 
liturgy,  canons,  and  such  other  public  formulas. 

1st,  Though  the  Church  of  England  thinks 
Prelacy  the  best  government,  yet  she  is  very  far 
from  unchurching  those  that  want  it.  In  her  nine- 
teenth article,  she  defines  the  visible  Church  of 
Christ  to  be,  '  a  congregation  of  faithful  men,  in  the 

*  which  the  pure  word  of  God  is  preached,  and  the 

*  sacraments   be    duly  administered,    according  to 

*  Christ's  ordinance,  in  all  those  things  that  of  ne- 

*  cessity  are  requisite  to  the  same  ?'  In  her  twenty- 
third  article,  she  declares,  '  that  those  we  ought  to 
'  judge  lawfully  called  and  sent,  which  be  chosen 
'  and  called  to  this  work  by  men  who  have  public 

*  authority  given  to  them  in  the    congregation,  to 

*  call  and  send  ministers  into  the  Lord's  vineyard  ?* 
In  neither  of  these  articles,  though  they  were  the 
only  place  for  doing  it,  is  any  one  particular  form 
of  church  government  declared  necessary.  Nay, 
the  articles  are  conceived  in  such  general  words  on 
purpose,  that  they  might  not  be  thought  to  exclude 
other  churches  that  differ  from  them  in  point  of 
government.  So  says  the  Bishop  of  Sarum,*  whose 
sufficiency  to  understand  the  intent  of  the  Articles 
was  never  doubted,  and  whose  concern  for  the 
Episcopal  cause  in  reason  cannot.  '  And,'  adds  he, 
'  whatever  some  hotter  spirits  have  thought  of  this, 
^  since  that  time ;  yet  we  are  very  sure,  that  not 

*  Expos.  Art.  XIH.  p.  259. 


44  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  only  those  who  penned  the  Articles,  but  the  body 
'  of  this  church  for  above  half  an  age  after,  did, 

*  notwithstanding  those  irregularities,  acknowledge 
'  the   foreign  churches  so  constituted,  to  be  true 

*  churches,  as  to  all  the  essentials  of  a  church.*  And, 
p.  260,  neither  our  reformers  nor  their  successors, 
for  near  eighty  years  after  those  articles  were  pu- 
blished, did  ever  question  the  constitution  of  such 
churches.  And  the  noble  historian,  Clarendon,* 
who  was  abundantly  zealous  for  the  church,  repre- 
sents it  as  a  false  step  in  the  government  of  King- 
Charles  I.  that  the  English  Ambassador,  with  his 
retinue,  separated  from  the  Protestant  Church,  at 
Charenton,  contrary  to  former  usage.  Yet  further, 
the  Church  of  England  was  powerfully  attacked  by 
the  Romanists  in  the  days  of  the  late  King  James  ; 
and  upon  the  very  same  scheme,  too,  which  Mr 
Khind  hath  advanced,  viz.  metaphysical  inferences 
from  the  unity  of  the  church ;  from  which  they 
would  needs  conclude  her  to  be  schismatical.  The 
English  divines  never  made  a  more  noble  appear- 
ance than  on  that  occasion.  They  engaged  with 
the  Romanists,  and  defeated  them  to  theconviction  of 
all  the  world  ;  but  then  it  was  by  reasonings  which 
quite  overturn  Mr  Rhind*s  scheme.  Dr  Sherlock 
fost  enters  the  field,  and,  with  open  mouth,  declares! 
against  the  unchurching  doctrine  for  the  want  of 
Episcopal  government.    *  I  am  sure,*  saith  he,  *  that 

*  is  not  a  safe  communion  where  there  is  not  a  suc- 

*  cession  of  apostolical  doctrine ;   but  whether  the 

*  want  of  a  succession  of  Bishops  will,  in  all  cases, 

*  unchurch,  will  admit  of  a  greater  dispute  :  I  am 

*  sure  a  true  faith  in  Christ,  with  a  true  gospel  con- 

*  versation,  will  save  men  ;  and  some  learned  Ro- 
'  manists  defend  that  old  definition  of  the  Church, 
'  that  it  is  Ca'tiis  Fidelium,  the  Company  of  the 

*  Faithful,  and  will  not  admit  Bishops  or  Pastors  into 

*  definition  of  a  Church.*     Thus  he :  Dr  Clagget, 

*  Hist,  rebell.      ■\  Vindication  of  the  Discourse  concerning  tha 
Notes  of  the  Church,  p.  53. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  45 

succeeds  him,  and  goes  yet  more  roundly  to  work. 
He  affirms  indeed,*  as  we  do,  the  Church  to 
be  one  in  many  respects,  viz.  of  head,  faith,  sacra- 
ments, service,  and  government  too.  But  expressly 
denies  that  any  of  these  kinds  and  instances  of  unity 
are  necessary  to  the  being  of  a  Church,  except  these 
of  one  Lord,  one  faith,  one  baptism.  And  further 
asserts,  '  that  from  the  Apostles  times  till  the  Coun- 

*  cil  of  Trent,  the  constant  universal  doctrine  con- 

*  cerning  the  cliurch  was  this,  that  it  is  the  Society  of 

*  the  Faithful,  without  ever  inserting  into  the  defini- 

*  tion  of  it  any  thing  relating  to  its  being  united  to 

*  the  Pope,  or  any  other  Bishop,  as  to  a  visible  head/ 
To  both  these  you  may  add  Mr  Stillingfleet,  after- 
wards Bishop  of  Worcester,  who  has  proved,!  be- 
yond contradiction,  that  the  main  bulk  of  the  an- 
cient Bishops  and  Divines  of  the  Church  of  England, 
from  the  first  dawning  of  the  Reformation  almost 
down  to  Laud,  have  expressly  declared  against  the 
necessity  of  Episcopal  government,  and  maintained 
the  mutability  of  Church  government,  according  to 
the  will  of  the  Prince  or  circumstances  of  the  king- 
dom ;  and  herein  they  were  against  Mr  Rhind  and 
his  fellows.  And  that  they  have  also  acknowledged 
the  Scripture  identity  of  Bishop  and  Presbyter,  as- 
serting the  names  to  be  interchangeable,  and  the 
office  the  same.  And  herein  they  were  for  the 
Presbyterians. 

2f////,  This  is  not  the  only  quarrel  the  Church 
of  England  has  against  Mr  Rhind's  scheme.  No 
one  wonders  to  find  the  Presbyterians  asserting  the 
intrinsic  power  of  the  Church.  They  still  claimed 
it,  have  been  always  wrestling  for  it — to  be  sure 
they  never  renounced  it ;  but  it  certainly  very  ill 
becomes  one  wlio  has  joined  the  Church  of  England 
to  lay  it  down  for  a  principle,  as  he  has  done,  that 
tiie  Ciiurch  is  independent  of  the  State-  ]?  so, 
what  then  means  the  2Jst  Article,  which  declare?, 

*  Upon  Bellarmlne'd  Vllth  Note  of  the  Church. 
j-  Irvnic  Part  11.  chap.  viii. 


46  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  that  general  councils  may  not  be  gathered  together 

*  without  the  commandment  and  will  of  Princes  ?' 
Are  not  these  necessary  for  serving  the  purposes  of 
the  Society  ?  The  Church  independent  of  the  State ! 
What,  then,  means  the  37th  Article,  which  declares 

*  the  Queen's  Majesty  to  have  the  chief  power  and 

*  government  of  all  estates,  whether  Ecclesiastical  or 
'  Civil,  and  in  all  causes  ?'     The  Church  indepen- 
dent of  the  State!  What,  then,  means  the  first  Canon, 
I64t0,    concerning    the   regal   power,    wherein    the 
King's  supremacy  over  the  Ecclesiastical  State,  and 
in  causes  Ecclesiastical,   is  not  only  asserted  but 
argued   for :   and  the   government  of  the    Church 
declared  to  belong  in  chief  unto  Kings ;  and  that 
the  power  to   call  and  dissolve  councils,  both  na- 
tional and  provincial,  is  the  true  right  of  all  Christi- 
an kings,  within  their  own  realms  and  territories ; 
and  that  when,  in  the  first  times  of  Christ's  Church, 
Prelates  used  this  power,  it  was,  therefore,  only  be- 
cause, in  those  days,  they  had  no  Christian  kings  ? 
The  Church  independent  of  the  State  1  What,  then, 
means   the   first     Canon,    1603,    the    very    rubric 
whereof  is,  the  King's  supremacy  over  the  Church 
of  England,    in  causes  Ecclesiastical,  to  be  main- 
tained !      The  Church  independent   of  the   State ! 
What,  then,  meant  the  Bishop  of  Norwich,   anno 
1709,  in  his  visitation  charge,  to  spend  a  good  part 
of  his  discourse,  and  a  large  appendix,  in  caution- 
ing his  clergy  against  that  principle  ?     Say,   now, 
good  reader,  if  Mr  Rhind  has  not  been  competently 
furnished  with  assurance,  when  he  declared,  p.  29, 
his  principles  and  corollaries  to  be  truths  so  evident, 
that  he  thought  it  needless   to  enlarge  on  them. 
Had  he  intended  only  a  dispute  against  the  Presby- 
terians, he  might,  indeed,  have  assumed  the  inde- 
pendence of  the  Church  for  a  principle  :  But  when 
he  was  to  tell  the  world  what  satisfied  his  own  con- 
science,  and   determined   him    to  go   over  to  the 
Church  of  England,  which,  in  the  most  solemn  man- 
ner, has  renounced  that  principle,  the  insisting  on 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  'iT 

it.  was  one  of  the  greatest  inconsistencies  a  man 
could  be  guilty  of. 

I  shall  conclude  this  discourse,  upon  his  scheme, 
with  one  observation.  Mr  Rhind  would  needs 
have  the  Presbyterians  to  be  Schismatics,  and  thence 
infers  that  they  are  without  the  church.  But  this  is 
horridly  false  reasoning  :  For,  I  affirm,  that,  if  they 
are  Schismatics,  then  it  will  follow  that  they  are 
within  the  church.  I  know  this  will  be  surprising 
at  first  to  some  readers,  yet  it  is  certainly  true.  The 
Romanists,  in  the  dcy^  of  the  late  King  James,  rea- 
soned exactly  after  the  same  manner  with  Mr  Rhind, 
against  the  Church  of  England  :  But  that  great  au- 
thor before-mentioned,  I  mean  Dr  Sherlock,  demon- 
strates that  pretended  reasoning  to  be  flat  nonsense, 
and  his  words  will  abundantly  clear  my  assertion. — 

*  A  Schismatical  Church,  says  he,*  signifies  a  church 
'  too,  and  how  they  are  a  church  without  belonging 

*  to  the  one  church,  when  there  is  but  one  church, 
'  is  somewhat  mysterious.     And,  therefore,  schism 

*  is  not  tearing  off  a  part  of  the  church,  but  one  part 
'  dividing  from  the  other  in  external  communion, 

*  which  supposes  that  both  parts  still  belong  to  the 

*  same  church,  or  else  the  church  is  not  divided. 

*  For  apostacy  and  schism  are  two  different  things ; 

*  apostates  cease  to  be  of  the  cliurch,  schismatics 
'  are  of  the  church  still,  though  they  disturb  the 

*  peace  of  the  church,  and  divide  the  external  com- 
'  munion  of  it.     Does  St  Paul,  who  reproves  the 

*  Corinthians  for  their  schisms,  shut  them  out  of 
'  the  CiUU'ch  for  them  too  ?     Does  he  deny  them  to 

*  belong  to  the  church,  when  he  directs  his  epistle 

*  to  the  church  of  God  at  Corinth.'  Thus  he.  So 
very  loosely  knit  is  Mr  Rhind's  scheme,  that  the  one 
part  of  it  destroys  the  other.  And  if  he  can  prove 
the  Presbyterians  Schismatics,  eo  ipso^  it  will  fol- 
low, that  they  are  not  without  the  church.  Dr 
Sherlock's  reasoning  is  plain,  strong,  palpable  sense, 
against   which   Mr  DodwelPs  usual    style,  though 

"  Ubi  supra,  p.  27,  2S. 


48  pEFENCE  OP  THE 

founded  upon  some  loose  expressions  of  the  Fathers, 
will  never  bear  out  Mr  Rhind.  Nor  is  Mr  Rhind 
altogether  a  loser  by  this  observe  :  For  whereas  he 
hints  in  his  Preface,  that  he  has  been  upbraided  with 
apostacy  by  some ;  though  I  am  as  well  assured  he  is 
a  Schismatic,  as  I  am  that  there  is  such  a  sin  as 
schism ;  yet,  upon  the  former  reasoning,  he  ought 
not  to  be  called  an  apostate,  till  he  declare  himself 
a  little  more  explicitly.  I  hope,  then,  he  will  digest 
the  observation  the  more  easily,  that  what  he  loses 
by  it  in  argument,  he  saves  in  character. 


Sect.  II. 

Wherein  Mr  Rhind^s  State  of  the  Debate  betwixt  the  Preshj' 
teriajis  and  Episcopalians,  P'  SI,  32,  is  examined. 

The  stating  of  a  debate  aright,  is  always  a  princi- 
pal point  in  controversy.  Take  it  in  Mr  Rhind's  own 
words.     '  It  is  sufficient  to  answer  my  design  in 

•  this  short  Apology,  if  I  can  prove  that  the  govern- 
'  ment  of  the  church,  from  the  beginning,  was  ma- 
«  naged  by  officers  of  different  orders,  and  such  as 

*  acted  in  capacities,  superior  the  one  to  the  other ; 
'  among  whom  there  were  neither  ruling  elders,  nor 
'  deacons,  such  as  the  Presbyterians  have.  Tiiis,' 
saith  he,  '  is  all  that  the  Episcopal  writers  plead  for.' 
And,  therefore,  he  thinks  it  needless  to  determine 
more  explicitly,  what  are  the  distinguishing  charac- 
teristics of  the  several  officers,  or  to  fix  the  bounds  of 
their  respective  powers.  Thus  he.  Now  let  us  re- 
mark a  little  upon  it. 

I.  Why  does  he  state  the  debate  upon  a  subor- 
dination of  Officers  ?  Was  there  ever  Presbyterian 
denied,  that  there  should  be  a  subordination  among 
the  officers  as  well  as  judicatories  of  the  Church  ?  Do 
they  not  own  Christ  to  be  the  Chief  Shepherd,  the 
absolute  King  and  Monarch  of  the  Church  ?  Do  not 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  49 

-they  own  Presbyters  to  be  under  him,  deacons  un- 
der both  ?  Is  not  here  a  fair  subordination  of  offi- 
cers ?  If  he  had  stated  the  debate  upon  a  subor- 
dination or  imparity  of  pastors  or  ministers,  taking 
these  words  in  their  current  ecclesiastical  sense,  it 
had  been  to  the  purpose ;  but  to  state  it  upon  a 
subordination  or  imparity  of  rulers  or  officers,  was 
to  lay  a  foundation  to  himself  for  chicane. 

Possibly  he  may  think  to  ward  off  this  remark  by  what 
he  has  added,  That  among  these  subordinate  officers, 
there  were  neither  ruling  elders  nor  deacons  such 
as  the  Presbyterians  have.  This,  I  acknowledge,  when 
proved,  will  be  a  considerable  point  gained  against 
the    Presbyterians.     But  tlien,    Imo,  Why  has  he 
not  restricted  himself  to  the  proof  of  this?      For, 
in  all  his  state  of  the  debate,  there  is  not  one  svl- 
lable  more  to  the  purpose ;  and  yet,  of  the  90  pages 
he  has  spent  in  the  prosecution  of  it,  he  has  employ- 
ed only  five  of  them,  and  these  too  only  by  the  bye, 
against  the  ruling  elders  and  deacons — with  what 
success  we  shall  afterwards  hear.     2do,  When  he 
has   proved,  which  yet  I  despair  of  finding  done, 
that  among   these  subordinate  officers,  there  were 
neither  ruling  elders  nor  deacons  such  as  the  Pres- 
byterians have,  it  will  indeed  follow  that  the  Pres- 
byterians are  mistaken  in  the  characters  and  func- 
tions of  their  subordinate  officers.     But  by  no  means 
will   it  follow,  that  they  are  against  subordination 
of  officers.     On  the  contrary,  Mr  Rhind*s  disputing 
against  the  Presbyterian  ruling  elders  and  deacons, 
proves,  irrefragably,    that  they  are  for  a  subordi- 
nation of  officers.      I  desire    every  reader  of  Mr 
Rhind's  book,  to  attend  carefully  to  this,  and  they 
will  see  there  is  no  more  needful  for  discovering 
the  uselessness  of  all  his  arguments  for  a  subordi- 
nation of  officers,  the  Presbyterians  being  as  much 
for  it  as  the  Prelatics  are ;  and  that  his  latter  part 
of  the  debate  is  a  most  effectual  confutation  of  the 
former. 

,11.     Why  does  he  say,  That  a  subordination  of 
officers,  without  such  ruling  elders  and  deacons  as  the 


50 


DEFENCE  OP  THl:> 


Presbyterians  have,  is,  upon  the  main,  all  that  the 
Episcopal  writers  plead  for?  Of  ail  things  in  the 
world,  insincere  dealing  is  the  most  odious.  Cer- 
tainly he  has  taken  it  for  a  principle,  that  none 
who  was  to  read  his  book,  had  ever  read  the  E- 
piscopal  writers,  or  would  ever  be  capable  of  read- 
ing them.  Is  he  yet  to  learn,  that  the  sole  power 
is  pleaded  for  by  them  ?  Having  read  so  many 
books  of  that  side,  can  his  judgment  be  so  weak 
as  not  to  have  discerned,  or  his  memory  so  frail  as 
to  have  forgot,  that  all  the  elevations  of  an  absolute 
monarch  accountable  to  God  only,  are  pleaded  for 
by  them?  If  so,  care  shall  be  taken  ere  I  have 
done,  to  clear  up  his  discernment  and  refresh  his  me- 
mory. Does  he  imagine,  that  a  subordination  and 
sole  power  are  all  one  ?  Or,  will  a  mere  subordi- 
nation, without  Presbyterian  elders  or  deacons, 
please  him  ?  If  so,  he  is  too  well  natured  :  For, 
alas !  it  will  not  please  his  brethren.  To  humour 
him  a  little,  1  shall  suppose  the  Presbyterians  con- 
tent to  accept  of  constant  moderators  for  term  of 
life,  and  that  such  moderators  have  the  precedency 
in  all  their  assemblies  :  But  would  that  save  them 
from  the  guilt  of  schism  ?  Mr  Dod  well  has  express- 
ly said  it  will  not.    Hear  him.*     *  This,  (a  principle 

*  of  unity)  none  of  our  modern  sects,  except  the  Pres- 

*  byterians,  can  so  much  as  offer  at.      None  of  them 

*  (the  other  modern  sects)  have  any  single  minis- 

*  ter,  who,  by  their  principles,  can  pretend  to  supe- 

*  riority  over  his  brethren.  And  all  that  they,  (the 
'  Presbyterians)  can  pretend,  is^  a  moderator  over 
'  their  classes,  either  for  a  certain  time,  or,  at  the 
^  utmost,   for  term  of  life.     Yet  even  that  is  not 

*  sufficient  for  a  principle  of  unity.     Seeing  the  sa;- 

*  crifices,  are  they  which  are  the  cement  of  this 
'  unity,  it  must  be  a  precedency,  not  in  their  assem- 

*  blies  only,  but  their  sacrifices,  which  can  entitle  to 
«  a  principle  of  it.'  Thus  Mr  D'odwell.  And  what 
now  would  it  signify  though  Presbyterians  should 
grant  all  that  subordination  which  Mr  Rhind  pleads 

*  One  Priesthood,  Chap.  xiii.  Sect.  13,  p.  396. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  SI 

.or,  when  notwithstanding,  they  must  still  remain 
Scliismatics  by  Mr  Dodwell's  verdict  ? 

III.  Why  did  he  think  it  needless  to  determine 
more  explicitly  the  several  characteristics  of  the  se- 
veral officers,  and  to  fix  the  bounds  of  their  respec- 
tive powers  ?     About  what,  I  pray,  is  all  the  con- 
troversy betwixt  Prelatists  and  Presbyterians  ?  Is  it 
about  the  title  of  Bishop  ?     It  is  yielded  on  both 
hands  to  be  a  scriptural  one.     Is  it  whether  there 
should  be  bishops  in  the  church  ?     The  Presbyte- 
rian was  never  yet  created  who  denied  it.     Is  it  that 
these  bishops  should  have  officers  subordinate  to 
them  ?     The  Presbyterians  loudly  assert  it.      Is  it 
not,   then,    the  controversy  about    the  character- 
istics and  powers   of  bishops  wherein  the    choke 
lies  ?     And  yet  Mr  Rhind  thinks  it  needless  to  de- 
termine them  more  explicitly.  If  so,  it  is  very  plain 
he  should  have  thought  it  needless  to  have  written 
his  book.     If  the  Prelatists  can  prove,  that  bishops, 
by  divine  right,  should  be  absolute  monarchs ;  or, 
to  come  lower,  that  they  should  have  a  negative 
voice,  simple  or  even  reciprocal ;  if  they  can  prove, 
that,  by  divine  right,  they  have  the  sole   power  of 
ordination  and  jurisdiction,  or  either  of  them  ;    if 
they  can  prove,   that,   by  divine  right,  they  should 
have  some  hundreds,  or  even  scores  of  congrega- 
tions under  their  inspection,  Presbyterians  are  hearti- 
ly content  to  yield  the  cause,  and  to  accept  of  bi- 
shops with  all  these  powers,  or  so  many  of  them  as 
they  shall  prove  of  divine  right  to  belong  to  them. 
On  the  other  hand,  if  the  Prelatists  are  content 
with  bishops  that  are  neither  absolute  monarchsj 
nor  have  a  negative  voice,  nor  sole  power,  nor  a 
greater  charge  than  they  can  personally  inspect, 
that    is,    preach    and  dispense  the  sacraments  to, 
with  the  assistance  of  elders  to  oversee  the  manners 
of  the  people,  (and  of  deacons  to  take  care  of  the 
poor),  and  that  discipline  may  be  duly  exercised  ; 
the  Presbyterians  offer  to  prove  that  they  have  such 
bishops  already,  or  are  content  to  take  them  where 
they  have  not.     Is  it  possible  fairer  conditions  can 

D    2 


-52  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

be  eitlier  demanded  or  offered  ?  Why,  then,  did  Mr 
K-hind  decline  to  explain  himself?  The  reason  is 
obvious,  he  designed  to  harangue  a  while,  and 
disputing  would  have  marred  the  cadency  of  his  pe- 
riods. 

IV.  Supposing  Mr  Rhind's  state  of  the  debate 
had  been  more  distin'ct  than  it  is,  it  would  answer 
only  the  one  half  of  his  undertaking  in  the  title- 
page.  For  though  it  might  be  a  reason  for  his  se- 
parating from  the  Presbyterians,  yet  it  would  be 
none  for  his  embracing  the  communion  of  the 
church,  according  to  his  present  practice,  unless 
he  had  proved  that  the  subordination  of  officers  in 
the  church  of  England  constitution,  into  which  he 
is  gone,  were  of  divine  institution,  which  he  has  not 
so  much  as  attempted  to  prove — I  add,  nor  can  be 
proved.  For,  that  primates  or  archbishops,  having 
a  power  over,  and  being  ordinaries  to,  the  other  bi- 
shops,— that  bishops  exercising  a  sole  power,  or 
even  a  negative  voice, — that  Presbyters,  serving  as 
the  bishops  delegates,  without  power  of  ordination 
or  jurisdiction, — that  preaching  deacons,  vested  with 
a  power  of  baptizing,  but  deprived  of  all  manage- 
ment of  the  churches'  stock,  or  care  of  the  poor, 
which  was  the  original  design  of  their  office  ; — that, 
I  say,  all  or  any  of  these  officers  considered  under 
these  peculiar  characters,  are  the  creatures  of  God, 
or  of  divine  institution,  I  positively  deny,  and  want 
to  be  directed  to  any  author  that  has  proven  it. 

So  much  for  Mr  Rhind's  way  of  stating  the  de- 
bate :  And,  I  believe,  it  is  obvious  to  every  body, 
that  thereby  he  has  projected  for  his  own  ease  rather 
than  the  reader's  conviction.  For,  let  one,  in  pe- 
rusing his  book,  dash  out  the  word  officers  or  rulers, 
an  imparity  or  subordination  among  which  the  Pres- 
byterians grant,  and  substitute  in  place  thereof  the 
word  pastors  or  ministers,  a  parity  among  whom  was 
his  business  to  disprove  j  and  it  will  presently  ap- 
pear that  several  of  his  arguments  are  just  as  much 
to  the  purpose  as  an  ode  of  Horace  would  have 
been. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT,'  53 

But  there  is  no  need  of  running  into  niceties  in 
this  matter.  Every  body  has  a  tolerable  notion  in 
the  jQjross  what  is  meant  by  Prelacy  and  Presbytery. 
If  Mr  Rhind's  arguments  prove  that  the  latter  is  a 
schismatical  kind  of  government,  the  former  that 
which  should  obtain  in  the  church,  I  shall  grant  he 
has  gained  his  point.  If  they  prove  not  that,  it  is 
nothing  to  us  what  else  they  prove.  And  whether 
they  do  so  or  not,  I  am  now  to  apply  myself  to  try. 


Sect.  III. 
Wherein  Mr  R/iincTs  Arguments  for  Prelacy  are  summed  up. 

He  has  cast  his  argument  into  the  form  of  a  ha- 
rangue ;  but  so  far  as  I  can  distinguisli  them,  they 
amount  to  the  number  of  nine.  The  three  first  of 
which  are  calculated  to  argue  that  Prelacy  should 
'  have  been  instituted  ;  the  six  latter  to  prove  that  it 
actually  was  instituted. 

1.  That  it  was  necessary  that  Prelacy  should  be 
instituted,  he  argues, 

J.  From  the  nature  of  the  thing,  which  made  it 
indispensably  necessary  in  itself.  A  monarchical  or 
subordinate  form  being  able  to  answer  the  ends  of 
government  better  than  the  contrary. 

2.  From  the  form  of  government  in  the  Jewish 
Church,  seeing  God  must  be  uniform  in  his  actings. 

3.  From  the  rules  of  political  prudence,  seeing  a 
levelling  form  of  government  would  have  been  dis- 
tasteful both  to  the  Jews  and  Romans,  as  being  op- 
posite to  the  hierarchy  of  the  former,  and  mo- 
narchy of  the  latter. 

II.  That  it  actually  was  instituted,  he  attempts  to 
prove, 

1.  From  its  obtaining  in  the  days  of  Christ,  as 
appears  from  the  subordination  of  the  Seventy  to 
the  Twelve. 

2.  From  its  being  continued  in  the  days  of  the 


54  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

apostles,  as  lippears  from  the  history  of  their  acts, 
and  their  epistles,  and  a  succession  in  the  aposto- 
late. 

S.  From  the  episcopacy  of  Timothy  and  Titus. 

4.  From  tlie  apocalyptic  angels. 

5.  From  testimonies  of  antiquity. 

6.  From  the  impossibility  of  its  obtaining  so  early 
^nd  universally,  if  it  had  not  been  of  divine  insti- 
tution. 

All  these  (besides  what  he  has  advanced  against 
the  Presbyterian  ruling  elders  and  deacons),  I  shall 
examine  in  order. 


SJECT.  IV. 


Wherein  Mr  Wiind's  Arguings  for  proving  that  it'wasneces- 
sarii  that  the  Prelatic  form  of  Government  should  have  been 
at  first  instituted^  are  examined^  fromjp.  S2  to  jp.  49, 

I  HAVE  just  now  observed  tbat  he  attentpts  this  by 
three  arguments,  which  I  shall  examine  in  so  many 
articles.  Let  me  only  once  more  advertise  the 
reader,  that  Mr  Rhind's  expressing  himself  in  thi» 
controversy  by  a  subordinate  form  of  government 
on  the  one  hand,  and  a  levelling  form  of  govern- 
ment on  the  other,  with  such  like  phrases,  is  a  very 
ridiculous,  as  well  as  unjust  style  j  for,  the  Presby- 
terians are  against  a  levelling,  they  are  for  a  subor- 
dinate form  of  government,  yea,  they  are  for  a  mo- 
narchical form  of  government,  understanding  our 
Lord  to  be  that  monarch ;  as  Mr  Rhind  himself 
does,  p.  49.  Though,  then,  Mr  Rhind  found  it  ne- 
cessary for  amusing  his  reader,  and  filling  his  pages, 
to  use  such  forms  of  speaking,  as  a  monarchical  or 
subordinate,  a  republican  or  levelling  form  of  go- 
vernment J  yet  I  must  either  neglect  his  arguments 
altogether,  as  signifying  nothing  in  this  controver- 
sy, or  else  I  must  plainly  understand  by  these  and 
the  like  phrases,  Prelacy  or  Presbytery  respectively. 


PBESBYiTERIAN  GOV^IVNMENT.  55 

as  common  usage  has  fixed  the  notion  of  them  in 
this  controversy.     This;  premised,  I  now  proceed. 


ARTICLE  I. 


JVherein  JWr  Rhind's  Argument,  for  the  Indispen- 
sable Necessity  of  instituting  Prelacy,  from;  the  Na- 
'ture  of  the  Thing,    is  ej^amined,  from  p,  32  to 
p,  39, 

The  sum  of  his  argument  is  this  : — God  could  not 
but  institute  the  best  form  of  government  for  his 
Church.  A  government  of  a  monarchical  or  sub- 
ordinate form  is  such,  that  is,  it  can  answer  the  de- 
signs of  society  better  than  any  other.  Therefore 
the  Church  ought  to  have  that  form  of  government, 
that  is  to  say,  Prelacy.  Now,  let  us  consider  this; 
and, 

I.  I  affirm  this  way  of  arguing  labours  under  three 
very  considerable  infirmities.  First,  It  is  not  mo- 
dest. Secondly,  Not  secure.  Thirdly,  Suppose  it 
were  both  ;  yet,  as  he  has  laid  it,  it  is  quite  im- 
pertinent, and  does  not  in  the  least  affect  the  Pres- 
byterians. 

First,  It- is  not  modest.  Does  it  become  the  crea- 
ture to  prescribe  to  God  i*  Is  it  sufferable  that  one 
should  talk  at  Mr  Rhind*s  rate,  that  such  a  form  of 
government,  abstracting  from,  and  antecedently  to, 
'  the  divine  establishment,  '  ought  to  be,* '  musthe,''  *  is 
•indispensably  necessary  in  itself,*  that  it  does  not  look 
*  like  God  that  it  should  be  otherwise' — all  which  are 
his  phrases  ?  Is  not  this  to  set  bounds  to  God's  wis- 
dom and  will.  I  must  needs  read  a  lecture  to  Mr 
Rhind  from  the  judicious  Hooker,*  to  teach  him 
more  reverence  towards  God.  '  As  for  those  mar- 
'  vellous  discourses,  whereby  they  adventure  to  ar- 

•  Eccles.  Polit.  B.  III.  Sfct.  2.  p.  154,  iSS, 


56 


DEFENCE  OP  THE 


*  gue,  that  God  must  needs  have  done  the  thirig^ 

*  which  they  imagine  was  to  be  done,  I  must  con- 
«  fess  I   have  often   wondered   at   their   exceeding 

*  boldness   herein.      When    the    question  is,    whe- 

*  ther  God  have  delivered  in  Scripture,  (as  they 
'  affirm  he  hath),  a  complete,  particular,  immutable 
^  form  of  church  polity  ?  why  take  they  that  other 

*  both  presumptuous  and  superfluous  labour,  to  prove 

*  he  should  have  done  it,  there  being  no  way  in 

*  this  case  to  prove  the  deed  of  God,  saving  only  by 

*  producing  that  evidence  vvherein  he  hath  done  it. 
'  When  we   do   otherwise,   surely  we   exceed   our 

*  bounds  ;  who  and  where  we  are  we  forget.  And 
'^  therefore  needful  it  is  that  our  pride  in  such  cases 

*  be  controuled,  and  our  disputes  beaten  back  with 
'  those  demands  of  the  blessed  apostle,  '  How  un- 
"  searchable  are  his  judgments,  and  his  ways  past 
*'  finding  out  ?  Who  hath  known  the  mind  of  the 
"  Lord,  or  who  was  his  counsellor  ?' — In  matters 
^  which  concern  the  actions  of  God,  the  most  du- 

*  tiful  way  on  our  part,  is  to  search  what  God  hath 

*  done,  and,  with  meekness  to  admire  that,  rather 
«  than  to  dispute  what  he  in  congruity  of  reason 

*  ought  to  do.'  I  am  sure  it  is  Mr  Rhind*s  duty  to 
chew  the  cud  a  while  on  this. 

Secondly^  It  is  not  secure.  For,  circumstances  may 
make  that  best  in  one  case,  which  would  not  be  so  in 
another.  Hear  Mr  Dodwell,  *  who  will  clear  the  mat- 
ter. '  The  way  of  arguing  from  the  actual  establish- 
ments of  God,  as  it  is  much  more  modest,  so  it  is  al- 
so much  more  secure  for  finding  out  the  right  of 
government,  than  any  conjectures  we  can  make 
from  the  reason  of  the  thing.  It  is  certainly  the 
most  becoming  course  for  a  modest  Christian  in 
all  things  to  acquiesce  in  God's  judgment,  how 
great  evidence  soever  there  might  seem  for  differ- 
ing from  it. — The  reasons,  from  the  nature  of 
government  in  general,  and  peculiarly  of  govern- 
ment as  ecclesiastical,  are  not  proper  to  any  one 

«  Oa  Schisjn,  Chap.  xlx.  Sect.  39,  40.  p.  454, 455. 


PRESBYTEKIAN   GOVERNMENT.  57 

*  age.  But  for  bringing  these  reasonings  clown  to 
.*  determine  the  rights  of  any  particular  government, 
;*  many  particular  matters  of  fact  are  requisite  to  be 
'  known.'     Thus  he. 

Thirdlij,  His  argument,  as  he  has  laid  it,  is  quite 
impertinent,  and  does  not  in  the  least  affect  the 
Presbyterians  : — For  he  adduces  it,  to  prove,  that 
there  should  be  a  subordination  of  officers  in  the 
Church,  which  the  Presbyterians  are  for,  as  well 
as  he. 

11.  iSupposIng  his  argument  were  otherwise  tole- 
rable, how  does  he  prove,  that  a  monarchical  or  sub- 
ordinate form  of  government  is  the  best  ?  Why, 
waving  the  many  arguments  of  several  learned  au- 
thors, he  will  needs  advance  three  of  his  own.  The 
first  is  taken  from  the  British  Monarchy.  The  se- 
cond from  the  Principles.  The  third  from  the  Prac- 
tices of  the  Presbyterians  themselves. 

The  first,  from  the  British  Monarchy,  stands  thus : 
— All  the  subjects  of  Britain  must  own  monarchy 
to  be  the  best  form  of  government  for  the  State ; 
and  therefore  he  sees  no  reason,  from  the  nature  of 
the  thing,  why  it  should  not  be  reckoned  such  for 
the  Church  also. — Nay,  that  it  looks  not  like  God 
that  it  should  be  otherwise,  p.  33.  But  this  is  as 
unhappy  an  argument  as  Mr  Rhind  could  have  pitch- 
ed on.  For,  1?720,  Unless  he  could  prove,  (perhaps 
Dr  Lesley  may  help  him  to  it,)  that  Monarchy  is  the 
only  government  i)y  divine  right  for  the  State,  and 
that  all  the  nations  of  the  world  who  are  under  any 
other  kind  of  government,  are,  on  that  account,  iii 
a  state  of  mortal  sin,  his  argument  must  do  a  great 
deal  more  hurt  than  good  to  the  Episcopal  cause. 
For  it  will  plainly  follow,  that  such  nations  as  have 
an  aristocratical  or  democratical  form  of  govern- 
ment in  the  State,  and  are  persuaded  it  is  best, 
should  have  the  like  in  the  Church  too.  The  Bri- 
tish subjects  are,  indeed,  persuaded,  that  monarchy 
is  the  best  government  for  Britain ;  and,  I  believe, 
will  always  be  of  this  mind,  while  so  benign  a  Prin- 
cess as  her  Majesty  fills  the  throne  j  but  these  same 


58  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

-persons  are  not  persuaded,  that  it  would  be  the  best 
for  the  United  Provinces,  the  Republics  of  Venice, 
Genoa,  Lucca,  the  Swiss  Cantons,  Geneva,  &c. ; 
and  consequently,  they  must  be  persuaded  too,  ac- 
cording to  Mr  Rhind's  way  of  reasoning,  that  a  mo- 
narchical government  in  the  Church  would  not  be 
best  for  them.  His  argument,  then,  would  quite 
alter  its  nature  by  a  voyage;  and  from  being  a 
good  one  for  Episcopacy  at  home,  would  become  a 
good  one  against  it  beyond  sea.  2f/o,  Is  it  not  pret- 
ty odd,  to  find  one,  who  has  read  the  Bible  all  over, 
as  Mr  Rhind  says  he  has  done,  and  has  heard  our 
Saviour  not  only  declaring,  that  his  kingdom  is  not 
of  this  world,  but  expressly  discharging  his  disciples 
to  exercise  such  dominion  and  authority  as  the 
Princes  of  the  Gentiles  do ;  is  it  not  odd,  I  say,  to 
find  such  a  one  urging  the  cutting  the  Church  go- 
vernment by  the  pattern  of  the  State  ?  Does  he  not 
know  that  it  was  the  fancy  of  modelling  the  external 
government  of  the  Church  according  to  the  civil  go- 
vernment of  the  Roman  empire,  that  brought  in 
such  officers  to  the  Church,  of  whom  there  is  just 
as  much  mention  in  the  Scripture,  as  there  is  of 
the  present  Emperor  of  Morocco,  or  Czar  of  Mus- 
covy. *  I  refer  it,  then,  to  the  reader,  to  judge, 
if  that  can  be  a  good  argument  for  determining  the 
government  of  the  Church,  which  was  the  greatest 
cause  of  her  corruption.  StiOf  As  Mr  Rhind  has 
laid  the  British  monarchy  in  the  one  scale,  so  he 
must  allow  me  to  lay  some  instances  in  the  other, 
and  let  the  reader  weigh  both.  The  Romans,  who 
were  the  greatest  masters  of  civil  prudence  ever  the 
world  knew,  when  once  they  had  expelled  the  Tar- 
quins,  and  abolished  regal  government,  though  they 
used  sometimes  aristocracy,  sometimes  democracy, 
or  a  form  mixed  of  both,  yet  never  were  so  idle,  or 
ill  advised,  as  to  think  of  setting  up  monarchy  again, 
till  usurpers  and  tyrants  oppressed  them,  and, 
by  main   force,   wrung  their  liberties  out  of  their 

•  See  Dr  Cave,  Primit.  Christ.  Part  I.  Chap.  viii.  p.  225. 


PRESBYTERMN  GOVE«NMENT.  '59 

liatids.  Lycurgus  and  Solon  were  the  wisest  men  of 
their  age,  by  the  verdict  of  all  the  world  ;  yet  they 
set  up,  the  one  aristocracy,  the  other  democracy, 
and  recommended  them  for  ever  to  their  people. 
Plato  and  Aristotle,  are  names  will  be  ever  had  in 
veneration,  yet  they  had  but  very  indifferent  thoughts 
of  monarchy,  because  of  its  liableness  to  degenerate 
into  tyranny;  and  that  which  makes  the  British  mo- 
narchy so  desirable,  is,  that  the  two  Houses  of  Par- 
liament qualify  it,  and  give  it  a  mixture  both  of  aris- 
tocracy and  democracy;  whereas  the  prelacy  con- 
tended for  by  its  late  patrons,  is  a  downright  tyran- 
ny, a  monarchy  after  the  French  form-— none  daring 
to  say  to  the  Bishop,  what  doest  thou  ?  as  we  shall 
hear  afterward.  4/o,  Is  it  not  strange,  that  the  Church 
of  England  Divines,  (Dr  Whitaker,  for  instance, 
■Regius  Professor  of  Divinity  in  Cambridge),  when 
disputing  against  the  Church  of  Rome,  should  argue 
against  a  monarchical  government  in  the  Church ; 
and  yet  that  Mr  Rhind,  who  pretends  to  be  of  that 
communion,  should  argue  for  it,  when  disputing 
against  the  Presbyterians  ?  I  want  mightily  to  be  sa- 
tisfied about  his  conduct  in  this. 

His  second  argument  from  the  principles  of  the 
Presbyterians  runs  thus,  page  34.  I  would  know  of 
them,  why  they  are  for  a  subordination  of  judica- 
tories, while  they  are,  at  the  same  time,  against  an 
imparity  of  rulers?  Really  the  Presbyterians  own 
themselves  so  dull,  as  not  to  be  able  to  give  a  rea- 
son'for  that  which  is  not.  Let  Mr  Rhind  once 
prove  that  they  are  against  an  imparity  of  rulers,  and 
then  it  will  be  soon  enough  to  give  a  reason  why 
they  are  so :  For  they  are  not  disposed  to  philoso- 
phise on  the  golden  tooth.  He  never  suspected  that 
his  medium  wanted  truth,  and  therefore  he  goes  on 
very  innocently  in  his  harangue  thus :  *  To  what  pur- 

*  pose,  I  would  ask  them,  serves  a  subordination  of 
'  judicatories,  where  the  judges  are  supposed  to  be 

•  still  the  same  ?*  Did  Mr  Rhind  never  hear  that  plus 
H^iclent  Oculi  quam  Oculus,  Two  eyes  see  better  than 
one  ?    Does  he  not  know  that'  all  the  apostles  were 


60  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

equal  in  their  apostolical  character,  and  when  the 
controversy  about  circumcision  was  started  at  An- 
tioch,  Acts  XV.  doubtless  Paul,  being  under  an  in- 
falHble  conduct,  could  have  determined  it  as  ortho- 
doxly  as  the  whole  college  of  them  ;  yet,  for  satis- 
fying people's  minds,  it  was  judged  expedient  that 
the  advice   of  the  rest  should   be   had,   and  their 
authority  interposed.     O,  but,  saith  he,  in  the  Pres- 
byterian subordination  the  judges  are  still  the  same. 
Now,  what  could  put  this  in  his  head,  or  how  he 
could  possibly  stumble  into  it,  I  cannot  conjecture. 
Was  he  so  long  among  the  Presbyterians  and  does 
not  know  it  to  be  false  ?    Could  he  meet  with  never 
one  in  the  whole  country  to  tell  him  it  was  so  ? 
when  I  am  sure  there  are  very  few  in  the  nation 
but  could  have  done  it.     All  matters  that  come  from 
a  subordinate  to  a  superior  judicatory  are  trans- 
mitted either  by  way  of  reference  or  appeal.     In  the 
first  of  these  cases  the  judges  are  not  merely  the 
same,  but  a  vast  plurality  added  to  them  j  for  in- 
stance, when  a  matter  is  referred  from  a  Presbytery 
to  a  Synod,  the  whole  ministers  of  the  province, 
with  a  ruling  elder  from  each  parish,  are  the  judges 
in   the   latter.     Whereas   in   the  former,  only  the 
ministers  of  that  particular  Presbytery,   with   one 
ruling   elder   from   each    of  its   parishes,   are    the 
judges.     In  the  case  of  appeals,  not  one  member  of 
the  inferior  judicatory  is  admitted  to  be  a  judge  in 
the  superior.     They  are  indeed  allowed  to  plead,  but 
the  pleading  being  over,  they  are  not  allowed  to 
advise,  much  less  to  vote  in  the  process.     The  use, 
then,  of  a  subordination  of  judicatories  is  obvious, 
to  wit,  that  the  superior  may  rectify  the  mistakes, 
&c.  of  the  inferior.     But  this  will  not  go  down  with 
Mr  Rhind :  For  *  he  cannot  understand  how  their  . 
*  fellow  members  (to  whom  they  are  supposed  in 
'  all  respects  equal)  shall  judge  better  than  they." 
I  know  nobody  obliged  to  find  him  in  understand- 
ing.    The  thing  is  abundantly  intelligible  in  itself; 
Solomon,  a  wise  enough    master,  having  told   us, 
that  in  multitude  of  counsellors  there  is  safety.  But 
2 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  61 

whence  did  Mr  Rhind  learn  that  all  the  members  of 
the  Presbyterian  judicatory  were  to  be  supposed  in 
all  respects  equal  ?  Was  it  from  the  Presbyterians  ? 
Surely  not.  They  willingly  own,  that  all  the  mini- 
sters, for  instance,  in  one  Presbytery,  are  not  equal 
in  all  respects.  One  of  them  is  more  learned  than 
another.  Another  perhaps,  though  he  has  not  much 
learning,  is  yet  wiser,  for  the  greatest  clerks  are  not 
always  the  wisest  men.  Was  it  from  his  fellow  wri- 
ters of  the  Episcopal  side  ?  No.  On  the  contrary, 
they  plainly  declare,  that  the  Presbyterians  neither 
plead  nor  suppose  any  such  thing.  Thus,  the  au- 
thor of  the  Seventh  Book  of  Hooker's  Ecclesiastical 
Polity,  sect.  3d  :  *  They,*  saith  he,  '  which  cannot 

*  brook  the  superiority  which  bishops  have,  do  not- 
'  withstanding  themselves  admit  that  some  kind  of 

*  difference  and  inequality  there  may  be  lawfully 

*  amongst  ministers.     Inequality,  as  touching  gifts 

*  and  graces  they  grant,  because  this  is  so  plain  that 
'  no  mist  in  the  world  can  be  cast  before  men's  eyes 
'so   thick,  but  they  needs   must   discern  through 

*  it,  that  one  minister  of  the  gospel  may  be  more 

*  learned,  holier,  and  wiser  ;  better  able  to  instruct, 
'  more  apt  to  rule  and  guide,  than  another  ?'  Let 
Mr  Rhind  then  say,  at  his  best  leisure,  whence  he 
got  that  supposed  equality  in  all  respects. 

His  third  argument  is  taken  from  the  practices  of 
the  Presbyterians  themselves,  the  sum  of  which,  in 
his  own  \vords,  page  35,  is,  *  That,  though  by  their 
'  principles  all  church  officers  are  allowed  an  equal 

*  authority,  yet,  in  effect,  the  whole,  or  at  least  the 
'chief  power,  is  in  the  hands  of  a  few,  who  are  the 
«  most  knowing  and  wise.     And  for  proof  of  this  he 

*  brings  an  instance,  how,  that  in  three  several  ge- 
«  neral  assemblies,  though  the  most  numerous  party 

*  in  the  assembly  were  earnest  to  have  the  intrinsic 
'  power  of  the  church  asserted  by  an  act,  yet  the  au- 

*  thority  of  a  leading  junto,  who  were  upon  the  mat- 
«  ter  so  many  bishops,  crushed  that  dangerous  af- 
'  fair.     Why  then,'  saith  he,  page  37.  *  do  they  op- 

*  pose  that  kind  of  government,  which  is  not  only 


60  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

equal  in  their  apostolical  character,  and  when  the 
controversy  about  circumcision  was  started  at  An- 
tioch,  Acts  XV.  doubtless  Paul,  being  under  an  in- 
fiiUible  conduct,  could  have  determined  it  as  ortho- 
doxly  as  the  whole  college  of  them  ;  yet,  for  satis- 
fying people's  minds,  it  was  judged  expedient  that 
the  advice  of  the  rest  should  be  had,  and  their 
authority  interposed.  O,  but,  saith  he,  in  the  Pres- 
byterian subordination  the  judges  are  still  the  same. 
Now,  what  could  put  this  in  his  head,  or  how  he 
could  possibly  stumble  into  it,  I  cannot  conjecture. 
A¥as  he  so  long  among  the  Presbyterians  and  does 
not  know  it  to  be  false  ?  Could  he  meet  with  never 
one  in  the  whole  country  to  tell  him  it  was  so  ? 
when  I  am  sure  there  are  very  few  in  the  nation 
but  could  have  done  it.  All  matters  that  come  from 
a  subordinate  to  a  superior  judicatory  are  trans- 
mitted either  by  way  of  reference  or  appeal.  In  the 
first  of  these  cases  the  judges  are  not  merely  the 
same,  but  a  vast  plurality  added  to  them ;  for  in- 
stance, when  a  matter  is  referred  from  a  Presbytery 
to  a  Synod,  the  whole  ministers  of  the  province, 
with  a  ruling  elder  from  each  parish,  are  the  judges 
in  the  latter.  Whereas  in  the  former,  only  the 
ministers  of  that  particular  Presbytery,  with  one 
ruling  elder  from  each  of  its  parishes,  are  the 
judges.  In  the  case  of  appeals,  not  one  member  of 
the  inferior  judicatory  is  admitted  to  be  a  judge  in 
the  superior.  They  are  indeed  allowed  to  plead,  but 
the  pleading  being  over,  they  are  not  allowed  to 
advise,  much  less  to  vote  in  the  process.  The  use, 
then,  of  a  subordination  of  judicatories  is  obvious, 
to  wit,  that  the  superior  may  rectify  the  mistakes, 
&c.  of  the  inferior.  But  this  will  not  go  down  with 
Mr  Rhind :  For  «  he  cannot  understand  how  their  . 

*  fellow  members  (to  whom  they  are  supposed  in 

*  all  respects  equal)  shall  judge  better  than  they." 
I  know  nobody  obliged  to  find  him  in  understand- 
ing. The  thing  is  abundantly  intelHgible  in  itself; 
Solomon,  a  wise  enough  master,  having  told  us, 
that  in  multitude  of  counsellors  there  is  safety.  But 

2 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  61 

whence  did  Mr  Rhind  learn  that  all  the  members  of 
the  Presbyterian  judicatory  were  to  be  supposed  in 
all  respects  equal  ?  Was  it  from  the  Presbyterians  ? 
Surely  not.  They  willingly  own,  that  all  the  mini- 
sters, for  instance,  in  one  Presbytery,  are  not  equal 
in  all  respects.  One  of  them  is  more  learned  than 
another.  Another  perhaps,  though  he  has  not  much 
learning,  is  yet  wiser,  for  the  greatest  clerks  are  not 
always  the  wisest  men.  Was  it  from  his  fellow  wri- 
ters of  the  Episcopal  side  ?  No.  On  the  contrary, 
they  plainly  declare,  that  the  Presbyterians  neither 
plead  nor  suppose  any  such  thing.  Thus,  the  au- 
thor of  the  Seventh  Book  of  Hooker's  Ecclesiastical 
Polity,  sect.  Sd  :  *  They,*  saith  he,  '  which  cannot 

*  brook  the  superiority  which  bishops  have,  do  not- 
'  withstanding  themselves  admit  that  some  kind  of 

*  difference  and  inequality  there  may  be  lawfully 

*  amongst  ministers.     Inequality,  as  touching  gifts 

*  and  graces  they  grant,  because  this  is  so  plain  that 
'  no  mist  in  the  world  can  be  cast  before  men's  eyes 
'  so   thick,  but  they  needs   must   discern  through 

*  it,  that  one  minister  of  the  gospel  may  be  more 

*  learned,  holier,  and  wiser  ;  better  able  to  instruct, 
'  more  apt  to  rule  and  guide,  than  another  ?'  Let 
Mr  Rhind  then  say,  at  his  best  leisure,  whence  he 
got  that  supposed  equality  in  all  respects. 

His  third  argument  is  taken  from  the  practices  of 
the  Presbyterians  themselves,  the  sum  of  which,  in 
his  own  words,  page  35,  is,  '  That,  though  by  their 
'  principles  all  church  officers  are  allowed  an  equal 

*  authority,  yet,  in  effect,  the  whole,  or  at  least  the 
'  chief  power,  is  in  the  hands  of  a  few,  who  are  the 
<  most  knowing  and  wise.     And  for  proof  of  this  he 

*  brings  an  instance,  how,  that  in  three  several  ge- 
«  neral  assemblies,  though  the  most  numerous  party 

*  in  the  assembly  were  earnest  to  have  the  intrinsic 
'  power  of  the  church  asserted  by  an  act,  yet  the  au- 

*  thority  of  a  leading  junto,  who  were  upon  the  mat- 
'  ter  so  many  bishops,  crushed  that  dangerous  af- 
«  fair.     Why  then,'  saith  he,  page  37.  *  do  they  op- 

*  pose  that  kind  of  government,  which  is  not  only 


6^  DEFENCE  OF-XH^ 

'  indispensably  necessary  in  itself,  but  does,  in  desr 

*  pite  of  their  principles,  actually  obtain  among  them- 

*  selves  ?*  Thus  he.  In  answer  to  which  :  How  lucky 
soever  Mr  Rhind  may  be  in  some  of  his  minutes,  yet 
perhaps  he  is  the  most  unlucky  in  his  arguments  ever 
man  was  :  they  being  generally  so  ill-natured  as  to 
cut  their  own  throat.  For,  1  wo,  who  told  him  that  it 
is  against  Presbyterian  principles,  that  one  minister 
should  have  a  greater  hand  in  managing  than  ano- 
ther ?  Not  the  Presbyterians  j  they  refuse  it.  Not 
his  brethren,  the  authors  on  the  Episcopal  side ; 
witness  him  last  cited,  who  tells  us  (Ibid J,  '  A  pri- 

*  ority  of  order  they  deny  not  but  that  there  may 

*  be,  yea,  such  a  priority  as  maketh  one  man  amongst 

*  many  a  principal  actor  in  those  things  whereunto 

*  sundry  of  tlyem  must  necessarily  concur,  so  that 

*  the  same  be  admitted  only  during  the  time  of  such 

*  actions,  and  no  longer.'  'Ido^  Is  it  indeed  true,  that 
the  Presbyterian  government  is  in  effect  in  the  hands 
of  a  few,  who  are  upon  the  matter  bishops  ?  Then 
it  is  certainly  true,  that  they  are  not  Schismatics,  conr 
sequently  that  Mr  Rhind's  separating  from  them  on 
that  score  is  unjustifiable.  Is  this  my  reasoning  on-, 
ly  ?  No;  but  of  one  of  the  best  men  that  ever  w:ore 
raitre,  I  mean  Dr  Bedell,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Kil- 
raore,  in  his  answer  to  IVIr  Waddesworth,  once  21^ 
minister  in  Sufibik,  then  a  Roman  Catholic  and  pen- 
sioner of  the  Holy  Inquisition  in  Seville.  Waddes- 
worth, in  his  scripts  after  liis  revolt,  fell  foul  upon  the 
reformation  in  these  words:  *  In  France,  Holland,  and 
'  Germany,  they  have  no  bishops.'  To  this  Dr  Be- 
dell answers,*  '  What  if  I  should  defend  they  have  ? 
'  Because  a  bishop  and  a  l^resbyter  ai*e  all  one,* 
as  St  Jerome  maintains,  '  and  proves  out  of  holy 

*  Scripture,  and  the  use  of  antiquity.  Of  which 
'judgment,  as  Medina  confesseth,  are  sundry  of  the 

*  ancient  fathers,^    both  Greek  and  Latin,  St  Am- 

*  brose,    Augustine,  Seciulius,    Primasius,  Clirysos- 

*  tQm,  Theodoret,  Oecumenius,  and  Theophylagt; : 

*'  Burnet*ai  Life  of  Bisil)0|>.  Bedell,  ]^  i^^  454. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  63 

*  which  point  t  have  largely  treated  of  in  another 
'place.*  Thus  he.  But  Mr  Waddesworth  was  an 
adversary  much  of  Mr  Rhind's  temper,  not  to  be  sa- 
tisfied without  bishops  superior  to  presbyters.  Dr  Be- 
dell therefore  finds  a  way  to  make  all  the  Protestant 
churches  Episcopal.  In  Germany  the  superintend^, 
ents  were  bishops.  But  what  was  to  be  done  with 
France  and  Geneva  where  these  were  not.  '  Why/ 
saith  he,  '  there  are  usually  certain  chief  men,  tliat 
•^  do'in  a' manner  bear  ail  the  sway.     And  what  are 

*  these  but  bishops,  indeed^  unless  we  shall  wrangle 

*  about  names.'  I  hope  Mr  Rliind  is  here  fitted  with 
a'  wedge  of  his  ov/n  timber.  Common  sense  dic- 
tates that  superiority  in  wisdom  and  dexterity  for 
managing  business,  attended  with  a  due  integrity^ 
should  bear  sway  among  all^  societies,  even  wher« 
the  constituent  members  are  otherwise  equal  in 
their  character  :  Which  amounts  to.  no  more  than 
thisi  that  the  weaker  should  follow  the  counsel;  of 
the  wiser,  and  no  other  superiority  but  this  could 
the  Doctor  find  necessary  by  the  word  of  God  among 
ministers :  '  But,'  saith  Mr  Rhind,  *  why  do 
'  those   whose    superior   abilities    entitle    them    to 

*  the  chief  power,  and  who  exercise  the  same  in 

*  fact,  refuse  to  be   regularly   admitted  to  the  ex- 

*  ercise  thereof,  that  is,  plainly,  to   be  consecrated 

*  bishops  ?*  I  answer  from  the  excellent  Lord  Falk- 
land', who  died  in  the  bed  of  honour,  fighting 
for  the  royal  martyr.*     '  There  was  once  a  hen  in 

*  ^sop,  which,  upon  a  moderate  proportion  of  barley 

*  laid  every  day  an  egg.    Her  mistress  enlarging  her 

*  diet,  in  hopes  she  would  proportionally  encrease 

*  her  eggs,  she  grew  so  fat  upon  that  addition,  that 

*  she  never  laid  more.'  Dignities  and  preferments 
often  turn  men's  heads,  blunt  their  wits,  or  rebate  th'C 
edge  of  their  diligence.  How  often  has  it  been  seen, 
that  a  very  good  minister  has  made  but  a  very  in- 
different bishop?  So  long  as  they  are  equal  in  au- 
thority, they  know  it  is  only  their  superior  wisdom 

•  See  his  Speecli  before  tlie  House  af  Commons!,  concerai»g  B- 
plscopacy,  in  RushvYorlh^a  Collect.  Vol.  I.  Fart  ill.  p.  182, 


64  DEFENCE    OP    THE 

and  virtue  that  can  entitle  them  to  respect  from,  or 
sway  among  their  brethren.     This  first  excites  their 
spirits,  and  then  keeps  them  on  the  bend  ;  but  when 
once  they  are  settled  in  the  dignity  by  a  formal  in- 
stalment, they  know  that  reverence  is  due  to  their 
character,   how  unaccountable  soever  their  conduct 
is.     Of  all  sorts  of  bishops,  these  are  the  most  de- 
sirable, whose  dignity  rises  and   falls  in  proportion 
with  their  real  merit  and  wise  management.     This 
puts  them   upon  their  good  behaviour,  which  is  ne- 
cessary for  clergymen,  as  well   as  for  other  people. 
And  this  is  plainly  the  case  of  our  Presbyterian  Bi- 
shops.    To  all  this,   Mr  Rhind  may  please  to  add, 
that  they  refuse,   and  their  brethren  will  not  allow 
them,  to  be  consecrated  to  the  dignity  ;  because  it 
is  not  only  without  warrant,  but  against  the  precept 
of  our  Lord,  Matth.  xx.  25,  whereof  afterwards.    In 
the  meantime,  Mr  Rhind  having  acknowledged  that 
the  Presbyterians  have  such  as  are  bishops  upon  the 
matter ;  it  is  plain,  he  has  separated  from  them  for 
the  want  of  what  is  not  material.     Stio,  As  to  his  in- 
stance of  the   act,  assertory  of  the  intrinsic  power. 
If  he  had  said,  that  the  Junto,  as  he  calls  them,  by 
importunity  prevailed  on,  or  by  pure  dint  of  reason, 
persuaded  the  rest  that  such  an  act  was  either  not 
necessary,  or  not  seasonable  at  that  time  ;  I  believe 
he  had  spoken  truth,  but  nothing  to  the  purpose,  be- 
cause  Presbyterians   still   own,   that  some,   who  in 
point  of  authority  are  only  on  a  level  with  their  bre- 
thren, may  yet  be  superior  to  them  in  the  ecclesias- 
tical politics.     But  to  say  that  they  got  it  crushed 
by  their  authority,  was  to  be  too  prodigal  of  his  cre- 
dit, the  whole  nation  knowing  it  to  be  false.     4/o,  I 
know  that  Mr   Rhind  mentioned  this  instance  by 
way  of   reflection   against    the   Presbyterians,   and 
therefore,  I  must  take  the  freedom  to  tell  him,  that 
the  General  Assembly  has  done  more,  even  since 
the  revolution,    for  asserting    the  intrinsic   power, 
than  all  the  Prelatists  in  Scotland  ever  had  the  cour- 
age to   do.     These  latter,  upon  the  restoration  of 
King   Charles  II.    meanly  truckled  to  an  avowed 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  65 

Erastian  usurpation,  without  the  least  remonstrance 
or  reclaiming.     And  when  the  late  King  James  sent 
down  his  proclamation  of  the  date,  Feb.  12,   1687, 
for  an  unbounded  toleration,  wherein  by  his  absolute 
power  and  prerogative  royal,  he  annulled  and  revok- 
ed the  penal  laws  against  papists ;  the   Archbishop 
of  St  Andrews,  and  the  elect  Archbishop  of  Glas- 
gow, were  the  second  and  third  persons  who  sub- 
scribed a  letter  of  thanks  to  him  for  the  said  tolera- 
tion and  proclamation.     The  letter  bears  date,  Feb. 
24,  1687.     It  is  stuffed  with  the  most  fulsome  flat- 
tery, and  a  soothing  of  the  king  in  those  measures 
which  took  away  the  barrier  of  the  Protestant  reli- 
gion, and  at  last  ruined  himself.     So  unwilling  were 
that  unfortunate  prince's  best  friends,   to  venture 
their  posts  by  giving  him  free  and  honest  counsel  ; 
when  they  might  have  possibly  saved  their  king,  and 
certainly  their  own  consciences,  by  the  doing  it.  The 
General  Assembly  on  the  other  hand,  have  acted  a 
somewhat  better  part :  for  when,  in  the   year  1692, 
the  Earl  of  Lothian  would  needs  dissolve  it  in  a  very 
abrupt  manner,  to  say  no  worse,   the  moderator,  with 
all  due  respect  to  the  civil  powers,  and  yet  with  that 
courage  that  became  a  churchman  possessed  of  the 
chair  in  the  highest  judicatory,  boldly  asserted  the 
intrinsic  power,   even  in  the  face  of  a  frowning  go- 
vernment, and  the  whole  Assembly  adhered  to  him 
in  so  doing.     I  hope  then  Mr  Rhind  will  see  that  he 
should  have  been  wise  in  his  wrath,  and  not  needless- 
ly have  given  occasion  to  such  a  piece  of  history.  5to, 
His  reasoning  concludes  alike  against  Bishops,  as  weli 
as  the  members  of  the   General  Assembly ;  for  the 
world  does  not  want  to  know  that  Bishops  are  not 
always  the  wisest,  any  more  than  the  best  men.   And 
he  himself  was  aware  of  this:  '  But,' saith  he,  p.  38, 

*  when  such  is  the  government  of  the  church,   that 

*  there  are  different  spheres  in  which  men  are  to  act, 

*  it  is  presumed  they  are  chosen  with  qualifications 

*  proportioned  to  each.'  But  why  should  that  be 
presumed  which  no  man  can  prove,  and  every  man 
will  deny  ?  And  does  not  he  himself  own,  that  it  has 


66 


DEFENCE    OF    THE 


too  frequently  happened,  that  men  of  inferior  abili' 
ties  have  attained  to  the  Inchest  ecclesiastical  di'sni- 
ties  r  And  does  not  the  history  of  the  late  times 
confirm  this  ?  Witness  Mr  Wallace,  who,  in  the  year 
1662,  was  preferred  to  be  Bishop  of  the  Isles,  though 
he  understood  not  one  syllable  of  the  native  language 
of  his  diocese  :  yet  a  powerful  recommendation,  and 
the  good  quality  of  pliancy  procured  him  the  crosier. 
But,  saith  Mr  Rhind,  this  is  not  the  fault  of  the  con- 
stitution, but  of  thf)se  who  prefer  them.  Very  man- 
nerly !  And  so  all  the  faults  of  the  bishops  must  be 
charged  upon  the  prince.  But  the  very  constitution 
has  been  always  such  in  Scotland,  that  it  was  at  least 
a  very  great  hazard  if  ever  a  worthy  person  was 
chosen.  Generally  men  of  merit  ai'e  modest,  and 
love  obscurity  ;  the  most  unworthy  persons  are  most 
forward  to  put  in  for  preferments ;  courtiers,  by 
whose  eyes  and  ears  the  Prince  must  see  and  hear, 
are  most  ready  to  recommend  such  as  are  likely  to 
be  the  most  serviceable  tools  to  themselves  in  their 
political  designs.  The  Prince's  conge  (TeUre  makes 
the  election  of  the  chapter  a  sham.  So  that  upon 
the  whole,  there  was  a  fault  in  the  very  constitution,. 
even  though  the  office  had  been  in  itself  lawful. 

III.  Mr  Rhind  is  resolved  to  end  this  argument 
with  one  bold  stroke.  '  According,'  saith  he,  p.  38, 
'  to  the  Presbyterian  platform,  the  less  known  and 
'  wise  are  allowed  an  equal  authority  with  those  who 
*  deserve  it  best:  an  establishment  which  seems  to 
'  bid  defiance  to  common  sense.'  Did  Mr  Rhind 
never  hear  of  the  Roman  senate  ?  It  was  reckoned 
the  most  venerable  bench  in  the  world  j  yet  there 
did  parity  reign  in  perfection,  and  that  notwithstand- 
ing the  inequality  among  the  constituent  members  in 
point  of  prudence.  That  fine  gentleman  the  younger 
Pliny,  giving  his  friend  Arrianus  an  account  of  an  ac- 
tion hei'ore  the  senate,  in  which  he  had  been  employed 
to  plead,  tells  him*.     Thus  it  seemed  good  to  the 

*  Sed  hoc  pluribus  visum  est.  Numcrantur  enim  sententlscj  nou 
pomlerantur.  Ncc  aliud  in  puhlico  concilio  potest  fieri,  in  quo. 
Oihil  est  tani  incquale  quam  aeqiialitas  ipsa:  nam  cum  sit  iropac 
prudentia,  par  omnium  jus  est. — Plin.  lib.  ii.  Ep.  xii. 


PRESBYTEIJIAN  GOVERNMENT.  67 

plurality :  For  the  votes  are  numbered,  not  weighed. 
Nor  can  it  otherwise  be  in  public  council,  in  which 
there  is  nothing  so  unequal  as  the  equality  itself: 
For  the  right  of  all  is  equal,  though  their  prudence 
is  unequal.  Did  Mr  Rhind  never  hear  of  the  House 
of  Lords,  or  Commons  in  Parliament  ?  Are  not  all 
the  members  in  these  several  houses  allowed  an 
equal  authority  ?  yet  who  ever  said  that  they  were 
equally  qualified,  or  that  it  was  necessary  they  should 
be  so  ?  If  he  has  never  travelled  so  far  as  Westmin- 
ster in  his  views,  yet  did  he  never  hear  of  the  Lords 
of  Session,  or  Senators  of  the  College  of  Justice  in 
Scotland  ?  Does  he  not  know  that  none  of  them 
have  a  negative  on  the  rest ;  that  they  have  all  an 
equal  authority,  though  they  never  had,  nor  proba- 
bly ever  will  have  equal  abilities  ?  Yet  one  would  be 
very  void  of  common  sense,  that  would  venture  to 
say,  that  their  constitution  bids  a  defiance  to  it. 

So  much  for  his  argument  from  the  nature  of  the 
thing,  of  which  he  is  so  vain,  that  he  affirms,  p.  39, 
it  may  in  some  measure  serve  to  determine  the  con- 
troversy about  church  government :  and  I  hope, 
after  what  has  been  said,  every  reader  will  grant 
that  he  may  for  ever  enjoy  that  good  opinion  of  it 
without  fear  of  a  rival. 


ARTICLE  n. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Argument  for  the  Necessity/  of 
ins ti tut 'nig  Prelacy  from   the  Form  of  Governmeiit 
in  the  Jewish  Church,  is  Ea:amined.     From  p,  39 
to  J).  45, 

Before  I  state  this  argument,  I  must  put  (yet 
once  more)  the  reader  in  mind,  that  though  the 
Presbyterians  are  against  a  subordination  of  pastors, 
yettiiey  are  for  a  subordination  of  officers,  as  well  as 
the  Prelatists  arc.  And  tiiat,  therefore,  when  his 
arguments  conclude  against  a  parity  of  officers,  or 
i:  2 


68  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

for  a  subordinate  form  of  Government,  It  is  only  3 
parcel  of  empty  insignificant  words  huddled  to- 
getiier,  unless  by  the  former  we  understand  Pres- 
bytery, and  by  the  latter  Prelacy.  This  premised, 
his  argument  stands  thus  : 

'  A  government  constituted  by  a  subordination 
'  of  rulers  was  actually  approven  of  by  God  under 

*  the  Old  Testament :     For   the  form  of  govern- 

*  ment,  which,  by  divine  institution,  obtained  in  the 

*  Jewish  Church,  was  constituted  by  officers  acting 
'  in  an  imparity ;  such  as  the  High  Priest,  Priests,, 

*  and  Levites  ;  each  of  which  were  orders  distinct 

*  from,  and  subordinate  to  the  other.'  p.  40.  This 
is  his  whole  medium,  and  the  only  inference  that  can 
justly  be  made  from  it  is,  (which  every  Presbyte- 
rian grants),  that  such  an  imparity  was  not  only 
lawful,  but  also  best  for  that  state  of  the  church. 
But  Mr  Rhind's  inferences  from  which  are  of  a  high- 
er nature,  viz.  That  if  it  was  best  under  that  dis- 
pensation, he  cannot  conceive  how  it  can  be  reck- 
oned unlawful  in  the  Christian  Church.  I  cannot 
but  pity  the  weakness  of  his  conception :  For  if 
our  Lord  has  changed  the  Jewish  Priesthood,  and 
dissolved  their  polity,  and  set  up  the  Christian  very 
different  from  it,  will  not  this  make  it  unlawful  I 
O  but,  by  Mr  Rhind's  account,  our  Lord  did  not 
this,  he  could  not  do  it,  it  was  not  consistent  with 
his  wisdom  to  do  it ;  plainly,  '  it  is,'  saith  he,  p.  41, 

*  an  impeachment  of  the  divine  wisdom  to  think 

*  that  God  would  alter  that  form  of  government 

*  which  he  had  instituted,  to  establish  another  quite 

*  different  from  it.'  And  now  you  have  his  whole 
argument,  an  argument  which  he  thinks  sufficient  to 
prove  the  perpetuity  of  that  form. 

In  discoursing  it  I  shall  shew,  First,  That 
as  he  has  laid  it,  it  is  horridly  impious.  Se- 
cond/j/y  That  his  management  of  it  against  the 
Presbyterians,  is  ridiculous.  Thirdly,  That  it  is 
in  itself  weak,  and  concludes  nothing  to  the  pur- 
pose in  this  controversy.  Fourthlij,  That  if  it 
conclude  at  all,  it  concludes  for  an  universal  Pa- 


PERSBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  (50 

pacy  rather  than  a  diocesan  Prelacy.  And,  Lastly ^ 
That  it  is  rejected  as  insufficient  by  the  Episcopal 
authors  themselves. 

I.  The  argument,  as  he  has  laid  it,  is  horridly 
impious.     God  must  not  be  wise,   that  is,  he  must 
not  be  God,  unless  Mr  Rhind  please.     No  Christian 
ought  to  pass  that  way  of  talking  he  has  got  into 
without  resentment.      Sauciness    against  the    Al- 
mighty is  intolerable.     What!     Was  it  not  consis- 
tent with  the  wisdom  of  God  to  alter  a  form  of  go- 
vernment  he   had  formerly  instituted?      Has  Mr 
BJiind  read  the  Bible,  and  knows  not  that  God  go- 
verned  Israel,  first  by  Judges  and  then  by  Kings, 
and  yet  was  infinitely  wise  in  both  ?     If  he  did  this 
in  the  state,  why  should  it  reflect  on  his  wisdom  to 
do  it  in  the  church  ?     Nay,  has  he  not  actually  done 
it  in  the  church  ?     For,  was  not  both  the  civil  and 
ecclesiastical  power  originally  in  the  same  person, 
in  Adam,  the  Patriarchs,  and  Moses  ;  and  yet,  imder 
the   law,   did   he  not  put   the   ecclesiastical   regi- 
ment into  the  hands  of  the  High  Priest,  Priests  and 
Levites,  so  that  the  King  was  no  longer  Priest  ?  And 
might  he  not  have  learned  this  from  Dr  L — y  him- 
self? *     Tlie  Jews  fondly  dreamed  that  their  polity 
was  to  last  with  the  world,  and  persecuted  the  first 
martyr,  Stephen,  to  death,  because  he  had  taught, 
that  Jesus  of  Nazareth   would  change  the  customs 
which  Moses  delivered,  Acts,  vi.    14.     But,  if  Mr 
llhind's  argument  is  good,  Stephen's  doctrine  was 
fixlse,  and  the  Jews  murdering  of  him  was  only  the 
effect  of  a  laudable  zeal.     Is  it  not  more  agreeable 
to  the  divine  wisdom  to  think,  that  the  circumstan- 
ces of  the  church  being  so  vastly  altered,  her  govcrn- 
mentshould  be  so  too.  Underthe Jewish  dispensation, 
the  church  was  empaled  within   a  narrow  enclosure, 
but  the  Gospel  was  to  be  preached  to  every  creature. 
And  is  not  here  a  fair  foundation  for  altering  the  go- 
vernment ?     And  does  not  the  Apostle  to  the  He- 
brews, c.  vii.  V.  12,  lay  it  down  for  a  principle,  that 
the  Priesthood   being  changed,  there  is  made,  of 
necessity,  a  change  also  of  the  law.     How  impious 

*  Finishing  Stroke,  p.  2. 


70  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

is  it  then  to  insinuate,  that  such  a  change  is  incon-' 
sistent  with  the  divine  wisdom  ! 

II.  His  management  of  this  argument  against  the 
Presbyterians  is  ridiculous.  Take  it  in  his  own 
Words,  p.  43.  «  Seeing  there  was  one  of  the  highest 

*  order  in  the  Jewish  Church,  it  follows  unanswer- 

*  abl}^  (taking  along  with  you  what  I  have  said  a- 

*  bove  upon  this  head,)  that  there  ought  to  be  one 

*  at  least  in  the  Christian  Church.     This,'  saith  he, 

*  is  enough  to  prove  the  point  against  the   Presby- 

*  terians,  and  I  defy  themj  if  they  sliall  answer  di- 

*  rectly,  to  evade  it/  This  defiance  of  Mr  Rhind's, 
is  the  prettiest  I  ever  heard  of.  Let  the  Presbyte- 
rians '  take  along  with  them  what  he  has  said  above 

*  upon  his  own  head,  that  is,  let  them  grant  that  it 
'  is  an  impeachment  of  the  divine  wisdom,  to  think 

*  that  God    would  alter  that  form  of  government 

*  which  he  had  instituted  among  the  Jews,  to  esta- 

*  blish  another  quite  different  from   it  among  the 

*  Christians  ;'  and  then  it  will  follow  unanswerabl}^, 
that  as  there  was  one  High  Priestin  the  Jewish  Church, 
there  ought  to  be  one  at  least  in  the  Christian 
Church.  That  is,  as  if  he  had  said,  pray,  you  Pres- 
byterians, let  me  bind  your  hands,  and  then  I'll  un- 
dertake to  knock  out  your  brains.  I  truly  cannot 
imagine  what  class  of  men  Mr  Rhind  wrote  for. 
Presbyterians  will  be  so  far  from  taking  along  with 
them  his  assertion,  that  they  cannot  otherwise  look 
on  it  than  as  a  most  rude  attack  on  the  Divine  Ma- 
jesty. He  goes  on  with  his  reasonings.  '  I  ask 
'  them,'  saith  he,  p.  44,  '  whether  it  be  just  to  con- 

*  demn    the  order  as    useless    among     Christians, 

*  because  one  is  not  able  to  perform   all  the  offices 

*  belonging  to  it?    Or  whether  it  be  not  rather  rea- 

*  sonable  to  acknowledge,   that  as  there  was  in  the 

*  Jewish  Church  one  ecclesiastical  ruler  of  the  high- 

*  est  order,  and  no  more,  because  one  was  sufficient ; 

*  so  should  Christians  have  one  at  least,  and  as  many 

*  more  as  are  needful  ?*  The  Presbyterians  are 
heartily  content  with  the  proposal :  For,  they  believe 
every  Gospv^.l  Minister  to  be  an  ecclesiastical  ruler 


PP.ESBTTERIAX  GOVERNMENT.  71 

of  til e  highest  order,  and  are  very  well  persuaded 
that  one  of  them  is  needful  in  every  congregatioE. 
They  are  60  far  from  being  against  multiplying  of 
Bishops,  that  where  there  is  one  in  England,  they 
wish  there  were  three  hundred.  But,  saith  Mr  llhind, 
*  let  them  allow  one  Bishop  for  every  district,  in 
*■  proportion  to  that  to  which  the  High  Priest's  autho- 
•'  rity  did  extend,  and  the  debate  is  at  an  end.*  The 
Presbyterians  will  be  content  with  this  likewise  upon 
two  very  reasonable  conditions  :  \st.  If  he  can  prove 
that  there  is  any  divine  institution  appointing  it  to  be 
so.  But  MrRhind's  dictating  to  God,  and  thinking  it 
j-easonable  it  should  be  «o,  will  not  be  admitted  by 
them  as  a  proof  of  this.  2^,  If  he  can  prove  that 
the  ecclesiastical  rulers  of  the  highest  order  in  the 
Christian  Church  are  appointed  for  the  same  fimc- 
tions  the  High  Priest  was  under  the  law.  The  Priest, 
that  Imayspeak  in  MrDodwell's  style,  was  to  offer  up 
the  national  or  popular  sacrifices,  for  appropriating 
to  the  Jews,  only  (whether  by  birth  or  proseiytism, 
it  is  the  same  thing,)  the  privilege  of  the  SeguUah, 
and  the  patronage  of  the  Supreme  Being.  But  in 
all  the  New  Testament,  I  cannot  find  that  any  such, 
either  national  or  provincial  appropriation  was  ever 
designed  to  be  the  end  of  any  of  the  functions  of  any 
Gospel  ruler.  Nay,  we  find  all  on  the  contrary  : 
For,  by  the  Gospel  Institution,  all  that  worship  the 
same  Supreme  Being,  and  in  the  same  way  that  he 
has  appointed,  are  within  the  Church,  whatever  na- 
tional  distinctions  they  have. 

HI.  The  argument  is  in  itself  weak,  and  con- 
cludes nothing  to  the  purpose  in  this  controversy  ; 
because,  from  the  whole  strain  of  the  Scriptures,  it 
is  plain,  that  the  Aaronick  Priesthood  was  typical, 
and  had  at  once  both  its  end  and  accomplishment 
in  Christ.  Mr  Rhind  was  aware  of  this  exception, 
and  therefore  essays  to  take  it  off  by  two  answers, 
1.  If  the  constitution  of  the  Levitical  priesthood 
was  subordinate,  the  Christian  must  be  so  too,  o- 
therwise  the  type  is  not  adequately  represented  by 
the  antitype,  p.  42.  This  the  Presbyterians  grant: 
For  Christ  is  the  great  high-priest  of  our  profession. 


72  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Heb.  iii.  1.,  and  all  other  Christians  are  a  royal 
priesthood,  i  Pet.  ii.  9.,  subordinate  to  him.  But 
otherwise,  that  the  orders  of  the  clergy  among  Chris- 
tians should  be  adjusted  to  those  among  the  Jews, 
is  a  ridiculous  dream ;  seeing  from  the  one  end  of 
the  New  Testament  to  the  other,  the  title  of  Priest 
is  never  given  to  the  ministers  of  the  gospel  as  such. 
His  2d  answer  is,  '  That  though  these  parts  of  the 

*  priestly  office  which  did  prefigure  the  sacrifice  and 

*  intercession  of  Jesus  Christ  were  to  cease  upon 

*  his  crucifixion  and  ascension,  yet  that  the  High 
'  Priest  was  also  a  governor  in  the  Jewish  Church, 
'  and  that  the  ordinary  priest  had  a  share  in  the 

*  government  with  him,  though  subordinate  to  him, 

*  and  that  the  Levites  were  subservient  to  both. 
'  And  he  is  confident  that  the  Presbyterians  will  not 

*  affirm  that  the  Pligh  Priest,  or  inferior  priests,  did 

*  typify  any  thing  under  the  reduplication  of  rulers, 

*  or  the  Levites  as  under  them,  or  that  there  was 

*  any  thing  typical  in  their  subordination  as  such.' 
But  this  answer  is  in  all  its  parts  unserviceable,  and 
in  some  of  them  quite  opposite  to  himself.  For, 
1.  We  have  already  *  heard  Mr  Dodwell  declaring. 
That  it  is  the  Bishops  precedency,  not  in  the  Chris- 
tian assemblies  only,  but  in  their  sacrifices,  which 
can  entitle  to  a  principle  of  unity.  Therefore  Mr 
Rhind  destroys  the  argument  by  abstracting  from 
the  sacrifices  and  insisting  on  the  government,  and 
by  considering  the  Jewish  church  officers  not  as 
priests,  but  as  rulers.  2.  If  the  subordination  as 
such  among  the  Jewish  church  rulers  was  not  typi- 
cal, then,  where  is  there  any  necessity,  by  that  ar- 
gument, for  any  such  subordination  in  the  Chris- 
tian Church  ?  3.  Why  is  he  so  confident  that  the 
Presbyterians  will  not  affirm,  that  the  High  Priest  or 
inferior  priests  did  typify  any  thing  under  the  re- 
duplication of  rulers  ?  He  owns  he  had  read  the 
Presbyterian  authors  with  a  scrupulous  exactness, 
particularly  the  Altare  Diimascenum.  Now  the 
author  of  that  work  expressly  affirms  it+.     '  The 

*  See  Lcfore,  Chap.  ii.  Sect.  2. 

•f  Alt.  Daniasc.  p,  HO.     Sed  cum  sancti  omncs  sinl  Deo  sacer- 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  73 

<  very  eminency,'  saith  he,  '  of  the  High  Priest,  in 

*  which  the  Episcopal  writers  place  the  order  and 

*  eutaxyof  thatgovernment,  was  typical,  and  shadow- 

<  ed  the  super-eminent  dignity  of  our   High  Priest 

*  above  all  other  priests,  whose  priesthood  has  an 

*  influence  on  all  the    faithful,    and   makes   them 

*  priests  and  pastors  in  an  ethical,  though  not  poli- 

*  tical  sense.'  It  is  then  plain  that  Mr  Rjiind's  con- 
fidence in  this  point  has  been  much  greater  than  his 
caution.  4.  Seeing  under  the  Jewish  dispensation 
the  ordinary  priests  had  a  share  in  the  government 
with  the  High  Priest,  why  did  not  Mr  Rhind  tell 
us  what  share  the  ordinary  priests  in  the  Church  of 
England  have  with  their  diocesans,  or  high  priests, 
in  the  government  ?  I  cannot  find  it :  No  wonder, 
truly,  for  the  great  Bacon,  Lord  Verulam,  could 
not.  This  is  one  of  the  things,  wherein  he  con- 
fesses he  could  never  be  satisfied,  viz.  the 
sole  exercise  of  their  authority.  *  The  bishop,* 
saith  he,  *  *  giveth  orders  alone,  excommunicateth 
'  alone,  judgeth  alone.     Tins  seems  to  be  a  thing 

*  almost  without  example  in  government,  and  there- 
'  fore  not  unlikely  to  have  crept  in,  in  the  degene- 

*  rate  and  corrupt  times.'  Thus  he.  Where  is  then 
the  subordination  in  government  which  Mr  Rhind 
pleads  for  ? 

IV.  His  argument,  if  it  conclude  at  all,  con- 
cludes for  an  universal  Pa})acy  rather  than  a  Dio- 
cesan Prelacy :  For  there  was  but  one  high  priest 
over  the  Jews,  and  consequently  there  should  be 
but  one  supreme  bishop  over  the  Christian  Cliurch. 
And  indeed  Mr  Dodwell  has  roundly  asserted,  that 
the  original  government  of  the  Christian  Church 
was  a  Papacy; — that  the  whole  Cinistian  churches 
were  subject  to   the  church  at  Jerusalem,  and  that 

dotes,  annon  ilia  ip«a  eminevtia  summi  saccidotis  In  qua  illl  pommt 
ordincm  ct  eutaxium,  lijpica  fuit,  et  super  eviinentem  summi 
pontificis  nostri  supra  alios  cnincs  sacertlotcs  dignitatem  adiimbrabat, 
cujus  saccidotium  in  onincs  litlclcs  iiifluil,  cL  ciliicos  licet  non  poli- 
ticos  in  exttrno  legimine  sacerdotes  tt  pastores  facit  ? 
*  Certain  Consideration*  touching  the  Church  of  England,  p,  14. 


74  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  bishop  of  Jerusalem  was  the  principle  of  Catho- 
lic unity,  and  that  there  were  no  other  bishops  in 
the  world  but  himself,  and  that  the  settling  of  bi- 
shops in  particular  dioceses  was  an  after-game.  This 
is  Mr  Dodwell's  doctrine.  *  And  it  agrees  very 
well  with  the  argument  from  the  Jewish  priesthood. 
He  indeed  took  pains  to  prevent  the  consequence 
that  this  doctrine  might  seem  to  have  in  favours  of 
the  Church  of  Rome,  by  teaching,  as  we  shall  hear 
afterwards,  that  the  government  was  altered  in  the 
second  century  ;  but  Mr  Rhind,  by  declaring  an  al- 
teration inconsistent  with  the  wisdom  of  our  Lord, 
has  plainly  betrayed  the  Protestant  cause.  He  fore- 
saw that  this  objection  would  be  made  against  his 
argument.    Let  us  hear  how  he  wards  it  oft'.     '  This 

*  cavil,*  saith  he,  p.  43,  *  is,  I  confess,  very  plausible, 

*  and  our  adversaries  do  triumph  upon  it  as  unanswer- 

*  able  ;  but  they  do  not  know,  perhaps,  whom  they 

*  oblige  by  this.'     Well,  pray,  who  are  they  ?    '  Let 

*  me  tell  them,'  saith  he    '  that  the  Roman   Catho- 

*  lies  are  no  less  fond  of  it  than  they.'  But  let  me 
tell  Mr  Rhind,  that  this  is  to  write  not  only  weakly 
but  ridiculously.  When  the  Prelatists  go  in  to  the 
worst  part  of  Popery,  by  insisting  on  an  argument 
which,  supposing  its  solidity,  must  needs  found  the 
Pope's  supremacy,  must  not  the  Presbyterians,  (who 
have  proved  a  hundred  times,  that  it  is  absurd  to  in- 
fer the  form  of  government  in  the  Christian,  from 
that  of  the  Jewish  Church),  tell  them  so  much  for 
fear  of  obliging  the  Romian  Catholics  ?  This  is  a 
new  way  he  has  got  of  turning  the  chace,  which 
may  be  admired,  but  I  believe  will  scarcely  be  fol- 
lowed by  any  wise  man.  But  after  all  this,  how  does 
he  defend  his  argument  against  the  Papists  ?  Lie 
indeed  refers  his  readers  to  the  authors  who  have 
managed  this  controversy  against  them  ;    but  his 

*  Paiicncs.  Sect.  6,  p  9.  Ecclesisc  Catliolicae  univeisoe,  prima- 
tumteniiit  Eplscopus  llierosol)  niitanus.  Partm  ill!  quem  simllitev 
tenuit  pontifex  teiiipll  Hierosolyniitani  Jiulacus  in  synogogas  Judae- 
oinni  per  oibeni  terraruni  ubUjue  dispersas.  Et  parem  illi  qucm 
sibi  vcndica  per  Christianuni  Ofbcm  universum  pontifex  Roniaaus. 


Presbyterian  government.  75 

own  defence  is  absolutely  naught.     It  is  this,  p.  43. 

*  In  so  confined  a  society  as  was  the  Jewish  Churchy 

*  any  more  than  one  officer  of  the  highest  order  was 
'  needless,  seeing  the  people  could  easily  repair  to 

*  him  from  the  remotest  corners  of  Judea,  upon  all 
'  the  proper  occasions  ;  and  one  was  sufficient  for 

*  the  discharge  of  all  the  duties  of  that  office.  But 
'  since  the  partition  wall  is  broken  down,  the  church 

*  is  become  a  society  of  so  large  an  extent,   that  all 

*  the  faithful  cannot  have   access  to  one,  nor  can 

*  one  serve  all  the  purposes  of  that  office.'  But 
•why  may  not  one  serve  all  the  purposes  of  that  of- 
fice now,  as  well  as  during  the  whole  first  century, 
and  a  part  of  the  second,  according  to  Mr  Dodwell  ? 
It  is  true  the  professors  of  Christianity  are  more 
numerous  now  than  they  were  then,  yet  not  more 
widely  dispersed.  For,  if  we  may  believe  antiqui- 
ty, Christianity  got  considerable  footing  in  the  apos- 
tles days,  even  in  the  nations  most  remote  from  Je- 
rusalem, the  centre.  And  that  St  Andrew,  St  Simon 
the  Canaanite,  and,  as  some  say,  St  Paul  himself, 
planted  the  gospel  in  Britain.  And  if  the  bishop 
sitting  at  Jerusalem  could  be  a  principle  of  unity 
to  us  then,  why  might  not  the  bishop  of  Rome,  who 
is  much  nearer  hand,  be  so  to  us  now  ?  Let  Mr 
Rhind  satisfy  the  Roman  Catholics  how,  for  in- 
stance, all  the  faithful  in  the  cities  of  London  and 
Westminster,  amounting  to  about  a  milHon  of  souls; 
how  all  the  faithful  in  the  rest  of  Middlesex,  Essex, 
and  part  of  Hertfordshire,  on  this  side  the  globe;  how 
all  the  faithful  in  the  foreign  English  plantations  on 
the  other  side  of  the  globe,  and  in  both  the  Indies, 
can  have  access  to  the  bishop  of  London,  their  dio- 
cesan, or  how  he  can  serve  all  the  purposes  of  that 
office  to  them. — Let  Mr  Rhind,  I  say,  satisfy  the 
Roman  Catholics  in  this ;  and  then  I  believe  they 
will  find  it  no  hard  matter  to  shew  how  all  the  faith- 
ful through  the  world  may  have  access  to  one  Pope 
at  Rome,  and  how  one  Pope  alone  may  serve  all  the 
purposes  of  that  office  to  the  Church  Universal.  It 
is  plain,  then,  that  Mr  Rhind's  argument  must  needs 
infer  the  necessity  of  the  Pope's  supremacy. 


<i''k. 


76  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

V.  His  argument  is  rejected,  as  insufficient,  by 
the  Episcopal  authors  themselves.  It  will  be  enough 
to  establish  this  from  the  mouth  of  two  witnesses. 
The  first  is  Bishop  Bilson  :  * — '  From  these  superior 

*  and  inferior  degrees,'  saith  he,  '  amongst  the  Priests 

*  and  Levites  under  Moses,  happily  may  no  neces- 

*  sary  consequence  be  drawn,  to  force  the  same  to 

*  be  observed  in  the  Church  of  Christ.  First,  For  that 

*  the  tribe  of  Levi  might  not  be  unguided  without 

*  manifest  confusion,  and  was  not  subjected  to  the 

*  regiment  of  any  other  tribe,  but  had  the  same  man- 

*  ner  of  government  by  her  prince,  elders,  judges,  and 
'  officers  over  thousands,  hundreds,  fifties,  and  tens. 

*  And  afterward,  this  pre-eminence  grew  unto  them, 

*  according  to  their  families,  by  inheritance  and  birth- 

*  right.     The  father  was  chief  of  his  offspring  while 

*  he  lived,   and  after  him  his  eldest,  which  is  no 

*  way  imitable   in   the   Church   of   Christ.'     Thus 
Bilson. 

A  second  witness  is  the  famous  Stillingfleet,  a 
much  greater  man  than  Bilson.  He  not  only  as- 
serts, t  but  proves  irrefragably,  that  the  Christian 
Church  was  formed,  not  upon  the  Temple,  but  the 
synagogue,  model,  where  there  was  no  such  thing 
as  a  hierarchy,  but  a  ruler  of  the  synagogue,  one  or 
more,  with  a  primacy  in  point  of  order,  but  an  equa- 
lity of  power  with  the  rest  of  the  elders  of  the  sy- 
nagogue. Mr  Rhind,  then,  ere  his  argument  can 
hurt  the  Presbyterians,  must  both  answer  the  rea- 
sons, and  refuse  the  authority,  of  his  brethren  and 
fathers. 

And  thus  I  have  done  with  this  argument ;  and 
cannot  but  wish,  that^.,the  Episcopal  writers  of  the 
new  cut  were  somewhat  less  Jewishly  given.  They 
are  not  content  to  plead  for  a  Jewish  government  in 
the  Church,  but  have  turned  also  our  communion 
tables  into  altars,  our  ministers  into  priests,  and  the 
communion  into  a  propitiatory  sacrifice  j  yea,  Mr 

•  Perpetual  Gov.  of  Christ's  Cliurcli,  Chap.  ii.  p.  12; 
f  Iieiiic-  Part  II,  Chap,  vi; 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  77 

Dodwell*  has  found  the  ancient  Bishops  wearing 
the  sacerdotal  frontlet  in  imitation  of  the  Jewish 
High-Priest.  Yea,  he  has  found  t  their  succession 
hereditary.  Who  knows  where  the  humour  may- 
stop  ?  If  they  go  on  at  the  same  rate,  it  is  to  be 
feared  they  may  turn  Christianity  into  somewhat 
more  than  a  mystical  Israelitism,  and  revive  upon  us 
the  old  controversy,  that  *  except  we  be  circumcis- 
•  ed,  we  cannot  be  saved.' 


ARTICLE  III. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Argument  for  the  Necessity  of 
instituting  Prelacy  from  the  Rides  of  Political  Pru- 
dence,  in  compliance  with  the  Jews  and  Romans^  is 
examined.    From  p*  4i5  to  p,  49. 

This  is  an  argument,  which,  as  Mr  Rhind  has 
discoursed  it,  is,  1  dare  affirm,  a  pure  original  piece  ; 
and  that  as  no  man  ever  used  it  before  him,  so  no 
man  readily  will  after  him.     The  sum  of  it  is  :  The 
Jews  were  zealous  for  their  hierarchy ;  the  Romans 
were  under  a  monarchy.    A  parity  of  officers,  or  le- 
velling kind  of  government,  (such  as  he,  with  equal 
justice  and  accuracy,  supposes  the  Presbyterian  to 
be),  would  have  quite  alienated  the  Jews  from,  and 
raised  the  jealousy  of  the  Romans  against  Christiani- 
ty.    Therefore,  it  was  not  consistent  with  the  wis- 
dom and  goodness  of  our  Lord,  and  the  inspiration 
of  his  Apostles,  who  became  all  things  to  all  men, 
to  provoke  their  aversion,  by  determining  against 
their  inclinations,  p.  46.    And  if  they  had  instituted 
such  a  republican  form  as  the  Presbyterian  is,  their 
doing  so  would  have  justified  the  persecutions  were 

*  One  Priesthood,  Chap,  ix.  Sect-  4'  f  Ibid.  Sect.  S. 


78  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

raised  by  their  enemies  against  them.  *  For,'  saith 
he,  p.  47-,  '  would  they  be  justly  blamed,  if,  for 
'  their  own  security,  they  should  endeavour  to  crush 
'  a  society  of  so   dangerous  a  constitution.     And 

*  therefore  he  leaves  it  to  the  consideration  of  all 

*  wise  and  impartial  readers,  whether  it  be  not  a 

*  thought  too  unworthy  to  be  entertained  of  Christ 

*  and  his  Apostles,  that  they  should  have  given  oc- 
'  casion  to  so  reasonable  a  jealousy,  and  exposed 

*  Christians  to  persecution,  upon  an  account  about 
'  which  they  might  have  innocently  agreed  with  their 

*  enemies.' 

Here  is,  indeed,  a  masterful  stroke.  Here  is  in- 
finite wisdom  limited,  and  infinite  freedom  confined 
in  the  most  effi'onted  manner.  All  the  business  of 
the  sons  of  men,  is  to  know  what  gov^ernment  Christ 
and  his  Apostles  actually  did  establish,  and  upon 
finding  that,  to  take  it  upon  trust,  that  it  was  the 
very  best.  But  to  prescribe  what  government  Christ 
and  his  Apostles  were  obliged  in  prudence  to  esta- 
blish, is  presumptuous  in  the  highest  degree.  But, 
waving  this,  let  us  try  whether  his  premises  will  in- 
fer his  conclusion. 

I.  As  to  the  Jews. — They  were  zealous  for  their 
hierarchy.  Ergo,  saith  Mr  Rhind,  Christ  and  his 
Apostles  institute  one  too,  because  it  would  have 
been  disobliging  to  them  to  institute  Presbytery. — 
But  is  it  not  much  more  reasonable  to  argue  the 
quite  contrary  way,  viz.  that  because  the  Jews  were 
zealous  for  their  hierarchy,  therefore  Christ  and  his 
Apostles  did  not  institute  one ;  because,  if  they  had, 
it  would  have  exasperated  the  Jews  to  the  greatest 
height,  and  provoked  them  to  revile  the  Christians 
as  schismatics,  yea,  to  curse  them  as  they  did  the 
Samaritans,  for  setting  up  altar  against  altar  ?  Yes, 
this  is  so  very  obvious  to  common  sense,  that  Mr 
Dodwell  *  himself  gives  it  as  the  reason,  why,  dur- 
ing the  first  times  of  the  Apostles,  they  did  for 
a   while  forbear  the  setting  any  bishop  up  in  any 

*  One  Priesthood,  Chap.  ix.  Sect.  7.  p.  218. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  7^ 

consulenible  superiority  over  his  brethren.  '  For/ 
sailh  he,   '  if  this  superiority  of  the  Bishop  were  a 

*  substituting  him  in  the  place  of  the  High  Priest, 
'  and  the  multiplying  such  superiors  in  several  ci- 
'  ties,  were  the  multiplying  High  Priests  in  several 

*  cities,  it  plainly  appears  how  this  must  have  been 
'  interpreted  by  those  who  were  Jewishly  affected, 
'  from  the  principles  already  mentioned.  They  must 
'  have  looked  on  such  persons  as  not  only  violators 
'  of  their   law,  but   as  breakers  of    their   mystical 

*  union,  and  consequently  obnoxious  to  the  same 
'  curses  and  execrations,  which  on  the  same  account 
'  had  been  thundered  against  the  Samaritans.'  Thus 
he.  Yea,  he  tells  us  elsewhere,  *  that  Christ  was  so 
far  from  instituting  a  hierarchy,  that  he  did  not  so 
much  as  intimate  to  his  disciples,  that  ever  any  hier- 
archy, distinct  from  the  Jewish,  which  already  ob- 
tained, was  to  be  set  up  ;  yea,  that  if  he  had  inti- 
mated any  such  thing,  the  disciples  themselves  had 
been  in  ])eril  of  revolting  from  him  on  that  very  ac- 
count. 1  hope,  then,  we  are  in  no  great  hazard  from 
the  Jews. 

n.  As  to  the  Romans,  It  is  true  they  were  under 
monarchy.  Ergo,  say  I,  lino.  Such  a  constitution 
in  the  church  as  made  every  bishop  a  monarch  in  his 
own  city,  and  raised  him  to  a  throne,  (1  hope  Mr 
Rhind  knows  the  Episcopal  style),  would  have  height- 
ened their  jealousy  and  provoked  their  indignation 
against  the  Christians.  For,  though  our  Lord  dis- 
claimed all  meddling  with  secular  affairs,  and  at 
length  became  invisible,  upon  which  accounts  the 
Romans  had  no  just  reason  to  be  in  any  apprehen- 
sion from  himself;  yet  who  knows  not  that  states 
are  jealous  even  of  the  smallest  appearances  ?  Was 
it  not  Christ's  being  called  King  of  the  Jews  that 
stung  Herod  so  sharply  that  he  sought  to  murder 
him  in  his  cradle  ?  Was  it  not  on  the  same  pre- 
tence that  Pilate  condemned  him  in  judgment,  when 
he  had  acquitted  him  in  his  conscience  ?  If  they  were 

•  Parccncs.  Sect.  1 !..  p,  /JS. 


80  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

thus  jealous  of  a  monarch  who  owned  his  kingdom  was 
not  to  be  of  this  world,  and  was  shortly  to  leave  it ; 
would  they  not  have  been  much  more  so  if  a  visible 
monarch,  independent  of  the  state,  had  been  set  up  in 
every  city  ?  And  has  not  the  event  shewed  that  they 
had  reason  for  such  jealousy,  when  bishops  in  most 
kingdoms  have  made  such  encroachments  on  the  civil 
government,  and  the  bishop  of  Rome  has  set  his 
foot  on  the  necks  of  the  greatest  emperors.     And 
does  not  Mr  Dodwell  himself  confess,*  that  it  was 
the  supremacy  of  the  Bishop   of  Jerusalem,  upon 
whom,    as  he   fancies,  all  the  Christian  churches 
through  the  world  did  depend,  that  provoked  the 
Gentiles  to  rage  so  much  in  persecution  against  tliat 
church,  that  the  head  being  once  lopt  off,  Christi- 
anity might  be  ruined  at  once.     2c?o,  If  a  prelatical 
form  of  government  would  have  any  way  recom- 
mended the  Christian  church  to  the  favour  of  secular 
princes,  or  even  alleviate  their  spite  against  her,  is 
it  not  strange  that  none  of  the  apologists  for  Chris- 
tianity ever  insisted  on  that  topic  ?  Is  it  not  strange 
that  the  younger   Pliny,t  who  gave  the  Emperor  so 
discreet  an  account  of  the  Christians,  never  men- 
tioned how  well  their  government  was  suited  to  that 
of  the  empire  ?  Stio,  Why  should  Mr  Rhind  imagine 
that  a  parity  of  officers  would  appear  any  uncouth 
thing  to  the   Romans :  For,  had  they  not  a  couple 
of  consuls  of  equal  dignity  chosen  annually  ?  Nay, 
did  it  not  shortly  after  this  grow  in  use  to  have  a 
couple  of  Emperors  (sometimes  more)  reigning  with 
consent,  cequo  jure^  as  Eutropius  X  expresses  it — so 
far  were  they  from  having  an  ill  opinion  of  parity. 
4/0,  Does  not  Mr  Rhind  know  that  most  of  all  the 
brave  spirits  among  the  Romans  in  the  apostles  days 
secretly  groaned  under  the  imperial  chains  ;  impa- 
tiently longed  for,  and  sometimes  bravely  attempt- 
ed the  recovery  of  their  ancient  liberties  and  govern- 
ment ?  Does  he  not  know,  that  upon  the  death  of 

*  Paracneg.  Sert,  16,  page  68.  Suspicor  lioc  fine  adeo  in  eccle- 
siam  Hieiosolymitanam  sevire  Gentiles,  ut,  capite  sublato,  res  Chris- 
tiana univtrs;i  una  coucidcrtt, 

f  Ep.  'JJ.  Lib.  X.  X  Breviar.  Lib.  viii. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT,  81 

Caligula,  the  senate  decreed  that  the  memory  of  the 
Caesars  shoidd  be  extinguished,  and  the  temples  built 
to  their  honour  thrown  down,  and  that,  by  the  tri- 
bune of  the  people  they  discharged  Claudius,  who 
had  been  saluted  Emperor  by  the  army,  to  enter  on 
the  administration,  though  indeed  they  were  at  last 
overpowered  by  a  miUtary  force  ?  If,  therefore,  we 
were  to  reason  on  such  common-place  arguments, 
it  is  plain  that  a  monarchical  form  of  government  in 
the  church  would  have  most  excited  the  jealousy  of 
the  prince  ;  and  that  a  republican  form  would  have 
gained  her  most  proselytes  among  the  people. 
*  But,'  saith  MrRhind,  page  48,  *  we  do  not  find  that 

*  ever  their  persecutors  did  charge  it  upon  them  as  a 

*  crime,  that  the  church  was  of  a  republican  consti- 
'  tution.'  True,  indeed,  they  did  not,  for  they  knew 
that  the  Christians  owned  Christ  as  their  head  and 
king,  and  on  that  account  misrepresented  them  as 
rebels  and  seditious  persons,  and  raised  persecution 
against  them.  Judaeos  (saith  Sueton)*  impulsore 
Chresto  assidiie  tumultuantes  Romo  ea:pulit' 

But  I  have  insisted  too  long  against  an  argument 
the  most  maggotish  was  ever  bred  in  the  head  of  a 
Jiving  creature.  I  doubt  not  but  the  reader  is  curi- 
ous to  know  what  could  put  him  upon  it.  The 
discovery  of  this  is  no  hard  matter:  \mo.  It  was  even 
pure  love  to  the  French  king,  that  he  might  justify 
him  in  all  his  barbarous  usage  of  his  Protestant  sub- 
jects. Who  could  have  blamed  the  Roman  Empe- 
rors, if,  for  their  own  security,  they  had  crushed 
the  Christian  clmrch,  in  case  her  government  had 
been  Presbytery  ?  This  is  iiis  doctrine ;  and  is  not 
the  use  of  it  very  obvious,  viz.  The  government  of 
the  French  Protestant  Churches  was  Presbytery;  who 
then  can  blame  his  most  Christian  Majesty  for 
crushing  a  society  of  so  dangerous  a  constitution  ? 
2g?o,  It  was  to  teach  our  own  princes  at  home  how 
they  were  in  all  time  coming  to  treat  us.  We  are 
Presbyterians,  and  Presbytery  alone  is  a  reasonable 

*  In  Clautl.  cap.  xxr, 
f 


82  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

ground  of  jealousy  and  just  cause  of  persecution. 
Thus  merciful  and  gospel-like  is  the  prelatic  spirit. 
But  I  go  on. 


Sect.  V. 

Wherein  Mr  Wiind's  Proofs  far  evincing  that  Prelacy  actually 
was  instituted^  are  examined^  from  page  50  to  page  1 19. 

Mr  Rhind,  page  40,  falls  a  haranguing  with  a 
very  disdainful  air,  which  yet  becomes  a  high-flyer 
admirably  well.     *  A  government,'  saith  he,  «  con- 

*  stituted  by  a  subordination  of  rulers,  is  actually  ap- 
'  proven  of  by  God,  and  this  he  has  so  fully  notifi- 

*  ed  in  his  word,  that  to  approve  it,  I  am  not  put 
'  to  the  wretched  shift  of  obtruding  upon  my  read- 
'  ers  any  remote  consequences  fetched  from  two  or 

*  three  controverted  texts,  as  the  adversaries  in  this 

*  case  are  obliged  to  do.'  It  is  very  true  that  a 
hierarchy  under  the  Jewish  dispensation  was  both 
instituted  and  approven  of  by  God  :  and  how  very 
serviceable  to  the  cause  of  prelacy  this  is,  I  believe 
the  reader  is  by  this  time  sufficiently  convinced  ;  but 
now  he  resolves  to  rally  his  forces,  and  attempts  to 
prove  the  actual  institution  of  prelacy  by  six  argu- 
ments, the  first  four  whereof  are  pretended  to  be 
fetched  from  the  Scripture.  And  no  doubt  his  rea- 
der is  in  great  expectation  :  For,  after  the  harangue 
you  have  heard,  would  not  a  modest  person  be  tempt- 
ed to  think,  that  prelacy  were  so  legible  in  the  Bible, 
that  one  needed  only  open  his  eyes  to  find  it  there  I 
and  yet  it  is  mathematically  certain  it  is  not  there. 
How  mathematically,  you  will  say  ?  Why,  the  incom- 
parable Mr  Dodwell,  who  has  stated  the  controver- 
sy fairly,  whose  authorities  are  pertinent  and  justly 
alleged,  and  whose  deductions  from  them,  and  all 
liis  other  reasonings,  do  proceed  in  a  mathematical 


PRESBYTEIUAN   GOVERNMENT.  83 

chain,  has  frankly  owned*  it  is  not  there.  Plainly, 
that  prodigy  of  learning  has  acknowledged,  that  *  it 

*  is  not  needful  that  the  form  of  government  to  be  now 

*  observed,  should  have  been  delivered  in  the  cano- 
'  nical  Scriptures  ;  that  there  is  no  place  of  them 

*  which  openly  professes  that ;  that  there  is  none  of 

*  the  sacred  writers  treat  of  Church  government  on 

*  design.     Nay,  that  the  Holy  Ghost  has  never  de- 

*  scribed  any  one  form  of  government  that  was  to 

*  take  place  every  where,  and  at  all  times.'  Mr 
Rhind's  attempt  then  was  too  hardy,  and  he  was  too 
desperate  to  undertake  that  which  the  ablest  cham- 
pion Prelacy  ever  had,  owns  to  be  impossible  to  be 
done.  And  now  I  come  in  so  many  articles  to  ex- 
amine his  proofs,  and  it  is  a  lucky  presage  that  they 
will  not  be  very  dangerous,  seeing  we  are  sure  neither 
to  be  oppressed  with  Mr  Dodwell's  authority,  nor 
straitened  with  his  reasonings,  but  on  the  contrary, 
will  find  him  frequently  helping  us  to  answer  Mr 
Rhind. 


ARTICLE  I. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind*s  Proof  Jor  the  Institution   of 
Prelacy  Jrom  its  obtaining  in  the  days  of  Christy  is 
examined.     From  p.  50  to  p.  61, 


Mr  RhimDj  in  discoursing  this  proof,  proceeds  iti 

•  ParjEnes.  Sect.  14.  page  57.  Opus  non  est  ut  rcgiminis  Ec- 
cleslastici  forma  hodie  observanda  tradita  fuerit  in  scripturls  canoni- 
cis. — NuUiis  eiiiin  est  qui  id  profiteatur  apcrte  sacri  scriptoris  locus. 
Et  ne  quidcni  ullus  qui  ita  de  regimine  agat  ecclesiastico  quasi  id 
voluit  et  scriptor,  aut  scriptoris  auctor  spiritus  sanctus,  ut  Ibrmatn 
unam  aliquam  rcgiminis  ubiqiie  et  in  omne  iEvuni  duraturi  describe- 
ret.  Nusquam  scriptures  sacri  satis  expresse  tradiderunt  quanta  se- 
cuta  fuerit  in  regimiiie  ccclesiarum  mutatio  cum  priraum  di»cederen 

F  2 


84  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  following  method.  T.  He  attempts  to  reason  his 
reader  into  a  belief  that  Christ,  as  monarch  of  the 
Church,  behoved  to  institute  officers  of  different  or- 
ders under  himself,  by  which  we  either  suppose  him: 
to  mean  prelacy,  or  else  his  argument  concludes 
nothing  against  the  Presbyterians.  II.  He  adduces' 
the  instance  of  the  twelve  apostles  subordinate  to 
Christ,  and  the  seventy  disciples  inferior  to  them  in 
the  government  of  the  church.  HI.  He  labours 
with  great  industry,  to  prove  that  the  text,  Matth. 
XX.  25,  *  The  princes  of  the  Gentiles  exercise  do- 

*  minion,'  &c.  with  its  parallels,  carries  in  it  no  insinu- 
ation in  favour  of  Presbyterian  government ;  and 
that  much  less  can  its  institution  be  inferred  from 
it.     All  this  I  shall  examine  in  order. 

I.  He  attempts  to  reason  us  into  a  belief  that 
Christ,  as  monarch  of  the  Church,' behoved  to  insti- 
tute Prelacy.  This  he  does,  by  asking  two  questions. 
First,  asks  he,  after  what  manner  was  the  Church 
governed  in  the  days  of  Christ  ?  I  answer,  after  no 
manner  at  all.  I  doubt  not  but  this  answer  will  sur- 
prise him,  but  I  am  sure  to  convince  him,  it  is  a 
good  one.  Hear  M.  Sage,*  '  It  is  obviously  ob- 
'  servable    in    the    EvangeHcal   records,    that   the 

*  Christian   Church  was  not,  could  not  be  founded 

*  till  our  Lord  was  risen,  seeing  it  was  to  be  found- 

*  ed  on  his  resurrection.'  Is  not  this  plain  sense,. 
and  truth  too  ?  and  if  the  Christian  Church  had  no 
being  before  Christ's  resurrection,  then  certainly  no 
government ;  if  no  government,  then  certainly  no 
Prelatical  government,  and  consequently  Mr  Rhind's 
argument  is  lost  to  all  intents  and  purposes.  It  is 
clear  as  light,  that  such  as  listed  themselves  with 
Christ  in  the  days  of  his  flesh,  were  under  no  distinct 
government,  but  that  of  the  Jewish  Churchy  with 
which  they  were  still  incorporated,  and  from  which, 
as  we  have  already  proved,  no  consequence  can  be 
drawn  ibr  the  nature  of  the  Christian  government. 

a  synagogarum  communione  ecclesiae.     Nusquam  satis  aperte  quan- 
tum (lonis  concessum  fuerlt  spiiitus  sancti  personalibus  quantum vicis- 
Bim  locis  et  officiis.   Nusquam  officiarios  extiaoitlinarios  qui  illo  ips(^ 
teeulo  finem  babituri  essent  ab  ordiiiariis  satis  accurate  secernunt^ 
•  Viml.  of  tb«  Prin.of  the  Cypr.  Age,  Chap.  vi.  Sect.  6, 


rRESBYTERIAN     GOVERNMENT.  85 

It  is  plain,  then,  that  all  further  consideration  both  of 
Mr  Rhind's  reasonings,  and  instance,  are  utterly- 
needless. 

But  short  answers  cut  one's  houghs,  and  are  apt 
to  be  very  provoking.  Wherefore,  that  his  harangue 
may  not  be  lost,  I  shall  answer  his  question  accord- 
ing to  his  heart's  wish,  viz.  That  our  blessed  Lord 
liimself  was  its  sole  king  and  head.  And  if  this  will 
content  him  for  making  tlie  government  of  the 
Church  monarchical,  I  dare  promise  him  no  Presby- 
terian will  contradict  him.  But  then,  upon  this  con- 
cession, he  has  a  second  question  to  ask — 

Was  there  ever  a  government  of  a  monarchical 
constitution,  '  where  the  monarch   did  not,  yea  be- 

*  hoved  not,  to  derive  of  his  authority  in  an  orderly 

*  gradation  upon  several  subordinate  ministers  ?'  You 
see  here  good  reader  Mr  Rhind's  modesty  :  but  was 
Christ  under  the  same  necessitv  with  other  monarchs? 
O  yes  :  '  Shall  we  suppose,'  saith  he,  that  *  he  who  is 
'  King  in  Zion  shall  do  otherwise  in  his  Church,  than 
'  all  wise  princes  have  ever  done  in  their  kingdoms  ?* 
So  now  you  have  Mr  Rhind's  heart.  Christ,  the 
wisdom  of  God,  must  take  his  measures  from  the 
wise  princes  of  the  earth.  But  what  though  all 
this  were  true  ;  that  not  only  all  the  wise  princes 
of  the  earth,  but  even  our  Lord  himself,  not  only 
had,  but  behoved  to  derive  of  their  authority  in  an 
orderly  gradation  upon  several  subordinate  officers  ; 
and  that  a  parity  of  rulers  under  a  monarch  would 
make  a  monstrous,  and  in  itself  a  contradictious  con- 
stitution, how  would  this  affect  the  Presbyterians  ? 
For  though  they  deny  that  Christ,  while  on  earth,  in- 
stituted a  subordination  of  officers,  and  have  a  very 
good  reason  for  it,  as  we  shall  just  now  hear,  yet 
they  both  plead  for,  and  actually  exercise  a  govern- 
ment by  subordinate  officers.  And  I  hope  it  is  very 
easy  to  conceive  how  a  thing  may  be  not  only  of 
Scripture  in  the  general,  but  even  of  New  Testament 
Institution,  which  yet  was  not  instituted  by  Christ 
while  he  was  upon  earth.     It  is  then  evident  that 


86  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Mr  Rhind's  reasoning,  suppose  it  had  no  other  faults, 
yet  imports  nothing  against  the  Presbyterians. 

But,  if  Mr  Rhind  please,  let  us  abstract  from  what 
Christ  behoved  to  do,  and  consider  what  he  did.  I 
affirm  that  while  he  was  upon  earth,  he  was  so  far 
from  instituting  subordinate  pastors,  that  he  did  not 
so  much  as  institute  subordinate  officers.  And  this 
brings  me  to  Mr  Rhind's  instance. 

II.  He  adduces  the  instance  of  the  twelve  apos- 
tles subordinate  to  Christ,  and  the  seventy  disciples 
inferior  to  them  in  the  government  of  the  Church. 
It  is  needless  to  spend  words  on  it.  Let  us  see  if 
the  Episcopal  authors  have  not  fitted  him  with  an 
answer. 

The   first   is   Dr   Whitby,   a   late   fresh    writer. 

*  Whereas,'  saith  he,*  *  some  compare  the  Bishops 
'  to  the  Apostles,  the  Seventy  to  the  Presbyters  of 

*  the  Church  j  and  thence  conclude  that  divers  or- 

*  ders  in  the  ministry  were  instituted  by  Christ  him- 

*  self.     It  must  be  granted  that  the  ancients  did  be- 

*  lieve  these  two  to  be  divers  orders,  and  that  those 

*  of  the  Seventy  were  inferior  to  the  order  of  the 

*  Apostles  ;  and  sometimes  they  make  the  compari- 

*  son  here  mentioned  :  but  then  it  must   be  also 

*  granted,  that  this  comparison  will  not  strictly  hold  j 

*  for  the  Seventy  received  not  their  mission  as  Pres- 

*  byters   do   from  Bishops,  but  immediately   from 

*  the  Lord  Christ,  as  well  as  the  Apostles  ;  and  in 

*  their  first  mission,  were  plainly  sent  on  the  same 

*  errand  and  with  the  same  power.'     Thus  Dr  Whit- 

The  second  is  M.  Sage.  *  Our  martyr  Cyprian,' 
saith  he,t  '  (as  appears  from  his  reasonings  on  divers 

*  occasions)  seems  very  well  to   have  known,  and 

*  very  distinctly  to  have  observed,  that  the  Apostles 

*  themselves  got  not  their  commission  to  be  gover- 

*  nors  of  the  Christian  Church  till  after  the  resur- 
'  rection.     And  no  wonder,  for  this  their  commis- 

*  sion  is  most  observably  recorded,  John  xx.  21,  22, 

*  Annot.  on  Luke  x«  f  Ibid,  ubi  supra. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  87 

<  23.     No  such  thing;  any  way  recorded  concerning 

*  the  Seventy.      Nothing  more  certain,  than  that 

*  commission  which  is  recorded,  Luke  x.  did  con- 

*  stitute  them  only  temporary  missionaries,  and  that 

*  for  an  errand  which  could  not  possibly  be  more 

<  than  temporary.     That  commission  contains  in  its 

*  own  bosom  clear  evidences,  that  it  did  not  instal 
'  them  in  any  standing  office  at  all,  much  less  in 
^  any  standing  office  in  the  Christian  Church,  which 

*  was  not  yet  in  being  when  they  got  it.  Could  that 
'  commission  which  is  recorded  Luke  x.  any  more 

*  constitute  the  Seventy  standing  officers  of  theChris- 

*  tian  Church,  than  the  like  commission  recorded 

*  Matth.  X.  could  constitute  the  Twelve  such  stand- 

*  ing  officers  ?  But  it  is  manifest  that  the  commis- 

*  sion  recorded  Matth.  x.    did  not  constitute  the 

*  twelve  governors  of  the  Christian  Church ;  other- 

*  wise  what  need  of  a  new  commission  to  that  pur- 
'  pose  after  the  resurrection  ?  Presumable,  therefore, 

*  it  is,  that  St  Cyprian  did  not  at  all  believe  that  the 
'  Seventy  had  any  successors  office-bearers  in  the 

*  Christian  Church,  seeing  it  is  so  observable  that 

*  they  themselves  received  no  commission  to  be  such 

*  office-bearers.'  Thus  M.  Sage.  And  what  now 
is  become  of  the  orderly  gradation.  The  Apostles 
themselves  were  not  constituted  governing  officers  be- 
fore Christ's  resurrection  ;  how  then  could  the  Seven- 
ty be  inferior  to  them  in  the  government  of  the 
Church  ? 

And  thus  now  we  have  heard  Mr  Rhind's  whole 
proof  of  the  obtaining  of  prelacy  in  the  days  of 
Christ :  for  not  one  instance  or  declaration  more 
has  he  for  this  purpose.  Yea,  indeed,  he  is  so  in- 
genuous, page  53,  as  to  disclaim  a  positive  institu- 
tion ;  and  only  pleads,  p.  61,  that  the  subordination 
which  obtained  among  the  twelve  Apostles  and  seven- 
ty Disciples,  declares  what  form  of  government 
Christ  liked  best,  and  consequently  is  a  precedent 
equivalent  to  an  institution.  And  we  have  heard 
that  there  was  no  such  subordination,  and  that  there- 
fore it  can  be  no  precedent. 


88 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


But  Mr  Rhind  is  resolved  to  be  equal  with  the 
Presbyterians,  and  to  make  it  good  that  there  is  no 
positive  institution  of  parity  in  the  four  gospels. 

III.  He  labours  with  great  industry  to  prove  that 
the  text,  Matthew  xx.  25,  *  The  princes  of  the  Gen- 
*_  tiles  exercise  dominion,'  &c.  with  its  parallels,  car- 
ries in  it  no  insinuation  in  favour  of  Presbyterian 
government;  and  that  much  less  can  its  institu- 
tion be  inferred  from  it.  For  my  own  part,  I  can- 
not find  any  one  Presbyterian  author  that  ever  in- 
sisted, on  the  said  text,  for  a  positive  institution  of 
Presbytery,  but  they  urge  it  as  an  express  interdic- 
tion of  Prelacy  ;  and  from  thence,  in  conjunction 
with  other  Scripture  warrants,  infer,  that,  by  Scrip- 
ture institution,  the  government  of  the  church 
should  be  Presbyterian.  But  by  no  means  will  Mr 
Khind  allows  that  the  said  text  has  the  least  aspect 
that  way ;  and  he  affirms,  p.  55,  that  the  intent  of 
it  is  to  correct  the  disciples'  mistake  concerning  the 
temporal  kingdom  of  the  Messiah,  and  to  warn  them 
against  pride  and  tyranny,  but  not  at  ail  to  forbid  a 
subordination  of  officers — pastors,  he  should  have 
said.  Now,  that  I  may  do  Mr  Rhind  justice, 
I  shall  consider  every  thing  he  has  advanced  for 
wresting  this  text  out   of  the  Presbyterians  hands. 

1.  *  It  seems,'  saith  he, p.  53, '  to  favour  an  equality; 

*  but  be  it  known  to  you,  others  have  made  use  of  it 

*  with  much  more  reason  to  prove  a  pre-eminence.* 
The  reader,  no  doubt,  will  be  in  pain  to  know  who 
these  others  may  be.  Plainly,  it  is  Bellarmine,  who, 
from  thence  attempts  to  prove  the  Pope's  suprema- 
cy ;  with  as  much  reason,  no  doubt,  as  he  does  the 
lawfulness  of  denying  the  cup  to  the  laity,  from 
these  words,  '  Drink  ye  all  of  it.' 

2.  '  There  are  no  other  texts,'  saith  he,  f  ibid.  J  *  in 

*  the  four  Gospels  which  the  Presbyterians  do,  that  I 

*  can  remember,  so  much  as  allege  to  this  purpose.' 
But  here  his  memory  has  failed  him  :  For,  if  he  had 
consulted  Didoclavius  or  Stillingfleet,  *  he  might 
have  found  another  text,  viz.  Matthew  xviii.  15.  *  Tell 

♦  Alt.  Damas.  cap.  Iv.  142.  Irenic.  Part  II-  Chap.  v. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  89 

«  the  Church* — which  the  Presbyterians  insist  on  to 
the  same  purpose  with  the  former. 

S.  *  The  learned  authors  of  that  persuasion,'  saith 
he,  p.  54,  '  candidly  own,  that  the  equality  which 

*  they  contend  for,   cannot  be  inferred  from    this 

*  place.'  Well,  who  are  these  learned  authors  ? 
He  instances  Mr  Pool.  But  why  does  he  mention 
him  ?     He  answers,  '  because  he  is  of  so  great  au- 

*  thority  with  them  at  this  time.'  Well,  shall  the 
Presbyterians  consult  him  ?  By  all  means,  and, 
saith  he,  '  they  will  be  convinced  that  I  have  done 
'  him  no  injustice.'  But  what  book  of  his  shall  they 
consult?  The  Annotations,  saith  he,  which  pass 
under  his  name.  Now,  good  reader,  Mr  Pool  was 
dead  and  rotten  ere  these  Annotations  were  written. 
Plainly,  it  was  Dr  Collins  wrote  them,  who  was  in- 
deed a  dissenter,  though  I  have  not  yet  heard 
whether  he  was  a  Presbyterian.  But  whatever  he 
was,  he  was  very  much  inferior  in  abilities  to  Mr 
Pool.  Are  not  Presbyterians  now  mightily  straiten- 
ed with  Mr  Pool's  authority  ? 

4.  '  They  are  the  lesser  Presbyterian  authors,*  saith 
he,Cibid.)  '  by  whom  it  is  still  insisted  on.'  I  am  truly 
sorry  that  Mr  Rhind  should  so  frequently  shew 
himself  unacquainted  with  the  writers  on  both  sides, 
after  he  had  told  he  had  read  them  with  a  scrupu- 
lous exactness ;  or,  which  is  much  worse,  that  he 
should  so  often  bid  defiance  to  the  sincerity  which 
the  nature  of  his  composure  required.  Calvin,  Be- 
za,  Chamier,  Cartwright,  Didoclavius,  Turretine, 
the  Belgic,  the  English  Diodati's  Annotations,  do 
all  of  them,  besides  scores  of  others,  assert,  that 
not  only  the  tyrannical  exercise,  but  a  dominion  or 
Prelacy  itself,  is  thereby  forbidden  to  the  pastors  of 
the  church.  Were  these  the  lesser  authors  ?  But  why 
do  I  mention  them?  The  English  divines,  themselves, 
from  that  very  text,  prove  the  Pope's  supremacy  to 
be  unlawful,  by  what  humble  method  soever  attained 
to,  or  with  what  moderation  soever  exercised.  .And 
how  the  Pope's  supremacy  should  be  unlawful  by 
virtue  of  that  text,  and  yet  the  supremacy  of  the 


/ 

./ 


90  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Primate  of  all  England,  who  is  alterius  Orhis  Papa, 
not  be  so  ;  it  will  be  hard  to  give  a  reason,  except 
that  which  the  Lord  Falkland,  in  his  fore-mention- 
ed speech  has  suggested,  viz.  that  they  oppose  the 
Papacy  beyond  sea,  that  they  may  settle  one  beyond 
the  water.  Hear  Dr  Whitaker.  *  It  is  not,'  saith 
he,  *  *  humility  in  the  domination  that  is  required, 

*  but  the  very  domination  itself  that  is  forbidden.' 
And  then  o-oes  on  answerin<T  the  criticisms  advanced 
by  Mr  Ilhind,  but  whereof  Bellarmine  was  the  true 
father.  The  Church  of  England  divines,  to  give 
them  their  due,  have  oft-times  made  a  noble  stand 
against  tlie  Church  of  Rome.  No  wonder.  They 
had  both  truth  on  their  side,  and  considerable  dig- 
nities to  lose  in  case  they  got  the  worst.  But  of 
all  men  in  the  world  they  are  the  most  to  be  pitied 
when  they  have  to  dispute  against  the  Presbyterians 5 
for  t.he  very  same  arguments  wherewith  they  de- 
feated tbiC  Romanists,  with  the  very  same  Presbyr 
terians  defeat  them  :  whereby  they  make  the  exact 
moral  of  the  goose  in  the  fable,  which  was  wound- 
ed wiih    an  arrow  feathered  from  her  own   wing. 

5.  *  The  original  word,'  saith  he,  p.  56,  *  which  our 

*  translators    have  rendered    to   exercise    authority 

*  (dominion,  he  should  have  said),  does  properly  sig- 

*  nify  such  an  exercise  of  it  as  is  tyrannical ;'  which 
he  endeavours  to  prove,  Jirst,  from  Beza  ;  secondly, 
from  the  Septuagint;  thirdly,  from  St  Luke,  Acts  xix. 
16. ;  '  which,'  saith  he,  'is  the  only  other  place  where 

*  it  occurs  in  all  the  New  Testament,  and  certainly 
'  implies  violence  and  tyranny,  being  used  to  signiiy 

*  how  the  Demoniac  overcame  the  sons  of  Sceva.' — 
Now,  let  us  examine  this.  In  \\\q  Jirsi  place,  Beza, 
on  that  place,  is  not  criticising  on  the  word,  or  tell- 
ing what  it  naturally  imports,  but  is  describing  the 
actual  practice  of  the  princes  of  the  Gentiles.  And 
expressly  says,  t   *  That  our   Lord   there    dehorts, 

*  De  Pontif..  Quest.  I.  Chap.  iii.  Sect.  1. 

f  Exhort:itur  ne  quis  inter  ministios  Terbi  sui  (pEerat  praecelleii- 
tiam  et  potcstatera. — Beza  in  locum' 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  91 

'  that  none  amongst  the  ministers  of  his  word  seek 
<  pre-eminence  and  power.'  Secondly^  As  for  the 
Septiiagint,  he  has  produced  no  place  where  they 
take  the  word  in  such  an  ill  sense.  It  is  none  of 
my  business,  therefore,  to  consider  where  they  do 
so ;  but  this  is  certain,  that  they  frequently  use  it 
in  a  good  sense.     For  instance,  Gen.  i.  28.  *  Have 

*  dominion  over  the  fishes  of  the  sea.'  Psalm  Ixxii. 
8. '  He  shall  have  dominion  from  sea  to  sea.'  Psalm  ex. 
2,  '  Rule  thou  in  the  midst  of  thine  enemies.'  In 
all  those  places,  the  Greek  word  used  by  them  is 
the  same  with  that  in  the  text.  But  will  any  body 
say,  that  Adam's,  Solomon's,  or  Christ's  dominion, 
was  to  be  tyrannical  ?  Thirdly ^  Is  that  place.  Acts, 
xix.  16.,  which  relates  the  Demoniac's  overcoming 
the  sons  of  Sceva,  the  only  other  place  in  all  the 
New  Testament  where  the  original  word  is  used  ? 
I  wish  somebody  had  helped  Mr  Rhind  to  a  Greek 
Concordance.  For  1  Peter,  v.  3.,  where  ministers 
are  forbidden   to  carry  '  as  lords  over  God's  heri- 

*  tage,'  the  original  word  is  the  same.  Thus  you 
see  all  this  criticism  is  quite  lost.  But  why  did  not 
Mr  Rhind,  when  he  was  in  the  criticising  yein,  ob- 
serve, that  though  the  compound  verb,  which  Ma- 
thew  and  Mark  use,  signify  sometimes  violence  and 
tyranny ;  yet  that  Luke,  in  the  parallel  place,  used 
the  simple  verb,  which,  however,  it  may  be  some- 
times applied,  yet  in  its  own  nature  signifies  only 
dominion,  without  the  superaddition  of  tyranny  or 
violence  ?  Why,  I  say,  did  not  Mr  Rhind  observe 
this  ?  The  reason  is  pluii ;  it  would  have  made 
against  him,  and  quite  spoiled  his  argument  j  and 
why  should  a  man  harm  himself? 

fcj.  He  endeavours  to  make  good  his  gloss  on  the 
text,  by  criticising  on  the  word  Euergetes,  which 
our  translators  render  *  benefactors.*  '  If,'  saith  he, 
p.  57.,  *  these  Gentile  princes,  whom   their  mean 

*  flatterers  sirnamed  Euer^etcs,  were  some  of  them 

*  guilty  of  violence,  then  doubtless  the  authority, 
'  which  was  exercised  by  those  wlro  were  so  called, 
.*  is  meant  to  be  tyrannical,  and,  in  that  respect,  it 


92  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  is  that  oiir  Saviour  forbids  his  Apostles  to  copy 

*  after  them.'  Now,  that  some  of  these  who  had 
this  surname  given  them,  did  abuse  their  authority 
to  the  worst  of  purposes,  he  proves  by  the  instance 
of  Ptolemy  VII.  King  of  Egypt,  surnamed  Euer- 
getes  11. ,  who  was  indeed  a  very  ill  prince.  This  is 
a  very  deep  criticism.  But  in  the  first  place,  who 
shall  secure  us  that  our  Saviour  so  much  as  alluded 
to  any  of  those  princes  that  had  borne  that  surname, 
there  being  no  hint  thereof  either  in  the  text  or  con- 
text ?  2.  Be  it  that  he  did  allude  to  them,  yet  who 
shall  secure  us  that  it  was  to  such  as  were  ill  rather 
than  such  as  were  good  of  them  ?  But  it  is  nause- 
ous to  dispute  against  a  trifle,  though  there  were 
other  princes  whom  their  flatterers  upon  occasion 
now  and  then  called  Euergetes,  or  Benefactors,  in  a 
way  of  compliment ;  yet  I  do  not  find  any  who  bore 
that  for  their  surname,  save  two  of  the  race  of  the 
Ptolemies  in  Egypt.  And  as  the  second  of  them 
was  very  vicious,  as  Mr  Rhind  has  observed  ;  sa 
the  first  of  them,  viz.  the  son  of  Ptolemy  Philadel- 
phus,  was  a  brave  man,  engaged  in  a  just  war  a- 
gainst  Antiochus  Callinichus,  for  the  murder  of  his 
sister  and  her  little  son, — had  success  in  it,  and  in 
token  of  his  devotion,  offered  sacrifices  to  the  God 
of  heaven  at  Jerusalem.  On  which  account  Jose- 
phus*  makes  honourable  mention  of  him.  Now, 
when  there  were  only  two  princes  who  bore  that 
surname,  whereof  as  the  one  was  bad,  so  the  other 
was  good  ;  why  should  Christ  allude  only  to  the  ill 
one  ?  For  to  atlirm  he  did  so,  without  proving  it,  is 
to  beg  the  question. 

7.  Mr  Rhind  argues  t  from  '  the  opposition  which 
'  our  Lord  states  betwixt  his  own  example,  which 

*  he  proposes  for  their  imitation,  and  that  of  the 

*  princes  of   the  Gentiles,    which   he  forbids  the 

*  apostles  to  follow.     It  cannot,*  saith  he,  *  be  said 

*  without  blasphemy,  that  he  put  himself  upon  a 

*  level  with  his  apostles,  with  respect  to  authority 

*  Contra  Apioii.  Lib.  II.  p.  [milii]  Sii.  Vide  etiam  Justin.  Hist. 
Lib.  XXVIl,  t  P.  59, 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  93 

*  and  jurisdiction ;    and  consequently,  that  autho- 

*  rity  which  they  were  to  exercise  in  imitation  of 
<  him,  does  not  import  a  perfect  equality  among 
'  them,  in  opposition  to  that  imparity  w'hich  obtain- 

*  ed  in  the  lieathen  governments.'  The  answer  is 
easy  :  Mr  Rhind  has  mistaken,  (whether  wilfully 
or  otherwise  I  shall  not  determine),  the  design  of 
the  argument,  and  the  way  how  it  proceeds.  For 
when  our  Lord  commanded,  ver.  27,  28.  *  Whoso- 

*  ever  will  be  chief  among  you,  let  him  beyourser- 
'  vant ;  even  as  the  Son  of  Man  came  not  to  be 
'  ministered  unto,  but  to  minister,'  He  argued 
from  the  greater  to  the  lesser  thus  : — For  as  much 
as  I,  your  Lord  and  Master,  have  humbled  myself  to 
the  basest  services,  therefore  you  who  are  indeed 
servants,  and  each  upon  a  level  with  other,  should 
be  ashamed  to  be  thinking  of,  or  aspiring  to  be 
lords  and  masters  over  one  another.  This  makes 
our  Saviour's  words  plain  and  intelligible  ;  whereas 
Mr  Rhind's  gloss,  instead  of  extinguishing,  would 
have  inflamed  their  ambition,  by  supposing  it  lawful 
for  one  or  two  of  them  to  lord  it  over  the  rest. 

8.  '  Our  Lord,'  saith  he,  (ibid.  J  '  cannot  be  sup- 

*  posed  to  forbid  in  this  text  such   a  subordination 

*  of  rulers  in  the  church,  as  was  that  which  at  that 

*  time  obtained  in  most  of  the  Gentile  states ;  see- 

*  ing  this  were  to  condemn  that  form,  by  which  he 

*  thought  fit  the  church  should  be  governed  in  the 

*  days  of  his  flesh,  which  was  monarchical.'  The  an- 
swer is  short-  1.  We  have  already  heard  M.  Sage 
owning  that  there  was  no  Christian  Church  in  being 
at  that  time,  consequently  no  Christian  governors, 
consequently  no  particular  form  by  which  the  church 
was  then  governed.  2.  Supposing  both  the  Twelve 
and  the  Seventy  had  been  governors,  yet  we  have 
heard  Dr  Wiiitby  confessing  that  they  were  both 
vested  with  the  same  power.  There  being  tlien  no 
subordination  of  pastors,  no  different  orders  of  tiieni 
under  Christ  at  that  time,  it  necessarily  follows  that 
Christ's  words  in  the  controverted  text,  according 
to  Mr  Rhind's  peremptory  sentence,  p-  61,  '  Doubt- 


94  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  less,  whatever  kind  of  government   obtained  in 

*  the  church,  in  the  days  of  Christ,  was  designed 

*  to  be  perpetual,'  must  needs  condemn  such  a  su- 
bordination in  all  time  coming. 

Lastly,  Mr  Rhind  argues,  p.  60,  That  if  the  sense 
of  our  Saviour's  words  was  not  according  to  his 
gloss,  it  is  probable  he  would  have  '  stated  the  op- 

*  position,  not  betwixt  them  and  the  princes  of  the 
'  Gentiles;  but  rather  betwixt  them  and  the  High 
'  Priest,  priests,  and  Levites  among  the  Jews/  It  is 
answered — Christ  had  the  greatest  reason  to  state 
the  opposition  as  he  did.  He  had  the  greatest  reason 
not  to  state  it  as  Mr  Rhind  thinks  probable  he  would 
have  done,  upon  supposition  of  the  Presbyterian 
sense.  1.  He  did  state  the  opposition  betwixt 
them  and  the  princes  of  the  Gentiles,  because  the 
disciples  having  a  notion  <^f  a  temporal  kingdom  of 
the  Messias,  and  being  swelled  with  the  expectation 
of  dignities  in  the  same,  our  Saviour  thought  it 
needful  to  answer  them  agreeably  to  the  notion  they 
had  entertained,  and  withal  to  insinuate  to  them 
that  no  one  of  them  was  to  expect  any  superiority 
over  the  rest  in  any  capacity,  civil  or  ecclesiastical, 
but  that  they  were  all  to  be  on  a  level  in  point  of 
authority.  And  thus,  in  fact,  we  find  afterwards 
they  were :  though  indeed,  on  account  of  personal 
excellencies,  some  of  them  seemed  to  be  pillars. 
2.  He  did  not  state  the  opposition  betwixt  them  and 
the  Jewish  High  Priest,  priests,  and  Levites,  because 
the  disciples  themselves  did  not  yet  think  of  any 
other  church  government  than  what  at  present  ob- 
tained among  the  Jews  ;  and  Christ  did  not  find 
them  yet  ripe  for  receiving  any  intimation  thereof, 
but  thought  it  enough  to  give  them  a  general  rule 
to  be  observed  by  them  afterwards,  and  whereof,  when 
it  was  to  be  put  in  practice,  they  would  easily  con- 
ceive the  meaning,  after  their  understandings  were 
opened,  and  things  brought  to  their  remembrance 
by  the  Holy  Ghost,  which  was  to  be  communicated 
to  them.  This  thought  is  suggested  to  us  by  Mr 
Dodvvell.*      *  The   apostles  themselves,*    saith  he, 

*  Parasncs.  Sect.  M.  p,  58.  Ante  secessum  asynagogis,  nee  de  re- 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  95 

<   do  not  seem  to  have  known  any  thing  concerning 

*  the  g6vernment  of  the  church  till  their  separation 

*  from  the  synagogues :  Tiiey  were  by  birth  Jews, 

*  and  zealous  of  the  law  and  customs  of  their  fa- 

*  thers  ;  and  if  our  Lord,  before  that,  had  revealed 

*  any  thing  to  them  which  looked  that  way,  that  is, 

*  to  a  change  of  goverpment,  they  had  been  in  ha- 

*  zard  of  revolting  from,  instead  of  obeying  him. 
'  And   therefore   our   Lord   dealt   cautiously   with 

*  them,  and  would  not  put  new  wine  into  old  bot- 
'  ties,  nor  while  their  minds  were  yet   alienated, 

*  bear  in  new  revelations  upon  them  concerning  facts 

*  from  which  they  would  have  had  an  aversion.' 

And  thus  now  I  have  considered  every  thing  Mr 
Rhind  has  advanced  upon  that  controverted  text;  and 
I  hope  it  sufficiently  appears,  that  not  one  of  his' 
thoughts ;  nay,  nor  all  of  them  jointly,  are  of  the 
least  force  to  wrest  it  from  the  Presbyterians,  or  to 
justify  the  gloss  he  has  put  upon  it.  For  besides 
all  has  been  already  suggested,  that  not  only  the 
tyrannical  exercises,  as  Mr  Rliind  would,  but  the 
dominion  itself  too,  as  the  Presbyterians  would,  is 
discharged  by  that  text,  is  evident  both  from  the 
occasion  of  it,  and  likewise  from  our  Saviour's  known 
character.  First,  From  the  occasion  of  it,  which 
was  the  mother  of  Zebedee's  children,  her  asking  a 
boon  for  her  sons.  How  earnest  soever  she  might 
be  for  their  promotion,  unless  we  should  suppose 
her  to  have  been  a  monster  of  vvomen,  and  another 
Jezebel,  she  could  not  have  been  so  impudent  as  to 
ask  for  them  a  power  of  domineering  tyrannically 
over  their  fellows.  Could  siie  have  got  them  raised 
to  the  dominion,  no  doubt  she  had  been  glad  to  see 
them  manage  it  virtuously  and  with  temper  and 
moderation  :  But  our  Saviour  would  not  allow  the 

gimine,  nee  de  ipso  secessu,  ipslrescivisse  videnturApostoli.  Erant 
enim  ipsi  ortu  Judai,  patriarunique  consuctutiinum  legisque  studi- 
osi.  Si  quid  antea  patefecisset  Doniinus  quod  eospectare  credere- 
tur;  periculuin  erat  ne  deficerent  potius  quam  parerent.  Caute 
ergo  egit  Dominus,  nee  vinum  novum  vasis  rcdidit  veteribus,  nee 
proinde  alienis  animis  novas,  de  factis  a  quibis  abhorrebant,  in« 
gessit  revelationes. 


96  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

dominion  itself,  and  so  there  could  be  neither  place 
nor  temptation  for  the  tyrannical  exercise  of  it. 
Secondly,  From  our  Saviour's  known  character. — 
He  not  only  taught  loyalty,  and  a  regard  to  tlie 
civil  powers,  but  gave  too  a  most  bright  and  shin- 
ino-  example  of  it  in  his  practice.  Was  it  consistent 
with  this  character  to  represent,  indefinitely,  (which 
is  much  the  same  thing  with  universally),  the  whole 
princes  of  the  earth  as  a  knot  of  tyrants,  counter- 
acting the  design  of  their  office,  which  is  the  good 
and  happiness  of  mankind,  by  their  violence  and  op- 
pression ?  What  else  could  have  been  the  effect  of 
this,  but  to  produce  in  his  followers  an  utter  aver- 
sion to  monarchy,  and  to  make  them  all  State 
Whiffs  ?  This  sense,  then,  is  absurd ;  and  there- 
fore ought  not  to  be  put  upon  our  Saviour's  words. 
And  I  cannot  enough  wonder  how  Mr  Rhind  could 
stumble  upon  it.  Had  it  dropt  from  some  old  re- 
publican, the  matter  had  been  the  less  ;  but  in  Mr 
Rhind,  who  has  made  loyalty  so  great  a  part  of  re- 
lio-ion,  and  has  recommended  it  to  the  world  in  so 
very  pointed  a  sermon,  it  was  an  unpardonable  es- 
cape. To  confirm  my  thoughts  upon  this  text,  let 
us  hear  Dr  Whitby  on  it.  '  Nor  do  I  think,'  saith 
he,  *  *  Christ  only  here  forbiddeth  such  dominion  as 
«  is  attended  with  tyranny,  oppression,  and  con- 
<  tempt  of  their  subjects.     First,  Because  St  Luke 

*  uses  only  the  simple  verbs,  which  bear  no  such  ill 

*  sense,  ^dly.  Because  kings  and  governors  were 
'  not  always  guilty  of  this  mal-administration  ;  and, 
'  2dly,  Because  Christ  does  not  oppose  unto  their 

*  government  a  just  dominion,  but  a  ministry  on- 

'  ly.' 

And  now,  upon  the  whole,  I  refer  it  to  the  reader, 
if  the  argument  for  Prelacy,  from  its  obtaining  in 
Christ's  days,  is  not  even  ridiculous  ;  when  the  great- 
est Episcopal  writers  own  there  was  no  Christian 
Church  in  being  at  that  time — therefore  no  subordi- 
nation of  pastors  in  it — therefore  no  prelacy.     Or, 

*  Annot.  on  Mattli.  xx.  2S, 


niESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  97 

supposing  the  Twelve  and  the  Seventy  liad  been 
Church  officers,  yet  that  they  had  both  the  same 
power,  and  so  it  becomes  an  argument  for  parity. 


ARTICLE  II. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Proof  Jor  the  actual  Institution 
of  Prelacy,  from  its  being  continued  in  the  days 
of  the  Apostles,  and  from  a  succession  in  the  ApoS' 
tolate,  and  from  its  having  been  confirmed  by 
Miracles,  is  Ed'amined.     From  p.  61  to  p.  74. 

Upom  this  I  shall,  I.  Examine  Mr  Rhind's  transi- 
tion, which  is  indeed  very  remarkable.  II.  His 
general  reasonings  from  the  Acts  and  Epistles. 
III.  His  particular  argument  from  a  Succession  in 
the  Apostolate.  IV.  His  demonstration  for  the 
Divine  Right  of  Prelacy,  from  its  being  confirmed 
by  Miracles. 

I.  I  am  to  examine  Mr  Rhind's  Transition,  which 
is  indeed  very  remarkable  :  I  mean  it  would  be  so 
in  any  other  author,  though  it  is  very  familiar  with 
Mr  Rliind.  He,  presuming  he  had  proved,  that  our 
Saviour,  by  his  authority,  established  the  imparity 
he  pleads  for,  contends  not  only  that  that  establish- 
ment was  not  abrogate  afterwards,  but  that  even 
Christ  himself  could  not  abrogate  it :  '  For,*  saith 
he,  p.  61,  *  it  would  reflect  odiously  upon  his  wisdom 
*  to  have  settled  a  government,  which  must  be  almost 
"  as  soon  altered  as  instituted.'  It  is  indeed  the 
known  character  of  the  generality  of  the  writers 
on  the  Episcopal  side,  that  tliey  dictate  their  crude 
notions  with  the  same  masterful  air  as  if  they  were 
demonstrating  one  of  Euclid's  propositions  ;  yet, 
generally  this  positiveness  amounts  to  no  more  than 
ill  manners,  and  therefore  may  either  be  neglected, 
or  chastised  with  a  little  raillery.     But  that  a  no- 


98  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

thing  of  a  croatiire  sliould  at  every  turn  f;^ive  mea- 
sures to  tl^e  Divine  wisdom,  is  insupportable,  and 
most  of  all  in  this  case.  For,  1st,  Who,  that  has 
any  reverence  for  our  blessed  Saviour,  will  presume 
to  affirm,  that  because  lie  used  one  method  for  con- 
stituting the  church,  therefore  it  was  inconsistent 
with  his  wisdom  to  alter  that  method  in  governing 
her  when  constituted  ?  2^/7/,  Mr  Dodwell,  who  has 
reasoned  in  a  mathematical  chain,  has  very  pro- 
lixly attempted  to  prove,*  that  the  original  ■govern- 
ment of  the  Christian  Church  not  only  might  be, 
but  actually  was  altered.  Yea,  that  tlie  Episcopal 
constitution  of  government,  which  now  obtains,  is 
later  than  all  the  writings  of  the  New  Testament, 
and,  therefore,  is  not  to'be  sought  for  there.  If  it 
was  not  inconsistent  with  the  wisdom  of  Christ  to 
alter  the  government  of  the  church  from  a  Papacy  to 
a  mere  Prelacy,  why  should  it  not  be  so  to  alter  it 
from  Prelacy  to  Presbytery .?  Sdh/,  Mr  lihind, 
himself,  must  needs  confess,  that  tlie  original  go- 
vernment of  the  Christian  Church  is  altered.  For, 
by  his  own  principles,  there  were  bishops  in  the  time 
of  the  Apostles  ;  for  instance,  he  has  declared,  p. 
78,  Timothy  and  Titus  to  have  been  the  ordinary 
and  fixed  prelates  of  Ephesus  and  Crete.  Yet  the 
Apostles  were  then  superior  to  them.  But  now,  all 
bishops,  by  divine  right,  are  equal,  and  have  no 
superior  above  them.  If,  then,  it  is  consistent 
enough  with  tlie  wisdom  of  Christ  that  there  should 
be  at  this  day,  bishops  without  suj>erior  apostles, 
notwithstanding  it  was  otherwise  at  the  begin- 
ning, how  is  it  inconsistent  with  his  wisdom,  that 
there  should  be  presbyters  w'ithout  superior  bishops? 
But  then,  lastly,  to  complete  all,  if  Mr  Rhind*s 
assertion  be  true,  then  Prelacy  is  undone  for  ever : 
For  it  has  already  been  proved,  from  the  Episcopal 
writers  of  the  best  note,  that  our  Lord  did  not  esta- 
blish an  imparity — that  the  Twelve  were  equal  among 

•  Parecnes.  Sect.  13,  p.  54.  Hodicrni  Ecgiminis  Ecclesiastici 
Conslitutio,  Jicet  emanarit  ab  Apostolis,  est  tamen  scriptis  N.  T« 
emnibus  recentior,  et  proinile  noii  ibi  cxpectanda. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  99 

themselves,  the  Seventy  among  themselves,  and  the 
Twelve  and  the  Seventy  completely  equal,  without 
any  subordination  of  the  latter  to  the  former.  If, 
then,  the  first  institution  could  not  be  altered,  pa- 
rity must  obtain  for  ever. 

IL  I  am  to  examine  Mr  Rhind's  general  reason- 
ings from  the  Acts  and  Epistles.  He  cannot  find 
in  his  heart  to  enter  on  them  till  he  have  spent  a 
page,  the  62d,  in  philippics  against  the  Presbyterians 
for  their  invincible  obstinacy,  which  will  not  yield, 
even  when  he  levels  demonstrations  against  them. 
Hard-hearted  creatures  they  !  But  Mr  Rhind  must 
even  comfort  himself  with  this,  how  small  soever  his 
success  is  likely  to  be,  that  yet  he  is  in  the  way  of 
his  duty.  I  shall  give  the  reader  every  word  of  his 
reasonings,  that  he  may  judge  whether  his  party 
must  not  be  (to  use  his  own  courtly  phrase),  an  im- 
plicit herd  indeed,  that  keeps  itself  in  countenance 
by  them.    '  The  acts  and  epistles,'  saith  he,  page  i  3, 

*  favour  the  Presbyterians  as  little  as  the  four  gospels.' 
Nay,  if  they  favour  them  as  much,  they  are  not  like- 
ly to  be  great  losers.  '  These  acts  and  epistles,' 
adds  he,   *  are  so  far  from  intimating  that  the  first 

*  establishment  was  altered  by  the  Apostles,  that  on 
'  the  contrary  they  plainly  shew  its  continuance.' 
Why,  then,  adieu  prelacy  for  ever ;  for  the  first 
establishment  was  only  of  the  Apostles — they  were 
the  first  officers  in  the  church,  for  a  while  the  only 
officers,  and  still  acted  in  a  perfect  parity.  *  Do  not 
'  the  acts    and  epistles,'  proceeds  he,    *  all    along 

*  make  mention  of  several  orders  of  men  who  were 

*  undisputedly  clun-ch   officers,  that  is,    who  were 

*  soleuuily  separated  for  ecclesiastical  offices  by  the 

*  imposition  of  hands  ?     And  do  not  they  assign  to 

*  each  their  difl^'erent  powers?'  I  answer,  not  all 
along  ;  for,  as  I  have  said  just  now,  there  was  at 
first  but  one  order,  viz.  that  of  the  Apostles,  and 
even  these,  too,  solemnly  separated  for  their  office 
without  imposition  of  hands,  at  least  we  read  nothing 
of  it  in  the  Scripture.  *  What,'  he  goes  on,  *  does  more 

*  frequently  occur  through  these  sacred  writings,  than 

c  2 


ICO  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  the  mention  that  is  made  of  presbyters  and  deaconsr, 

*  the  one  subordinate  to  the  other,  and  of  the  apostles 

*  paramount  to  them  alb*  It  is  answered  :  There  is 
indeed  frequent  mention  of  presbyters  and  deacons, 
the  one  subordinate  to  the  other,  and  of  the  Apostles 
paramount  to  them  all ;  but  how  came  he  to  lose 
prelates  in  his  enumeration,  who  ought  to  have  been 
inserted  betwixt  the  Apostles  and  Presbyters  ?  Were 
there  none  such  in  the  days  of  the  Apostles  ?  If  not, 
what  hath  the  Church  to  do  with  them  now  ?  If 
there  were,  why  did  he  drop  them  in  his  catalogue 
in  this  place,  when  he  avers  it  afterward,  though  at 
the  distance  of  sixteen  pages,  that  Timothy  and  Ti- 
tus were  the  ordinary  and  fixed  prelates  of  Ephesus 
and  Crete  ?  The  reason  of  this  artifice  is  obvious. 
The  inserting  prelates  here  would  have  quite  spoiled 
his  reasoning ;  it  would  have  made  four  orders  of 
officers  in  the  apostolic  times,  viz.  apostles,  prelates^ 
presbyters,  and  deacons  ;  and  if  there  ought  to  be 
as  many  different  orders  now  as  there  were  at  first, 
W'hich  is  the  scope  of  Mr  Rhind*s  reasoning,  and 
without  which  it  signifies  nothing,  then  prelacy  is 
lost :  for  they  have  but  three  different  orders  among 
them,  viz.  Prelates,  Presbyters,  and  Deacons,  for 
which  they  do  so  much  as  pretend  divine  right.  But 
to  go  on  with  Mr  Ilhind*s  reasonings.  What  though 
the  Acts  and  Epistles  make  mention  of  the  different 
and  subordinate  orders  of  Apostles,  Presbyters,  and 
Deacons,  what  follows  ?  '  Why,'  saith  he, '  could  one 

*  wish  a  clearer  proof  than  this,  to  evince  that  there 
'  was  then  an  imparity  among  Church  officers  ?*  I  an-' 
swer,  none.  For  every  Presbyterian  owns  that  there- 
was  then,  viz.  in  the  days  of  the  Apostles,  an  im- 
parity not  only  among  the  Church  officers,  but  pas- 
tors too»  No  doubt  the  Apostles  were  superior  to 
the  Presbyters.  But  he  has  a  second  inference  to 
make,  viz.  '  That  the  same  also  is  a  most  clear  proof 

*  that  that  imparity  was  of  divine  institution.'  The 
Presbyterians  grant  it :  for  the  Apostles  were  cer- 
tainly acted  by  the  divine  spirit.  His  third  infe- 
rence, which  completes  the  whole,  is,  that  conse- 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


101 


quently  that  imparity,  viz.  of  pastors,  ought  to  be 
still  continued.  But  here  the  Presbyterians  and  Mr 
Rhind  part  ways  :  for,  though  the  Presbyterians  ac- 
knowledge that  the  Apostles  were  superior  to  the 
Presbyters  ;  yet  they  affirm  that  a  superiority  among 
pastors  is  unlawful  now,  because  the  apostolate  was 
an  extraordinary  office  not  to  be  continued, — the 
Apostles  extraordinary  officers  not  to  be  succeeded 
to,  except  in  the  ordinary  functions,  preaching,  dis- 
pensing the  sacraments,  and  governing  the  church, 
in  which  they  are  succeeded  to  by  every  minister. 
And  this  brings  me  to  examine,  « 

III.  His  particular  argument  from  1,  succession 
in  the  Apostolate.  He  expressly  denies,  p.  64,  &c., 
that  *  the  Apostolate  was  an  extraordinary  office,  or 

*  that   the  Apostolic  government   was   temporary, 

*  and  asserts  that  the  Bishops  of  the  Church,  mean- 

*  ing  Prelates,  as  superior  to  Presbyters,  do  succeed 

*  them  therein.'  Is  this  true?  1^/,  Davenant, 
Bishop  of  Sarum,  not  only  denies  but  disproves  it;* 
multitudes  of  others  of  the  Church  of  England  do 
the  same*  The  Church  of  Rome,  a  society  of  a 
very  large  extent,  of  a  long  standing,  and  such  as 
has  produced  not  a  few  wise  and  great  men,  expressly 
contradict  it,  denying  that  any  of  the  Apostles  had 
successors,  save  Peter,  in  the  Papal  chair.  2dly, 
Which  must  conclude  Mr  Rhind,  Mr  Dodwell  t 
himself  has  denied  it,  and  asserts  that  the  office  of 
the  Apostolate  failed  with  the  last  Apostle,  and  that 
never  any  of  them  had  a  successor  but  Judas,  the 
traitor.  Did  this  escape  Mr  Dodwell  through  in- 
advertency ?  He  repeats  it  over  and  over,  and  over 
again,  in  different  places.  But,  Sdly,  which  is  worst 
of  all,  Ignatius  himself,  who  is  both  stem  and  stern 
of  the  Episcopal  cause,  always  makes  the  Presbyters 
to  succeed  to,  and  represent  the  Apostles,  but  the 

•  In  Coloss.  p.  4,  5. 

\  Defecerat  cum  ultimo  Apostolo  etlum  Apostolatus  officium  ; 
cum  nulli  unqaam  proeterqufim  Jiulx  pi-oditori,  biifficcreiitur  Apos- 
toloram  successores.— Parwues.  Sec.  vi.  p.  11  j  Sec.  xv.  p.  62  j  Sec. 
xvi.  p.  68. 

3 


104  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  these  extraordinary  gifts  to  be  an  argument  of  an 

*  extraordinary  office,   yet  must  they,  at  the  same 

*  time,  grant,  that  that  office  should  continue  as 
'  long  as  these  gifts  were  necessary,  at  least  as  long 

*  as  they  actually  lasted.*  And,  upon  this  conces- 
sion, he  attempts  to  prove,  p.  67,  68,  by  the  instance 
of  Melito,  Bishop  of  Sardis,  Irenasus,  Bishop  of 
Lyons,  Gregory  the  wonder-worker,  Bishop  of  Neo- 
caasaria,  Cyprian,  Bishop  of  Carthage,  and  by  the 
testimony  of  Eusebius,  that  these  extraordinary  gifts 
lasted  for  several  ages ;  and  from  thence  infers, 
that,  consequently,  Episcopacy  must  have  lasted  so 
long.  *  This  reasoning,'  saith  he,  '  is  good  enough, 
'  ad  hominem^    and    does    sufficiently   expose    the 

*  weakness  of  the  Presbyterian  evasion.'  But  it  is 
neither  good  ad  hominem  nor  ad  rem,  nor  exposes 
any  thing  but  Mr  Rhind's  want  of  arguments.  First, 
It  is  not  good  ad  hominem ;  for  the  Presbyterians 
make  no  such  evasion,  as  we  have  already  heard. 
Nor,  ^dly,  is  it  good  ad  rem  ;  for  the  instances  of 
miraculous  Bishops,  v»'hich  he  has  insisted  on,  are 
very  injudiciously  chosen.  I  do  not  deny  that  ex- 
traordinary gifts  were  continued,  in  the  Church, 
even  down  to  the  third  or  fourth  century,  or  longer, 
if  Mr  Rhind  please  ;  but  then,  so  far  as  relates  to 
their  having  been  possessed  by  Bishops,  he  has  had 
the  ill  luck  to  pitch  upon  the  most  suspected  in- 
stances. \st.  As  for  Melito,  (this  was  the  eunuch 
who  was  Bishop  of  Sardis),  I  shall  easily  be- 
lieve what  Tertuliian,  as  cited  by  St  Jerome,  and 
Polycrates,  as  cited  by  Eusebius,   say  of  him,  viz, 

*  That  he  was  a  man  divinely  inspired,  and  in  all 
'  things  directed   by  the  afflatus  and  suggestion  of 

*  the  Holy  Ghost,'  if  no  more  be  meant  thereby, 
than  that  he  was  a  man  of  eminent  piety ;  for  the 
Spirit  of  Christ  dwells  and  acts  in  every  man  that  is 
Christ's  ;  and  1  think  it  is  plain  Polycrates  in  Euse- 
bius meant  no  more  ;  for  he  says  only,  that  *  he  was 
«  led  in  all  things  by  the  grace  of  the  Holy  Spirit.* 
But  if  Mr  Rhind  will  needs  have  us  to  understand 
thereby,  that  he  was,  in  all  things,  under  an  infallible 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  105 

conduct,  I  assure  him  I  do  not  believe  it ;  for  the 
Apostles  themselves  were  not  always  so  ;  even  Peter 
sometimes  stept  awry,  and  walked  not  with  a  straight 
foot.  Gal.  ii.  14. ;  and  I  hope  to  make  Mr  Rhind 
himself  confess  that  good  Melito  was  wrong  in  some 
things.  The  Church  of  England  never  keeps  Easter 
upon  the  day  of  the  full  moon,  but  upon  the  Sun- 
day after,  when  it  falls  upon  a  working  day ;  or  that 
day  se'ennight,  when  it  falls  upon  a  Sunday.  But 
Melito  always  kept  Easter,  after  the  Jewish  fashion, 
upon  the  very  day  of  the  full  moon,  whether  it  fell 
on  Sunday  or  Saturday,  &c.  ;  and  Polycrates,  in 
Eusebius,  cites  him,  for  that  very  purpose,  in  oppo- 
sition to  Pope  Victor.  It  is  plain,  then,  that  Mehto 
was  sometimes  wrong,  or  the  Church  of  England  is. 
Mr  llhind  may  choose  as  likes  him  best.  ^dJij^  As 
for  Irenaaus,  Bishop  of  Lyons,  Mr  Rhind  says,  that 
'  he  converted  many  pagans  in  his  diocese  by 
*  the  miracles  which  he  wrought ;'  but  he  has 
not  instanced  any  of  them,  nor  told  us  where  the 
relation  of  them  is  to  be  found,  and  I  am  not  willing 
to  condescend,  lest  I  should  l)e  suspected  to  do  it 
too  favourably  for  myself.  He  tells  us,  indeed, 
both  from  Irenasus  himself,  and  Eusebius,  that  mira- 
culous gifts  and  powers  were  very  common  in  his 
time  J  but  what  says  this  to  Irenasus's  share  in 
them  ?  When  Mr  Rhind  is  more  particular  I  shall 
be  so  too.  3^/y,  As  for  Cyprian,  all  that  Mr  Rhiud 
alleges  is,  that  he  assures  us,  concerning  himself, 
that  he  was  blessed  with  uncommon  measures  of 
the  Divine  Spirit,  and  so,  I  believe  is  every  good 
Christian,  and  do  think  Mr  Rhind  was  very  wise  in 
not  being  more  particular  upon  Cyprian's  miraculous 
gifts.  But,  then,  lastly^  Gregory  Thaumaturgus,  or 
the  wonder-worker,  is  Mr  Rhind's  great  man,  yea, 
even  a  second  Moses  for  miracles.  Well,  what 
vouchers  does  he  bring  for  them  ?  Two,  indeed,  of 
a  very  great  name,  viz.  Gregory  Nyssen,  in  the  life 
of  the  Wonder-worker,  and  St  Basil  de  Spiritu  Sancto, 
cap.  29.     But  what  credit  is  to  be  given  to  them  ? 


103  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

In  the  ^/^s^  place,  hear  the  great  Spanliehn.*  The 
'  learned,'  saith  he,  *  deservedly  doubt  about  the 
'  canonical  epistle  ascribed  to  the  Wonder-worker. 

*  But  much  more  about  the  prodigies  and  miracles, 

*  which,  almost  without  end,  are  attributed  to  him 

*  by  Nyssen,  in  his  life,  and  by  Basil  himself;  whence 
'  he   got   the   name    of  the    Wonder-worker,    and 

*  Another  Moses.    Certainly  many  things  in  Nyssen 

*  breathe  the  credulity  even  of  an  old  wife.*  Thus 
Spanheim.  2dli^^  Erasmus,  in  the  epistle  dedicatory 
prefixed  to  Basil's  works,  rejects  the  latter  half  of 
his  book  de  Spiritu  Sancto,  as  spurious ;  and,  at  the 
end  of  cap.  14,  observes,  on  the  margin,  '  that  here 
'  the  author  changes.'  Consequently  the  29th  chap- 
ter, which  Mr  lihind  insists  on,  is  of  no  credit. 
Sdlijy  Coke,  a  Church  of  England  divine,  and 
some  time  Fellow  of  Brazen-Nose  College,  Oxford, 
proveSjt  from  the  body  itself  of  that  29th  chapter, 
that  it  is  spurious.  And,  lastlj/y  which  is  worst  of 
all,  Dodwell  himself t  reprobates  these  dreams  and 
miracles  of  the  Wonder-worker.  Was  not,  now, 
Mr  Rhind  very  well  provided  with  miracle-working 
Bishops,  when  these  were  the  best  he  could  pitch 
on? 

Secondly,  Mr  Rhind  having  vainly  spent  ten 
pages  in  pleading  for  a  succession  in  the  Apostolate, 
without  the  least  limitation,  or  dropping  so  much  as 
one  syllable  ibr  explaining  himself;  at  length,  p.  70. 
he  tells  us  :  that  by  '  the  Apostolic  office,  abstract- 
'  ing  from  it  all  accidentals,  he  means  that  superio- 

*  rity  of  power  with  which  the  Apostles  were  invest- 

*  ed  in  the  ordination  of  inferior  church  officers,  and 

*  in  governing  them  and  the  Church :  And  pleads, 
1  that  it  was  not  extraordinary  in  this  respect ;  and 

*  Introd.  ad  HJst.  Nov.  Test.  Sec.  Hi.  p.  332-  De  Epistola  Ca- 
nonica  eiilem  ad  sciipta,  mcrito  ambiount  eruditi.  At  ninlto  magis 
de  piodigiis  et  nijraculis,  piopemodum  sine  fine,  quae  illi  a  Nysseno 
in  ejus  vita,  et  jtassim  a  Basilio  ipso,  &c.  tiibuuntur.  Unde 
Tliauniaturgi  nomcu  et  alterius  Mosis.  Multa  certe  apud  Nyssca- 
um  aniluin  quandani  credulitatcm  spirant. 

\   Censuia  quorundam  Script,  vet.  p.  l23' 

X  Dissert,  iv.  in  Cyi'i-  Num.  l6. 


rRESBYTEIlIAN  GOVERNMENT.  107 

'  as  such  to  cease.*  But  the  Prelates  (supposing 
there  were  then  any  such),  were  church  officers  in- 
ferior to  the  Apostles  ;  the  Apostles  were  invested 
with  a  superiority  of  power  in  the  ordination  of  them. 
I  ask  now,  whether  that  superiority  was  ordinary  or 
extraordinary  ?  If  ordinary,  then  there  ought  still 
to  he  officers  superior  to  bishops.  If  extraordinary, 
then  the  superiority  of  power  with  whicli  the  Apostles 
were  invested  in  the  ordination  of  inferior  church 
officers,  and  in  governing  them  and  the  church,  must 
be  extraordinary  too.  I  challenge  Mr  Rhind  and 
all  his  party  to  take  oft*  this  by  a  sufficient  answer. 

Thirdly^  He  argues,  p.  72.  *  If  that  form  by 
'  which  the  Church  was  governed  in  the  days  of  the 
'  Apostles,  be  in  all  respects  as  good,  and  in  many 

*  undeniably,  better  than  any  other,  then  I  think  I 
'  may  safely  conchide,  that  it  never  ought  to  be  al- 
'  tered.'  Vi  Mr  Dodwell's  judgment  be  of  any 
weight,  then  this  reasoning  is  horridly  false  :  For  he 
teaches*  that  the  form  of  government  which  obtain- 
ed in  the  days  of  the  Apostles  was  altered,  notwith- 
standing that  it  was  better  calculated  for  gathering 
and  planting  Churches,  for  suppressing  heresies,  for 
propagating  the  faith,  for  the  public  good  of  all  the 
Churches,  than  that  which  took  place  afterward. 

Lastly y '  If,'  saith  he,  p.  72, '  the  Presbyterian  were 

*  designed  to  be  the  standing  form  of  Church  go- 
'  vernment,  it  would  seem  to  reflect  disparagingly  on 

*  the  wisdom  of  Christ  and  his  Apostles,   that  they 

*  could  not  make  it  serve  all  the  purposes  for  which 

*  such  a  government  ought  to  be  appointed  j  but 
'  that  to  supply  its  defects,  they  must  usher  it  in 

*  Paraenes.  Sect.  39.  p.  180,  181.  Dum  ColIIgendae  essent  et 
plantaiidae  Ecclesiae,  admodum  utilis  erat  Primatus  ille  Ecclesias, 
Hierosolymitaiiae, — Et  quo  latius  Collegii  Apostolicl  ct  Episcopi 
Hierosoiyniitani  patuit  auctoritas  (diini  eani  piorsus  infallibilem 
esse  constabat)  eo  erat  etiam  utilior  bono  Ecclesiaruin  oniniuni 
publico.  Id  sane  docet  Hegesippus,  tanti  per  Haereticos  prodire  la 
publicum  lion  Ausos,  dum  unius  P.cclesiae  sententia  damnati,  spes 
nulla  deinde  esset  ut  ab  aliqua  alia  ecclcsia  reciperentur. — Et 
quideni  ad  lidem  propugandam  utilior  erat  unius  ecclesiae  aulorilas 
quae  aliarum  omnium  longe  latcque  Dominaretur. 


108  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  with  a  form,   not   only  inconsistent  with  it,  but 

*  which  also  in  after  ages  would  be  declared  an  in- 

*  supportable  yoke.     Is  it  to  be  supposed,  if  they 

*  had  foreseen  that  parity  would   be  ever  after  the 

*  fittest  form  of  government  in  the  Church,   or  that 

*  it  could  be  useful  in  it,  that  any  other  would  have 

*  at  all  obtained  ?  No.  Or  was  there  any  necessity 
'  that  any  other  should  obtain  ?  Doubtless  none  at 

*  all.*  Is  not  this  a  very  mannerly  harangue  ?  Mr 
Rhind  must  discipline  both  Christ  and  his  Apostles 
into  their  duty,  and  teach  them  what  was  consistent 
"with  their  wisdom, — what  would  reflect  disparagingly 
upon  it.  But  admitting  it  were  mannerly,  is  there 
any  truth  in  it  ?  No,  not  one  syllable,  even  accord- 
ing to  the  principles  of  his  own  master,  the  great 
Dodwell,  according  to  whom  the  Apostles  did  not 
appoint  several  orders  of  men,  as  Mr  Rhind  alleges, 
for  the  work  of  the  ministry,  but  one  order  only,  viz. 
of  simple  Presbyters.  Plainly,  Mr  Dodwell's  account 
of  the  matter  is  this,  *  that  the  Bishop  of  Jerusalem 
^  (as  we  have  already  observed),  was  Primate  of  the 
'  Chiistian  Ch.urch   all  the  world  over.     That  the 

*  Church  of  Jerusalem  by  her  itinerant  missionaries 

*  exercised  the  whole  discipHne  in  all  the  Christian 

*  world.*     That  these  itinerant  missionaries,^  whe- 

*  ther  Apostles  or  others,  were  extraordinary  officers. 

*  That  wherever   they  came,   they  never  ordained 

*  any  Bishops,  but  simple  Presbyters  only,  with  a 
'  chairman  among  them,  for  order's  sake  ;  all  which 

*  had  indeed  a  power  of  preaching  the  v/ord,  and 

*  dispensing  the  sacraments,*  but  neither  they  nor 
their   chairman    were    to.   touch    the    government 

•  Ilaec  erfTO,  cum  ita  se  Ijabueriiit,  fiiclle  inde  coUlginius,  miicuin 
fulsse,  in  hoc  universo  iatervallo,  Cliristianis  omni'ous  uiiitatis  Prin- 
ciplum,  Eplscopum  Hierosolymitanuni. — Piimis  autem  tempoiibus 
vix  fere  alii  potestatem  in  obnoxias  Ecclesice  Hievosolyniitanae 
Ecclesias  exercuerunt  quam  Ecclesiae  Hieiosolymitanse,  Ministri 
missi  Hierosolymis  ad  res  eoruni  in  paitibus  remotioribus  prociivan- 
das. — Paiaeiies.  Sect.  10.  p.  SO,  32, 

■f  Nam  ab  extraordinaiiis  ubique  constituta  sunt  F-cclesiarum 
cxterarum  Presbyter!,  extraordinariorum  autem  rectorum  sumuios 
sacras  literas  ipsse  agnoscunt  Apostoios. — Ibid. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  109 

"with  one  of  their  fingers.     Plainly,   *  they  had   no 

*  power  to  exauctorate  or  dispose  any  of  their  num- 

*  ber,   how  criminal  soever,  nor  to  surrogate  new 

*  Presbyters  in  place  of  such  as  died,  nor  to  exclude 

*  any  from  the  communion,  nor  to  restore  such  as 

*  had  been  excluded,  though  never  so  penitent.'* 

This  establishment  continued  till  after  the  des- 
truction of  Jerusalem,  and  the  death  of  Simon,  the 
son  of  Cleophas.  At  length,  about  the  year  JOG,  the 
name  of  Bishop,  before  common  to  all  Presbyters,  was 
appropriated  to  one  in  each  Presbytery.  And  this 
was  the  first  year,  says  he,i  of  settling  Episcopacy. 

The  Bishop  thus  set  up,  was,  if  we  will  believe 
Mr  Dodwell,  endued  with  a  swinging  power  indeed. 

*  The  dispensing  all  rewards  and  punishments  in  the 

*  Christian  society  was  in  his  hands  alo7ie  ;  in  his  hands 

*  was  the  whole  government,    and  that  legislative 

*  power  that  is  competent  to  the  Church,  and  that 

*  without  a  rival  or  mate.'l^  Yea,  so  uncontrolable 
was  his  power,  that  though  he  might  cast  himself 
out  of  the  Church  by  his  schism,  heresy,  or  sacrifi- 
cing to  idols  ;  in  which  case,  the  Episcopal  college 
might  supply  his  place  with  another,  yet  it  was  not 
in  the  power  of  that  college,  much  less  of  his  Pres- 
bytersj  nay,  not  of  any  creature,  to  depose  him,  how 
immoral  soever  he  were  in  his  life,  how  ill  soever  he 
governed  the  Church,  but  he  was  to  be  left  to  the 
judgment  of  God  alone. §     This  was  the  Ignatian, 

•  Piirsenes.  Sect.  10.  p.  32.  S3.  Munlis  sane  Ecclesiarum  pa- 
blici-!  obcuiulis  ita  vacaliant,  ut  tamcn  disciplinae  partem  nullani  aut 
rcgiminis  admini^tralint.  Nee  legimiis  umjuam  ab  his  Eccleslaruta 
PiesliYltris  scu  exauctoratos,  cum  ita  meiercntur,  Presbyteros  j  sea 
novos  ia  demoituoium  loca  suilcctos.  Nee  pulsum  aliquem  core- 
munioue,  nee  liorum  Presbytcrioium  dccrcto  restitutum. 

f  J  bid.  Sect.  23.  p.  102.  Non  longe,  ut  opinor,  aberrabimuj  si 
annum  constltuti  tplscopatus  piimordialcm  statuamus  Cliristi  CVL 
ut  scilicet  luerit  anno  il!o  paulo  vel  antiqulor  vel  lecentior. 

jl  Ibid.  Sect.  37-  ?•  176.  Sic  penes  solum  Episcopum  ciunt  socie- 
tatis  Chiislianac  Priemia  omnia  atque  panse.  Indc  sequetur  penes 
«undcm  esse  vi^ibiiis  Ectlcsiai  Kegiinen  onine,  Potestatemque, 
quaiis  in  liac  Societale  locum  babet,  Legiblativam.     Et  quidem  sine 

§  Ibid-  Sect.  42.  p.  192.  Nee  opus  erat  Judice  qui  euni  exuat, 
sed  quo  scdes  iilius  aatea  vacua  suppleatur.  Talc  crimen  erat  idoliv 


110  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

this  the  Cyprlanic  Bishop,  this  the  Episcopacy  that 
should  always  obtain.* 

I  am  fully  persuaded  that  this  Dodvvellian  scheme, 
so  far  as  it  narrates  the  powers  of  Bishops,  is  the 
most  extravagant,  chimerical  and  false  ;  yea,  indeed 
the  most  scandalous  to  Christianity,  that  ever  was, 
or  perhaps  will  be  heard  of  j  but  let  his  followers  look 
to  that  the  best  way  they  can  :  only,  it  is  plain,  that 
so  far  as  Mr  Dodweli's  judgment  or  authority  reaches, 
Mr  Rhind's  argument  is  utterly  lost :  And  the  first 
form  of  government  certainly  might  be  altered  ;  be- 
cause, by  the  preceding  scheme,  it  actually  was  al- 
tered. 1  am  then  longing  after  this  representation, 
to  hear  what  judgment  Mr  Rhind  will  pass  upon  his 
above  reasonings. 

I  should  now  proceed  to  the  next  particular,  but 
I  crave  leave,  before  I  go  farther,  to  make  an  observe 
or  two. 

In  \hejirst  place,  I  observe  that  there  is  nothing, 
the  Episcopal  authors,  and  Mr  Rhind  as  much  as 
any,  more  frequently  and  willingly  slide  into,  than 
Jiarangues  against  a  government  by  parity.  Here 
they  lay  out  all  their  colours,  exert  their  utmost  elo- 
quence, and  even  bear  down  their  reader  with  a  tor- 
rent of  rhetoric.  But  I  hope  by  this  time,  the  read- 
er is  abundantly  convinced,  that  these  same  ha- 
rangues against  parity  are  very  senseless  things.  For, 
first,  by  tiie  former  account  from  Mr  Dodwell,  we 
have  heard  that  Presbyters  had  not  the  least  share  in 
the  government,  and  that  the  whole  government  w^as 
in  the  Bishop's  hands,  and  in  his  alo7ie.     Secondly. 

sacrifiicasse;  Tale  Crimen  erat  Hcercsis, — SImilis  erat  causa  Scisma- 

tis, Ituqiie  sententia  nulla  opus    est  quie   illos  ejiciut    ex  Ecclesia, 

vel  exuat  officio.  Huciisque  ergo  nulla  est  Potestas  in  Episcopos. 
Sed  vero  nullas  legimus  liis  tempoiibus  Episcopoiuni  depcsitiones 
propter  Crimlna  quae  non  potestatem  ipsam  Episcopalem  sustulerint. 
Nullas  propter  morura  vitia  sola.  Nullas  propter  Ecclesiam  male 
administratam. 

*  Ibid.  sect.  57.  p.  l76.  Rccte  ergo  sine  Episcopo  Ecclesiam 
ncquidem  esse  posse  censuit  Ignatius,  Sect.  40-  p.  186.  supremos 
enim,  in  sua  quemque  Ditione,  Christoque  Soli  obnoxios  Episcopos 
agnoscit  ibi  S.  Cyprianus,  Sect.  54.  p.  240.  Bono  fieret  reforoiationis 
publico,  si  Episcopi  primsevis  illorura  juribus  restaurentur. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  Ill 

The  same  Mr  DocUvell  assures  us,  and  he  is  certain- 
ly right  in  it,  that  all  Bishops  were  originally  equal. 
By  divine  right  are  so,  and  continued  to  be  so  till 
towards  the  reign  of  Constantine  the  Great,  that 
Archbishops  and  Metropolitans  were  brought  in,  not 
upon  any  divine  warrant,  but  by  pactions  among 
themselves.*  Thirdly,  He  assures  us,  in  like  man- 
ner, that  the  Church  in  each  nation  and  province  was 
governed  by  the  Episcopal  college,t  and  that  too 
acting  in  a  parity.  Fourtiily,  '  That  the  said  parity 
'  of  all  Bishops  t  was  most  consistent,   even  with  a 

*  flourishing  discipline,    both  of  faith  and  manners, 

*  and  that  the  very  parity  itself  would  take  away  all 

*  these  contentions  which  often  arise  from  worldly 

*  pride,  emulation  or  envy.'  Is  it  not  then  plain, 
that  the  government  of  the  Church  universal,  and 
the  government  of  every  national  Church,  was  and 
ought  to  be  by  parity  ?  And  what  then  signify  all 
their  declamations  against  parity  ?  Will  they  not 
equally  serve  the  Presbyterians  against  an  Episcopal 
j^arity,  as  they  do  the  Episcopalians  against  a  Pres- 
byterian parity  ?  Or  is'parity  so  nimble  a  thing,  as  to 
alter  its  nature  according  as  the  side  is  that  espouses 
it  ?  I  would  then  advise  our  Episcopal  brethren  to 
reserve  their  harangues  on  that  subject,  till  they  hear 
of  a  new  edition  of  the  Formuke  Oratories ;  lor 
though  they  import  nothing  in  the  controversy  of 
Church  government,  yet  they  may  be  worth  their 
iQom  there,  and  possibly  be  useful  to  some  school- 
boy of  a  barren  fancy,  to  furnish  out  his  oration 
with. 

*  Paraenes.  Sect.  40.  p.  184.  Sequitur  ergo,  qiijcciinque  deinceps 
oblinULiit  imparltus,  earn  oninem  singuloinm  Episcopornm  pactis 
esse  tribuendani,  tantnndenique  valere  quantum  ilia  valent  pacta. 
Qiiamdiu  obtinuerit  Paritas  statuere  difficile  est,  tot  priniaevis 
iDoniimentis  depeiditis.  Suspicor  autem  obtinuisse  ad  tcmi)ova  fere 
Constuntini. 

f  One  Priestliood.     Preface,  Sect.  8. 

%  Partcnes.  Sect.  39.  Sic  nihil  obstabit  quo  minus,  in  Iiac  ipsa 
Episcoporum  omnium  Paritate,  vigeat  tamen  Disciplina  tarn  Fidei, 
quam  iVIorum,  consentientissima  Paiitas  ccrte  ipsa  iites  illas  omnes 
ablatura  erat,  quae  e  typlio  seculari,  ex  aemulatione,  vel  ex  invidia 
saepe  oriuntur. 


112  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

In  the  second  place,  What  a  very  jest  do  the  great- 
est authors  on  the  Episcopal  side  make  themselves, 
Dr  Hammond,  in  innumerable  places,  *  will  have  us 
believe,  that  the  Apostles  at  first  ordained  no  mere 
Presbyters,  but  Bishops  only.    '  No,'  saith  Mr  Dod- 
well,  *  the  Apostles  at  first  ordained  no  Bishops,  but 
*  simple  Presbyters  only.*   «  Here  are  the  two  greatest 
champions  of  the  cause  by  the  ears  together,  on 
the  most  material  point  of  the  controversy.     What 
can  the  Presbyterians  do  in  the  mean  while,  but  ga- 
ther the  spoil ;  which,  I  think,  very  plainly  falls  to 
their  share,  which  soever  of  them  tv/o  gains  the  vic- 
tory.    For,  if  Dr  Hammond  be  right,  the  Presby- 
terians cannot  be  wrong — a  Bishop,  without  Presby- 
ters under  him,  being  the  likest  thing  in  the  w^orld 
to  a  Presbyterian  minister.     But  if  Mr  Dodv/ell  is 
right,   the    Presbyterians   clearly  gain    the   cause  5 
there  being  no  mention  of  Episcopal  government  in 
the  New  Testament ;  and  the  year  of  Christ  506, 
being  the  first  of  its  settlement.     For  my  own  part, 
I  am  perfectly  convinced,  that  the  Apostles  ordain- 
ed no  Presbyters,  but  such  as  were  Bishops,  too,  in 
the  full  Scripture  extent  of  that  word  ;  that  is,  who 
had  power  of  ordaining,  exercising  discipline,  and 
governing  the  Church,  as  well  as  of  preaching  and 
dispensing  the  sacraments.     But  that  these  Bishops 
had  (as  Dr  Hammond  fancies)  a  power  of  ordain- 
ing, under  themselves,  simple  Presbyters,  as  they 
call  them  ;  that  is,  men  empowered  to  preach,  and 
dispense  the  sacraments,  which  is  the  worthier  part 
of  the  office,  and  on  the  account  of  which,  especi- 
ally, the  double  honour  is  due,  without  power  of  or- 
daining and  governing,  which  is  the  lesser  part  of 
the  office,  I  shall  believe  it  when  I  see  it  proved. 
In  the  mean  time,  I  am   not  more  persuaded,  that 
there  is  such   a  book  as  the  Bible,  than  I  am  that 
there  is  no  mention  in  it  of  any  such  creature  as  a 
Simple  Presbyter,  or  of  a  power  lodged  in  the  hands 

*  Diss.  4,  cap.   19,  20,  21,  22.     Vind. 'of  the  Diss.  Chap.  ii. 
AuQot.  on  Act.  i\y  h.  aud  14.  a. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  113 

of  a  Bishop  to  make  any  such  ;  or  that  there  is  in 
all  the  kingdom  a  Presbyterian  Minister,  who  is  not 
as  much  a  Bishop,  in  all  that  sense  the  New  Testa- 
ment means  the  word,  as  the  Primate  of  all  England 
is.     I  now  proceed  to  examine — 

IV.  His  demonstration  for  the  divine  right  of  Pre- 
lacy, from  its  being  confirmed  by  miracles.  The 
reader  heard  before  of  Mr  Rhind's  miracle-working 
Bishops.  *  This,'  he  tells  us,  p.  69,  '  has  given  him 
'  the  hint  of  a  thing,  which,  in  his  opinion,  is  a 
'  plain  demonstration  for  Episcopacy  j*  which  is  this, 
in  his  own  words  : 

*  Seeing,  after  that  time,  in  which  a  proper  Epis- 
copacy is  acknowledged  to  have  universally  ob- 
tained, severals  (whom  the  adversaries  of  that  ve- 
nerable order  cannot  deny  to  have  been  Bishops 
in  the  ordinary  acceptation  of  that  term),  were  al- 
lowed the  gifts  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  it  is  certain 
that  their  office  was  o^  divine  institution.  For  it 
is  not  to  be  supposed,  that  our  Lord  would  have 
vouchsafed  them  these  special  donatives  of  Heaven, 
which  they  employed  in  the  discharge  of  the  Epis- 
copal office,  had  it  been  (what  the  Presbyterians 
commonly  call  it)  an  antichristian  usurpation. — 
Thus,  if  the  office  of  an  Apostle  be  of  Divine  in- 
stitution, that  of  a  Bishop  must  be  so  too — the 
credentials  for  the  mission  of  both  being  of  the 
same  authority.'     This  is  his  demonstration. 

I  do  not  wonder  to  find  Mr  Dodwell  *  hint  at 
this  argument — his  scheme  had  need  of  it.  For  he 
ingenuously  owns,  that  Episcopacy  is  not  to  be  found, 
in  the  New  Testament ;  nor  indeed  can  be,  as  being 
later  than  all  the  writings  thereof.  But  for  Mr 
llhind,  who  was  so  well  furnished  with  arguments 
from  the  Scripture,  to  oppress  us  with  these,  and 
with  miracles  too,  was  very  unmerciful.     However, 

•  Parjcnes,  Sect.  17-  p.  T^.  Erant  praeterea,  illo  quoijue  se- 
culo  dona  spiritus  S.  et  miracula  illustria,  qui^i  Deum  sub  ilia  quo- 
que  disciplina  praesentissimum  probarint.  Quae  sane  sperari  non 
poterant,  si  ab  Antichristo  et  iniquitatis  mysterio  mutatio  tanta 
processisset,  quod  voluut  nuperi  magistri. 

11 


114  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

seeing  he  will  needs  go  upon  the  topic  of  miracles 
and  extraordinary  gifts,  I  think  it  but  reasonable 
that  Presbytery  should  put  in  for  its  share.  Bishop 
Spottiswood  himself  relates*  of  John  Knox,  that  he 
prophesied  of  Thomas  Maitland,  a  younger  brother 
of  Lethington's,  who  had  insulted  upon  the  murder 
of  the  good  Regent  Murray,  that  '  he  should  die 

*  where  none  should  be  to  lament  him.'  And  the 
prophesy  was  literally  accomplished.  He  relates  al- 
so, t  that  he  foretold  of  the   Earl  of  Morton,  that 

*  his  end  should  be  with  shame  and  ignominy,  if  he 
'  did  not  mend  his  manners,'  which  the  Earl  remem- 
bered at  the  time  of  his  execution,  and  said,  '  that 
'  he  found  these  words  to  be  true,  and  John  Knox 
'  therein  to  be  a  prophet.'  He  relates  also,  t  how  he 
prophesied  that  the  Laird  of'  Grange  should  be  pulled 

*  out  of  his  nest,  and  his  carcase  hung  before  the  sun,' 
which  accordingly  came  to  pass.  He  relates  also  §, 
a  couple  of  miraculous  providences,  interposed  in 
behalf  of  Mr  John  Cr^ig,  another  Presbyterian  mi- 
nister. Twenty  other  things,  as  miraculous,  and  at 
least  as  well  attested,  as  those  of  Melito.  Irenaeus, 
or  Gregory,  might  be  related  of  other  Presbyte- 
rian ministers ;  but,  for  the  greater  credit,  I  have 
satisfied  myself  with  these  recorded  by  the  Episco- 
pal historian. 

In  the  mean  time,  I  am  fully  convinced,  that 
there  cannot  be  a  greater  weakness,  than  to  bring 
such  things  in  argument  on  the  one  side  or  the 
other.  Had  ever  a» Bishop,  or  any  body  else,  come,  ' 
and  preached  to  the  world,  that  Episcopacy  is  of 
Divine  right,  and  that  all  the  passages  of  the  New 
Testament  relating  to  Church  government  are  to  be 
understood  in  a  sense  consistent  with  that  doctrine, 
and  had  offered  to  work  a  miracle  for  confirmation 
of  all  this.  Had  the  event  answered,  and  an  uncon- 
tested miracle  been  wrought,  I  acknowledge  it  might 
have  superseded  all  other  arguments,  and  put  an. 

•  Church  Hist.  p.  234-.         f  Ibid.  p.  264.         t  Ibid»  p.  266. 
i  Ibid.  p.  462. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


115 


end  to  all  further  disputes.  But  I  suppose  it  will 
puzzle  Mr  Rhind  to  find  where  this  was  ever  done  ; 
nay,  which  is  a  great  unhappiness  to  him,  by  his  ac- 
count, such  a  miracle  in  those  early  days  had  been 
unnecessary,  because  nobody  then  was  in  any  doubt 
about  the  Divine  right  of  Prelacy.  No ;  Calvin  was 
not  born  for  many  hundreds  of  years  after ;  nay, 
Aerius  himself,  that  father  of  Presbyterian  Schis- 
matics, was  yet  sleeping  in  his  original  causes.  There 
are  several  good  Protestants  that  do  not  think  that 
all  the  miracles,  reported  to  be  wrought  by  the  Je- 
suits in  their  missions  among  the  Pagans,  are  mere 
forgeries.  If  there  was  any  thing  real  in  them,  it 
was  a .  seal  to  the  truth  of  Christianity  in  general, 
which  was  the  great  avowed  end  of  their  mission. 
But  will  any  body  infer  thence,  that  the  order  of 
the  Jesuits  is  of  divine  institution  ?  Balaam  was  en- 
dued with  extraordinary  gifts ;  does  it,  therefore, 
follow,  that  God  approved  of  his  character  as  a  di- 
viner or  soothsayer?  Cyprian,  discoursing  of  some 
who  had  broken  off  the  Church  by  schism,  yet  sup- 
poses it  possible  for  them  to  signalize  themselves  by 
miracles.  *     In  like  manner,  Augustine  :•— *  Let  no 

*  man,*  saith  he,  t  *  vend  fables  among  you.  Both 
'  Pontius  wrought  a  miracle,  and  Donatus  prayed, 
'  and  God  answered  him  from  heaven.     First,  ei- 

*  ther  they  are  deceived  themselves,  or  else  they  de- 

*  ceive  others.  However,  suppose  he  '  could  re- 
"  move  mountains,*  yet,  saith  the  Apostle,  *  If  I 

*  Cyprian  de  Unitat.  Ecclesiae.  Nam  et  prophetare,  et  dae- 
mona  excludere,  et  virtutes  magnas  in  terris  facere,  sublimis  uti- 
que  et  admirabilis  res  est ;  non  tamen  regnum  coeleste  consequi- 
tur  quisquis  in  his  omnibus  invenitur,  nisi  recti  et  justi  itineris 
observatione  [h.  e.  unitatis  ecclesiae]  gradiatur. 

f  Augustinus,  Tom.  ix.  Tract.  IJJ.  in  Evan.  Jaan.  p.  122.  Ne- 
mo ergo  vobis  fabulas  vendat.  Et  Pontius  fecit  miraculum,  et  Do- 
natus oravit  et  respondit  ei  Deus  de  ca>lo.  Primo  aut  falluntur 
aut  falluiit.  Postremo  fiic  ilium  monies  transferre.  Charitatem 
autem,  inquit,  non  liabeam,  nihil  sum,  Videamus  utrum  habue- 
rit  charitatem,  Crederem,  si  non  divisisset  unitatem.  Nam  et' 
contra  istos,  ut  sic  loquar,  mirabiiiarios  cautum  me  fecit  Deus 
meus  dicens ;  in  novissimis  temporibus  exsurgent  pseudoprophe- 
ue,  facientes  signa  et  ponenta. 

H  2 


116 


DEFENCE    OF    THE 


"  have  not  charity,  I  am  nothing.'   Let  us  see,  whe- 

*  ther  he  hath  not  charity.    I  should  have  beheved 

*  it,  if  he  had  not  divided  the  unity :  For  my  God 

*  hath  warned  me  against  all  such  wonder-mon2;ers, 

*  saying,  '  In  the  latter  days,  there  shall  arise  false. 
*'  prophets,  doing  signs  and  wonders.'*  Thus  Au- 
gustine. Here,  then,  is  one  demonstration  for  Epis- 
copacy fairly  spoiled.  But  as  it  is  not  the  first,  so  it 
is  not  likely  to  be  the  last. 


ARTICLE  IIL 


Wherein   Mr  Kiiind's  Proof  for  the  Instihition  of 
Prelacy  from  the  Episcopacy  of  Timothy  and  Titus, 
is  e<z'amined.     From  p.  74  to  p.  84. 

Upon  this  argument,  I  shall,  I.  Examine  his  rea- 
sonings, by  which  he  introduces  himself  to  it.  II.  The 
argument  itself,  and  what  he  has  advanced  for  mak-' 
ing  it  a  good  one. 

I.  I  am  to  examine  his  reasonings,  by  which  he 
introduces  himself  to  the  argument.  I  have  so  good 
an  opinion  of  his  judgment,  as  to  believe  he  himself 
was  convinced  of  the  weakness  of  what  he  has  hi- 
therto advanced.     '  But,'  saith  he,  p.  74,  '  there  is 

*  yet  still  something  behind,  which  alone  does  suffi- 

*  ciently  prove,  that  the  superiority  of  power  which 

*  the  Apostles  exercised  over  the  subordinate  orders 
*■  of  clergymen,  that  is,  ever  Priests  and  Deacons,*^ 
(and  why  noj  over  Prelates  too,  seeing  there  were 
then  such  ?  Would  he  have  us  to  believe,  they 
were  hail  fellow  with  the  Apostles  ?)'  was  not  pecu- 
'  liar  to  them,  and  consequently  not  extraordinary.*^ 
Now,  pray  what  may  this  be  ?     It  is  this :  *  That 

*  the  same  was  communicated  to  others,  even  to  sa 
'  many,  that  perhaps  there  was  not  a  church  con- 


PRESBYTEKIAN  GOVERNMENT.  117 

"*  stituted  by  the  Apostles,  where  there  was  not  such 

*  a  superior  officer  appointed  :  at  least  this  holds 

*  true  of  the  greatest  number  of  these  whereof  there 

*  is  mention  made  in  the  New  Testament.'  It  will 
be  very  strange  if  Mr  Rhind  can  make  good  this  : 
For,  Jirst^  There  is  the .  Church  of  Corinth,  the 
churches  of  Galatia,  the  Churches  of  Philippic  and 
all  Macedonia,  the  Church  of  Thessalonica,  with 
a  great  many  more  mentioned  in  the  New  Testa- 
ment ;  but  of  any  such  superior  officer  in  any  of 
them,  there  is  a  deep  silence  in  the  Scripture.  Se- 
condii/f  It  is  the  very  reverse  of  Mr  Dodwell's  doc- 
trine ;  according  to  whom,  as  we  have  already  heard, 
there  was  no  such  superior  ordinary  officer  appoint- 
ed in  any  church  constituted  by  the  Apostles,  the 
'whole  government  being  managed  by  extraordinary 
officers  sent  from  Jerusalem.  But  Mr  Rhind  chal- 
lenges the  Presbyterians  to  condescend,  from  the 
Acts  and  Epistles,  upon  one  act  of  ordination  and 
jurisdiction,  about  which  such  an  officer  was  not 
principally  employed.  And  I  challenge  him  again, 
indeed  all  his  party,  to  condescend  upon  one  act, 
about  which  such  an  officer,  not  extraordinary,  was 
employed.  Mr  Rliind  foresaw,  that  his  challenge 
would  be  thus  returned.     And  this  brings  me, 

II.  To  examine  his  argument  or  instance  in  an- 
swer to  the  said  returned  challenge.  *  This,'  saith  he, 
p.  74,  *  was  the  case  in  Ephesus  and  Crete,  where 
'  Timothy  and  Titus  acted  with  such  a  superiority 

*  of  power.*  I  answer,  not  good :  For  Timothy 
and  Titus  were  extraordinary  officers,  and,  there- 
fore, it  cannot  be  thence  inferred,  that  that  supe- 
riority of  power  was  designed  to  be  perpetual.  Mr 
Rhind  was  aware  that  this  answer  would  be  made 
to  him  ;  and,  therefore,  having,  with  unusual  cere- 
mony and  good-breeding,  declared,  p.  76,  *  that  it 

*  is  not  so  contemptible  as  some  would  represent 

*  it,'  he  applies  himself  with  all  his  might  to  defend 
against  it;  and  to  prove  that  Timothy  and  Titus 
were  not  extraordinary  officers,  but  the  ordinary 
and  fixed  Prelates  of  Ephesus  and  Crete. 


118  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

This  he  argues,  firsts  from  the  silence  of  the  Scrip- 
ture, that  there  is  no  intimation  made  in  all  the  Acts 
and  Epistles,  that  they  were  such  extraordinary  offi- 
cers. Secondly,  From  the  postscripts  to  their  Epistles, 
which  expressly  call  them  the  First  Bishops,  that  is. 
Ordinary  and  fixed  Prelates  of  Ephesus  and  Crete. 
Thh^dly,  From  the  concurring  testimony  of  the  an- 
cients, who,  with  one  voice,  declare  as  the  post- 
scripts do.  Fourthly,  From  Scripture  authorities, 
proving,  that  Timothy  and  Titus  were  of  an  order 
superior  to  Presbyters  and  Deacons,  and  such  as 
was  always  to  be  continued  in  the  church.  A  set 
of  very  strong  arguments  I  acknowledge.  Let  u^ 
examine  whether  he  has  made  them  good. 

First,  He  asserts,  *  That  there  is  no  intimation 

*  made  in  all  the  Acts  and  Epistles,  that  Timothy 
'  and  Titus  were  such  extraordinary  officers,'  p. 
77. — I  affirm  the  contrary. — No,  Mr  Dodwell,  I 
should  have  said,  affirms  the  contrary ;  and  proves, 
from  the  very  same  arguments  drawn  out  of  the 
Epistles  which  the  Presbyterians  have  always  in- 
sisted on,  that  their  office  was  not  fixed  with  re- 
spect to  Ephesus  and  Crete,  but  that  they  were  iti- 
nerant missionaries.  This  he  proves  v.ith  respect 
to  Timothy  from  St  Paul's  beseeching  him  to  abide 
at  Ephesus,  from  his  being  called  an  Evangelist, 
from  his  frequent  journeys  with  St  Paul,  and  the 
like.     And,  with  respect  to  Titus,  he  affirms,  *  that 

*  he  was  not  more  confined  to  any  one  place  than 
'  the  Apostle  Paul  himself  was.'  I  have  set  down 
his  words  on  the  margin,*  that  the  reader  may  see 
all  this. 

•  Parsenes,  Sect.  10,  p.  40,  41 .  Sed  vero  munus  illius  (Timothei) 
non  Fixum  fuisse  sed  Itiiieiarlum,  multa  arguunt.  Rogatum  ilium 
mansisse  Ephes.  testatur  Apostolus,  1  Tim.  i.  3.  Erat  ergo,  cum  ro- 
garetur,  itiiierarius.  Arguit  opus  Evangelistae,  2  Tim.  iv.  5  ;  Ar- 
guunt tot  illius  cum  S.  Paulo  itinera,  et  commune  illius  cum  Apos- 
tolo  nomen  in  inscriptionibus  Epistolarum  ad  Thessalonicenses. 
similiter  Tito,  et  quidem;  soli  de  constituendis  in  Creta  kictx  TroXt?. 
Presbyteris,  idem  praecipit  Apostolus,  Tit.  i.  5.  Relictum  ilium 
iuisse  ait,  ut  ea  quae  deerant,  corrigeret.  Comitem  utique  Aposto- 
li  cum  relinqueretur,    Et  sane  Comitera  S.  Pauli  alia  quoque  locft. 


PERSBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


119 


Secondly,  He  argues  from  the  postscripts  to  the 
Epistles  to  Timothy  and  Titus,  '  which,'  saith  he, 
p.   7'd,   *  do  expressly  call  them  the  First   Bishops, 

*  that  is,  ordinary  and  fixed  Prelates  of  Ephesus  and 
«  Crete.'  Well,  is  it  true  that  they  were  so  ?  We 
have  already  heard  Mr  Dodwell  ;  let  us  hear 
another,  w-ho  was  as  much  concerned  to  keep  the 
Episcopal  cause  right  as  ever  Mr  Rhind  is  likely 
to  be.  The  person  1  mean  is  Dr  Whitby.  *  First* ^ 
saith  he,*  *  I  assert,  that,  if  by  saying  Timothy 
'  and  Titus  were  bishops,  the  one  of  Ephesus  and 

*  the  other  of  Crete,  we  understand  that  they  took 

*  upon  them  the  churches    and  dioceses  as  their 

*  jioced  and  j9(?c?^/far  charge,  in  which  they  were  to 

*  preside  for  term  of  life,  I  believe  that  Timothy 

*  and  Titus  were  not  thus  bishops.'  Thus  he.  But 
what  now  shall  become  of  the  credit  of  the  poor 
postscripts  by  this  ?  Why,  the  same  Dr  Whitby 
proves  them  to  be  false  from  the  very  letter  of  the 
text  itself,  in  tlie  Epistles.  But  Mr  Rhind  is  more 
tender-hearted.      '  Though,'    saith  he,    *  they    are 

*  no  part  of  the  canon  of  the  Scriptures  ;  yet  they 

*  are  of  so  much  authority,  that  the  Presbyterians 
'  themselves  have  not  yet  dared  to  cancel  them  in 

*  the  common  Bibles.'  Very  pleasantly !  But 
then,  let  me  ask,  in  the  ^r5/ place,  seeing  they  are 
no  part  of  the  canon,  what  authority  can  they  have 
beyond  what  the  reputation  of  the  authors  of  them 
can  give  them  ?  Now,  who  were  the  authors  of 
them  ?  I  doubt  if  that  can  be  discovered,  unless 
one  would  go  to  Endor.  Were  they  at  least  early  ? 
No,  I  will  leave  the  argument  to  Mr  Rhind,  if  he 
can  find  them  for  at  least  50O  years  after  the  E- 
pistles  were  written  ;  <  Nay,'  says  Dr  Hammond, t 
'  We  know  that  the  subscriptions  of  the   Epistles 

*  are  not  to  be  found  in  all  the  ancient  copies.'  'idly. 
It  is  true,  the  Presbyterians  have  not  dared  to  can- 

docent,  non  raagis  utique  certo  alicui  loco  adstrlctum  quam  ipse 
fuerit  Apostolus. 

•   Pietace  to  the  Epistle  to  Titus ; 

f  Preface  to  the,  2d  Ep.  to  Timothy. 


120  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

eel  them  in  the  common  Bibles.  But  then  I  would 
ask  him,  who  first  put  them  into  the  common  Bi- 
bles ?  I  doubt  very  much  if  they  came  there  by 
fair  play.  The  oldest  English  translations  have 
them  not.  I  have  by  me,  '  Rycharde  Taverner^s* 
translation,    *  Printed    in    the  year    of  our   Lord, 

*  MDXXXIXy  wherein  there  is  not  one  syllable  of 
the  bishopricks  of  Timothy  and  Titus.  For  instance, 
the  postscript  of  the  second  Epistle  to  Timothy, 
bears  this  only,  *  Written  from   Rome,  'when  Paul 

*  'was  presented  the  second  tyme  up  before  Emperour 

*  Nero.'  But  not  one  word  of  Timothy's  being 
ordained  either  first  or  second  bishop.  I  ask  Mr 
Rhind,  secondly,  who  caused  print  these  postscripts 
in  the  same  letter  with  the  text,  whereas,  usually, 
they  were  put  in  a  different  letter,  that  they  might 
be  known  to  be  no  part  of  the  canon  ?  Good  Mr 
Rhind,  pray  purge  your  party.  In  the  mean  time, 
it  is  not  very  generous  to  take  advantage  of  the 
Presbyterians  for  tlieir  not  cancelHng  them,  when 
they  dared  not  do  it ;  the  power  of  printing  Bibles 
being  the  Prince's  gift,  not  the  church's.  However, 
from  the  whole  it  is  plain,  that  it  is  ridiculous  to, 
make  an  argument  of  these  postscripts. 

Thirdly,  He  argues,  '  from  the  concurring  testi- 
ly monies  of  the  ancients,  who,  with  one  voice,  de- 

*  clare  as  the  postscripts  do.  And  to  this,'  saith 
he,  p.  78,  *  the  Presbyterians  will  find  themselves 

*  straitened  to  rejoin.'  No  doubt.  Well,  where 
are  these  testimonies  of  the  ancients  ?  Oh,  *  how 
«  easy  were  it  for  him  to  add   to  the  number  of 

*  pages  by  quotations  to  this  purpose  ?'  But  still 
I  ask  where  are  they?  Nay,  not  one  of  these  an- 
cients has  he  quoted  to  this  purpose — nay,  nor  so 
much  as  named.  Who  now  can  doubt  but  the  Pres- 
byterians must  find  themselves  straitened  to  rejoin? 
But  if  an  Episcopalian  rejoin,  will  it  not  do  as  well  ? 
Hear  then  Dr  Whitby.  '  The  great  controversy,* 
saith  he,*  '  concerning  this  and  the  Epistle  to  Ti- 

*  Ibid,  ubi  supra,  p.  485,  Vol.  II, 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  121 

f^  mothy,  is,  whether  Timothy  and  Titus  were  fn- 
'  deed  made  bishops,  the  one  of  Ephesus  and  the 

*  Proconsular  Asia,  the  other  of  Crete,  having  au- 
<  thority  to  make,  and  jurisdiction  over  so  many 
^  bishops  as  were  in  those  precincts.  Now,  of  this 
'  matter,  I  confess  I  can  find  nothing  in  any  writer 

*  of  the  first  three  centuries,  nor  any  intimation 
'  that  they  bore  that  name.*  Thus  he.  And  the 
Presbyterians  being  secured  from  the  ancients  of 
the  first  three  centuries,  any  hazard  from  the  rest  is 
not  much  to  be  regarded  :  For,  as  M.  Le  Clerc 
most  judiciously  observes,*  '  The  testimonies  of  the 

*  ancients  about  this  matter,  who  judged  rashly  of 

*  the  times  of  the  Apostles  by  their  own,  and  spoke 

*  of  them  in  the  language  of  their  own  age,  are 
^  of  little  moment ;  and  so,   do  no  more  prove  that 

*  Titus  was  bishop  of  the  Island  of  Crete,  than  what 
^  Dr  Hammond  says,  proves  him  to  have  been  dig- 
^  nified  with  the  title  of  an  archbishop.' 

Fourthly^  He  argues  from  Scripture  authorities 
which  prove,  as  he  says,  page  79,  that  Timothy 
and  Titus  were  of  an  order  superior  to  Presbyters 
and  Deacons,  and  such  as  was  always  to  be  conti- 
nued in  the  Church. 

15^, With  respect  to  Timothy,  he  observes  from  Acts 
XX.  31.  compared  with  Acts, xix.  10.  and  Acts  xix.  26. 
and  Acts  xx.  17.  that  Ephesus  was  furnished  with  pas- 
tors before  the  Apostle  Paul  left  them.  And  yet  he 
besought  Timothy  to  abide  there  to  cliarge  some  that 
they  should  teacli  no  other  doctrine,  and  to  perform 
several  other  functions  which  import  a  superiority  of 
power,  with  respect  to  ordination  and  jurisdiction  : 
'  For,'  saith  he,  p.  81,  '  Is  it  to  be  supposed,  if  the 

*  Presbyters  and  Deacons  of  Ephesus  could  alone 

*  have  discharged  these  offices,  tliat  St  Paul  would 

*  have  continued  Timothy  there,  encroaching  on  their 

*  divine  right.*  The  answer  is  abundantly  obvious  ; 
for,  first,  when  the  Apostle  was  departing  out  of 
these  bounds,  he  warned  the  elders  of  Ephesus,  that 

*  Supplement  to  Dr  Hammond's  Annot.  on  the  Ep.  to  Titus,  p. 
^mihi)  530. 


122 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


after  his  departure,  grievous  wolves  should  enter  irr, 
not  sparing  the  flock.  To  give  a  check  to  such,  it 
was  expedient  in.  the  infancy  of  that  church,  (none 
of  her  ministers  being  then  above  three  years  stand- 
ing in  the  office,  Acts,  xx.  yi.)  that  a  person  both 
of  extraordinary  character  and  gifts  should  be  among 
them  ; — which,  when  once  the  government  was  set- 
tled, and  things  brought  into  a  fixed  order,  there 
would  be  no  such  occasion  for.  Secondli/,  Paul's 
beseeching  Timothy  to  abide  at  Ephesus  is  a  certain 
argument,  as  we  have  heard  from  Mr  Dodwell,  that 
he  was  not  their  established  bishop  :  for  to  what  end 
should  he  beseech  a  bishop  to  reside  in  his  own  dio- 
cese, when  he  could  not  do  otherwise  without  offend- 
ing God  and  neglecting  his  duty.  Thirdlj/,  The  el- 
ders of  Ephesus  already  ordained  were  bishops.  So 
says  Dr  Hammond,  nay,  so  says  the  Sacred  Text, 
Acts,  XX,  28,  •  over  which  the  Holy  Ghost  hath  made 
*  you  Bishops  :'  and,  therefore,  as  Bishops,  they  had 
power  to  perform  all  ministerial  functions,  and  only 
wanted  such  an  extraordinary  person  as  Timothy  to 
direct  and  assist  them  in  their  present  circumstances. 
The  Romans,  sometimes  when  the  Commonwealth 
was  in  imminent  danger,  created  a  dictator  with  an 
absolute  power  for  six  months,  without  bounding 
him  with  any  other  instructions  but  that  he  should 
take  care,  ne  quid  detrimenti  respublica  caperet.  But 
will  it  therefore  follow  that  the  dictatorship  was  a 
standing  office?  Or  will  the  Romans  making  choice  of 
such  an  officer  in  their  extremity,  justify  or  excuse 
Sylla  or  Julius  CiEsar,  who  would  needs  have  them- 
selves declared  perpetual  dictators,  and  thereby  en- 
slaved their  native  country.  Though  one  takes  phy- 
sic when  he  is  sick,  yet  it  would  be  a  very  un- 
pleasant diet  for  ordinary.  Though  a  gentleman 
wears  leading-strings  while  he  is  a  child  j  and  is  un- 
der tutors  or  curators,  till  he  is  one-and-twenty,  does 
it  follow  that  he  must  always  be  so  ? 

^dly.  With  respect  to  Titus,  Mr  Rhind  sug- 
gests that  he  was  left  at  Crete,  with  a  power  to  in- 
spect the  quahfications  of  such  as  should  be  ordain^. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  123 

ed,  chap.  i.  7.  to  rebuke  elders  as  well  as  others, 
chap.  ii.  15.  to  reject,  that  is,  to  excommunicate 
heretics,  and  all  this  notwitlistanding  there  were 
other  church  officers  ordained  there  before  :  for  he 
was  left  to  set  in  order  the  things  (relating  to  ordi- 
nation and  jurisdiction)  which  were  wanting,  which 
must  needs  infer  that  he  acted  in  a  capacity  superior 
to  them.  It  is  answered  :  Crete  was  as  yet  in  a 
great  measure  unplanted  when  Paul  left  him  there. 
He  was  left  there  on  purpose  to  ordain  elders  in 
every  city.  These  elders  whom  he  ordained  were 
Bishops  J  the  text  expressly  says  it,  chap.  i.  5 — 7. 
Dr  Hammond  himself  owns  it.  When,  therefore, 
they  were  once  ordained,  they  had  power  to  perform 
all  acts  any  Bishop  is  capable  of-  But  Mr  Rhind 
asserts,  p.   83,  '  That  Titus,  after  he  had  ordained 

*  elders  in  every  one  of  the  cities  of  Crete,  conti- 

*  nued  there  exercising  what  we  properly  call  an 
'  Episcopal  jurisdiction  over  them  when  ordained.' 
But,  ^first,  not  one  word  has  he  offered  for  the  proof 
of  this.  Secondly,  The  Scripture  contradicts  it,  as 
we  shall  hear  just  now.  Thirdly,  If  he  exercised 
any  jurisdiction  over  them,  they  being  Bishops 
themselves,  it  would  not  be  simply  an  Episcopal, 
but  strictly  and  properly  an  Archiepiscopal  jurisdic- 
tion. But  it  is  plain  he  did  not  continue  in  Crete 
to  exercise  either  ;  fov,  fourthly,  Dr  Whitby  not  on- 
ly confesses,  but  proves  from  Scripture,  that  he  did 
not  continue  there.     *  As  for  Titus,  he  was  only 

*  left  at  Crete  to  ordain  elders  in  every  city,  and  to 
'  set  in  order  the  things  that  were  wanting.     Hav- 

*  ing,  therefore,  done  that  work,  he  had  done  all  that 

*  was  assigned  him  in  that  station.     And  therefore 

*  St  Paul  sends  for  him  the  very  next  year  to  Nico- 
«  polls:  Tit.  iii.  12.*  Thus  he.  If,  therefore,  Mr 
Rhind's  instance  prove  any  thing,  it  must  be  the 
divine  right  of  non-residence,  which  indeed  would 
be  no  ungrateful  performance  to  several  people  in 
the  world. 

Thus  I  have  gone  through  whatever  Mr  Rhind  has 
advanced  on  this  proof.     And  now  to  conclude  it  j 


124  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

there  is  nothing  surer  tlian  that  there  was  a  perfect 
equahty  among  the  Bishops  for  the  first  three  cen- 
turies, and  so  Mr  Dodwell  afSrms.  There  is  nothing 
plainer  from  the  Scripture,  than  that  there  were  bi- 
shops at  Ephesus  before  Timotliy  was  left  there ; 
and  that  those  whom  Titus  ordained  in  Crete  were 
Bishops  in  ail  that  sense  of  the  word,  the  New  Tes- 
tament owns.  How  then  Timothy  and  Titus  could 
be  tlie  fixed  and  ordinary  prelates  of  Ephesus  and 
Crete,  is  beyond  the  power  of  natural  understanding 
to  conceive.  If  Mr  llhind  can  solve  me  in  this  one 
scrupK^,  or  if  any  other  of  his  brethren  can,  I  shall 
own  it  as  a  sini^ular  obligation.  And  therefore  I 
(desire  them  to  take  pains  on  their  answer,  and  to  la- 
|:)our  it  with  all  due  care. 


ARTICLE  IV. 


Wherein  Mr  Ehixb's  proof  for  Prelacy  from  the 
Apocalyptic  Angels^  is  examined.  From  p,  84  to 
p,  86. 

Mr  Rhind  is  much  shorter  on  this,  than  on  any 
of  the  preceding  proofs.  The  reason,  no  doubt,  is, 
because  it  is  much  clearer.  And  therefore  he  puts 
on  ail  liis  airs,  and  treats  the  Presbyterians  with  a 
noble  disdain  in  the  confidence  of  it ;  wondering 
they  can  be  so  senseless  or  obstinate  as  to  resist  its 
evidence.  That  I  may  not  wrong  him,  I  shall  set 
down  every  word  of  what  he  has  on  it,  without  the 
least  omission. 

*  And  that  such  a  superior  order  did  obtain  a  conr 

*  siderable  time  af\er  this,  is  evident  from  the  in- 

*  stances  of  the  seven  Apocalyptic  angels,  to  whom 

*  our  Lord  directs  so  many  epistles  by  his  servant 
'  St  John,  a  plain  indication  of  his  approbation  of 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  125 

that  authority  which  they  exercised,  especially 
considering  that  there  is  no  insinuation  made  to 
its  disadvantage  in  the  epistles  directed  to  them. 
And  that  these  angels  were  single  persons,  and 
the  governors  of  these  churches,  will  be  evident 
to  any  who  shall  impartially  consider  the  2d  and 
3d  chapter  of  the  Revelation,  where  they  are  plain- 
ly characterised  as  such  ;  so  very  plainly,  that  per- 
haps all  the  authors  who  ever  commented  upon 
them,  whether  ancient  or  modern,  have  supposed 
them  to  be  such.  Nor  was  it  ever  questioned  by 
any,  till  the  interest  of  a  party  obliged  some  to 
search  for  criticisms,  by  which  they  might  seem 
with  their  followers  to  answer  the  argument  drawn 
from  these  instances  for  Episcopacy :  But  the 
evasions  they  have  been  forced  to  use  are  so  sense- 
less, ancj  have  been  so  often  exposed  as  such, 
that  I  am  saved  the  labour  of  exposing  them  fur- 
ther, or  of  repeating  what  has  been  already  said 
to  disprove  them  ;  only  I  must  add,  that  so  ground- 
less are  they,  and  such  is  the  evidence  of  truth 
on  the  Episcopal  side,  that  it  extorted  from  some 
Presbyterian  authors,  and  particularly  from  Beza, 
one  of  the  most  zealous  and  learned  patrons  of 
parity,  a  confession  that  these  angels  were  single 
persons,  and  the  governors  of  these  seven  Asian 
churches.' 

Now  let  us  examine  all  this. 
In  the  first  place.  Were  these  Apocalyptic  an- 
gels the  fixed  bishops  of  these  churches  ?  It  is 
true,  Mr  Dodwell,  in  his  book  of  the  One  Priest- 
hood and  One  Altar,  which  he  published  in  the  year 
1683,  is  of  the  opinion  *  that  the  bishops  are  here 
represented  in  a  mystical  way,  and  peisonated  by 
the  name  of  Angels  ;  but  in  his  Parainesis,  a  book 
which  he  published  above  20  years  after  the  former, 
and  which  consequently  must  be  supposed  to  be  the 
wiser  book  of  the  two,  he  frequently  inculcates,  as 
we  have  heard  before,  that  there  were  no  fixed  bi- 
sliops  in  the  world  at  that  time  ;  and  particularly  as 

•  Cbap.  xli.  Sect.  2.  p.  832,  &c. 


126 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


to  these  Apocalyptic  angels,  though  he  is  in  a  very 
great  doubt  what  to  make  of  them,*  yet  by  no  means 
will  he  allow  them  either  to  have  been  bishops,  or 
indeed  the  fixed  presbyteries  of  the  place,  but  guesses 
them  to  have  been  itinerary  legates  sent  from  Jeru- 
salem, answering  to  the  seven  spirits,  Zach.  iv.  10. 
that  are  the  eyes  of  the  Lord,  which  run  to  and 
fro  through  the  whole  earth.t  Was  Mr  Rhind, 
then,  to  seek  for  confidence,  when  he  would  be  so 
positive  in  a  matter  of  which  the  greatest  man  of 
his  party  could  not  have  a  clear  view  ;  and  in  which, 
so  far  as  he  could  guess,  he  has  determined  against 
him. 

Secondly^  How  came  Mr  Rhind  to  number  these 
Apocalyptic  angels,  calling  them  the  seven  Apoca- 
lyptic angels  ?  The  Apocalypse  itself  does  not  call 
them  seven.  It  is  said  indeed,  chap.  i.  28.  that  the 
seven  candlesticks  are  the  seven  churches ;  there 
both  the  symbols  and  things  represented  by  them 
are  numbered.  But  it  is  not  so  in  the  other  branch. 
It  is  not  said  the  seven  stars  are  the  seven  angels, 
but  indefinitely  v.xq  the  angels  of  the  seven  churches. 
Is  not  this  a  plain  indication  that  the  Holy  Ghost 
would  not  oblige  us  to  take  the  word  Angels  singu- 
larly. 

Thirdly,  Are  these  angels  characterised  as  single 
persons  ?  Though  Mr  Rhind  indeed  is  more  than 
ordinarily  sharp-sighted,  yet  I  am  so  far  from  seeing 
this  evident,  that  I  cannot  discern  one  shadow  of 
it ;  but  on  the  contrary,  I  think  I  see  them,  and  that 
too  as  plainly  as  ever  I  saw  any  thing,  characterised 
so  as  to  denote  a  collective  body.     Possibly  my  sight 

*  Vide  Sect.  10.  p.  32. 

\  Parae'nes.  Sect.  iO  p.  S2.  Ita  fulsse  necesse  erat,  si  quldem 
vere  Episcopi  fuissent  aiigeli  Apocalyptici.  Sed  de  illis  senten- 
tlam  nostram  infra  explieabimus,  p.  39,  'iO.  Si  non  sufFecerint, 
sic  alios  fuisse  verisimillimum  esset  angelos  ecclesiarum  Apocalyp- 
ticos  ab  institutis  locorura  Presbyteris.  Erant  ergo  etiam  ipsi  lor- 
tasse  Hierosolymitanorum  legati,  sed  Apostolis  ipsis  obnoxii — ut 
proinde  oculis  Domini  septenis  spiritibus  responderint  Angeli  Apo- 
calyptici qui  discurrebant  per  universani  Terram.  Sic  fuerint 
etiam  hi  ecclesiarum  prsefecti  noa  e  loco  oriundi,  sed  ujissi  Hlero- 
solymis  itinerarii. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  127 

is  Vitiated  ;  but  then  much  greater  men,  I  am  sure, 
than  I,  and  at  least  as  good  friends  to  the  Episcopal 
cause,  have  seen  them  just  the  same  way.  Dr  Henry- 
More,  a  man  of  an  Apocalyptic  genius  himself, 
frankly  owns,  *  *  That  by  angels,  according  to  the 
'  Apocalyptic  style,  all  the  agents  under  their  pre- 

*  sidency  are  represented  or  insinuated.  And  this,* 
saith  he,  '  is  so  frequent  and  obvious  in  the  Apoca- 

*  lypse,  that  none   that  is  versed   therein  can  any 

*  wise  doubt  of  it.     Wherefore  Christ,  his  writing 

*  to  the  angel  of  the  Church  of  Ephesus  in  this 

*  mystical  sense,  is  his  writing  to  all  bishops,  pastors, 

*  and  Ciuistians,  in  the  first  apostolical  interval  of 

*  the  Church.'  Thus  Dr  More.  Yea,  Mr  Dod- 
well  himself  owns,t  That  the  churches  of  the  Ly- 
dian,  or  Proconsular  Asia,  are  to  be  understood  by 
the  mystical  representation  in  the  Apocalypse,  and 
that  the  reason  why  St  John  confined  his  number  to 
seven,  is,  *  not  that  by  any  geographical  distinction 

*  those  seven  bodies  were  incor})orated  into  a  body 

*  more  than  others  of  that  province,  but  that  he 

*  had  a    particular   regard  to  the  number  of  the 

*  angels  of  the  presence.'  How  is  ail  this  consist- 
ent with  their  being  characterised  as  single  persons  ? 
But  let  us  wave  human  judgment,  and  appeal  to 
the  text. 

Fourthly^  Are  these  angels  characterised  in  the 
2d  and  3d  chapters  of  the  Revelation  as  single  per- 
sons and  the  governors  of  these  churches  ?  It  is 
true,  each  epistle  is  directed  to  the  angel  in  the  sin- 
gular number.  But  it  is  as  true,  that  that  title 
agrees  to  every  minister  of  the  gospel,  and  to  every 
one  that  bears  the  messasje  of  the  Lord.  And  it  is 
as  true,  that  the  word  angel,  even  in  the  singular 
number,  bears  a  collective  sense  ;  as  when  it  is  said, 
Psal-  xxxiv.  7.  *  The  angel  of  the  Lord  encamps 

*  round  about  them  that  fear  him.'  So  that  nothing 
can  be  inferred,  on  the  Episcopal  side,  either  from 
the  title  itself,  or  from  the  usage  of  it  in  the  singular 

*  Expos,  of  the  Seven  Epg.  to  tlie  Seven  Churches,  p,  22, 
•J-  Oae  Priesthood,  Chap,  xil.  Sect.  2. 


128  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

number.  But  then,  if  we  look  into  the  body  of* 
the  epistles  themselves,  consider  the  way  how  they 
are  ushered  in,  and  the  solemn  clause  with  which 
each  of  them  concludes,  it  is  plain  that  Angel  must 
be  taken  in  a  collective  sense,  as  including  not  only 
all  the  ministers  of  the  church,  but  indeed  the  whole 
church  itself.  Thus,  in  the  first  place,  John  directs 
his  Revelations  to  the  Seven  Churches  which  are  in 
Asia,  Rev.  i.  4.  Thus  the  voice  behind  him  order- 
ed him,  '  What  thou  seest,  write  in  a  book,  and  send 
'  it  unto  the  seven  churches  which  are  in  Asia,' 
Rev.  i.  10,  11.  Thus,  at  the  end  of  the  whole 
vision,  '  I  Jesus  have  sent  mine  angel  to  testify  unto 
*  you  these  things  in  the  churches,'  Rev.  xxii.  16. 
Thus  at  the  end  of  every  one  of  the  epistles,  there 
is  that  solemn  clause,  *  he  that  hath  an  ear  to  hear, 
'  let  him  hear  what  the  Spirit  saith  unto  the  churches.' 
Secondly,  If  we  look  into  the  bodies  of  the  epistles 
themselves,  we  shall  find  the  thing  still  more  clear. 
1.  In  the  epistle  to  the  angel  of  the  Church  of 
Ephesus,  shall  we  think  that  the  commendation  for 
labour  and  patience,  the  reproof  of  the  decay  of 
the  first  love,  the  exhortation  to  repentance,  the 
threatening  to  remove  the  candlestick  out  of  his 
place,  were  directed  to,  or  concerned  only  one  sin- 
gle person  ?  Would  our  Saviour  punish  a  whole 
church  so  grievously  as  to  deprive  them  of  the  gos- 
pel for  the   fault  of  their  bishop  ?      No.      '  When 

*  he    says   the   angel   of  Ephesus,   he  means   the 

*  church  in  it,'  saith  Aretas,  bishop  of  Caesarea  in 
Cappadocia.*  2.  When  he  bids  the  angel  of  the 
Church  of  Smyrna,  '  Fear  none  of  these  things 
which  thou  shalt  suffer.'     Is  it  not  presently  added, 

*  Behold  the  devil  shall  cast  some  o^ you  into  prison, 
'  that  ?/e  may  be  tried  ;  and  7/e  shall  have  tribulation 

*  ten  days.'  Is  this  the  characterising  of  a  single  per- 
son ?  When  he  exhorts  to  faithfulness,  and  makes- 
promise  to  him  that  overcomes,  does  he  direct  to  the 
Bishop  only  ?  «  No,'  saith  Augustine,t  *  he  says  it  to 

*  Comment,  in  Apoc,  tj»  Iv  ctvTti  i'  x-Xxa-  xiyii, 

t  Augustine,  Tom,  X.  Honiil.  ii,  in  Apoc,  Omni  Ecckbiae  diclt» 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  129 

the  whole  church.  Si^/y,  When  he  saith  to  the  angel 
of  the  Cliurch  of  Pergaraus,  '  I  know  thy  works,  and 
'  where  thou  dwellest,  even  where  Satan's  seat  is,' 
was  it  the  bishop  only  that  had  such  bad  quarters, 
when  it  is  instantly  added  in  the  end  of  the  verse, 

*  Antipas,  nfiy  faithful  martyr,  was  slain  among  t/oz^, 

*  where  Satan  dwelleth  ?'     *  No,'  saith  Augustine,* 

*  these  things,   under  a  singular  word,  are  said  to 

*  the  whole  church,  because  Satan  dwells  every 
'  where  by  his  body.     Now  the  body  of  Satan  are 

*  proud  and  wicked  men,  just  as  the  body  of  Christ 

*  are  such  as  are  humble  and  good.'  Indeed  the 
whole  church  in  tliese  parts  was  in  the  greatest  dan- 
ger of  idolatry,  or  of  persecution  in  case  of  not 
complying  with  it ;  for  in  Pergamus  stood  the  fa- 
mous temple  of  iEsculapius,  whither  the  greatest 
personages  went,  or  sent  their  gifts,  because  of  the 
fame  of  his  oracle.  Thither  Earinus,  Domitian's 
freed- man,  sent  his  consecrated  hair,  with  a  mirror, 
and  a  box  set  with  jewels. t  Thither  the  Emperor 
Antonius  Caracalla  went  to  be  cured  of  his  sickness 
by  the  god,  and  to  lie  in  for  dreams,  t  Thither, 
also,  Apolionius  Tyana^us,  who  was  set  up  to  mate 
our  Saviour,  went  to  be  director  of  the  Oracle, 
and  to  instruct  the  votaries  that  came  there  how 
they  might  obtain  divine  dreams  from  the  god.§  To 
tliis  god  dragons  and  serpents  were  sacred,  and 
maintained  on  the  public  charge  in  his  temple. 
Fitly,  therefore,  was  Satan  that  dragon  and  old  ser- 
pent. Rev.  xii.  9«  said  to  have  his  seat  there.  Add 
to  all  this,  that  admitting  there  had  been  such  officers 
as  Prelates  in  those  days,  yet  it  would  be  probable 
that  the  see  was  vacant  at  this  time  :  for  as  the  tra- 
dition goes,  Antipas  v.'as  the  Bishop  of  that  place; 
but  he  was  martyred  in  the  tenth  year  of  Domitian, 

*  Ubl  supra — oiiini  ecclcsiae  (licit  in  uiiiiis  vocubulo,  quia  ubiquo 
liabitat  Satanas  per  corpus  suum.  Corpus  autcni  Satanae  homines 
sunt  superbi  ct  niali :  Sicut  et  corpus  Christi  luimiles  et  boui. 

■f   ■  Dulcesque  capillos 

Pergameo  posuit  dona  sacrata  Deo. — Maiit. 
:|:  Herodian,  Lib.  IV.  Cap.  v.  11. 
§  Pliilostr.  in  vit.   A  poll.  Lib.  IV.  Cap.  iii. 
I 


ISO  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

as  the  Roman  Martyrology  bears  ;  which  was  the 
very  year  in  which,  as  the  most  common  tradition 
carries  it,  John  the  divine  was  banished  to  Patmos, 
And  DrFIammond,  foreseeing,  it  seems,  this  difficulty, 
placed  John's  banishment  in  the  reign  of  Claudius, 
and  makes  the  relation  of  the  martyrdom  of  Antipas, 
Rev.  ii-  13.  to  be  not  history,  but  prophecy;  and 
whereas  the  text  reads,  *  Antipas  my  faithful  martyr 
'  was  slain,'  he  paraphrases  it,  *  Antipas,  for  his  fidelity 

*  and  courage  in  preaching  the  gospel,  will  be  (I  fore- 

*  see)  cruelly  martyred.'  And  if  the  see  was  vacant  at 
ihat  time,  how  could  the  epistle  be  directed  to  the 
Bishop  ?  4:thlij,  When  he  writes  to  the  Angel  of  the 
Church  in  Thyatira,  was  it  the  works,  charity,  ser- 
vice, faith  and  patience  of  the  Bishop  alone  he  com- 
mends, verse  19  ?  Was  it  the  Bishop  alone  wliom  he 
reproved  for  suffering  that  woman  Jezabel  ?  No, 
saith  Augustine.*    *  It  vvas  such  (in  the  plural  num- 

*  ber)  as  were  set  over  the  Church,   who  neglected 

*  to  impose  that  severe  discipline   upon  fornicators, 

*  and  other  riotous  livers,  which  they  ought.'  Is  the 
Angel  of  that  Church  characterised  as  a  single  per- 
son, when  it  is  expressly  said,  verse  24,  *  But  unto 
'  you  I  say,  and  unto  the  rest  in  Thyatira.'  Are  not 
here  two  parts  of  the  Church  plainly  distinguished, 
viz.  the  ministers  thereof  in  the  plural  word  you, 
and  the  people  described  by  the  rest  in  Thyatira  ? 
The  only  answer  which  the  Episcopal  party  have  for 
avoiding  the  force  of  this  observe,  is,  that  the  word 
and  is  not  to  be  found  in  some  copies  ;  and  so  they 
read  the  text  thus,  '  Unto  you  I  say  the  rest  in  Thy- 

*  atira.'  But  all  answers  are  to  be  suspected  that  in- 
vade the  text.  It  is  true,  the  word  mid  is  wanting 
in  some  copies  ;  but  it  is  as  true,  it  is  to  be  found 
in  many  more,  and  these,  too,  of  as  good  credit,  and 
as  great  antiquity.  In  the  year  1546,  Tonstall  Bi- 
ship  of  Durham,  found  an  exposition  on  the  Apo- 

*  Quod  autem  (licit  Angelo  Tliyatirae  ecclesiae  (Habeo  adversum 
te  pauca)  diclt  Piaepositis  Ecclesiarum  :  qui  Luxuiiosis  et  foiiil- 
cantibus,  el  aliud  quod  libet  malum  agentibus  severilatem  disci- 
pUccC  ecclesiastics  non  imponunt.    Horn,  2.  iu  Apoc. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  131 

calypse,  bearing  the  name  of  St  Ambrose  the  bishop,* 
\vhich  lie  published  in  the  year  1554,  and  in  his  pre- 
face to  tlie  reider,  he  is  earnest  to  have  him  beHeve 
that  it  is  the  work  of  Ambrose  bishop  of  Milan, 
and  he  expressly  reads  it  with  the  and.  I  believe 
indeed  Tonstall  was  deceived  about  the  author.  But 
this  is  certain,  that  whoever  he  was,  he  was  a  very 
ancient  writer,  and  accordingly  the  work  is  inserted 
amongst  those  of  St  Ambrose.t  And  though  that 
writer  sometimes  mentions  the  Bishop  in  his  exposi- 
tion of  these  seven  epistles,  yet  he  not  only  interprets 
the  stars  by  holy  preacliers  in  the  general,  but  also 
lays  down  X  this  as  a  general  rule,  that  all  the  gover- 
nors of  the  Catliolic  Church  are  signified  by  these 
angels,  and  that,  because  of  their  being  messengers 
of  the  word  of  God  to  the  people,  seeing  the  word 
Angel  signifies  a  messenger.  And  though  Beza,  upon 
the  authority  of  the  old  interpreter,  and  of  the  Com- 
plutensian  edition,  and  two  other  copies,  did  read  the 
said  24th  verse  without  the  and^  yet  in  other  edi- 
tions §  he  has  inserted  it,  and  always  expounds  the 
phrase  '  to  the  angel,'  by  these  words  *to  tlie  pastors.' 
5thlt/,  When  he  gives  this  character  of  the  Angel  of 
the  Church  of  Sardis,  *  thou  hast  a  name  that  thou 

*  livest,  and  art  dead,'  is  it  a  description  of  one  single 
person  in  that  Church,  whether  Bishop  or  Presbyter  ? 
Is  it  not  rather  of  that  whole  Church,  excepting 
these  few  names  mentioned,  verse  4.  chap.  iii.  *  which 

*  had  not  defiled  their  garments?'  Yes,  certainK^,  and 
so  the  fore-cited  Augustine  says,  and  gives  it  for  a 
general  rule,  much  after  the  same  way  with  Ambrose 
before  cited  ;  '  that  because  Angel  signifies  a  mes- 
'  senger,  therefore,  whoever,  eitiier  Bishop  or   Pres- 

*  Expositio  Beat!  Ambrosii  Eplscopi  super  Apocalypsln. 

-|-  Edit.  Coloniae  Agrippinae,  l66i. 

j  Sancti  Prsedicatorcs. — Cap.  1.  ad  finem.  Septem  igitur  Angelos 
rectoics  septein  Ecclesiariim  del)cmu-  intelligere,  eo  quod  Anoelu* 
nnntii(x  interpictalur.  Et  qui  Vcrljuni  dti  populis  annunciant,  nou 
incoiivcnientcr  angcli,  id  est,  nnnlii  vocantur.  Et  sicut  per  septem 
Ecclesias,  una  Ecclcsia  Catliolica,  ita  per  scptcm  rectores  septem 
Ecclcsiarum  omnes  rectores  Eccle.sife  Catliolica;  dcsignuntur. 

§   Edit,  folio  Lo:idini.  Anno  1592. 
1  2 


1S2  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  byter,  or  even  Lay-man,  speaks  frequently  of  Got!, 

*  and  tells  men  how  they  may  come  to  eternal  life, 

*  is  deservedly  called  the  Angel  of  God.'*  Gthbjy 
When  he  says  to  the  angel  of  the  Church  in  Phila- 
delphia, '  I  have  set  before  thee  an  open  door, — thou 

*  hast  a  little  strength,  and  hast  kept  my  word,'  &c. 
Did  he  mean  thereby  to  characterise  a  single  person  ? 
No,  it  is  plain  it  is  the  character  of  the  Church,  and 
so  the  fore-cited  Augustine  expressly  says.t  Indeed 
there  is  not  one  clause  in  the  whole  epistle,  that  so 
much  as  seems  to  describe  a  single  person,  yea  even 
that  promise,  verse  9,  '  Behold  I  will  make  them  of 
*the  synagogue  of  Satan  to  come  and  worship  before 

*  thy  feet,'  imports  nothing  of  peculiar  privilege  to 
the  Bishop,  but  merely  signifies  the  effect  that  the 
preaching  of  the  gospel  should  have  upon  these  ene- 
iiiiies,  as  the  fore-cited  Ambrose  explains  it4  Lastlijy 
The  like  is  to  be  said  of  the  Church  of  Laodicea  :  In 
the  whole  epistle  to  the  angel  thereof,  there  is  not 
one  clause  that  characterises  a  single  person.  I  add 
further,  that  in  none  of  these  seven  epistles,  is  there 
one  act  of  episcopal  jurisdiction  so  much  as  hinted  at ; 
not  any  act  which  is  not  competent  to  all  the  ministers 
of  the  gospel — yea,  indeed,  to  the  people  themselves  ; 
for  instance,  when  it  is  said  of  the  Church  ofEphesus, 
chap.  ii.  ver.  2.  '  Thou  hast  tried  them  which  say  they 

*  arcx^postles,  and  are  not,  and  hast  found  them  liars ;' 
it  is  no  more  than  what  is  the  duty,  and  will  be  the 
practice  of  every  good  Christian,  all  being  enjoined, 
1  John   iv.    1.  '  Beloved,  believe   not   every  spirit, 

*  but  try  the  spirits,  whether  they  are  of  God,  be- 
'  cause  many  false  prophets  are  gone  out  into  the 

•  Nam  quia  ctiam  Angelus  nuncins  interpretatur,  quicunqne 
aat  Eplscopus  ant  Presbyter  aut  etiam  Laicus  frequenter  tie  Deo 
loquitur,  et  quomoilo  ad  vitam  eeternam  perveniatur  annunciat, 
nierito  Angelus  Dei  lUcilur.  Hem.  2.  id  Apoc. 

f  Hoc  ideo  dictum  est,  ut  nuUus  dicat,  quia  ostium  quod  Deu* 
apperit  Ecclesiae,  in  toto  niundo  aliquis  possit  vel  in  parte  claudere. 
Horn.  3.  Ibid. 

X  Id  est,  cum  credlderint  per  verba  tua  in  me,  adorabunt  ante 
Pedes  tuos,  deprecantus,  ut  per  vitam  seternam  consequautur,  Am- 
bros.  ubi  supra. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  133 

«  world.'  Again,  when  the  Church  of  Thyatira  is 
blamed  for  suffering  that  woman  Jezabel,  every 
Christian  may  be  guilty  of  the  like,  being  discharged 
to  own  or  countenance  infamous  and  obstinate  here- 
tics, 2  John  X.  '  If  there  come  any  unto  you  and 

*  bring  not  this  doctrine,  receive  him  not  into  your 
'  house,  neither  bid  him  God  speed.'  Besides,  seve- 
ral authors  relate,  and  Dr  Fulk  against  the  llhemists 
upon  the  place,  takes  notice  of  it,  that  the  said  Jeza- 
bel was  the  Bishop's  wife  ;  though  I  do  not  believe 
this,  because  I  am  very  sure  that  there  was  no  such 
thing  as  a  bishop  in  the  modern  sense  at  that  time  ; 
yet,  upon  that  supposition,  his  fault  would  have  been 
rather  a  neglect  of  his  marital  authority  than  of  his 
episcopal  pov/er  ;  consequently  it  cannot  be  inferred 
thence  that  he  is  described  there  as  a  governor  of 
the  church.  Upon  the  whole,  then,  ^Ir  ilhind  has 
been  too  unwary,  and  his  forwardness  has  mightily 
outrun  his  judgment  when  he  asserted,  that  these 
angels  are  characterised  in  the  2d  and  3d  chapters 
of  the  Revelation  as  single  persons.  17r  Hammond 
himself,  though  so  earnest  to  have  these  angels  be- 
lieved to  be  single  persons,  yet  had  not  courage 
enough  to  affirm,  that  they  are  characterised  there  as 
such — nay,  indeed,  he  confesses   the   contrary.* — 

*  Though  the  Angels,*  saith  he,  '  were  single  per- 

*  sons,  yet  what  is  said  to  them  is  not  said  only  to 

*  their  persons,  but  to  the  universality  of  the  jTeople 
'  under  them,  whose  non-proficiency,  or  remission 
'  of  degrees  of  Christian  virtue,  especially  their  fall- 
'  ing  off  from  the  constancy  and  courage  of  their 
'  profession,  do  deserve  (and  are  accordingly  threat- 

*  ened  with)  the  removal   of  that  Christian  know- 

*  ledge,  that  grace,  those  privileges  of  a   church, 

*  which  had  been  allowed  them,  C.  ii.  5. ;  which  is 

*  not  so  properly  applicable  as  a  punishment  of  the 

*  bishop,  as  of  the  people  under  him.     And  there- 

*  fore  in  the  paraphrase,  I  have  generally  changed 

*  the  singular  into  the  plural  number,  by  that  means 

*  Annol.  in  Rev.  Chap.  I.  v.  20. 


134  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  to  leave   it   indiiTerently  to  the   Bisliop  of  each 

*  Church  and  the  people  under  him,  and  yet  further, 

*  to  the  other  Churches  subordinate  to  each  of  the 

*  metropoles  here  named.*  Thus  Dr  Hammond  : 
And  elsewhere,*  he  is  forced  to  acknowledge,  tliat 
'  those  expressions,  which  are  used  in  the  singular 

*  number,  do  not  all  belong  to  the  Bishop,  but  to 

*  the  Church  wherein  he  presides.'  The  very  truth 
is,  Dr  Hammond  has  absolutely  destroyed  this  ar- 
gument of  the  Apocalyptic  Angels.  For,  Jirst^  he 
has  made  them  not  simply  Bishops,  but  Metropoli- 
tans, a  notion  wherein  his  whole  party,  I  believe, 
have  now  deserted  him  ;  yet  he  very  judiciously  saw, 
that  the  argument  could  not  be  so  much  as  coloured 
without  some  such  notion.  '^dly^  He  elsewhere  t 
makes  a  twofold  Bishop  in  the  same  place  ;  of  which 
the  one  was  set  over  the  Jewish  and  the  other  over 
the  Gentile  Christians.  How  then  could  these  An- 
gels be  single  persons  ?  Were  the  epistles  written 
only  to  the  circumcised,  or  only  to  the  uncircum- 
cised  ?  But  to  go  on  with  Mr  Rhind  : 

Fifthli)^  Is  it  true  that  all  the  authors,  ancient 
and  modern,  who  have  commented  upon  the  'id  and 
Sd  chapter  of  the  Revelation,  have  supposed  these 
Angels  to  be  single  persons,  and  the  governors  of 
these  Churches  ?  I  suppose  this  question  may  be 
abundantly  satisfied  from  what  I  have  already  dis- 
coursed :  for  we  have  heard  Aretas,  Ambrose, 
Augustine,  applying  the  seven  epistles  to  the  whole 
collective  body  of  the  church.  Aretas  is  an  un- 
contested author  ;  of  Ambrose  I  have  spoke  before. 
The  only  question  is  about  Augustine,  whether  these 
homilies  on  the  Revelation,  which  I  have  cited,  are 
indeed  his.  But  this  question  does  not  affect  the 
controversy.  For,  though  Erasmus  X  suspects  them 
not  to  be  Augustine's,  yet  it  is  agreed  on  all  hands 
that  they  are  the  work  of  an  ancient  writer,  which 

*  Vlnd.  of  tlie  Dissert.  Chap.  I.   Sect.  11. 
")•  Premonition  to  the  Second  Epistle  of  St  John. 
J  Prsefat.  ad  Lect.  Non  videtur  Augustini,  quanquam  opus  lectu 
(dignum.. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT. 


135 


sufficiently  confutes  Mr  Rhind.  And  besides  tliese, 
ifMrllhind"s  memory  had  served  him,  which  one 
might  hiive  expected  after  his  telhng  that  he  had 
studied  the  controversy  with  a  scrupulous  exactness, 
he  might  have  remembered  that  there  are  many  other 
authors,  both  ancient  and  modern,  insisted  on  by 
the  Presbyterians,*  viz.  Ambrosius  Ausbertus  (whom 
some  mistake  for  the  Ambrose  whom  I  have  cited), 
Primasius  the  Great,  Haymo,  Beda,  Richard,  Tho- 
mas, Fulk,  Fox,  and  Perkins.  But  Mr  Rhind  made 
choice  of  the  easiest  way  of  doing  his  business :  for 
who  would  undergo  the  drudgery  of  examining 
things  that  imagines  his  reader  is  to  be  put  off  with 
bold  and  blind  assertion  ?  We  have  indeed  very  few 
ancient  writers  on  the  Apocalypse.  It  was  some  time 
before  it  w-as  universally  received  as  canonical,  and 
the  commentaries  of  such  as  wrote  upon  it,  (such  as 
Justin  Martyr  and  Irensus)  in  the  first  three  cen- 
turies, are  now  lost;  and  though  such  as  wrote  up- 
on it  afterwards,  when  prelacy  turned  rampant,  had 
interpreted  according  to  the  episcopal  scheme,  it 
could  make  no  argument  against  the  Presbyterians : 
but  when  the  evidence  of  truth,  notwithstanding 
that  temptation,  forced  them  to  interpret,  as  we 
have  heard  them  doing,  it  is  an  irreparable  loss  to 
the  Episcopal  cause.  And  for  Mr  Rhind  to  allege 
at  random,  that  all  authors,  both  ancient  and  mo- 
dern, are  on  the  Episcopal  side,  without  citing,  nay, 
without  so  much  as  naming  any  one  of  them,  except 
Beza  alone — of  whom  just  now — was  to  be  too  prodi- 
gal of  the  credit  of  his  judgment,  and  is  no  great 
argument  of  the  discretion  of  his  brethren  who  mid- 
wifed  his  book  into  the  world- 

Lastlij,  Has  Beza  said  any  thing  upon  this  argu- 
ment that  favours  the  Episcopal  cause  ?  Mr  Rhind 
brings  him  in  with  a  great  deal  of  parade,  as  if  he 
were  clear  on  the  Episcopal  side.  But  why  did  he 
not  cite  his  words  ?  Why  docs  he  give  us  his  own 
commentary  without  Beza's  text  ?  Why,  truly,  there 

•  Gersom  Bucer,  page  202.  Alt.  Damas.  Cap.  iv.  p.  98,  99'  Nat, 
Querel.  Par.  2d  Sect.  5.  Smectymnus.  Sect.  13,  &c. 


136 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


was  reason  for  it.     Eeza's  words  are  tliese  :  *     'To 

*  the  Angel,  that  is,  to  the  President  (or  Moderator) 

*  whom,  to  wit,  it  behoved,  in  the  first  place,  to  be 
'  admonished  concerning  these  matters,  and  by  him 

*  the  rest  of  the  colJeao^nes,  and  so  the  whole  church. 

*  But  from  thence  to  infer  the  episcopal  degree, 

*  which  was  afterwards  brought  into  the  Church  of 

*  God  by  human  inventions,  is  what  neither  can  nor 

*  ought  to  be  done.      Nay,  not  that    the  office  of 
'  President  or  Moderator  should  necessarily  be  per- 

*  petual,  as  the  oligarchical  tyranny  (whose  head  is 

*  the  Antichristian  beast),  which  arose  thence  now 

*  makes  it  manifest,  with  the  most  certain  ruin,  not 

*  only  of  the  whole  church,  but  world  also.'  Judge 
now,  good  reader,  of  Mr  Ilhind's  modesty,  and  say, 
whether  Beza  is  on  the  Episcopal  side.  If  he 
could  find  testimonies  of  Presbyterian  authors  on 
his  side,  1  am  sure  he  is  suiiiciently  qualified  to 
improve  them,  when  lie  could  be  so  confident  on  a 
testimony  that  was  clearly  against  him. 

So  much  from  the  argument  of  the  Apocalyp- 
tic Angels,  and  I  hope  1  may  appeal  to  the  reader 
if  ever  he  knew  any  more  senseless  or  more  ground- 
less, used  by  any  party  on  any  cause :  For,  sup- 
posing it  were  plain,  even  to  demonstration,  that 
these  Angels  were  single  persons,  yet,  where  is 
there  the  least  intimation,  that  these  single  per- 
sons had  the  sole  power,  either  of  ordination  or 
jurisdiction  ;  or  even  a  negative  over  the  Presby- 
ters in  these  things  ?  Without  this,  it  can  be  no  argu- 
ment for  the  modern  Episcopacy.  Yctsotrue  is  it, that 
there  is  no  intimation  thereof,  that  Dr  ilammond  will 
not  allow  that  there  were  any  mere  Presbyters  at 
|-hat  time,  wherein  he  is  certainly  rigiit.     And  as 

*  Beza  in  Apocalyp.  ii.  1.  Angelo,  id  est,  5rgo250T<,  quern  oppor- 
tuit  nimiruni  imprimis  de  his  rebus  admoneri,  ac  per  eum  caeteros 
CoUeifas,  totamque  adeo  Ecclesiani.  Sed  iilnc  statai  Episcopalis 
ille  Gradus,  postea  humanitus  in  ecclesiam  Dei  invectus,  certe 
nee  potest  nee  debet.  Imo  ne  perpetuum  quideni  istud  Tr^tniroTos 
munus  esse  necessario  opportuissc,  sicut  exoita  inde  Tyrrannis  Oli- 
garchica  (cujus  Apex  est  Antichristiana  bestia)  certissima  cum 
totius,  non  Ecclesise  modo,  sed  etlam  Orbls  Feruicie  nunc  tandem 
dcclarat. 


PIlEffBYTEUIAN  GOVEllNMENT.  137 

tliat  notion  quite  destroys  the  argument  from  the 
Apocalyptic  Angels,  so  Dr  Whitby  has  observed,* 
That  the  same  notion  destroys  two  other  arguments 
already  adduced  by  Mr  lihind,  and  ordinarily  in- 
sisted on  by  the  Episcopal  writers,  viz.  That  from  the 
form  of  government  which  obtained  among  the  Jews; 
and  the  other  from  the  subordination  of  the  Seventy 
to  the  Twelve.  '  If,'  saith  he,  '  the  middle  order 
'  had  been  wanting  so  long  as  is  supposed,  viz.  by 

*  Dr  Hammond,  the  government  of  the  church 
'  would  not  have  been  formed  after  that  (the  Jewish) 

*  platform  ;  which  as  Epiphanius  and  the  Jews  in- 

*  form  us,  had  these  several  offices  in  it.     The  same 

*  may  be  said  of  tliose  who  make  the  elders  or  pres- 

*  byterstobe  answerable  to  the  Seventy,  appoint- 
'  ed  by  Christ  as  inferior  officers  under  the  Apostles, 
'  and  make  this  an  argument  of  inequality  betwixt 

*  Bishops  and  Presbyters,  established  in  the  church 

*  by  Christ.*  Thus  Dr  Whitby.  The  Presbyterians 
then  are  obliged  to  Dr  Hammond  for  easing  them 
of  three  of  the  most  noisy  arguments  of  their  ad- 
versaries. 


ARTICLE  V. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhine's  Proof  of  Prelacij  from  Testi- 
monies  of  Antiquitijy  is  Examined.  From  p.  85  to 
p.  111. 

Having  cleared  our  hands  of  the  arguments  from 
the  Scripture,  we  proceed  next  to  consider  the 
testimonies  from  antiquity.  Mr  Rhind  is  at  a  great 
deal  of  pains  for  six  pages  together,  to  persuade  the 
Presbyterians  to  appeal  to  the  ancients ;  and  runs 
through  all  the  common  places  of  rhetoric  to  shew, 
how  competent  and  unexceptionable  witnesses  they 
are.   But  all  this  is  wretched  affectation ;   For,  frst, 

*  Anaot.  on  1  Pet«r,  v.  1. 

% 


138  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  Episcopal  authors  themselves  own,  that  the  Pres- 
l)yterians  hav-e  the  Fathers  on  their  side.  We  heard 
before  Dr  Bedell  justifying  Medina,  in  owning, 
that  Ambrose,  Augustine,  SeduHus,  Primasius, 
Chrysostom,  Theodoret,  Oecumenius,  and  Theophy- 
lact  are  on  the  Presbyterian  side.  This,  then,  v\  as 
only  a  stroke  of  Mr  llhind's  politics  to  gull  his 
readers  into  a  belief  that  the  Fathers  are  against  the 
Presbyterians.  '2.dlij,  In  all  cases  the  Presbyterians 
are  content  to  be  concluded  by  the  testimony  of 
the  Fathers,  or  to  give  a  good  reason  why  they  caji- 
not.  And  1  know  no  class  of  Christians  that  goes 
farther,  or  gives  an  implicit  assent  to  their  dictates. 
The  Fatliers,  themselves,  required  no  such  thing 
of  such  as  were  to  come  after  them  ;  and,  in  a 
thousand  places,  have  desired  their  readers  to  try 
before  they  trusted.  And  I  am  sure  there  is  abun- 
dance of  reason  for  doing  so.  For  there  is  no  man, 
that  has  dipjied  ever  so  little  into  the  study  of  tliem, 
but  is  convinced,  that  any  that  would  swallow  their 
doctrines  by  the  lump,  must,  at  once,  believe  the 
greatest  absurdities  and  most  palpable  contradic- 
tions J  and  none  have  noticed  this  with  greater  free- 
dom than  the   Church  of  England  divines.     *•  The 

*  Scripture,'  saith  Dr  Sherlock,*  '  is  all  of  a  piece, 
'  every  part  of  it  agrees  with  the  rest ;  the  leathers 

*  many  times  contradict  themselves  and  each  other  :* 
And  he  tells,  '  how  it  has  often  made  him  smile, 
'  with  a  mixture  of  j)ity  and  indignation,  to  see  what 
'  a  great  noise  the  Roman  disputants  made  among 

*  women  and   children,  and    the    meanest   sort   of 

*  peo'ple,  with  quotations  out  of  fathers  and  councils, 

*  whom  they  pretend  to  be  all  on  their  side.'  1  shall 
be  silad  if  this  be  not  the  character  of  some  other 
folks  as  well  as  the  Roman  disputants.  To  the 
same  purpose  the  incomparable  Chillingworth  :t  '  I, 

*  for  my   part,'  saith   he,  '  after  a  long,   and  (as  I 

*  verily  believe  and  hope)  impartial  search  of  the 

*  Preservative  against  Popery,  Part  I.  Cliap  ii.  Sec.  3. 
f   Prot.  Rcl.  a  sate  way,  Cliap.  vi.  Sec.  56. 


PRESBTTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  139 


*  true  way  to  eternal  happiness,  do  profess,  plainly, 

*  that  I  cannot  find  any  rest  for  the  sole  of  my  feet, 
«  but  upon  this  rock  only,  viz.  the  Scripture.     I  see 

*  pUiinly,  and  with  my  own  eyes,   councils  against 

*  councils,    some  fathers  against  others,  thi  same 

*  fathers  against  themselves,  a  consent  of  fathers  of 

*  one  age  against  a  consent  of  fathers  of  another 

*  age,  and  the  Church  of  one  age  against  the  Church 

*  of  another  age.' — Thus  he.  And  thus  from  two 
of  the  greatest  men  the  Church  of  EnoJand  could 
ever  boast  of,  may  we  learn  what  habile  witnesses  the 
Fathers  are,  and  how  great  weight  will  hang  upon 
their  testimony;  for,  if  such  a  character  of  the  Fa- 
thers be  both  sense  and  truth,  in  the  moutlis  of 
these  great  men,  when  disputing  against  the  Ro- 
manists, is  it  possible  but  it  must  be  the  same  in  the 
mouths  of  Presbyterians,  when  disputing  against  the 
Prelatists  ?  But,  indeed,  the  Presbyterians  need  no 
such  common-place  considerations  for  defending 
themselves.  So  far  as  Mr  llhind  has  gone,  I  am 
content  the  debate  be  compromised,  and  referred  to 
the  Fathers  and  the  testimony  of  antiquity. 

He  insists  on  five,  viz.  Ignatius,  Clemens  Roma- 
nus,  the  Emperor  Adrian,  Irenaius,  and  Tertullian. 
All  which  1  bhall  consider  in  order. 

IGNATIUS. 

The  first  is  Ignatius,  '  who,'  saith  he,  p.  9),  *  was 

*  constituted  Bit.hop  of  Antioch,  upon  the  death  of 
'  Evodius,  the   immediate   successor  of  St   Peter; 

*  and  who,  in  his  Epistles,  testifies,  most  favourably, 

*  for  Episcopacy.*  To  which  it  is  answered,  in  the 
Ist  place.  It  is  ridiculous  to  aliirm  that  St  Peter  was 
Bishop  of  Antioch  ;  the  apostolic  character  and 
office  being  inconsistent  with  the  fixed  charge  of  any 
particular  see.  2c//y,  Supposing  it  had  not  been  so, 
yet  both  Chrysostom  and  Theodoret*  affirm  Igna- 
tius to  have  succeeded  immediately,  not  to  Evodius 
but  to  Peter  himself.     But,  waving  these  things,  I 

*  Chrysost  de  translat.  S.  Ignatll.  Theodor.  de  Inimut.  Dial.  1, 


140 


DEFBNCE  OP  THE 


answer,  Sc?/^,  That  the  Epistles  of  Ignatms  are  so 
far  from  testifying  favourably  for  the  modern  Epis- 
copacy, that  they  quite  destroy  it,  and  the  principles 
upon  which  it  is  pretended  to  be  built.  This  I  hope 
to  make  good  to  every  man's  conviction,  by  the  Jbut- 
following  particulars. 

In  the  15^  place,  Supposing  that  Episcopacy  had 
obtained  at  the  time  when  Ignatius  wrote  his 
Epistles,  yet  this  is  so  far  from  being  an  argument 
that  it  had  obtained,  in  the  apostolic  age,  that  the 
whole  strain  of  these  Epistles  are  an  evidence  of  the 
contrary.  This,  I  am  aware,  will,  at  first,  be  thought 
a  very  surprising  assertion  :  But  I  shall  make  it  good 
from  an  unexceptionable  hand,  I  mean  Mr  Dodwell.* 
The  matter,  in  short,  is  this,  the  Presbyterians  had, 
oftentimes,  excepted  against  the  Ignatian  Epistles, 
either  as  not  genuine,  or,  at  least,  as  vitiated  and  cor- 
rupted on  this  head  ;  because  they  insist  so  much  on 
the  absolute  power  of  the  bishop,  they  could  not 
believe  that  such  rhodomontade  expressions  as  are 
used  on  that  subject  were  consistent  with  the  spirit, 
character,  or  circumstances  of  Ignatius  when  he 
wrote  his  Epistles.  Mr  Dodwell  saw  the  force  of 
this  objection ;  and,  therefore,  carefully  applies 
himself  to  take  it  off.  But  how  does  he  do  it  f  Plain- 
ly to  tell  us,  that  the  reason  why  Ignatius  insisted 
so  much  '  on  the  pov/er  of  the  Bishop,  was,  because 

*  Episcopacy  was  an  order  but  newly  introduced 

*  into  the  Church,  that,  therefore,  it  was  necessary 

*  that,  with  all  his  might,  he  should  assert  their  new 

*  rights,  and  urge  and  establish  a  power  formerly 
'  unknown.*  In  a  word,  Episcopacy  was  not  insti- 
tuted, says  Mr  Dodwell,  till  the  year  106.    Ignatius 

♦  Paraenes.  Sec.  25.  p.  105,  106.  Ilinc  etlani  constat,  nullam 
fulsse  (quam  cretliderunt  Tgnatianaruni  Epistolarum  Atlversarli, 
nostraium  latioiium  neecii)  atl'ectationem,  immo  necessarium  fuisse, 
lit  nova  n^oroKx0^eiy  jura  enixis  viiibus  assererentur. — Nam  prima 
Poteslatls  illius  in  Eplscopoa  devolutione  niagis  necessariiim  erat  ut 

ignota  anteaPotestas  urgeretur  atque  stabilerelur, Nostras  autem 

rationes  oslendunt  jam  nuperam  fuiss«  iJlara  Episcoporum  Potesta- 
tenij  cum  adeo  illam  conunendaret  Ignatius, 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  141 

wrote  Ills  Epistles  in  the  year  1 16,  says  Bishop  Lloyd ; 
in  the  year  110,  says  Eusebius  ;  in  the  year  107, 
says  Bishop  Usher.  By  the  longest  of  these  accounts. 
Episcopacy  was  but  of  ten  years  standing  when  Ig- 
natius wrote,  and  by  the  shortest  of  them  but  of  one. 
And  now  let  the  reader  say  if  these  Epistles  will 
prove  that  Episcopacy  obtained  in  the  Apostolic 
age. 

2dli/y  I  ask  Mr  Rhind  if,  any  where  in  these 
Epistles,  he  finds  a  Bishop  that  had  more  than  one 
congregation  under  his  charge.  The  Episcopal 
writers  have  oftentimes  been  called  on  to  shew  this ; 
they  have  never  done  it  to  this  day,  and  I  believe 
no  wise  man  will  ever  attempt  it :  For  nothing  is 
more  plain  from  these  Epistles,  than  that  the  Bish- 
op's whole  charge  met  in  one  place,  and  communi- 
cated at  one  altar.  Whether,  then,  does  this  look 
like  the  Scots  Presbyterian  or  the  English  diocesan 
Bishop  ? 

Sdlif,  Through  all  the  Ignatian  Epistles,  as  I  have 
shewn  before,  the  Presbyters  are  always  said  to  re- 
present the  Apostles,  the  Bishops  never.  Now, 
upon  this,  I  ask,  1^^,  How  Mr  Rhind's  argument 
holds,  that  the  Bishops  succeed  the  Apostles,  and  the 
Presbyters  the  Seventy?  2^%,  If  the  Presbyters 
succeed  the  Apostles,  how  is  it  possible  but  that 
they  must  have  the  power  of  ordination  and  jurisdic- 
tion, as  well  as  of  preacliing  and  dispensing  the  sa- 
craments ?  Surely  the  Apostles  had  it ;  how,  then, 
can  the  Presbyters,  their  successors,  want  it?  Sdly^ 
Seeing,  by  the  Ignatian  doctrine,  the  Presbyters 
were  in  place  of  the  Apostles,  how  is  it  true  that 
the  Presbyters  cannot  do  any  pastoral  act,  in  their 
own  right,  but  as  the  Bishop  delegates  ?  The 
Apostles  had  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  for  their  imme- 
diate superior,  why  should  it  be  otherwise  with  the 
Presbyters,  their  successors  ? 

4^///y,  The  Ignalian  Presbytery  had  a  share  in 
the  government,  as  appears  from  many  places  of 
these  Epistles.  '  And  that  being  subject  to  your 
*  Bishop,  and  hi§  Presbytery,  ye  may  be  wholly  and 


142  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  thoroughly  sanctified.  *    Obeying  your  Bishop,  and 

*  the  Presbytery,  with  entire  affection,  t    But  be  ye 

*  united  to  your  Bishop,  and  those  who  preside  over 

*  you,  that  is,  the  Presbyters,  t     So  neither  do  ye 

*  any  thing,  without  your  Bishops  and  Presbyters.  § 

*  But  he  that  is  without,  that  is,  does  any  thing 

*  without  the  Bishop,  Presbyters,  and  Deacons,  is 
'  not  pure  in  his  conscience.  II      Being  subject  to 

*  your  Bishop,  as  to  the  command  of  God,  and  so 

*  likewise  to  the  Presbytery.'  ^  Thus  it  was  in  the 
Ignatian  times.  But  where,  now,  is  there  any  such 
thing  as  this  in  the  Church  of  England,  which  Mr 
Rliind  has  joined  ?  Are  not  the  Presbyters  entirely 
deprived  of  the  exercise  of  disciphne  ?  Kay,  are 
not  tiie  Lay-Chancellors  risen  up  against  the  Bishops 
themselves,  their  creators  .''  Have  they  not  engros- 
sed the  discipline  wholly  into  their  hands  ?  Hear 
Dr  Burnet,  **  even  before  he  became  revolutioner. 

*  Our  Ecclesiastical  Courts,'  saith  he,  *  are  not  irt 

*  the  hands  of  our  Bishops  and  their  Clergy,  but  put 

*  over  to  the  civilians,    where   too   often  fees  are 

*  more  strictly  looked  after  than  the  correction  of 

*  manners. — Excommunication  has  become  a  kind 
'  of  secular  sentence,  and  is  hardly  now  considered 
'  as  a  spiritual  censure,  being  judged  and  given  out 

*  by  laymen,  and   often   upon  grounds,   which,    to 

*  speak   moderately,    do  not   merit    so   severe   and 

*  dreadful  a  sentence.'  Before  I  go  further,  I  can- 
not but  take  notice,  that  Mr  llhind,  in  summing  up 
the  evidence  from  Ignatius's  Epistles,  has  not  dealt 
fairly,  when  he  says,  p.  94,  *  That  this  exercise  of 
'  the  Episcopal  authority  over  subordinate  Presby- 
'  ters  and  Deacons,  was  not  peculiar  to  the  churches 

*  to  which  8t  Ignatius  directed  his  Epistles,  but  did 

*  ea:tend  (to  use  that   Saint's  words.)  to  the  utmost 

*  bounds  of  the  earth  ;   which,'  saith  he,  '  in   my 

*  opinion,  asserts  the  univLVsal  exercise  of  the  Epis- 

*  Ep.  to  the  Ephes.  Sect.  2.  f  Ibid.  Sect.  20. 

X  Ep.  to  the  Magnes.  Sect.  6.  §  Ibid.  Sect.  7- 

jl   Ep.  to  the  'IVal.  Sect.  7-  f   Ibid.  Sect.  13. 

**  Freface  to  Vol,  ii.  Hist,  Ketbrm. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVEUNMENT.  143 

«  copal  office  ?'  Did  Ignatius  use  that  word  extend, 
I  mean  the  Greek  that  signifies  it?  If  not,  how 
can  the  universal  exercise  of  the  Episcopal  office  be 
inferred  u})on  it  ?  And  yet  it  is  certain,  first,  tliat 
he  did  not  use  it,  but  a  Greek  word  *  wliich  siirni- 
fies  dejined  or  appointed,  and  that  too  without  any 
mention  of  the  earth  in  the  clause.  Secondly,  That 
Bishops  did  not,  at  that  time,  extend  to  tiie  utmost 
bounds  of  the  earth:  For,  Mr  Dodwell  gives  it  as 
the  very  reason  why  Ignatius  insisted  so  much  on 
the  Episcopal  authority,  because  it  had  not  yet  uni- 
versally obtained.  '  The  power  of  the  Bishops,' 
saith  he,  t  *  was  so  long  to  be  urged,  till  it  should 
'  be  universally  received,  and  men  were  brought  in 

*  use  to  obey  it.'  Why,  then,  did  Mr  Rhind,  in 
his  reasoning,  use  the  word  extend  instead  of  ap^ 
pointed;  especially  when,  before,  p.  9;3.,  he  had 
used  the  word  appointed  in  citing  ?  Did  he  not  de- 
sign to  take  advantage  of  his  readers'  inadvertency? 
But  liovv  shall  his  conclusion  of  the  universal  exer- 
cise of  the  Episcopal  office  in  Ignatius's  time  stand, 
when  it  is  founded  upon  a  false  bottom  ?  This  now 
is  our  first  defence  against  the  Ignaiian  Epistles, 
that  they  quite  destroy  the  modern  Episcopacy,  and 
the  principles  on  which  it  is  built,  which  1  must 
needs  still  believe  they  do,  till  I  have  got  a  satisfy- 
ing answer  to  the  former  particulars.     1  add, 

Second!//,  That  these  Ignatian  Epistles,  as  to  the 
main  of  the  controversy,  contain  nothing  contrary 
to  the  Presbyterian  scheme.  And  it  is  a"  great  en- 
couragement to  me  to  venture  on  that  assertion,  that 
60  great  a  man  as  Stillingfleet  has  done  it  before  me. 
'  In  all  those  thirty-five  testimonies,'  saith  he,t  '  pro- 

*  duced  out  of  Ignatius's  Epistles  for  Episcopacy,  I 

*  can  meet  but  with  one  which  is  brought  to  prove 

*  the  least  semblance  of  an  institution  of  Christ  for 

*  Episcopacy ;  and  if  1  be  not  much  deceived,  the 

w;  y.ai  #(  iTr/a-KOTrot  ot  kxtcc  ret  yriparx  opt'j-iivTt;, 

f  Paraeiies.  Sect.  25.  p.  106.  Tantis-per  certe  urgenda  erat 
nova  ilia  potcstas  dum  a  subditis  passim  reciperetur,  et  dum  illiug 
obsequio  homines  assuevissent.  X  ^renic.  p.  309.    Edit,  i. 


144  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  sense  of  that  place  is  clearly  mistaken  too.' — I  said, 
as  to  the  main  of  the  controversy,  to  prevent  trifling 
in  any  body  that  shall  attempt  to  answer  this,  Mr 
E-hind  alleges  on  the  Presbyterians,  that  they  afiirm 
the  Ignatian  Bishop  to  correspond  to  their  parish 
minister ;  the  Presbyters  and  Deacons  to  their  ruling 
elders  and  deacons,  p.  101.  I  do  not  know  any 
Presbyterian  author  that  ever  wrote  so  widely.  I 
do  not  believe  ever  any  of  them  did,  and  want  to 
have  them  named.  But  if  any  of  them  ever  did  so, 
I  here  enter  my  dissent  from  them.  It  is  certain 
the  Presbyterian  Deacons  do  not  correspond  to  the 
Ignatian  Deacons,  because  the  Ignatian  Deacons  do 
not  correspond  to  the  Scripture  Deacons.  It  is  evi- 
dent, from  Acts  vi.,  that  the  Deacons  were  insti- 
tuted to  serve  tables,  and  take  care  of  the  poor 
and  of  the  Church's  stock.  The  very  reason  of 
their  institution,  was  the  giving  relief  to  the  Apos- 
tles, who  could  not  at  once  attend  the  word  of  God, 
and  serve  tables.  And  to  this,  Mr  Dodwell  ac- 
cords; *  declaring,  '  that  the  first  institution  of  the 

*  office  of  deaconship,  w^as  for  the  distributing  of 
'  the  treasures  of  the  Church.'  But  such  is  not  the 
Ignatian  Deacon  :  '  For,'  saith  he,  t  *  the  Deacons 

*  are  not  the  ministers  of  meat  and  drink,  but  of  the 

*  Church.'  It  is  certain,  likewise,  that  the  Presby- 
terian Parish  Minister  does  not  correspond  to  the 
Ignatian  Bishop,  as  to  his  intensive  'power.  The 
Presbyterians  believe  that  the  power  ascribed  to  the 
Ignatian  Bishop  is  greater  than  ought  to  be  allowed 
to  any  creature,  that  is  not  under  an  infallible  con- 
duct- For  instance,  when  it  is  said,  t  '  Whatsoever 
'  the  Bishop  approves,  is  acceptable  to  God.'  But 
then  I  afiirm,  that  the  Ignatian  Bishop,  as  to  his  ex- 
tensive power,  corresponds  better  to  the  Presbyte- 
rian Parish  Minister,  than  to  the  English  Diocesan 
Bishop  ;  seeing,  as  I  observed  before,  the  Ignatian 
Bishop's  whole  charge  did  meet  in  one  place,  and 

*  One  Priesthood,  Chap.  xii.  Sect.  3.  p.  336. 
\  Ep.  to  the  Tral.  Sect.  2.         ^  Ep.  to  the  Smjrn.  Sect.  8. 


PRESBYTERIAN   GOVERNMENT.  145 

communicate  at  one  altar.  I  affirm  likewise,  tliat 
there  is  not  the  least  hint  in  all  the  Ignatian  Epis- 
tles of  an  imparity  among  the  pastors  of  the  Church. 
I  take  pastors  here  in  the  current  ecclesiastical  sense 
of  that  word,  for  such  as  labour  in  the  word  and 
doctrine ;  for  otherwise  I  know  that  the  word  Pastor 
may  signify  any  officer  or  governor  whatsomever. 

And  this  now  brings  me  to  the  main  point  in  de- 
bate :  For  I  know  the  reader  will  presently  ask,  what 
I  make  of  the  Ignatian  Presbyters — were  not 
they  Pastors  in  the  current  ecclesiastical  sense  of 
that  word  ?  I  affirm  positively,  that  there  is  no  hint 
in  all  the  Ignatian  Epistles  that  they  were ;  and  that 
nothing  Mr  llhind  has  produced,  proves,  that  there 
is  any  such  hint  in  them.  He  has  but  two  argu- 
ments for  that  purpose;  and,  that  I  may  not  wrong 
him,  I  shall  set  them  down  fully  in  his  own  words : 

The   first   runs   thus,  p.  103. — '  I  say,  that  the 

*  Presbyters  mentioned  by  Ignatius,  did  preach  and 
'  administer  the  Sacraments.  Thus,  in  the  epistle 
'  to  the  Smyrn.:  '  Let  that  eucharist  be  looked  upon 
"as  firm  and  just,  which  is  either  offered  by  the 
"  Bishop,  or  by  him  to  whom  the  Bishop  has  given 
«♦  his  consent.'  Again  :  '  It  is  not  lawful,  without  the 
"  Bishop,  neither  to  baptise  nor  to  celebrate  the  Sa- 
"  crament ;  i)ut  whatsoever  he  shall  approve  of,  that 
"  is  also  well  pleasing  to  God  ;'  which  plainly  proves, 
'  that  though  the  Bisliop  was  invested  with  the  chief 
'  power  of  dispensing  these  holy  ordinances,  yet 
'  might  the  Presbyters  perform  them   by  his  allow- 

*  ance,  and  therefore  they  were  not  Elders  accord- 
'  ing  to  the  Presbyterian  fashion  ;  seeing  they  pre- 
'  tend  to  no  such  power  ;  nor  can  their  Parish  Mi- 
«  nister  (who,  they  say,  is  the  true  Ignatian  Bishop) 
«  communicate  the  same  to  them.*     Thus  he. 

Before  I  answer  directly,  I  must  give  a  literal  tran- 
slation of  the  two  passages  produced  by  him  from  the 
original.  *     The  first  runs  thus : — '  Let  that  Eucha- 

*  'Ettilvn  /ii/2ct)x  iv^xpiTTm  iiyua-Oa  «  uto  tov  iTTta-xoTTov  itircc,  n  u  a* 
eturii  iTrirpl^n-  ovk  £|«t;    I«-t«i  x,u^ig  ra  Itck^kouH  an  /3«wT»^8<y,    8T6    iycc 

K 


146 


DEFExXCE  OF  THE 


*  rlst  be  held  firm,  which  is  iinder  tlie  Bishop,  or 
'  to  whom  he  shall  permit.'     The  other   runs  thus  : 

*  It  is  not  lawful,  without  the  Bishop,  either  to  bap- 

*  tise,  or  to  make  a  love  feast.  But  whatever  he  shall 

*  approve,  the  same  is  also  well-pleasing  to  God.'  Now 
I  ask,  1st,  Is  there  in  either  of  these  testimonies,  the 
least  intimation,  that  the  Presbyters  did  preach  I 
No.  Neither  the  word  preaching,  nor  any  thing 
equivalent  to  it,  is  mentioned  in  either  of  them : 
Nor  indeed  any  where  else,  in  these  Epistles,  is 
preaching  ascribed  to  the  Presbyter.  2dly,  Is  there 
the  least  intimation,  in  either  of  these  testimonies, 
that  the  Presbyters  administered  the  Sacraments?  No. 
Presbyters  are  not  so  much  as  named  in  either  of 
them  ;  nor  is  there  the  least  hint  given,  that  either 
baptising,  or  giving  the  Eucharist,  was  more  pecu- 
liar to  the  Presbyters  than  to  any  of  the  laity.  Up- 
on the  whole,  then,  it  does  not  appear  by  these  tes- 
timonies, that  the  Ignatian  Presbyters  could  either 
preach,  or  administer  the  Sacraments. 

I  know  nothing  can  be  reponed  to  this,  unless  it 
be  said,  that  it  ought  to  be  supposed  that  the  Bishop 
would  not  give  his  consent  to  any  to  baptise,  or  to 
make  a  love  feast,  but  to  the  Presbyters.  But  this 
is  a  plain  begging  the  question,  and  is  contrary  to 
what  the  Fatiiers  have  taught  us  :  For,  saith  Ambrose 
or  Flilary,  the  Koman  deacon  who  wrote  the  com- 
mentaries annexed  to  Ambrose's  works  ;*  '  that  tlie 

*  Christian  people  miglit  encrease  and  be  multiplied, 

*  in  the  begimiiiig,  it  was  allowed  to  all  ))ersons,  both 

*  to  preach  tlie  gospel,  and  to  baptise,  and  to  ex- 
'  plain  the  Scriptures  in  the  Church.'  And  particu- 
larly as  to  baptism,  it  is  known  that  it  was  usually 
dispensed  by  lay  persons;  and  Tertulhan  expressly 
asserts  the  lawfulness  of  it,  as  we  shall  hear  when  we 
come  to  his  testimony;  and  the  fore-cited  Ambrose  or 
Hilary  relates  the  practice  of  it,  even  in  the  presence 

*  Ut  ergo  cresceret  Plebs  ei  multiplicaretur,  omnibus  inter 
inltia  conccssum  est  et  evangellzare,  et  baptizare,  et  Scripturas  in 
ecclesia  explanaie.  Ambros^  Vol.  i.  Tom.  3.  p.  '239.  In  Ephcs.  cap» 
ir. 


PIIESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


147 


of  the  apostles.  *  At  first/  saith  he,*  'all  taught,  and 
«  all  baptised,  on  whatever  days  or  times  occasion 
«  offered.     For  Philip  did  not  wait  for  a  time,  or  a 

*  day,  in  which  he  might  baptise  the  eunuch,  neither 

*  did  he  interpose  a  last.     Nor  did   Paul  and  Silas 

*  delay,  but  that  they  instantly  baptised  the  jailor 
«  with  all  his  house.  Neither  had  Peter  deacons, 
«  or  sought  a  day  wherein  to  baptise  Cornelius  with 
«  all  his   house  :  Nor  did  he   himself  baptise  them, 

*  but  commanded  the  brethren  who  came  with  him 

*  from  Joppa  to  do  it.*  Thus  he.  One  then  might 
as  well  say,  that  the  English  midwives  are  Presby- 
ters, because  they  have  at  least  the  connivance  of 
the  Bishop  to  baptise  ;  as  say,  that  these  in  Ignatius 
who  baptised  with  the  Bishop's  consent,  were  Pres- 
byters, when  not  only  deacons  might  do  it,  which 
Mr  llhind  himself  will  not  deny,  but  every  lay  per- 
son too.  And  as  to  the  other  sacrament,  viz.  the 
Eucharist,  there  is  no  mention  in  either  of  the  two 
testimonies  of  consecrating  it,  and  as  for  the  distri- 
bution of  it,  it  is  certain  that  not  only  Deacons,  but 
eveu  lay-persons  used  to  be  employed  about  it.  Thus 
Chrysostom  tells  us,t  '  that  it  was  given   in  charge 

*  to  the  Deacons,  to  keep  notoriously  unworthy  per- 

*  sons  from  the  table,  and  that  the  holy  gifts  should 

*  not  be  distributed  to  them.'  And  by  the  fourth 
council  of  Carthage, t  it  is  allowed,  that  in  case  of 
necessity,  the  Deacon,  the  Presbyter  being  present, 
may,  being  ordered,  give  the  Eucharist  of  the  body- 

*  Piimum  enim  omnes  (locebant,  ot  omnes  baptizabant,  quibus- 
cunque  tliehus  iuisstt  occaslo.  Nee  e'lim  Philipjms  tcmpns  qu£esivit 
aut  tliciii  quo  Kniuiclium  baptizaret,  luqiic  J<junliini  interposuit. 
Neque  Pauliis  et  Silas  tcmpns  distiilerunt  quo  Optionem  Carceiis 
baptizaienl  cum  omnibus  sui*;.  Ncque  Petius  Diaconos  habuit,  aut 
diem  quasivit  quando  Coriielium  cum  omni  Domo  ejus  baptlzavit. 
Nee  ip'^c,  sed  baplizare  jussit  fiatiibus  qui  cum  illo  ierant  atl  Cor- 
neliuni  ab  Joppe.      Ambios.  ubi '■upra. 

f    Homil.  82.  in  Evang.  Mnttli. 

%  Ut  Diacoiuis  pisesente  Piesbytero  Eucliarlstlam  Corporia 
Cliristi  Populo,  si  neecssitas  Cogat,  just>U3  Eroget.  Can.  3S.  Ca- 
I'anza.  Sum.  Concil, 

K  2 


148  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

of  Christ  to  tbe  people.  And  Justin  Martyr  *  tells 
us,  that  it  was  usual  in  his  days,  for  the  Deacons  to 
carry  the  Eucharist  to  the  absents.  But  not  the 
Deacons  only,  but  even  lay-persons  were  sometimes 
thus  employed.  Thus  Eusebius  tells  ust  of  Serapion, 
that  desiring  the  Eucharist  on  his  death-bed,  he  sent 
his  grandchild  to  bring  a  Presbyter  to  administer  it 
to  him.  The  Presbyter  happened  to  be  sick,  and 
was  not  able  to  come  ;  but  he  sent  the  Eucharist 
with  the  boy,  ordering  him  to  administer  it  to  his 
grandfather,  which  accordingly  was  done.  And  who 
knows  not,  that  the  Eucharist  used  to  be  given  to 
infants  after  their  baptism  ?  But  I  very  much  doubt, 
if  there  was  always  a  church  officer  at  the  doing  of 
it.  Plainly,  the  elements  used  to  be  consecrated  by 
the  Bishop,  and  the  people  oft  times  kept  them,  and 
by  his  allowance,  gave  them  to  others.  How  then 
does  it  appear  from  the  testimonies  produced  by  Mr 
Rhind,  that  the  Ignatian  Presbyters  did  either  preach 
or  administrate  the  sacraments,  when  there  is  neither 
mention  in  either  of  them  of  Presbyters  ;  nor,  sup- 
pose there  were,  is  there  any  thing  ascribed  to  them, 
but  what  might  be,  and  w^as  frequently  done  by  Dea- 
cons, yea  by  every  lay  Christian  ?  So  much  for  his 
first  argument. 

His  second  is  in  these  words,  p.  103,  104.     *  But 

*  I  add,  that  the  Presbyters  in  St   Ignatius^s  days, 

*  were  subject  to  the  Bishop  :  This  does  fully  appear 
'  from  the  testimonies  formerly  cited  :  If  then  these 

*  Presbyters  were  such  as  the  modern  ruling  elders,. 
'  either  this  their   subjection   must  relate  to  the  Bi- 

*  shop's  superior   power  in  the  administration  of  sa- 

*  craments  and  ordination,  or  to  the  power  of  juris- 

*  diction  :  Not  the  former,  for  how  can  they  be  ac- 
'  countable  in  these  respects,  when  they  are  not  sup- 
'  posed  to  be  at  all  concerned  in  these  matters  ;  and 

*  to  say  that  this  subjection  relates  to  acts  of  juris- 

*  diction,  is  to  destroy  that  parity  of  power,  of  which 

*  all  Presbyters,  whether  preaching  or  ruling,   are 

*  Apol.  2.  p.  97.  Edit.  Colonlte.  1686. 
f  Hist.  Eccles.  Lib,  vi.  cap.  43.. 


niESBYTEKIAN  GOVERNMENT.  149 

«  equally  possessed,  according  to  the  Presbyterians.' 
Thus  he. 

The  answer  to  which  is  very  easy,  and  therefore 
may  be  very  short.  Through  all  the  Ignatian  Epis- 
tles, there  is  no  subjection  required  from  the  Presby- 
ters to  the  Bishop,  but  what  every  Presbyterian  rul- 
ing elder  will  own,  and  that  too,  agreeably  to  Pres- 
byterian principles,  to  be  his  duty  to  pay  to  the  mi- 
nister. Every  Presbyterian  ruling  elder,  owns  the 
minister  to  be  an  officer  superior  to  himself,  as  hav- 
ing the  key  of  doctrine,  as  well  as  of  discipline, 
whereas  himself  has  that  of  discipline  only.  Every 
Presbyterian  ruling  elder  gives,  though  not  a  nega- 
tive, yet  the  precedency  to  the  minister  in  all  acts  of 
jurisdiction.  In  a  word,  every  Presbyterian  ruling 
elder  is  ready  to  yield  all  reverence  to  the  minister, 
which  is  all  that  is  required  of  the  Ignatian  Presby- 
ter to  the  Bishop.  So  much  for  his  second  argument. 
And  this  is  our  second  defence  against  the  Ignatian 
Epistles,  that  as  to  the  main  of  the  controversy,  they 
contain  nothing  contrary  to  the  Presbyterian  scheme. 
And  I  hope  every  reader  is  satisfied  that  there  is  no 
more  needful  on  this  subject.  Yet  because  Mr  Rhind 
mentions  another  defence,  which  the  Presbyterians 
make  against  them,  viz.  that  these  Epistles  are  either 
spurious  or  corrupted,  though  I  do  not  think  such 
a  defence  needful,  yet  I  homologate  the  same,  and 
justify  my  brethren  in  it.     And  therefore. 

In  the  third  place,  I  assert  that  these  Epistles 
which  go  under  the  name  of  Ignatius,  either  are  not 
genuine,  or  at  least  that  they  are  vitiated  and  interpo- 
lated. For  proving  this,  1  am  not  to  insist  on  what 
the  learned  Stillingfleet  has  suggested,*  that  the 
story  of  transporting  Ignatius  from  Antioch  Avhere 
he  was  condemned,  to  Rome  where  he  suffered,  and 
of  his  many  excursions  by  the  way,  and  of  the  free- 
dom he  got  to  write  these  Epistles,  smells  rank  of  the 
legend ;  seeing  Ignatius  himself  informs  us,  that  he 
was  bound  to  ten  leopards,  that  is  to  say,  to  such  a 

*  Ep.  to  the  Romans,  Sect.  5. 


150  DEFENCE   OF    THE 

band  of  soldiers  ;  who,  though  treated  with  all  man- 
ner of  kindness,  were  the  worse  for  it.  Waving  this, 
I  affirm  that  nothing  Mr  Rhind  has  advanced, 
though  lie  has  taken  very  great  pains  on  this  particu- 
lar, is  in  the  least  sufficient  to  vindicate  tliem. 

He  insists  on  these  six  topics :  I.  That  several 
Pathers  do  mention  these  Epistles,  and  cite  sundry- 
passages  from  them,  which  are  to  be  found  in  those 
now  extant.  II.  That  Calvin,  who  was  a  party,  was 
the  first  who  ever  alleged  such  an  interpolation.  Hi. 
That  at  least  Vossius's  and  Usher's  editions  of  these 
Epistles,  are  the  genuine  issue  of  that  holy  Father. 
IV.  That  such  an  interpolation  was  hardly,  if  at  all, 
practicable.  V.  That  the  alleging  that  these  pas- 
sages which  assert  the  Episcopal  authority  are  inter- 
polations, is  a  mean  begging  of  the  question.  VI. 
That  no  one  can  give  a  reasonable  account,  why  any 
such  interpolation  should  have  been  attempted.  Of 
each  of  these  in  order. 

I.   He  alleges,   p.   95,   96.  S.   Polycarp,  Irenseus, 
Origen,  Eusebius,  Athanasius  and  Theodoret.     '  All 

*  which,'  saith  he, '  with  many  other  authors,  domen- 

*  tion  these  Epistles,  and  cite   sundry  passages  from 

*  them,  which  are  tobe  found  in  them  now  extant.*  To 
which  it  is  answered,  that  this  proves  only  that  Ig- 
natius did  write  epistles,  and  that  some  sentences  of 
them  are  still  preserved.  But  how  will  it  follow 
thence,  either  that  these  epistles  are  genuine,  or  that 
they  are  not  vitiated  ?  Especially  when  we  consider, 
1st,  That  all  the  passages  cited  from  Ignatius  by  the 
ancients  are  not  to  be  found,  even  in  the  best  edi- 
tions of  him  which  we  have.  For  instance,  there  is 
a  passage  cited  by  Jerome,  thus  ;*  *  Ignatius  an  aposto- 

*  lie  man,  and  martyr,  writes  boldly,  '  the  Lord  chused 
"  Apostles  who  were  sinners  above  all  men.*'  Now, 
in  which  of  the  Ignatian  epistles  is  there  any  such 
passage  to  be  found  ?  Dr  Hammond  answers,!  '  that 

*  Ignatius  vJr  Apostolicus  et    Martyr    scribit  Audacter.     Elegit 
Dominus  Apostolos  qui    super    onincs    Homines*    Peccatores   eraut* 
Hierom  Dial.  3.  con.   Pelag. 
-    f  Ans.  to  the  Animadver.  ou  the  Dissert.  Chap.  iii.  Sect,  h 


PRESCYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


151 


*  it  may  well  be  his  saying,  though  it  is  not  found  in 

*  these  epistles :     Just  as  our  Saviour  spake  many 

*  things  which  are  not  written  in  the  gospels.'  But 
this  is  a  mere  whim  ;  for  Jerome  is  not  testifying  a- 
bout  what  Ignatius  spoke,  but  what  he  wrote.  This 
is  a  pretty  good  presumption,  that  the  Epistles  are  at 
least  mutilated.  2dlij,  If  the  ancients'  citing  of  him 
be  an  argument,  is  it  not  very  strange  that  no  one  of 
them  has  cited  these  passages  that  are  insisted  on  in 
favours  of  Episcopacy  ?  Is  it  not  strange  that  his  au- 
thority was  never  insisted  on,  in  the  dispute  with 
Aerius,  where  there  was  so  fair  occasion  for  it  ? 
Would  not  one  be  tempted  from  this,  to  think  that 
such  passages  are.  foisted  in?  '3dlij,  Some  of  these  ex- 
pressions that  the  ancients  cite,  which  are  now  found 
in  these  Epistles,  are  neither  cited  as  from  Ignatius, 
nor  as  from  epistles,  either  of  his  or  any  body  else. 
For  instance,  that  passage  which  Mr  llhind,  p.  95, 
cites  from   Irenaeus,  *  I  am  the  wheat  of  God,   and 

*  shall  be  ground  by  the  teeth  of  wild  beasts,  that  I 
'  may  become  the  bread  of  Jesus  Christ,'  though  it 
is  found  in  Ignatius's  Epistles,  yet  Irenaius  does  not 
say  that  it  was  written,  much  less  that  it  was  written 
in  an  epistle,  least  of  all,  that  it  was  written  in  any 
epistle  from  Ignatius,  but  only  indefinitely,  '  one 
'  of  our  brethren  hath  said,'*  which  Eusebius  under- 
stands of  Ignatius. 

11.     He  alleges,   p.   97,    that  the  Presbyterians 
'  canuot  name  an  author  who  ever  allecjeil  such  an  in- 

*  terpolation  before  Calvin,  whom  all  men  know  to 
'  have  been  a  party.'  And  this,  (he  thinks)  might  be 
allowed  '  a  sulHcient  answer.*  This  sufficient  answer 
of  his,  is  so  gross  an  imposition  upon  people's  un- 
derstanding, that  I  am  even  amazed  he  should  have 
been  so  very  prodigal  of  his  credit.  The  matter 
is  plainly  this.  Calvin  wrote  that  excellent  book  of 
his  Institutions  in  the  year  1536.  Therein  he  has 
occasion  to  defend  the  doctrine  of  the  ever-blessed 
Trinity,  against  which  doctrine  the  Anti-trinitarians 
objected  the  authority  and  testimony    of  Ignatius. 

*  Quemadmodam  quidam  dc  no"<tr!s  dixit,    propter  Marty ilum    in 
Deiim  adjudlcatus  ad  Pollias.     Quoulam  liumentum,  Ac. 


152  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Calvin,  in  answer  thereto,  rejects  *  the  said  pretend- 
ed authority,  and  gives  a  very  bad  character  of  the 
work.     *  As  for  Ignatius,  (saith  he)  let  these  who 

*  attribute  any  thing  to  his  authority,    prove  that 

*  the  Apostles  made  a  law  about  Lent,  and  such 

*  like  corruptions  :     There  is  nothing  more  stink- 

*  ing  than  that  trash,  which  is  published   under  the 

*  name  of  Ignatius.  Whence  the  impudence  of  such 

*  is  the  less  tolerable,  who  furnish  themselves  with 

*  such  forgeries  wherewith  to  impose  on  the  world.' 
Now,  will  the  reader  ask,  did  Calvin  iind  any 
such  thing  in  Ignatius  as  expressions  against  the 
doctrine  of  the  Trinity — a  pretended  Apostolic  law 
for  observing  Lent  and  such  like  corruptions  ?  Yes, 
indeed,  in  the  old  editions,  which  alone  were  known 
in  Calvin's  time,  there  was  a  great  deal  of  such 
stuff,  as  even  Coke,  a  Church  of  England  divine, 
has  noticed.!  Thus,  in  the  Epistle  to  those  of  Tar- 
sus, it  is  mentioned  as  one  of  the  heresies  disse- 
minated by  Satan,  that  Christ  was  God  over  all. 
And  in  the  Epistle  to  the  Philippians,  it  is  denied 
that  the  word  which  was  made  flesh  dwelt  in  man. 
And  it  is  asserted,  that  *  if  any  fast  on  the  Sabbath 
'  day,  be  is  a  murderer  of  Christ ;  and  that  if  any 
'  keep  Easter  with  the  Jews,  he  is  partaker  with 

*  those  who  slew  the  Lord  and  his  Apostles.'  And  in 
the  Epistle  to  the  Antiochians,  wives  are  discharged 
to  call  their  husbands  by  their  own  proper  name.  In 
a  vv'ord,  the  divines  of  the  Church  of  Rome  cited 
these  epistles  to  prove  that  the  blessed  Virgin  Ma- 
ry v/as  void  of  all  sin.  I  hope  it  is  plain,  that  as 
some  of  these  things  were  great  fooleries,  so  others 
of  them  were  gross  heresies.  And  must  then  Cal- 
vin be  traduced  as  a  party- man  because  he  would 
not   sacrifice  the  fundamental  doctrines  of  Chris- 

*  Ignatium  quod  obtendunt,  si  velint  quicquam  habere  momen- 
ti,  probent  Apostolos  legem  tulisse  de  Quadragessima  et  simili- 
bus  corruptelis  :  Nihil  Neeuiis  illis  quae  sub  Ignatii  nomine  e- 
ditse  sunt,  putidius.  Quo  minus  tolerabilis  est  eorum  inpudentia 
ui  talibus  larvis  ad  fallendum  se  in>truunt.  Calvin,  Instit. 
ib.  T.  Cap.  xiii.  Sect>  29. 
■f  Ccnsura.  quorundam  Script,  vet. 


I 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  153 

tianity  to  the  reputation  of  Ignatius's  Epistles  ?  But 
let  us  here  Dr  Wake,  Bishop  of  Lincoln  :*  '  Be- 
'  fore  I  enter  upon  that  account  which  it  will  be 

*  fitting  for  me  to  give  of  the  episles  of  St  Ignatius, 

*  it  will  be  necessary  for  me  to  observe,  that  there 

*  havebeen  considerable  differences  in  the  editions  of 
'  the  Epistles  of  this  holy  man,  no  less  than  in  the 

*  judgment  of  our  latter  critics  concerning   them. 

*  To  pass  by  the  first,  and  most  imperfect  of  them, 

*  the  best  that  for  a  long  time  was  extant,  contained 

*  not  only  a  great  number  of  epistles'^falsely  ascribed 

*  to  this  author,  but  even  those  that  were  genuine 

*  so  altered  and  corrupted,  that  it  was  hard  to  find 

*  out  the  true  Ignatius  in  them.  The  first  that  be- 
«  gan  to  remedy  this  confusion,  and  to  restore  this 
'  great  writer  to  his  primitive   simplicity,   was  our 

*  most  reverend  and  learned  Archbishop  Usher,  in 
^  his  edition  of  them  at  Oxford,  anno  1644.'  Thus 
Dr  Wake.  Now,  if  by  the  judgment  of  the  most 
learned  of  the  Episcopalians,  there  was  not  so  much 
as  any  tolerable  copy  of  the  Ignatian  epistles  ex- 
tant till  the  year  1644,  that  is,  108  years  after  Calvin 
had  excepted  against  them  ;  who,  that  has  not  thrown 
ofl^'all  modesty,  would  talk  at  Mr  Rhind*s  rate,  or 
would  seek  to  blast  the  fame  of  that  great  man, 
Calvin,  in  a  matter  wherein  the  Episcopalians  them- 
selves have  justified  him  ;  or  would  represent  him 
as  a  party  man,  when  he  was  defending  the  common 
cause  of  Christianity.  But  it  seems  Ignatius's  Epis- 
tles must  stand,  though  the  doctrine  of  the  Trinity 
and  the  Divinity  of  our  blessed  Saviour  should  sink. 
Dear  Episcopacy,  what  art  thou  not  worth  !  Who 
would  not  sell  even  his  religion  to  purchase  thee, 
without  which  all  religion  is  nothing ! 

III.  He  adds,  p.  97,  *  That  however  the  name  of 

*  the  holy  man  Ignatius  may  have  been  abused  by  ig- 

*  norant  or  designing  men,  who  have  fathered  upon 

*  him  their  own  spurious  and  interpolated  work,  yet 
'  the  epistles  of  Usher's  and  Vossius's  edition  are 

*  The  Genuine  Epistles  of  the  Apostolical  Fathers,  2(1  edit. 
p.  30. 

2 


154  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*■  his  genuine  issue.'  But  does  not  Dr  Wake  him- 
self own,*    'that  no  one  that  reads  (even  these  edi- 

*  tions  of)    them  witli   any  care  or  judgment,  can 

*  make  any  doubt  of  it,  but  tliat  letters  or  words 
'  have  been  mistaken,  and  perhaps  even  pieces  of 

*  some  sentences,  too,  corrupted.*  And  does  not 
every  one  know  what  a  great  alteration  tiie  mistake 
of  one  letter  sometimes  will  make  ?  I  shall  give 
one  sii^nal  instance  of  this,  wliich  is  related  bv  Dr 
Wake.t  In  the  acts  of  the  martyrdom  of  St  Poly- 
carp,  as  set  out  from  the  Barroccian  manuscript  by 
Archbishop  Usher,  there  is  this  passage  :  '  That  the 

*  souldier  or  officer  having  struck   his  launce  into 

*  the  side  of  the  saint,  there  came  forth   a  pigeon, 

*  together  with  a  great  quantity  of  blood.'  Here  is 
a  fair  plump  miracle.  A  pigeon  coming  out  of  a 
man's  side  being  a  very  curious  sight;  but  now, 
by  the  alteration  of  one  single  letter  in  the  origi- 
nal,t  it  dwindles  into  no  miracle  at  all ;  and  the 
passage  imports  only  that  there  came  out  of  his  left 
side  a  great  quantity  of  blood ;  the  Greek  word 
which  signihes  the  left,  and  that  which  signifies  a 
pigeon,  being  near  in  sound  to  one  another.  Jf  the 
mistake  of  one  letter  can  make  such  a  change,  what 
may  the  mistake  of  a  word  do  ?  And  what  may  the 
corruption  of  a  piece  of  a  sentence  do?  But  Mr 
llhind  is  a  writer  of  courage,  who  sticks  at  nothing. 

IV.  He  alleges,  p.  99,  '  That  such  an  interpola- 
.*  tion  was  hardly,  if  at  all,  practicable.'  But  pray, 
why  not  practicable  ?  For,  1st,  Did  Mr  Rhind 
never  hear  of  the  ignorance  or  knavery  of  tran- 
scribers ?  Does  he  not  know  that  the  works  of  the 
Fathers  were  a  long  time  in  the  hands  of  monks,  or 
others  of  the  like  stamp,  who,  with  all  their  reli- 
gion, were  yet  so  familiar,  and  used  such  freedoms 
witli  the  Fathers,  as  not  only  to  pare  their  nails,  that 
they  might  not  be  scratched  by  them,  but  even   to 

•   Ul)i  Kiipra,  p.  I    Ubi  supra,  p.  58.  5Q. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.        155 

alter  their  habit  and  dres'?,  to  fit  them  to  the  modes  of 
their  own  times,  and  make  them  fashionable  ?*  Even 
the  Vossian  Greek  manuscript  is  not  judged  to  be 
above  1  lOO  years  okl,  that  is,  about  JOOy ears  hiterthan 
tlie  times  of  Ignatius;  and  how  corrupt  the  church 
was  about  the  600th  year  of  God  needs  not  be  told. 
2d,  Is  it  not  a  very  good  argument  that  the  Ignatiaii 
Epistles  miglit  be  interpolated,  when  it  is  plain  be- 
yond contradiction,  that  they  actually  were  interpo- 
Lited  ?  What  security  had  Bishop  Usher's  or  Isaac 
Vossius's  copies  against  the  possibility  of  interpola- 
tion, any  more  than  other  co}»ies  ?  Why,  saith  Mr 
Ilhind,  p.  98,    '  considering  the  great  simplicity  of 

*  these   pious  times,  it  is   scarce   credible  that  the 

*  greatest  ornaments  of  the  Christian  Church,  after 
'  the  apostles,  were  wicked  enough  to  be  guilty  of 
'  so  base  a  fraud,  or  weak  enough  to  be  imposed  on 
«  by  those  who  might  be  thus  wicked.*  Is  not  this 
a  powerful  orator,  who  will  needs  harangue  people 
out  of  matter  of  fact  ?  Let  the  great  ornaments  of 
the  church  be  as  far  from  being  either  wicked  or 
weak  as  Mr  Ilhind  pleases,  yet  that  some  persons 
were  so  wicked  as  to  be  guilty  of  such  a  fraud,  and 
others  so  weak  as  to  be  imposed  on  by  it,  is  so  far 
from  beinijc  incredible,  tluit  it  is  confessed  on  all 
hands,  that  not  only  that,  but  even  twenty  other 
thinirs  of  the  like  nature  have  been  done.  And  all 
Mr  Rhind's  reasonings  against  the  possibility  or 
practicableness  of  interpolating  Ignatius's  Epibtles, 
labour  under  this  one  small  absurdity,  that  it'  they 
prove  any  thing,  they  will  prove  that  no  false  writ- 
ing could  have  been  palmed  on  the  church,  nor  any 
genuine  one  corrupted.  And  whence,  then,  came 
so  many  s})urious  ])ieces,  such  as  Abgarus's  Letter  to 
our  blessed^aviour,  and  our  Saviour's  Answer  to  him; 
which  Eusebius  tells  us,  with  as  much  confidence  as 
he  does  the  story  of  the  Jgnatian  Epistles,  he  had 
faithfully  translated   out  of  the  Syriac  language,  as 

+  Sherlock's  Preservative   against   Popery.    Part.  I.   Chap.  il. 
Sect.  3.  p.  ?♦. 


156  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

he  found  tliem  in  the  archives  of  Edessa  ?  Whence 
came  St  Paul's  epistles  to  the  Laodiceans  ?  Whence 
came  the  letters  that  passed  betwixt  Seneca  and 
him  ?  Whence  came  St  Peter's,  St  Mark's,  St  Mat- 
thew's, and  St  James's  liturgies,  which  Mr  Rhind* 
makes  an  argument  of,  as  being  of  considerable  an- 
tiquity, thougli  Dr  Wake  t,  twenty  years  ago,  de- 
clared, that  the  learned  world  seemed  to  be  univer- 
sally agreed  about  the  falsity  of  them.  Not  to 
speak  of  many  others  mentioned  by  Hottinger,  Coke, 
Dupin,  and  Dr  Wake,  whence  came  the  Aposto- 
lical Constitutions,  which  Mr  Whiston,  an  advo- 
cate for  Episcopacy,  asserts  t  to  be  the  most  sacred 
of  the  canonical  books  of  the  New  Testament  ?  Is 
there  any  age  can  be  named  upon  which  more  false 
pieces  were  fathered  than  the  first  and  second  ?  And 
what  charm,  then,  was  there  in  Ignatius's  name,  that 
none  should  be  fathered  on  him  ?  Or  w^hy  should  we 
believe  there  were  not,  when  the  contrary  is  manifest 
and  confessed  by  all  the  world  ?  For  let  us  take  a 
short  view  of  them  ? 

The  Ignatian  Epistles,  says  Coke,§  a  Church  of 
England  divine,  were  first  published  at  Strasburg, 
anno  1502.  And  though  they  are  now  only  seven, 
yet,  then,  they  were  eleven  in  number.  In  process 
of  time,  it  seems  they  begot  another  among  them  ; 
for  when,  in  the  year  1562,  they  were  published,  in 
Greek  and  Latin,  at  Paris,  they  were  found  to  be 
twelve.  At  length,  as  if  the  blessing,  '  Be  fruitful 
*  and  multiply,'  had  been  pronounced  on  them,  they 
encreased  to  the  number  of  fifteen,  with  a  letter,  also, 
annexed  from  the  Virgin  Mary  to  Ignatius.  Nor 
did  they  alter  in  number  only,  but  in  bulk  too  ;  for, 
in  some  editions,  some  of  the  epistles  were  twice  as 
large  as  in  others.  Notv;ithstanding  all  this  variety, 
yet  some  of  the  Church  of  Rome,  Canisius  by  name, 
insulted  the  world,  as  our  Episcopal  friends  do  us 
now,  with  a  great  deal  of  scorn,  because  they  doubt- 

*  SeiTTion  on  Liturgy,  p.  l-i.         f  Ubi  supra,  first  edit.  p.  145. 
I^  Essay  upon  the  Apostolical  Constitutions. 
§   Centura  (^uorunilara.  Script.  Vet  p.  56. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  157 

ed  of  any  of  these  epistles.  But  the  world  is  never 
all  at  once,  to  be  bullied  out  of  their  senses.  Mas- 
tra3us,  a  Parisian  doctor,  published  a  new  edition  of 
them,  and,  without  scruple,  discarded  four  of  them 
as  apocryphal,  viz.  two  to  St  John  the  Evangelist, 
one  to  the  Virgin  Mary,  and  her  letter  to  him. 
Yet,  even  so,  the  remaining  twelve  did  not  please 
learned  men.  Archbishop  Usher  has  asserted,  and 
proves,*  that  six  of  them  were  spurious,  six  of  them 
mixed,  and  so  none  of  them  sincere  and  genuine. 
Vedclius,  in  the  year  1623,  pubHshed  an  edition  of 
the  Ignatian  Epistles,  at  Geneva;  but  he  went  so 
near  to  work,  and  castigated  them  so  severely,  that 
the  Church  of  England  divines  were  not  pleased 
with  him,t  as,  indeed,  they  seldom  are  with  any 
thing  that  comes  from  that  quarter,  or  almost  any 
other  except  their  own.  Hitherto,  then,  the  Igna- 
tian Epistles  made  but  a  sorry  figure  with  all  who 
were  not  willing  to  sacrifice  their  sense  to  their  zeal. 
At  length  Archbishop  Usher  fell  upon  tv/o  copies  of 
them,  one  in  Cambridge,  another  in  Bishop  Mon- 
tague's library  ;  yet  these  were  not  originals  but 
Latin  translations,  and  these,  too,  very  barbarous. 
But  then,  to  supply  this  defect,  Isaac  Vossius  found, 
in  the  Medicean  Library,  a  Greek  manuscript  of 
them,  and  published  it  at  Amsterdam,  1 646.  Yet, 
even  after  all  this,  the  Latin  editions  are  thought  to 
be  the  best,  by  learned  men  ;  and  Archbishop  Usher 
doubts  whether  the  seventh  Epistle,  viz.  that  to 
Polycarp,  be  genuine  or  not.  Nay,  he  was  so  ill 
satisfied  with  it  that  he  would  not  publish  it  with  the 
rest-  '  Nor,'  says  Dr  Wake,1:  '  does  Isaac  Vossius 
*  himself  deny  but  that  there  are  some  things  in  it 
'  that  may  seem  to  render  it  suspicious.'  Besides, 
the  Epistle  to  the  Romans  was  not  found  in  the 
Medicean  or  Florentine  manuscript ;  but  made  up, 
in  some  measure,  from  the  Latin  versions,  by  the 
conjectures  of  learned  men,  as  the  same  Dr  Wake 

*  Dissert,  de  Ep.  Ign,  proleg. 

•}•   Montac.  appar.  L.  v.  Sec,  46-  p.  19. 

j  Ubi  supra,  2d  edit.  p.  40. 


158  D£FENCK    OF    THE 

takes  notice.*  And  even  as  to  the  whole  of  the 
Epistles,  though  the  Doctor  translated  from  the  text 
of  Vossius,  yet  he  owns,  that  where  a  place  was  ma- 
nifestly imperfect,  he  has,  sometimes,  taken  the 
liberty  to  express  his  own  conjectures.  And,  now, 
after  all,  let  any  man,  who  can,  doubt  of  the  possi- 
bility or  practicableness  of  these  Epistles  havinijj  been 
interpolated.     But,  adds  Mr  Rhind,  p.  98,   *  if  that 

*  should  be  granted,  I  see  not  how  the  Presbyterians 

*  can  answer  the  enemies  of  our  religion,  who  com- 

*  plain  that  the  like  freedom  may  have  been  used 

*  with  the  Bible,  in  some  fundamental  points,  much 

*  about  the  same  time.'  Pray,  good  Mr  Ilhind, 
were  the  Ignatian  Epistles  as  universally  spread  as 
the  Bible  was?  Or  was  it  of  as  great  importance  to 
keep  them  uncorrupted  as  the  Scriptures?  I  do  not 
think  but  either  of  these  thoughts,  much  more  both 
jointly,  besides  what  else  might  be  added,  would, 
answer  the  enemies  of  our  religion.  But,  to  com- 
plete the  answer,  does  not  Mr  Rhind  know  that 
there  were  false  gospels  obtruded  uj)on  the  world — 
obtruded,  too,  in  Ignatius's  own  days  ?  Does  he 
not  know  that  Ignatius  himself  m.istook  the  spurious 
gospel  for  the  true  one  ?  Does  he  not  know  that 
Mr  Dodwell  himself  has  owned  that  Ignatius  was 
thus  mistaken  ?    '  The  holy  Martyr/  saith  he,t  '  did 

*  not  cautiously  enough  distinguish  betwixt  the  ge-* 

*  nuine  Gospel  of  St  Matthew  and  the  interpolated 
'  one  which  the   Ebionite  heretics,   now   raging  in 

*  Asia,  used.'  Now,  if  filse  gospels  could  be  mint- 
ed in  those  days,  could  not  false  Ignatian  Epistles- 
be  so  too  ?  If  so  great  an  ornament  of  the  Church 
as  Ignatius  himself  could  be  imposed  on  by  them,, 
why  might  not  others,  as  great  ornaments,  be  impos-f 

*  Ubi  supra,  2<1  edit.  p.  41. 

•f  Paraint's,  Sec.  23,  p.  9S.  Ncmpe  in  Aoxirxg,  Haereticos  lo- 
ctim  proUilerat.  Ignatius  ex.  Evangelio  S,  Mattliai,  quo  ilegavisse 
dicebatur  Christus  se  DcEirionium  esse  incorporeuni.  Non  satis 
caute  distiuxit  S.  Martyr  iiTtcr  S.  Mattliai  Evanirclium  sincerum, 
et  quale  usurpabant  Ebionael  jam  in  Asia  grassantes  interpolatum. 
Hie  ergo  negant  HEerctici,  et  quidtm  recte,  verba  ilia  in  Evangeli* 
fuisse  quale  prodiit  a  S.  Mattliao. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  159 

ed  on  by  false  or  interpolated  pieces  fathered  on  • 
him  ? 

V.  But  Mr  Rhind,  p.  98,  *  would  know,  of  his 

*  adversaries,  what   tliese   interpolations    are.      He 

*  hopes  they  will  not  allege  that  there  are  any  favour- 

*  ing  the  then  or  after  heresies  ;  and  to  say  that 

*  these   passages,    which    assert   the    distinction   of 

*  Ecclesiastical  orders  and  the  Episcopal  authority, 

*  are  of  this  kind,  is  a  mean  begging  of  the  question  ; 

*  and  so  much  the  meaner  still,  that  this  can  be 
'  proven  from  other  monuments,  of  that  age,  though 
'  Ignatius  had  never  written  an  epistle.*  For  an- 
swer, in  the  1 5/ place.  Has  he  read  the  authors  on 
this  controversy,  with  a  scrupulous  exactness,  and 
knows  nothing  of  what  these  interpolations  are  ? 
Yv'hy,  then,  I  recommend  him  to  Coke,  Daiiie,  Sal- 
masius,  Blondel,  Owen,  the  Jus  Divinum  Ministerii 
Evangelici,  L'Arroque,  Jameson,  Scultet,  Rivet: 
For  why  should  1  repeat  what  has  been  so  often  in- 
sisted on  ?  After  all  that  Hammond,  Pearson, 
Beveridge,  Wake,  or  Dupin  have  advanced,  in  vin- 
dication of  these  Epistles,  1  am  as  well  satisfied  as 
1  can  be  ot"  any  thing,  that  they  are  either  counterfeit 
or  corrupted,  'i^/y,  It  is  true  such  interpolations 
as  favoured  the  then  or  after  heresies  are  pretty  well 
weeded  out  of  the  new  editions  ;  but  I  have  already 
shewn  what  gross  heresies  were  in  the  old  ones. 
Now,  I  ask  Mr  Rhind,  how  they  could  creep  in 
when  the  genuine  E{)istles  were  scattered  through 
Rome,  Antioch,  and  several  cities  of  Greece?  The 
de})ositories,  themselves,  of  this  sacred  treasure 
could  have  confrontetl  these  interpolated  pieces 
with  the  genuine  Epistles.  They  themselves  could 
not  be  the  criminals  :  And  persons  removed  at  such 
a  distance  could  not  have  universally  conspired  to- 
wards such  a  deceit ;  or,  if  people  had  been  inclin- 
ed, they  would  rather  have  made  bold  with  the 
Bible  than  any  inferior  authority.  'J  his  is  certainly 
good  reasoning,  because  it  is  Mr  Rhind's,  p.  1)9. 
And  yet,  how  impossible  soever  it  was  that  such  in- 
terpolations should  creep  in,  all  the  world  knows, 


160  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

and  confesses,  that  they  did  creep  in.  3dhj,  Why 
does  Mr  Rliind  say,  that  it  is  a  begging  of  the  ques- 
tion to  allege  that  the  expressions  about  Episcopacy 
are  interpolations  ?  It  is  so  far  frow  begging,  that 
it  is  a  proving  of  the  point  directly.  For,  when  the 
pretended  Ignatius,  extravagantly,  ascribes  that  to 
his  Bishops,  (whether  they  be  supposed  parochial  or 
diocesan,  it  alters  not  the  case),  which  the  Apostles 
never  assumed  to  themselves,  it  is  a  plain  evidence 
that  the  author  of  such  expressions  was  a  man  of  no 
judgment  or  conscience — consequently  was  not  the 
holy  martyr  Ignatius.  Is  not  this  the  very  reason 
why  the  Church  of  England  Divines,  themselves, 
have  rejected  the  old  editions  of  these  Epistles,  be- 
cause they  are  so  very  immoderate  in  their  exalta- 
tion of  the  Bishop  ?  For  instance,  when  in  the 
Epistle  to  the  Trallians,  in  the  old  editions,  the 
Bishop  is  said  to  be  '  above  all  principality  and 
'  power,  and  more  excellent  than  all,  as  far  as  it  is 

*  possible  for  man  to  excel.'  And  when,  in  the 
Epistle  to  the  Philadelphians,  all,  of  what  sort  so- 
ever, not  only  presbyters,  deacons,  and  the  whole 
clergy,  but  all  the  people,  soldiers,  princes,  Caesar 
hiinself,  are  enjoined  to  perform  obedience  to  the 
Bishop.  And  when,  in  the  Epistle  to  the  Smyrneans, 
the  Bishop  is  placed  betwixt  God  and  the  king,  and 
that  by  way  of  correction  of  the  words  of  Scripture, 

*  My  son  fear  God  (the  Bishop)  and  the  king,' 
does  not  Dr  Hammond,  himself,*  call  these  immo- 
derate expressions  ?  Does  he  not  pronounce  the 
doctrine  contained  in  them  to  be  rebellious,  extra- 
vagant, and  senseless  ?  Does  he  not  conclude  that 
they  were  inserted  by  some  impostor  ?  And,  is  there 
not  as  good  reason  why  we  should  except  against 
the  new  editions,  when  there  is  in  them  a  great  deal 
of  such  extravagant  stuff  yet  unpurged  out?  Can 
any  one  read  even  the  Usherian  and  Vossian  edii-ions 
and  not  observe  such  a  turgid,  affected,  hyperbolical 
style  as  would  never,  probably,  have  been  used  by 

•  Ans.  to  the  Anlmadver.  on  the  Dissert.  Chap.  iil.  Sec.  3. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  161 

one  that  had  heard  and  conversed  with  the 
Apostles,  the  character  of  whose  writings  was  sim- 
phcity  :  Is  it  possible  one  of  Ignatius's  spirit  and 
character  could  have  made  that  boast,*  that  he  was 

*  able  to  know  things  heavenly,  the  orders  of  an- 
'  gels,  tiieir  constitutions,  principalities,   things  vi- 

*  sible  and  invisible?'  It  is  true  Dr  Hammond t  has 
criticised,  and  Dr  Wake  translated  that  passage  to 
a  contrary  sense  ;  as  if  he  had  said,  '  I  am  not  able 

*  to  know  things  heavenly' .  But  both  these  doc- 
tors have  done  despite  to  the  context,  as  well  as 
forced  the  words ;  for  the  very  paragraph,  in  which 
the  passage  is,  begins  thus,  even  according  to  Dr 
Wake's  translation,  in  his  second  edition  : — '  Am  I 

'  not  able  to  write  to  you  of  heavenly  things  ?     But    _ 

*  I  fear  lest  I  should  harm  you,  who  are  yet  but 

*  babes  in  Christ,  (excuse  me  this  care) ;  and  lest, 
'  perchance,    being  not  able  to  receive   them,  ye 

*  should  be  choked  with  them,'  Could  so  wise  and 
holy  a  man  have  dropped  such  unguarded  assertions 
as  tliese,  '  Whatsoever  the  Bishop  approves  is  ac- 
'  ceptable  to  God.     My  soul  for  such  as  obey  the 

*  Bishop,  presbyters,  and  deacons.* — Is  not  the  very 
foundation  of  Popery,  viz.  an  implicit  faith,  wa^apt 
lip  in  these  expressions  ?  4//^///,  Why  did  Mr  Rhind 
say  that  the  Episco})al  authority  can  be  proven  from 
other  monuments  of  that  age  ?  Where  are  these 
monuments  ?  Why  did  he  not  produce  them,  or,  at 
least,  name  them  ?  Had  Mr  Rhind  considered  that 
things  were  not  to  be  taken  upon  his  mere  assertion, 
I  am  sure  he  had  found  cause  to  make  his  book  at 
least  a  hundred  times  bigger  than  it  is,  or  to  leave 
out  five  hundred  things  he  has  put  into  it.     Polycarp 

was  the   most   contemporary  writer  with    Ignatius  / 

that  can  be  named.     But  though  he  prescribes  dea-  J 

cons  and  presbyters  their  duty,  yet  he  does  not  so  ^ 

much  as  once  name  Bishops,  or  any  thing  equiva- 
lent to  them  above  the  degree  of  presbyters  j  but 

*  Ep,  to  flie  Trail.  Sect.  5. 
f  Viiul.  of  the  Diiscit.  Chap.  iii.  Sect.  3. 
L 


162  DErEXCE  OF  THE 

plainly  supposes  that  tliere  were  then  no  other  orders 
in  the  Church  but  those  of  priests  and  deacons. 
'  Wherefore  ye   must  needs  abstain  from  all  these 

*  things  ;  being  subject  to  ihe  priests  and  deacons, 

*  as  unto  God  and  Christ.'  * 

VI.  Mr  Rhind  asks  further,  page    TOO,  *  Why 
«  any  such  interpolation  should  have  been  attempt- 

*  ed.     For  if  the  testimonies  in  these  epistles  that 

*  favour  the   Episcopal  authority  are   not  agreeable 

*  to  the  fliith  and  practice  of  the  Ignatian  age  ;  then 

*  many  living  about  the  time  of  the  interpolation 

*  might  have  been  sensible  of  this.     And  as  it  was^ 

*  next  to  impossible  to   deceive  such   by  spurious 

*  epistles,  so  it  is  highly  improbable  that  they  would 

*  suffer  others  to  be  deceived  :*  To  this  purpose  he. 
But  this  is  the  very  same  thing  he  has  said  so  often 
over,  and  which  I  have  so  largely  exposed.  It  is 
beyond  contradiction,  and  is  confessed  on  all  hands, 
that  there  were  interpolations  made,  and  that  too 
in  the  matter  of  Episcopacy,  whereof  I  just  now 
give  instances.  This  being  clear,  where  is  the  ne- 
cessity of  giving  eiiher  the  how  or  the  wiiy  of  such 
interpolations  ?  Let  Mr  Rhind,  or  any  of  his  bre- 
thren, give  us  the  how  or  the  why,  these  extravagant 
expressions  in  the  matter  of  Episcopacy,  whi(.'h  I 
have  just  now  instanced,  and  which  are  confessed 
to  be  interpolations,  were  foisted  into  the  Igna- 
tian epistles ;  and  I  here  promise  to  give  him  the 
how  or  the  why  of  all  the  rest  which  he  thinks 
do  make  for  his  purpose.  So  much  then  for  Mr 
Rhind's  vindication  of  the  Ignatian  Epistles. 

To  conclude  it,  he  refers  his  readers,  page  107, 
if  '  any  of  them  are  not  yet  fully  satisfied,  to  the  in- 
«  comparable  Dr  Pearson's,  and  the  learned  Dupin's 

*  performances  on  that  head.'  And  I  refer  my  read- 
er to  the  authors  whom  I  have  already  cited.  It  is 
true  the  greatest  men  of  the  Church  of  England 
have  made  their  utmost  efforts  in  behalf  of  these  Ig- 
natian Epistles  :  but  it  is  as  true  they  have  been  ta- 

*  Ep.  to  the  Philip.  Sec  5,  5. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT. 


163 


ken  up  by  as  great  men  as  themselves.  It  is  true 
likewise,  the  Church  of  England  divines  got  the  last 
word  :  but  it  is  as  true,  it  was  not  because  they  won 
it,  but  because  they  begged  it,  and  owed  their  keep- 
ing the  field,  not  to  the  strength  of  their  reasons, 
but  to  the  earnestness  of  their  importunity,  as  ap- 
pears from  Monsieur  L'Arroque's  Life,  prefixed  to 
his  Adversaria  Sacra,  from  Walker's  translation  of 
L'Arroque's  History  of  the  Eucharist,  and  from 
the  author  of  the  Eulogium  on  Monsieur  L'Arroque 
in  the  NouveUes  de  RepubUque  de  Lettres.  They 
have  been  told  of  this  before,*  but  it  was  needful 
to  tell  them  over  again,  because  they  sometimes  af- 
fect to  be  dull  of  hearing.     But  enough  of  Ignatius. 

CLEMENS  ROMANUS. 

The  next  testimony  he  produces,  is  from  Cle- 
mens Bishop  of  Rome,  in  his  first  epistle  to  the  Co- 
rinthians, Sect.  40.  in  which  the  argumentative 
words  are,  '  For  the  Chief  Priest  has  his  proper  ser- 
'  vices,  and  to  the  priests  their  proper  place  is  ap- 

*  pointed  ;  and  to  the   Levites  appertain  their  pro- 

*  per  ministers ;  and  the  lay-man  is  confined  with- 

*  in  the  bounds  of  what  is  commanded  to  lay-men.* 
From  which  he  infers,  p.  109,  *  that  to  the  Bishop, 
'  Presbyters,  and  Deacons  in  the  Christian  Church, 

*  such  a  distinction  of  offices  does  belong,  as  for- 

*  merly  obtained  among  the  High  Priests  and  Le- 

*  vites,  under  the  Jewish    dispensation ;    which   is 

*  further  confirmed  by  the  authority  of  St  Jerome, 

*  (that  pretended  patron  of  parity),  who  says,  what 
'  Aaron  and  his  sons  were,  that  we  know  the  Bishops 
'  and  Presbyters  are.*  Thus  Mr  llhind.  Now  let 
us  examine  all  this. 

In  the  Jirst  place,  was  Clemens  Bishop  of  Rome 
when   he  wrote  this  epistle  ?  Hear  Dr  Wake  :t  *  I 

*  conclude  then,'  saith  he,  '  that  this  epistle    was 

*  written  shortly  after  the  persecution  under  Nero. 

*  between  the  G4.th   and  70th  year  of  Christ :  and 

*  Jameson'^  N;ii,  Qticrcl.      Bovsc,  Fojicstcr. 
f   Ui)i  kupia,  IsL  ctlil.  p.  ."i. 

L  '2 


164  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

'  that,  as  the  learned  defender  of  this  period  sup- 

*  poses,  in  the  vacancy  of  the  see  of  Home,  before 
'  the  promotion   of  St  Clement  to  the  government 

*  of  it.'  Thus  he.  Plainly,  this  epistle  was  written 
at  least  forty-two  years  before  Episcopacy  was  insti- 
tuted, by  Mr  DodwelPs  account,  and  before  there 
was  any  such  thing  as  a  bishop  in  the  world,  except 
James,  Bishop  of  Jerusalem,  who  was  in  the  place 
of  universal  Pope.  This,  I  hope,  is  more  than  suf- 
ficient to  take  off  Clement's  testimony  :  for  how 
could  he  speak  of  a  thing  which  was  not  yet  in  be- 
ing ?  Yet,  lest  Mr  Rhind  should  complain  of  ne- 
glect, 

In  the  second  place,  I  ask,  does  that  passage, 
which  he  has  cited  from  Clemens,  in  the  least  tend 
to  prove  that  there  were  then  three  distinct  orders 
of  Bishops,  Presbyters,  and  Deacons  in  the  Chris- 
tian Church  ?  No.  He  uses  it  only  by  way  of  ge- 
neral accommodation,  that  the  Christians  at  Corinth 
should  be  subject  to  their  spiritual  guides,  as  the 
Jews,  whose  polity  was  yet  standing,  were  to  their's. 
But  it  never  entered  into  his  thoughts  to  run  a  pa- 
rallel betwixt  the  officers  in  the  one  and  the  other 
polity.  And  Mr  Rhind  might  as  well  have  proved 
that  the  officers  in  the  Christian  Church  corresponded 
to  those  in  the  Roman  army,  because  the  same  Cle- 
ment says.  Sect.  37.  '  Let  us  consider  the  soldiers 
'  who  obey  their  leaders  in  war,  how  orderly,  rea- 

*  dily,  and  with   all  subjection,  they  execute  their 

*  orders.  All  are  not  Praetors,  nor  Chilliarchs,  nor 
'  Centurions,  nor  Commanders  of  Fifty.     Every  one 

*  performs,  in  his  order  and  station,  what  is   com- 

*  manded  by  the  king  and  the  leaders.'  Plainly, 
one  needs  no  more  to  convince  him  that  Episcopacy 
did  not  obtain  in  that  time,  but  to  read  Clement's 
epistle.  The  occasion  and  subject  of  it  is  this  :  The 
people  of  Corinth  had  raised  a  sedition  against  their 
Presbyters,  and  would  not  be  regulated  by  them. 
Clement  wrote  his  epistle  on  purpose  to  compesce 
that  sedition.  '  They  are  shameful,  yea,  very  shame- 

*  ful  things,  beloved,'  saith  he,  Sect.  47.  *  to  be  heard^ 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  165 

'  that  the  most  firm  and  ancient  church  of  the  Co- 

*  rinthians  should,  by  (or  for  the  sake  of)  one  or 

*  two  persons,  rise  up  in  sedition  against  the  pres- 

*  byters.'  Does  he  ever  recommend  it  to  them  to 
refer  their  quarrel  to  the  bishop  ?  Not  once.  What 
could  be  the  reason  of  this  ?  had  he  been  absent, 
Clement  might  have  entreated  them  to  wait  his  re- 
turn. Had  he  been  dead,  he  might  have  desired 
them  to  keep  quiet  till  there  were  a  new  one  cho- 
sen. Yet  Clement  advises  to  neither  of  these,  no, 
not  by  a  hint.  Does  he  acknowledge  any  more  than 
two  orders  of  officers  in  the  church.  Bishops  and 
Deacons  ?  No.    *  The  Apostles,'  saith  he,  Sect.  42, 

*  preaching  through  countries  and  cities,  constitut- 

*  ed  their  first  fruits,  having  proved  them  by  the 

*  spirit,    for   Bishops   and   Deacons   of  those   that 

*  should  afterwards  believe.'  No  mention  of  Pres- 
byters here.  Did  he  not  positively  own  that  these 
Bishops  were  no  other  than  Presbyters  ?  Yes.    '  For 

*  it  would  be  our  no  small  sin,'  saith  he.  Sect.  44, 

*  should  we  cast  off  those  from  their  bishopric  who, 
'  without  blame,  and  holily  offer  the  gifts.  Blessed 
'  are  those    Presbyters  who,  having  finished  their 

*  course,  have  obtained  a  fruitful  and  perfect  disso- 

*  lution.'  To  confirm  all,  Grotius,  in  his  epistle  to 
Bignonius,  proves  this  epistle  of  Clement  to  be  of 
undoubted  antiquity.     '  Because,'    saith   he,*  *  no 

*  where  therein  does  he  make  mention  of  that  para- 
'  mount  or  peculiar  authority  of  bishops,  which,  by 

*  ecclesiastical  custom,  began  after  the  death  of 
'  Mark  to  be  introduced  at  Alexandria,  and  from 
'  that  precedent  into  other  places ;  but  he  plainly 

*  shews,  as  the  Apostle  Paul  had  done,  that  the 
'  churches  were  governed  by  the  common   council 

*  of  the  Presbyters,  who  are  all  called  Bishops,  both 
«  by  him  and  Paul.*  Thus  Grotius.  But  Grotius 
was  a  Dutchman.     True.     But  his  reasoning  was 

•  Quod  nusquam  meminit  exsortls  illius  Eplscoporum  auctorila- 
tis,  quae  Ecclesiae  consuetiuline,  post  Marci  mortem,  Alexanclrise, 
atqueeo  excmplo,  alibi  intioduci  cepitj  sed  plane  ut  Paulus  Apos- 
tolis  ostendit,  ecclcsias  communi  Presbytevoriim,  qui  iidem  omnes 
ct  Episcopi  ipsi  Pauloque  dicuntur,  consilio  fuisse  gubernatas. 


166  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

right  English.  *  They,'  saith  the  learned  Stilling- 
fleet,*  '  that  can  find  any  one  single  bishop  at  Co- 
rinth when  Clement  wrote  his  epistle  to  them, 
must  have  better  eyes  and  judgment  than  the  de- 
servedly admired  Grotius. 

In  the  third  place,  1  ask  how  Jerome's  words, '  what 

*  Aaron  and  his  sons  were,  that  we  know  the  Bishops 

*  and  Presbyters  are,'  contribute  to  the  clearing  or 
confirming  Cie  nent*s  testimony.  Why  did  not  Mr 
Rhind  tell  where  Jerome  has  these  words  ?  It  was 
loo  much  niceness  in  him  to  think,  that  citing  au- 
thors in  such  a  case  as  this  would  be  reckoned  pe- 
dantry :  The  industrious  avoiding  of  it  rather  de- 
serves that  name.  But  the  reason  is  evident :  Mr 
Rhind  knew  very  well,  that  if  any  one  would  look 
the  place,  he  would  see  how  absurdly  it  were  alleg- 
ed. Plainly,  the  words  are  taken  out  of  Jerome's 
famous  epistles  to  Evagrius,  the  occasion  and  con- 
tents of  which  are  these.  A  certain  deacon  of  the 
Church  of  Rome,  had  started  a  pretty  odd  opinion, 
viz.  *  that  Deacons  were  superior  to  Pesbyters.' — 
Eor  chastising  the  arrogance  of  that  spark,  Jerome 
wrote  the  said  epistle.     '  A  fool,*  saith  he,  t  'will 

*  speak  foolish  things.  I  hear  there  is  one  who  has 
'  broke  out  into  such  a  height  of  folly,  as  to  prefer 

*  Deacons  to  Presbyters  ;  that  is,  to  Bishops.'  Then 
he  proceeds  to  confute  him  by  arguments.  And 
the  great  argument  upon  which  he  goes,  is  this, — 

*  Bishops  and  Presbyters  were,  in  the  Apostles'  time, 
'  all  one.    But  it  were  a  palpable  folly  to  prefer  Dea- 

*  cons  to  Bishops.'  ErgOy  it  is  the  same  folly  to  pre- 
fer Deacons  to  Presbyters.     The  first  of  these  pro- 

•  Irenic.  p.  280. 

+  Legimus  in  Esala.  Fatuiis  fatna  loqnetur.  Audio  quendam 
in  tantam  erupisse  vccordinm.  Ut  Diaconos  Fresbyteris,  itl  est 
Episcopis  anteleiret.  Nam  cum  Apostolus  persplcue  tloceat  eosdeni 
esse  Presbyteios  qiios  Eplscopos,  quid  patitur  niensarum  et  vidua- 

rum  ministei",  ut  supra  eos  se  lumidiis  efFeiat Quod  autem  pos- 

tea  unus  electns  est,  qui  caeteris  pi  seponeretur,  in  scliismatis  reme- 
dium  factum  est.... Nam  et  Alexandrine  a  Marco  Evangelista  usque 
ad  Heraclam  et  Dionysiuni  Episcopos,  Presbyteri  semper  ununi  ex 
«e  electum  in  excelsiori  gradu  collocatum  Episcopum  nominabant.... 
Quid  enim  facit,  exccpta  ordinatione,  Episcopus,  quod  Presbyter 
iaon  faclat, 


PUESBYTEIUAN  GOVERNMENT.  167 

positions,  viz.  that  Bishops  and  Presbyters  were  in 
the  Apostles'  time  all  one,  he  proves  from  the  very 
same  Scriptures,  which  the  Presbyterians  have  ever 
insisted  on.  And  though  Ej)iscopacy  was  so  far  ad- 
vanced in  his  time,  which  had  been  set  on  foot  af- 
ter the  Apostles'  days,  for  a  remedy  of  schism;  yet 
even  then  he  declares,  '  that  excepting  ordination, 
*  the  Bishop  does  nothing  which  the  Presbyter  might 
'  not  do.*  Is  it  then  imaginable,  that,  after  all  this, 
Jerome,  in  that  very  same  epistle,  should  allow  Bishops 
to  be  superior  to  Presbyters  by  divine  right,  as  the 
High  Priest  under  the  law  was  to  the  ordinary  priests? 
No.  It  is  plain,  that  the  comparison  runs,  not  be- 
tween Aaron  and  his  sons  under  the  law,  and  bi- 
shops and  presbyters  under  the  gospel ;  but  between 
Aaron  and  his  sons,  as  one  part  of  the  comparison 
under  the  law,  and  the  Levites  under  them,  as  the 
^ther.  So,  under  the  gospel,  bishops  and  presby- 
ters make  one  part  of  the  comparison,  answering  to 
Aaron  and  his  sons,  in  that  wherein  they  all  agree, 
viz.  the  order  of  priesthood  ;  and  the  other  part,  un- 
der the  gospel,  is  that  of  Deacons,  answering  to  the 
Levites,  under  the  law.  And  this  gloss  upon  Jerome's 
words,  as  the  context  necessarily  requires,  so  the 
learned  Stillingfleet*  has  expressly  confirmed.  And 
besides,  Dr  Hammond,  as  we  have  before  observed, 
by  denying  the  middle  order  of  presbyters  in  the 
Apostles*  days,  has  quite  destroyed  the  argument 
from  the  Jewish  priesthood.  Was  not,  then,  Mr 
Rhind  very  well  advised,  when  he  would  press  Je- 
rome into  his  service,  in  the  very  face  of  his  own 
protestation  to  the  contrary ;  and  that,  too,  for  con- 
firming Clement's  testimony,  who  never  dropt  so 
much  as  one  syllable  in  favours  of  a  bishop  above  a 
presbyter.  So  much  for  Clement  j  and  I  do  not 
think  but  the  reader  is  by  this  time  convinced,  that 
Mr  Khind  could  have  been  at  no  loss,  though  he  had 
never  mentioned  him. 

THE  EMPEROR  ADRIAN. 

His  third  testimony,  is  from  a  Letter  of  the  Em- 
•*  Irenic.  p.  268. 


168 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


peror  Adrian  to  Servianus ;  but,  supposing  it  were 
for  his  purpose,  it  is  so  very  shameful  a  one,  that, 
for  the  honour  of  the  Episcopal  order,  it  ought  to 
have  been  buried  in  silence.  But  Dr  Monro  *  had 
touclied  upon  it,  and  therefore  Mr  Rhind  thought  it 
necessary  he  shoukl  do  so  too.  The  words  of  the 
letter  insisted  on  by  Mr  Rhind,  p.  109,  are  :  *  There 

*  are  Christians,  who  worship  Se?^apis,  and  they  are 

*  devoted  to  Serapis,  who  call  themselves  the  Bishops 
of  Christ.     There,  no  ruler  of  the  Synagogue,  no 

'  CJmstian  Presbyter,  who  does  not,'  &c.  From  this 
he  infers,  «  That  when  Adrian  was  in  Egypt,  an7io 

*  Christ.  13],  the  distinction  of  Bishops  and  Presby- 

*  ters  was  so  notorious,  that  the  Emperor  supposeth 
'  it  as  an  undoubted  truth.'  But  the  very  contrary 
is  evident  from  the  Emperor's  words.  And  it  is  clear 
as  light,  that  these  whom  he  calls  Bishops  in  the  first 
clause,  are  the  same  with  those  he  calls  Fresbijtej^s  in 
the  next ; — a  way  of  speaking,  which  every  body 
knows  to  be  according  to  the  constant  style  of  the 
Scripture,  and  consequently  of  all  such  as  knew  any 
thing  of  the  Christian  aliairs.  I  have  set  down  t  the 
Emperor's  words  as  he  wrote  them,  that  the  reader 
may  see  this  the  more  evidently. 


IREXJr:US. 


His  fourth  testimony,  p.  110,  is  from   Irena^us, 
Lib.  III.  cap.  iii.  contra  Heres,  who  says  :   '  We  can 

*  reckon  them,  who  were  appointed  Bishops  by  the 

*  Apostles  in  the  Churches,  and  their  successors,  to 
'  our  day ;    to    whom    also   they   committed   these 

*  Churches,  delivering  to  them  the  same  dignity  of 

*  power.'     It  is  answered. 

First,  Supposing  Irenijeus  were  against  us,  yet  his 

*  Enquiry  into  tlie  New  Opinions. 

f  AdrianMS  Aug,  Serviano  Cos.  S.  j^gyptum  quern  mihi  lau- 
dabas,  Serviano  charissime,  totam  didici,  levem,  pendulam,  et  ad 
omnia  fanue  nnomenta  volitantem.  Illi  qui  Serapin  colunt  Chris- 
tiani  sunt,  et  devoti  sunt  Serapi.  Qui  se  Christ!  Episcopos  di- 
cunt.  Nemo  illic  archisynagogus  Juda^orum  nemo  Samarites,  no- 
mo  Christianorum  Presbyter,  noii  Mathematicus,  &c. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  l69 

judgment  about  traditions  is  of  no  great  weight. — 
For,  in  that  same  Cliapter,  which  Mr  Rhind  has 
cited,  he  asserts  *  not  only  tiie  pre-eminence  of  the 
Church  of  Home,  but  the  necessary  dependence  of 
all  other  cliurches  upon  her.  And  elsewhere,  t  he 
asserts  Christ  to  have  been  past  the  fortieth^  and 
near  the  fiflieth,  year  of  his  age,  when  he  suffered ; 
and  that  the  elders,  who  were  with  John  in  Asia, 
testified,  that  they  had  that  by  tradition  from  John 
himself;  yea,  that  the  Gospel  itself  teaches  it;  and 
he  is  very  angry  with  those  who  think  otherwise. 
When  he  stumbled  so  prodigiously  in  so  plain  a  case, 
pray  what  credit  is  to  be  given  to  his  traditions  about 
the  succession  of  Bishops,  which  is  generally  ac- 
knowledged by  the  Episcopalians  themselves  to  be  a 
most  perplexed  and  uncertain  piece  of  history  ? 

Secondlij,  Does  Irenaaus  say,  as  Mr  Rhind  has 
translated  him,  that  the  Apostles  delivered  to  the 
Bishops  the  same  dignity  of  power  ?  No  :  His  words 
are :  X  '  Whom  also,'  (viz.  the  Bishops),  '  they  left 
'  their  successors,  delivering  to  them  their  own  place 
*  of  mastership ;'  that  is,  the  Apostles  constituted 
them  the  supreme  officers  in  the  Church,  so  that 
they  were  to  have  none  above  them  any  more  than 
the  Apostles  had.  But,  that  they  delivered  either  to 
Bishop  or  Presbyter,  the  same  dignity  of  power,  Ire- 
naeus  never  said.     But, 

Thirdly^  There  is  no  need  either  of  declining  Ire- 
naius's  testimony,  or  refining  upon  his  words.  Mr 
Rhind  tells  he  could  improve  upon  his  testimony : 
And  I  cannot  but  wish  he  had  made  all  the  improve- 
ment of  it  he  could.     For  that  the  Apostles  appoint- 

*  Ad  haiic  enim  ecclesiam  propter  potentiorem  principalitatem, 
neeesse  est  omnem  convenire  ecclesiam. 

f  Lib.  II.  cap.  39>  40. — A  quadragesimo  aut  quinquagesimo  an- 
no declinat  jam  in  aetatem  seniorem,  quam  habens  Dominus  nos- 
ier docebat,  sicut  Evangelium  et  omnes  seniores  testantur,  qui 
in  Asia  apud  Joannem  discipulum  Domini  convenerunt,  idipsum 
tradidisse  eis  Joannem. — Quinquagcsimum  autem  annmn  nondum 
attigit,  non  tamen  multum  a  quinquagesimo  anno  abstitit. 

\  Quos  et  successores  relinquebant,  suum  ipsorum  locum  ma-^ 
gistcrii  tradcntes. 


170  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

ed  Bishops  in  the  Churches,  every  Presbyterian  owns. 
But  that  he  appointed  Prelates,  or  Diocesan  Bishops, 
no  EpiscopaHan  has  yet  proved.  If  they  will  still  iio 
on  to  expose  themselves,  by  insisting  upon  the  word 
Bishop,  nobody  can  help  it.  Presbyterians  must 
take  care  they  be  not  imposed  upon  by  mere  sounds. 
It  is  certain,  that  Irenaeus  took  Bishop  and  Presbyter 
for  one  and  the  same  officer.  *  Wherefore,'  saith 
he,  *  '  it  behoves  us  to  hearken  to  those  who  are  Pres- 

*  byters  in  the  Church — to  those  who,  as  we  have 

*  shewn,  have  their  succession  from  the  Apostles ; 

*  who,  together  with  the  succession  of  the  E})isco- 

*  pate,  have  also  received  the  gift  of  the  truth,  ac- 

*  cording  to  the  pleasure  of  the  Father.'  Thus  Ire- 
naeus.— '  And  what  strange  confusion,'  says  Stilling- 
lingiieet,  t  '  must  this  raise  in  any  one's  mind,  that 
'  seeks  for  a  succession  of  Episcopal   power  over 

*  Presbyters  from  the  Apostles  by  the  testimony  of 
f  Irenaeus,  when  he  so  plainly  attributes  both  the  suc- 

*  cession  to  Presbyters,  and  the  Episcopacy  too  which 

*  he  speaks  of.*     So  much  for  Irenaeus. 

TEKTULLIAN. 

His  last   testimony,  p.   110,  is  from   Tertullian, 

*  who,'  saith  he,  *  began  to  flourish  at  the  same  time 

*  with  Irenaeus,  that  is,  in  the  declension  of  the  second 

*  century;'  and  says,  Lib.  de  Baptismo,  *  The  High 
«  Priest,  who  is  the  Bishop,  has   the  right  of  giving 

*  baptism,  after  him  the   Presbyters  and  Deacons — • 

*  but  not  withoutthe  Bishop's  authority,'  For  answer: 

In  i\\Qjirst  place,  I  should  be  glad  to  know  where 
Mr  llhind  came  by  this  piece  of  chronology.  It  is 
true,  Tertullian  began  to  flourish  in  the  declension 
of  the  second  century,  viz.  after  the  year  1^2;  and 
wrote  his  book,  de  BapUsmo,  from  which  Mr  Bhind 
cites,  about  the  year  201.  t     But  Irenaeus's  flourish- 

"  Qua  propter  eis  qui  in  ecclesia  sunt.  Presbyteris  obaudire 
oportet.  His  qui  successionem  Iiabent  ab  Apostolis,  sicut  osteu- 
dimus,  qui  cum  Episcopatus  successione,  ciiari&ma  veritatis  cer- 
tum,  secundum  placitum  I'atris  acceperunt. 

f  Irenic.  p.  307.  %  Spanheim,  Hist.  Eccles.  p.  719. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  171 

ing  was  well  nigh  blown  off  ere  that  time.  *  For 
«  he  died,*  says  Mr  Dodwell,  *   *  before  the  persecu- 

*  tion  under  Severus,  which  began  in  the  year  202 

*  or  203.'  It  is,  then,  something  hard  to  conceive, 
how  Tertullian  began  to  flourish  at  the  same  time 
with  Irenaeus.     But  passing  this: 

In  the  second  place,  1  ask,  What  would  Mr  Rhind 
infer  from  Tertullian's  testimony  ?  Is  it,  that  there 
were  three  distinct  orders  of  ecclesiastical  officers. 
Bishops,  Presbyters,  and  Deacons,  in  the  beginning 
of  the  tliird  century  ?  Every  Presbyterian  owns  it. 
Is  it,  that  the  Bishops  had  this  paramount  power  of 
baptising,  beyond  the  Presbyters  and  Deacons,  by 
Divine  right  ?  Tertullian  himself  denies  it,  and  that 
in  the  very  next  words  to  those  cited  by  Mr  Rhind. 
'  It  remains,'  saith  he,  t  '  for  concluding  this  little 

*  matter,  to  advise  also  concerning  the  observation 
'  of  giving  and  receiving  baptism.     Of  giving,  in- 

*  deed,  the  High  Priest,  who  is  the  Bishop,  has  the 
'  right,  then  the  Presbyters  and  Deacons ;  yet  not 

*  without  the  authority  of  the  Bishop,  ^r  the  ho- 

*  noiir  of  the  Church  ;  which  being  safe,  peace  is  safe, 

*  — otherwise  even  laymen  have  the  right ;  for  what 

*  is  equally  received,  may  be  equally  given  :'  Thus 
Tertullian.  Say,  now,  good  reader,  if  JMr  Rliind 
was  not  either  very  ill  furnished  of  testimonies,  or 
very  well  with  assurance,  when  he  insisted  on  this. 

And  thus,  now,  I  have  gone  through  his  Antiqui- 
ty ;  and  hope  that  it  is  plain,  that  when  he  was  en- 
tering on  it,  he  migiU  have  spared  his  harangue, 
"wherein  he  would  persuade  the  Presbyterians  to  ap- 
peal to  the  Fathers  ;  for  I  can  hardly  believe  he  has 
gained  much  by  referring  to  these  Judges.     And  if 

*  Dissert.  3.  in  Iren. 

f  Superest,  ad  concludendam  materiolam,  de  observatlone  quo- 
que  dandi  et  accipicndi  baptismum  coninionefacere.  Dandi  qui- 
dem  Jiabet  jus  summus  sacerdos,  qui  et  Episcopus.  Deiiinc 
Presbyteii  et  Diaconi,  non  tamen  sine  Episcopi  auctoritate,  ])rop- 
ter  Ecclesiae  bonorem,  quo  salvo,  salva  pax  est.  Alioquin  etiam 
laicis  jus  est.  Quod  enim  ex  aequo  accipitur,  ex  aequo  dari  po- 
test. 


172  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

his  own  conscience  was  satisfied  witli  these  testi- 
monies he  has  produced,  I  must  needs  say  it  is  no 
ill-natured  one. 


AUTICLE  VL 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Argument  for  Prelacij,  frovi 
the  impossihilitij  of  its  obtaining  so  early ^  and  uni- 
versally,  if  it  had  not  been  of  Divine  Institution^  is 
examined.     From  p.  Ill  to  p.  119, 

There  can  be  nothing  more  ridiculous,  than  to 
dispute  against  the  possibility  of  a  matter  of  fact. 
I'i  I  had  seen  Mr  Rhind  some  time  at  Edinburgh, 
and,  within  a  short  while  after,  had  heard  from 
unexceptionable  witnesses,  that  he  was  at  a  hundred 
miles  distance  from  it,  must  I  believe,  notwithstand- 
ing, that  he  never  changed  places  j  because  I  am  not 
able  to  tell  how  or  when  he  did  it,  nor  perhaps  answer 
all  the  objections  one  might  puzzle  me  with,  against 
either  the  physical  or  moral  impossibility  of  his  hav- 
ing done  so.  Because  Mr  Rhind  was  educated  pres- 
byterian,  was  a  zealot  in  that  way,  and  profited  (more 
ways  than  one)  above  many  of  his  equals ;  must  1, 
therefore,  deny,  that  he  is  now  Episcopalian,  and  of 
the  new  cut  too  ;  because  neither  I,  nor  indeed  any 
body  else,  can  account  for  his  change.  Has  he  not 
heard  Mr  Dodwell  so  often  affirming,  that  the  go- 
vernment was  changed  about  the  year  106 — changed 
too,  not  only  without  any  account  of  it,  but  with- 
out any  w^arrant  for  it,  contained  in  the  Scriptures  ? 
Why,  then,  will  he  dispute  against  the  possibihty  of 
a  change  ?  But  it  was  his  pleasure,  as  it  has  been 
of  many  of  his  brethren  writers,  to  do  so  j  and  we 
must  attend  him  in  his  performance. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  173 

Thcit  a  change  of  the  government  of  the  church, 
by  a  parity  of  pastors  into  a  government  by  Prelacy, 
had  been  morally  impossible,  he  argues,  I.  From  the 
piety  and  zeal  of  the  primitive  times.  II.  From 
the  universal  spread  of  Episcopacy.  III.  From  the 
vio'ilance  of  the   Governors  of  the    Church.      IV. 

o 

From  the  unparalleledness  of  the  case.  V.  From  the 
non-opposition  made  to  the  change,  and  the  want 
of  any  insinuation  that  ever  the  church  was  govern- 
ed according  to  the  Presbyterian  model.  Of  these 
in  order. 

I.  He  argues,  p.  Ill,  112,  from  the  piety  and 
zeal  of  the  primitive  times.     *  If  the   Presbyterian 

*  had    been    the    divine   form    of   government,    it 

*  could  never  once  have  entered  into  the  thoughts 

*  of  men,  who  had  shared  in  or  been  subject  to  this 
'  form  of  government,  to  attempt  or  allow  its  change. 
'  Would  these  primitive  persons,  who  were  bishops 

*  in  the  first  ages,  have  usurped  an  anti-scriptural  au- 

*  thority  ?  What  could  have  tempted  them  to  it  ? 

*  Not  the  love  of  riches,  they  forsook  all  for  the 

*  love  of  Christ.  Not  ambition,  for  they  knew  their 
'  promotion  rendered  them  more  obnoxious  to  their 
'  persecutors.  Suppose  they  had  been  actuated  either 

*  by  worldliness  or  ambition,  yet  would  the  Presby- 

*  ters  and  Deacons  have  suffered  such  an  encroach- 

*  ment  to  be  made  upon  their  divine  right  ?  Or 
'  would  the  people  have  submitted  to  such  an  usur- 

*  pation  ?'  To  this  purpose  he.  For  answer.  It 
cannot  be  denied,  that  the  zeal  and  piety  of  the  pri- 
mitive times  was  much  greater  than  of  ours :  But 
why  would  he  impose  upon  people  by  a  chimerical 
representation  of  these  times,  contrary  to  the  faith 
of  all  history  ?  Men  still  were,  and  always  will  be 
men  ;  that  is,  very  corrupt,  how  holy  soever  the 
religion  is  which  they  profess.  The  churchmen 
are  men  too  ;  and,  even  in  the  primitive  times, 
gave  many  and  very  scandalous  examples,  and  were 
the  greatest  cause  of  the  corruption  of  Christians, 
and  sometimes  of  their  persecution  too.     What  a 


174  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

complaint  does  Eusebius  *  make  of  the  wickedness 
of  Christians  in  general,  and  of  churchmen  in 
particular  ?  *  Bishops,'  saith  he,  *  rushed  (Hke  mad 
'  beasts)  against  bishops.     Most  detestable   hypo- 

*  crisy  and  dissimulation  advanced  even  to  the  very 

*  height  of  wickedness.     We  were  not  touched  with 

*  any  sense  of  the  divine  judgment  creeping  in  up- 
«  on  us,  used  no  endeavours  to  regain  his  favour ; 
'  but  wickedly  thinking,  that  God  neither  did  re- 

*  gard  nor  would    visit  our  crimes,  we  heaped  one 

*  wickedness  upon  another.     And  those  who  seem- 

*  ed  to  be  our  pastors,  rejecting  the  rule  of  piety, 

*  were  inflamed  with  mutual  contentions  against 
<  one  another ;  and  while  they  were  jonly  taken  up 

*  with  contentions,  threatenings,  emulations,  mutual 

*  hatred  and  enmity,  and  every  one  eagerly  pursued 

*  his  ambition  in  a  tyrannical   manner,   then    the 

*  Lord  covered  the  daughter  of  Zion  with  a  cloud 
«  in  his  anger,  and  remembered  not  his  footstool  in 

*  the  day  of  his  anger,  but  raised  up  the  Dioclesian 

*  persecution  against  them.*  Thus  Eusebius,  and 
a  great  deal  more  to  this  purpose.  Fifty  years  be- 
fore that,  Cyprian  t  complained  of  an  universal 
depravation  in  the  clergy  as  well  as  the  laity. 
«  That  the  priests  had  no   devotion,  the   ministers' 

*  or  deacons  no  fidelity,  that  there  was  no   charity 

*  in  works,  no  discipline  in  manners.'  And  does 
not  Jerome  t  tell  us,  that  *  the  primitive  churches 

*  were  tainted  with  many  gross  errors  whilst  the  A- 

*  postles  were   alive,  and   the  blood  of  Christ  yet 

*  warm  in  Judaea  ?'  But  why  do  I  insist  on  human 
testimony  ?  Does  not  the  Apostle  Paul  himself  make 
the  like  complaint.  Phil.  iii.  18. «  ma7i2/  walk,  of  whom 

*  I  told  you  often,  and  now  tell  you,  even  weeping, 

*  that  they  are  the  enemies  of  the   cross  of  Cin'ist ; 

*  whose  God  is  their  belly,  who  mind  earthly  things.* 

»  Hist.  Eccles.  Lib.  VIII.  Cup.  i. 

•^  Noil  in  Sacerdotibus  lleiigio  devota,  non  In  Ministris  fides 
inlegra,  non  in  operlbns  midcricordia,  uon  in  nioribus  disciplina, 
&c.     Cyprian  de  Lapsis. 

\  Advt'iJiua  Luciferian. 


mESBYTEllIAN  GOVERNMENT.  175 

And  chap.  ii.  21.  *  all  seek  their  own,  not  the  things 
*  which  are  Jesus  Christ's.'  Even  in  those  early  times, 
and  while  the  Chiucii  was  under  persecution,  a  Dio- 
trephes  could  aspire  to  the  pre-eminence,  3  John,  ix. 
And  even  the  people's  liberahty  made  so  consider- 
able a  provision  for  the  maintenance  of  church-men, 
that  the  Apostles  found  cause,  oftener  than  once,  to 
caution  them  against    taking    the  office  for  filthy 
lucres  sake,    I    Peter  v.  2.     1  Tim.  iii.  3.     Where 
then  was  the  impossibility  of  a  change,  even  upon 
the  principles  of  and)ition   and  covetousness  ?  Might 
not  one,  at  Mr  Rhind's   rate    of   reasoning,  prove, 
that  it  was  not  possible  there  should  have  been  any 
such  officers  as  sub-deacons  ?     The  deacons,  (good 
men)  would  not  be  so  ambitious  as  to  seek  to  have 
underlings.     There  could  be  none  so  mean-spirited 
as  to  submit  to  be  such.  Suppose  both  these,  the  peo- 
ple (of  whose  charity  the  deacons  were  the  trustees) 
would  not  have  suffered  it.     Yet  Cyprian  *  makes 
mention  of  them  as  undisputed  officers  in  his  time  ; 
though  it  is  certain  there  was  no  divine  institution. 
for  them,  any  more  than  for  Acolyths  and  Exorcists, 
whom  he  also  speaks    of.     Again,  it  is  certain   all 
bishops  were  originally  equal;  how  is  it  possible, then, 
that  ever  there  could  arise  archbishops  or  metropo- 
litans ?     Would  any  of  the  bishops   have   usurped 
the  honour  ?     Would  their  fellow  bishops  have  sub- 
mitted to  the  encroachment  ?     Would  the  people 
have  suffered  it  ?     Yet,  how  impossible  soever  it  was 
that  they  should  be,  Mr  llh.ind  himself,  I  hope,  will 
not  deny  that  they  were  ;  yea,  and  that  they  were 
brought  in  so  early,  and  with  so  little  noise,  that 
some  learned  men  have  thought  they  were  from  the 
beginning.      We   see,   then,   how   insufficient    Mr 
Rhind's  iirst  argument  is. 

II.  lie  argues,  p.  112,  from  the  universal  spread 
of  Episcopacy.  Though  such  a  change  might 
have  iiappened  in  a  corner,  yet,  if  Prelacy  had  not 
been  of  divine  institution,  how  could  it  have  ob- 
tained universally  ?  Which  yet  it  did :  '  For,* 
saith  he,  p.  117,  *  it  was  fully  established  over  all 

*  Ep.  24. 


176  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  the  earth,  without  any  opposition  or  noise,  a  do- 
'  zen  of  years  or  so  after  the  seahng  of  the  sacred 
'canon.*  It  is  answered,  It  is  a  very  insufficient 
argument.  '  Episcopacy  spread  itself  through  the 
'  whole    earth.*      Why,  so    did  Arianism.      *  The 

*  whole  world,"  says  Jerome,*  'groaned  and  wondered 

*  to  see  itself  turned  Arian.'  Besides,  it  is  false 
that  Prelacy  prevailed  universally.  Many  instances 
might  be  given  to  the  contrary  ;  but  not  to  wander 
from  home  :  Though  Christianity  was  planted  here 
in  Scotland  in  the  days  of  the  Apostles,  and  got  the 
legal  establishment  in  the  beginning  of  the  third  cen- 
tury ;  yet  we  had  no  such  thing  as  prelacy  till  near 
the  middle  of  the  fifth,  that  Palladius  brouglit  it 
hither  from  Rome  ;  as  Bede,  Fordun,  John  Major, 
Hector  Bocthius,  Buchanan  and  Craig,  with  others, 
do  testify. 

III.   He  argues  from  the  vigilance  of  the  Gover- 
nors of  the  Church.  *  For,'  saith  he,  p.  1 15,  '  if  errors 

*  in  doctrine,  which  may  more  easily  pass  without 
'  notice,  did  not  escape  their  observation  and  cen- 

*  sure  ;  how  can  it  be  supposed  that  they  would  not 

*  have  observed  and  condemned  any  encroachments 

*  made  upon  the  constitution  of  their  Society  ?'  But 
who  sees  not  how  false  this  way  of  arguing  is  ? 
Whence  came  all  the  usurpations  and  corruptions, 
both  in  principle  and  practice,  which  began  to  take 
place  from  the  earliest  ages  of  Christianity  ?  Does 
not  every  body  know,  that  at  least  a  great  many  of 
them  crept  in  insensibly ;  and  that  the  tares  were 
sown  while  men  slept?  No,  says  Mr  Rhind,  p.  117, 
'  these  did  not  obtain  till  after  some  centuries.  They 
«  were  remonstrated  against  by  many.*  They  were 
never  allowed  by  one  half  of  the  Church.  This,  I 
must  needs  say,  is  confident  enough  talking.  I  shall 
give  one  instance  for  Mr  Rhind  to  try  his  skill  on  ; 
it  is  the  giving  of  the  Eucharist  to  infants.  It  ob- 
tained early.  Cyprian  t  speaks  of  it,  not  as  a  new 
thing,  but  as  an  ordinary  practice.     It  obtained  uni- 

Ibld.  UbI  supra.  +  Sorm.  <le  Lapsis,  Sect.  20. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  177 

versally :  Augustine  *  calls  it  apostolical  tradition. 
No  wonder  ;  for  it  was  pretended  to  be  founded  on 
that  text  of  Scripture,  John  vi.  53.     *  Except  ye  eat 

*  the  flesh,' &c.  and  he  is  so  brisk  on  that  head,  that  he 
affirms  «  that  none  who  minds  he  is  a  Christian  of 

*  the  Catholic  Church,  denies  that  exposition,  or 
'  doubts  of  its  truth.'  It  prevailed  so  long,  that  the 
famous  BenigneBossuet,  Bishop  of  Meaux,t  brings  it 
down  to  the  twelfth  century  ;  and  affirms  it  to  be 
used  at  this  day,  in  the  Greek  Church.  It  is  plain 
that  the  practice  was  unaccountable,  and  the  princi- 
ple on  which  it  was  built,  false.  But  can  Mr  Rhind 
name  the  person  that  remonstrated  against  the  intro- 
ducing it  ?  Can  he  name  any  Church  that  refused 
it  ?  Can  he  tell  the  century  in  which  it  began  ?  No, 
nothing  of  all  this  is  possible.  Where  is  now  the 
vigilance  of  the  Church  governors  ?  If  it  could  not 
secure  in  one  thing,  how  shall  it  do  in  another  ? 

IV.  He  argues,  p.  IIC,  from  the  unparalleledness 
of  the  case,  '  that  the  like  never  happened  in  the 

*  government  of  any  other  society,   whether  of  for- 

*  mer  or  latter  times.     For  instance,  the  establish- 

*  ment  of  the  consular  dignity,  upon  the  expulsion 
'  of  their  kings  by  the  Romans,  and  the  change  of 

*  the  republican  into  a  monarchical  form,   occasion- 

*  ed  a  vast  expense  of  treasure  and  blood.  And  in 
'  the  days  of  our  King  Charles  I.  the  monarchy  was 
'  not  destroyed,  nor  the  common-wealth  established, 
'  till  after  a  considerable  resistance.'  From  all  which 
he  infers,  thatsuch  an  insensible  change  in  the  govern- 
inentof  the  Church  ought  not  to  be  supposed.  This 
reasoning  is  built  upon  grounds  so  notoriously  false, 
that  it  scarce  deserves  the  name  of  a  poor  piece  of 
sophistry.  For  it  is  contrary  to  all  history  and  ex- 
perience, which  shews  us  there  have  been  great 
changes,  the  authors,  and  the  beginnings  and  oppos- 
ers  of  which  cannot  now  be  known  ; — though  no  man 
can  doubt  there  hath  been  an  alteration  made.     For 

*  Vide   Ep.  106.  Lib.    I.  contra  Julianum.   Lib.  I,  De  Peccat. 
merit,  et  rcmissione  contra  Pilagianum. 

■f  Traite  de  la  Communion  soiis  Lcs  Deux  Especes,  p.  81.  &c. 

M 


178  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  body  spiritual,  and  civil  too,  is  like  the  body  na- 
tural J  in  which,  as  there  are  some  diseases  which 
make  such  a  violent  and  sudden  assault,  that  one 
may  say  at  what  moment  they  began  ;  so  there  are 
others,  which  grow  so  insensibly,  and  by  such  slow  de- 
grees, that  none  can  tell  when  the  first  alteration 
was  made,  and  by  what  accident,  from  a  good  ha- 
bit of  body  to  a  bad.  It  is  true,  the  instanced 
changes,  both  in  the  Roman  and  English  govern- 
ment, occasioned  a  vast  expense  of  blood  and  trea- 
sure. But,  within  the  memory  of  man,  the  Portu- 
guese, in  the  year  1640,  shook  off  the  Castilian 
yoke,  and  set  up  the  Duke  of  Braganza  for  their 
king.  And  yet,  so  far  as  I  can  learn,  there  was  nei- 
ther a  farthing  treasure  spent,  nor  a  drop  of  blood 
spilt,  in  the  quarrel.  Because  the  Protestants  can- 
not (which  Bellarmine  *  challenges  them  to  do)  in 
all  cases,  give  an  account  of  the  author  of  the 
change,  the  time  when  it  began,  the  place  where, 
who  opposed  it,  and  so  on  ;  must  we,  therefore,  be- 
lieve, that  the  Church  of  Rome  hath  made  no 
change  at  all  as  to  her  doctrines  and  practices  which 
Christ  and  his  Apostles  settled  ?  Who  can  give  us 
the  history  of  the  Communion  in  one  kind  ?  It  grew 
by  degrees  to  be  a  general  custom  ;  but  nobody,  I 
suppose,  can  tell  where  or  when  it  began  ?  Who  is 
able  to  trace  the  beginnings  of  the  lying  oracles  a- 
mong  the  Pagans  ?  But  must  we  theretbre  ascribe 
them  to  God  ?  According  to  Mr  llhind's  way  of  rea- 
soning, the  traditionary  law  of  the  Jews  must  pass 
for  true,  and  that  it  came  from  Mount  Sinai  by  word 
of  mouth,  as  the  written  law  did  :  For  none  can 
shew  its  original,  much  less  name  the  authors  of  the 
several  traditions,  and  who  opposed  them,  as  Dr 
Symon  Patrick,  late  Bishop  of  Ely  has  observed,  t 
and  from  whom  I  have  taken  the  substance  of  all 
this  answer,  that  the  Episcopal  party  may  see  how 
their  reasonings  against  the  Church  of  Rome,  quite 

•  Lib.  IV.  Cap.  v.  De  Notis  Ecclesiae. 

f  On  Bellanuine's  Second  Note  of  the  Church. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  179 

destroy  tlieir  reasonings  against  the  Presbyterians- 
nay,  are  indeed  the  very  reverse  of  them.  This 
might  be  sufficient  to  take  off  his  next  argument, 
yet,  ex  suptrabundantiy  I  shall  consider  it  particularly. 
I  should,  according  to  the  order  of  his  book,  have 
inserted  it  before  ;  but  for  a  reason  which  will  just 
now  appear,  I  have  delayed  it  till  the  last. 

V.  He  argues  from  the  non-opposition  made  to  the 
change,  and  the  want  of  any  insinuation,  that  ever 
the  Church  was  governed  according  to  the  Presby- 
terian model.     Thus  :  *  When  Antichristian  Prelacy 

*  is  supposed  to  be  universally  established  upon  the 

*  ruins  objure  Divino  Presbytery;  there  is  no  con- 
'  siderable  body  of  Dissenters,  not  one  Presbytery, 
'  not  a  single  Presbyter  or  Deacon,  nor  so  much  as 

*  one  contemporary  Christian,  testifying  against  the 

*  one,  or  declaring  for  the  other,  or  once  insinuating 

*  that  ever  the  Church  was  governed  according  to 
'  the  Presbyterian   model.     Nor  did  any  in  the  suc- 

*  ceeding  centuries  pretend  it   did   obtain,   except 

*  Aerius  and  St  Jerome,  in  the  fourth.  The  one  an 
'  infamous  heretic  ;  witness  Epiphanius,  Heres.  75| 
'  So  that  his  testimony  can  be  of  no  great  advantage 
'  to  any  cause,  and  Jerome's  as  little  serviceable,  on 

*  many  accounts.'  Thus  he,  p.  113,  114.  For  An- 
swer. 

First,  Does  not  Mr  Rhind  know  how  insufficient 
a  negative  argument  in  this  case  is  ?  Does  he  not 
know  how  few  monuments  we  have  of  these  times  ? 
Or  has  he  himself  recovered  them  ?  Does  he  not 
know  how  ill  furnished  even  Eusebius  himself  was, 
with  documents,  when  he  wrote  his  history,  and  what 
broken  scraps  he  went  on  ?  ]t  is  no  wonder  we 
cannot  give  a  distinct  account  of  the  rise  and  first 
steps  of  episcopacy  :  For,  from  the  death  of  the 
apostles  Peter  and  Paul,  in  the  end  of  Nero's  reign, 
about  the  year  68,  for  the  space  of  2S  years,  that  is, 
till  the  year  96,  we  have  either  no  history  to  give 
us  light,  or  what  is  worse  than  none,  a  parcel  of  fa- 
bulous le^endarv  stories.     The  learned  Jesuit  Peta- 

M  2 


180 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


vius*,  speaking  of  that  period,  delivers  himself  thus  : 

*  The  Christian  affairs  of  this  period  stand  in  a  faio't 

*  light,  rather  through  scarcity  of  writers  than  mat- 
'  ter.     For  it  is  not  credible,   but  that  the  Apostles 

*  and  Disciples  of  Christ,   in  all  the  world,   acted 

*  things  both  great,  and  worthy  to  be  known.  But 
'  they  are   generally   blinded  with  fables   and   un- 

*  certain  narrations.'  And  it  is  very  observable,  and 
I  desire  the  reader  to  remark  it,  that,  at  the  very 
time  wherein,  by  Mr  DodwelPs  account,  Episcopacy 
was  set  up,  that  is,  about  the  year  106,  or  somewhat 
sooner,  the  Christians  are  represented  as  faint  and 
languishing  in  their  profession,  and  inclined  to  apos- 
tatise. The  author  of  the  younger  Pliny's  life,  pre- 
fixed to  his  Epistles,!  observes,  p.  33,  that  he  wrote 
his  letter  to  Trajan,  concerning  the  Christians,  be- 
twixt the  month  of  September  303,  and  Spring  time 
in  the  year  105.  Now,  in  that  letter,  he  gives  a  most 
lamentable  account  of  the  Christians.  For  though, 
as  he  there  relates,  Christianity  had  spread  itself 
through  cities,  villages  and  country,  yet  he  was  of 
the  mind,  that  a  stop  might  be  put  to  it.  And  as  evi- 

ence  of  this,  he  tells  the  Emperor,  that  the  temples 
of  the  heathen  gods,  which  were  formerly  almost  de- 
solate, now  began  to  be  frequented,  and  that  sacrifices 
hitherto  neglected,  were  coming  from  all  hands ;  and 
that  the  return  of  the  Christiansto  Paganism  might  be 
yet  greater,  if  they  were  pardoned  for  what  was  pastt 
2dlj/,  Is  there  any  improbability  in  conceiving,  that 

*  Chrlstianae  res  illius  temporis  baud  magna  In  Luce  versantur. 
Scriptorum  raagis  Inopia,  quam  quia  mandaii  quod  posset  Literls 
extaret  nihil.  Nam  nequc  parva,  neque  scitu  Indigna  credibile  est 
Apostolos,  ac  CliiistI  Idiscipulos  toto  orbe  gessisse.  Sed  pleiaque 
fabulls  et  incertis  Nanationlbus  aspersa  sunt.  Petav.  Ration. 
Temp.  par.  10,  Tom.  post   Lib,  V.  Cap.  v, 

t  Edit,  Oxon.  1703, 

t  Neque  enim  clvltates  tantum,  sed  vicos  etiam  atque  agros 
superstitionis  istlus  Gontagio  pervagata  est,  qinc  videtur  sisti  et 
corrigl  posse.  Certe  satis  constat,  prope  jam  desolata  templa 
caepisse  celebrarl,  ct  sacra  solennia  din  intermissa  repetl :  passim- 
que  venire  victlmas,  quaruni  adhuc  rarissimus  emptor  Invenlebatur. 
Ex  quo  facile  est  opinarl,  quae  turba  hominum  cmcndarl  possit,  sl 
»it  penitentiae  locus.     Plln,  Lib.  X.  Ep,  97. 


i^ 


PRESBYTERIAN   GOVERNMENT.  181 

testimonies  given  against  a  government  which  after- 
wards obtained  universally,  might  be  neglected  and 
lost,  perhaps  industriously  smothered  and  destroyed  ? 
It  is  certain  that  there  were  passages  foisted  into 
books,  in  favours  of  episcopacy,  as  we  have  already 
proved  in  the  case  of  the  Ignatian  Epistles,  and  as 
is  confessed,  as. to  the  old  editions  of  them,  even 
by  Episcopalians  themselves.  And  these  that  could 
find  in  their  heart  to  foist  in  passages  for  themselves, 
would  make  no  bones  of  razingout  such  as  might  be  a- 
gainst  them.  3f^/?/,What  though  we  had  not  the  con- 
temporaries who  testified  against  the  change,  or  at 
least  insinuate  that  parity  of  pastors  did  at  first  ob- 
tain ;  may  not  those  that  lived  shortly  after  do  as  well, 
especially  when  it  was  against  their  interest  to  give 
any  such  testimony  ?  But  indeed  we  need  not  run 
to  this.  The  Fathers  of  all  ages,  (so  far  as  their 
testimony  is  worth  the  regarding)  have  given  as 
ample  testimony  in  favours  of  Presbytery  as  heart 
could  wish  ;  whereof  it  will  not  be  amiss  to  give 
some  instances. 

TESTIMONIES  FOR  PRESBYTERY  FROM 
ANTIQUITY. 

Clemens  Romanus,   Af27i.  Chr.  QQ. 

The  epistle  of  Clement  to  the  Corinthians  is  the 
earliest,  and  perhaps  the  purest  piece  of  antiquity 
extant.  We  have  already  heard  Grotius  observing, 
and  Stillingfleet  justifying  him  in  his  observe,  that 
it  is  written  on  the  Presbyterian  scheme.  And  I 
need  not  add  to  what  I  have  already  advanced,  to 
shew  that  father  to  be  on  our  side  :  Only,  it  is  no 
unpleasant  diversion  to  behold  the  episcopal  scuffle 
about  him.  By  Mr  Dodwell's  calculation,  there  was 
no  bishop  (in  the  episcopal  sense)  in  the  world  at 
the  time  of  the  writing  of  the  Epistle,  save  James, 
sitting  Pope  at  Jerusalem.  All  were  Presbyters. 
No  wonder,  then,  that  Clement  was  silent  of  bishops 
above  presbyters.  *  No,'  saith  Dr  Hammond,*  '  Cle- 

*  Vind.  of  the  Disjert,  Chap,  iii,  Sect.  1. 


182 


JDErENCE  OF  THE 


*  merit's  presbyters  were  all  bishops — there  was  no 

*  middle  order  of  presbyters  at  that  time.*  '  Nay,' 
saith  Dr  Burnet,*   now  b'shop  of  Sarum,  'you  are 

*  both   wrong ;    Clement  makes    mention  both  of 

*  bishops  and  presbyters.'  But  pray,  where  ?  For 
in  all  that  epistle  there  are  but  two  orders  of  eccle- 
siastics spoken  of,  viz.  bishops  and  deacons.  That 
is  nothing  :  *  Clement,'  saith  he,  *  by  deacons  means 
'  presbyters.'  I  am  sure,  however  decent  it  may 
be,  yet  it  is  pretty  difficult  for  one  to  be  witness  tq 
this  skirmish  and  keep  his  gravity. 

Ignatius,  Ann,  Chr,  116. 

Ignatius,  who  wrote  his  epistles,  as  Dr  Wake  tes-r 
tifies,  t  An.  116,  is  the  first  who  distinguishes  be- 
twixt bishop  and  presbyter.  And  he,  as  I  have 
shewn,  quite  destroys  the  modern  episcopacy.  And, 
that  the  Ignatian  presbyters  were  employed  either 
in  preaching,  baptising,  or  giving  the  eucharist,  I 
have  shewn  to  be  mere  supposition,  which  there  is 
not  one  tittle  in  the  epistles  themselves  to  support. 
Dr  Hammond  mocks  X  Salmasius  mightily  for  say- 
ing, '  that  the  Ignatian  Epistles  were  written  when 
'  Episcopacy,    properly  so   called,    came  into  the 

*  Ciiurch  ;    because,  in  all  his  epistles,    he  speaks 

*  highly  in  honour  of  Presbytery  as  well  as  of  Epis- 

*  copacy,  that  so  the  people  that  had  been  accus- 

*  tomed  to  the  Presbyterian  government  might  the 

*  more  willingly  and  easily  receive  this  new  govern- 

*  ment  by  Episcopacy,  and  not  be  offended  at  the 

*  novelty  of  it.'  And  yet  I  have  already  produced 
Mr  Dodwell  saying  the  very  same  thing  on  the 
matter. 

PoLYCARp,  Ann.  Chr.  117. 

Polycarp,  who  wrote  his  Epistle  to  the  Philipplans 
immediately  after  Ignatius,  as  DrWake  §  would  have 
us  believe,  though   he  had  the  fairest  occasion  for 

*  Hist,  of  the  Rights  of  Princes,  p.  6,  f  Ubi  supra,  2d  edit.  p.  50. 
X  Ubi  supra,  Chap.  iii.  Sect.  4.  $  Ubi  supra,  p.  20, 


PIlESBTTERIA^f  GOVERNMENT. 


183 


it,  yet,  as  I  observed  before,  makes  not  the  least 
mention  of  two  orders  of  pastors,  but  of  priests 
and  deacons  only.  And  Dr  Hammond  *  himself 
can  find  no  other  way  to  shift  the  force  of  this,  but 
by  turning  these  priests  or  presbyters  into  bishops, 
and  is  content  to  drop  the  presbyters  to  save  the 
bishops,  who  yet,  without  presbyter  to  back  them, 
can  make  but  a  very  whiggish  figure. 

Justin  Martyr,  Jn?i,  Chr.  150. 

Justin  Martyr,  in  his  Apology  for  the  Christians, 
relates,  that  in  every  one  of  their  assemblies  there 
was  one  whom  he  calls  president,  who  preached, 
prayed,  consecrated  the  eucharistical  elements 
which  by  the  deacons  were  distributed  to  those  that 
were  present,  and  sent  to  those  that  were  absent,  t 
But  that  this  president,  whereof  there  was  one  in 
each  Christian  assembly,  was  under  the  jurisdiction 
of  another  superior  to  himself;  or  that  he  had  any 
others,  except  the  deacons,  inferior  to  himself, 
Justin  gives  not  so  much  as  the  least  hint  from  the 
one  end  of  his  works  to  the  other. 

Iren^us,  Ann.  Chr,  180. 

IrenaDUS,  as  we  have  heard  the  learned  Stilling- 
fleet  already  confessing,  attributes  both  the  apos- 
tolic succession  and  the  episcopate  to  the  presbyters  ; 
and  most  expressly  makes  them  both  one  order.i 

*  It  is  necessary,'    saith  he,  '  to  withdraw  from  all 

*  such  wicked  presbyters,  but  to  cleave  to  such 
'  wlio,  as  we  have  said  before,  both  keep  the  doc- 

*  trine  of  the  apostles,  and  sound  speech  with  their 

*  presbyterial  order,    and  also  shew  an  inoffensive 

*  conversation  to  the  information  and  correction  of 
'  the  rest. — Such  Presbyters  does  the  Church  bring 

*  up,  concerning  whom  the  Prophet  also  says,  *  I 
"  will  give  thy  princes  in  peace,  and  thy  bishops  in 
"  righteousness.*     And  concerning  whom  the  Lord 

*  Ubi  supra,  Cliap.  iii.  Sect.  2,     f  Apoll.  2d  edit.  Gr«c.  Lat. 
Colon.  1C86.  p.  97.  +  Lib.  IV.  cap,  xHy. 


184 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


*  said,  *  who  is  tliat  faithful  and  wise  steward  wliom 
"  the  Master  sets  over  his  household."  It  is  plain, 
then,  that  Irenaaus  makes  his  presbyters  bishops, 
and  bishops  and  presbyters  to  be  one  and  the  same 
order  ;  and,  by  necessary  consequence,  presbyters 
must  needs  have  all  the  same  powers  with  bishops, 
which  is  the  main  thing  contended  for.  In  a  M'ord, 
though  bishop  and  presbyter  were  distinguished  in 
Irenseus's  days,  yet  in  all  his*writings  he  has  not 
given  so  much  as  the  least  hint  that  that  distinction 
was  of  divine  right ;  but,  on  the  contrary,  still  in- 
sinuates that  they  are  one  and  the  same  officer  in 
point  of  order. 

Terttjllian,  Ann.  Chr.  203. 

Terlullian,  as  I  have  observed  before,  founds  the 
distinction  betwixt  Bishop  and  Presbyter,  not  upon 
divine  right,  but  the  honour  and  order  of  the  church, 
and  represents  the  Presbyters  as  presiding  in  the 
ecclesiastical  courts  for  the  exercise  of  discipline. 
'  Judgment  is  passed,'  saith  he,*  '  with  great  weight, 

*  as  by  those  who  are  persuaded  that  God  is  eyeing 
'  them  ;  and  it  is  the  greatest  fore-token  of  the  fu- 
'  ture  judgment,  ifany  one  have  so  offended,  as  to 
'  be   excluded  from   communion  in  prayer,  and  of 

*  the  assembly  and  of  all  religious  commerce.  Cer- 
'  tain  approved  elders  preside,  who  have  obtained 

*  that  honour  not  by  price,  but  by  testimony.'  Thus 
he. 

Clemens  Alexandrinus,  Ann.  Chr.  204. 

Clemens  Alexandrinus  is  manifestly  on  our  side. 

'  Those  offices,'  saith  he,t  *  are  an  imitation  of  the 

*  angelic  glory,  and  of  that  dispensation  which,  as 

*  the   Scriptures  say,  they  wait  for,  who,  treading 

*  in  the  steps  of  the  Apostles,  live  in  the  perfection 

*  of  evangelic  righteousness ;  for  these,  the  Apostle 
'  writes,  shall  be  taken  up  into  the  clouds,  and  there, 
«  first,   as  deacons,  attend,  and  then,  according  to 

*  Apolog.  Cap.  xxxix.  t   Stromat.  Lib.  VI.  p.  481. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERN3IENT.  185 

'  the  process,  or  next  station  of  glory,  be  admitted 

*  into  the  presbytery  ;  for  glory  differs  from  glory, 
'  till  they  encrease  to  a  perfect  man/  Which  pas- 
sage, as  Sir  Peter  King  has  most  judiciously  ob- 
served,* proves,  that  in  the  judgment  of  this  fa. 
ther,  there  were  but  two  ecclesiastical  orders :  the 
inferior,  that  of  deacons,  who  never  sat  at  the  ec- 
clesijistical  conventions,  but  like  servants  stood,  as 
the  saints,  v/hen  caught  up  in  the  clouds  at  the  last 
day,  shall  stand  and  wait  on  Christ's  judgment-seat. 
The  superior,  that  of  Presbyters,  designed  also  by 
the  name  of  bishops,  who  in  the  ecclesiastical  con- 
sistories, always  sat  on  thrones  or  seats,  just  as  the 
saints,  when  the  judgment  is  over,  shall  be  relieved 
from  standing  or  waiting,  and  have  their  glory  per- 
fected, in  being  placed  on  the  celestial  thrones  of 
that  sublime  Presbytery,  where  they  shall  be  forever 
blessed  and  happy.  In  a  word,  as  there  are  but  two 
processes  of  the  saint's  glorification,  viz.  standing 
before  the  judgment-seat,  and  being  seated  on  a 
throne  of  glory,  beyond  which  there  is  no  higher 
dignity  :  so  Clemens  makes  but  two  orders  of  churcii 
officers — deacons  to  attend  and  serve,  and  Presby- 
ters to  sit  and  judge. 

Origen,  Ann.  Chr.  226. 

Origen  does  indeed  distinguish  betwixt  Bishops 
and  Presbyters.  But  no  where  can  I  find  him  found- 
ing the  distinction  on  divine  institution.  But  I 
frequently  find  him  making  most  horrid  representa- 
tions of  the  pomp  and  pride  and  prodigality  of  the 
bishops,  even  in  those  times  of  persecution.  Thus, 
upon  these  words,  '  The  princes  of  the  Gentiles  ex- 

*  ercise  dominion,  but  it  shall  not  be  so  among  you,* 
he    runs   out    into  a   most  lamentable    complaint. 

*  Thus,'  saith  he,t  *  the"  word  of  God  teaches  us. 

*  But  we,  either  not  understanding  the  will  of  God 

*  laid  down  in  the  Scripture,  or  contemning  Christ's 

*  Enquiry  into  tlie  Constitution  of  the  Primitive  Church,  p.  72. 
t  In  Matth.  Tract.  12, 


186  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

recommendation,  are  such  that  we  seem  to  ex- 
ceed the  pride  even  of  the  wicked  princes  of  the 
world  ;  and  we  not  only,  as  kings,  seek  armies  to 
go  before  us,  but  we  make  ourselves  terrible  and 
most  difficult  of  access  to  the  poor  ;  and  are  such 
to  those  who  apply  to  us  for  any  thing,  as  even 
tyrants  and  the  more  cruel  princes  of  the  world 
are  not  towards  their  subjects.     And  we  may  see 
in  some  churches,  especially  of  the  greatest  cities, 
the  princes  (that  is,  the  bishops)  of  the   Christian 
people  have  no  affability,  or  allow  access  to  them- 
selves. And  the  Apostle  indeed  charges  even  mas- 
ters   concerning  their  servants,  saying,    '  Masters 
'  give  unto  your  servants  that  which  is  just  and  equal, 
'  knowing  that  ye  also  have  a  Master  in  heaven.' 
And  he  commands  them  also  to  forbear  threaten- 
ing.    But  some   Bishops  threaten  cruelly,  some- 
times indeed  upon  the  occasion  of  sin,  but  at  other 
times  out  of  contempt  of  the  poor.'    Thus  Origen. 
And  all  this  state  which  the  Bishops  took  on  was  the 
more    intolerable,    that    their  title  to   the    chiefty 
seemed  somewhat  dubious  to  him.     *  It  shall  )iot  be 
'  so  among  you  ;  that  is,'  saith   he,  '  let  not  those 
'  who  seem  to  have  sorae  chiefty  in  the  church  act 

*  the  lords  over  their  brethren,  nor  exercise  power 

*  over  them.'* 

Gregorius  Thaumaturgus,  Ann.  Chr.  233. 

Gregory  Thaumaturgus,  as  Dr  Burnet,t  from  his 
life,  written  by  Gregory  Nyssen,  relates  his  storyi 
'  being  much  set  on  the   study  of  philosophy,  was 

*  afraid  of  engaging  in  the  pastoral   charge,  and, 

*  therefore,  avoided  all  occasions  in  which  he  might 

*  have  been  laid  hold  on  and  ordained ;  which  Phe- 

*  dimus,  a  neighbouring  Bishop,  observing,  though 

*  Gregory  was  then  distant  three  days  journey  from 

*  Inter  tos  autem  qui  estls  mel,  non  erunt  litec.  Ne  forte  qui 
▼itlentur  hahere  aliqneni  in  ecclcsia  principatiim,  dominentur  I'ra- 
trihus  propriis,  vel  potestatcm  in  eos  exerceant.  Origen  Tract.  12. 
in  Mattli'  Lat.  (icnebrard.  Parisiis.  l604. 

\  Hist,  of  the  Right*  of  Princes,  p.  9* 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  187 

*  him,  he  did,  by  prayer,  dedicate  him  to  the  ser- 
«  vice  of  God,  at  Neocesaria,  where  there  were  then 

*  but  seventeen  Christians ;  to  which  the  other  sub- 

*  mitted,  and  came  and  served  there.     Whether  he 

*  received  any  new  orders,  is  but  dubiously  and 
«  darkly  expressed  by  that  autlior.'  Thus  Dr 
Burnet.  From  which  two  things  appear.  First, 
That  imposition  of  hands  is  not  absolutely  necessary 
to  make  a  church  officer,  as  Mr  Rhind  would  have 
us  believe.  Secondly^  That  though  Gregory  was  a 
Bishop,  yet  it  was  but  of  one  congregation,  and  a  very 
small  one  too,  at  first,  so  that  he  neither  had  nor 
needed  Presbyters. 

Cyprian,  Ann,  Chr,  240, 

Cyprian  need  not  be  insisted  on.  Mr  Jameson  ♦ 
and  Mr  Lauder  t  have  so  learnedly  and  largely  prov- 
ed that  the  Cyprianic  Bishop  had  neither  absolute 
power,  nor  plurality  of  congregations,  nor  a  nega- 
tive voice  ;  nor,  in  a  word,  contributes  any  thing 
to  support  the  modern  Episcopacy  ;  that  to  add 
were  superfluous  ;  and,  therefore,  I  must  refer  the 
reader  to  their  labours. 

Basilius  Magnus,  Ann.  Chr.  370. 

Basilius  Magnus,  in  terms,  asserts  the  equal 
power  of  all  pastors  and  doctors.  '  And  this,*  saith 
he,t  *  we  are  taught  by  Ciirist  himself,  when  he 
^  constituted  Peter  pastor  of  his  own  Church,  after 
'  himself.  For  he  saith, — '  Peter  lovest  thou  me 
^*  more  than  these — feed  my  sheep.*     And  to  all 

*  pastors  and  doctors,  that  were  to  come  after,  he 
^  gave  an  equal  power.  And  it  is  a  sign  of  this, 
'  that  they  all,  in  like  manner,  bind  and  loose  as  he 
^  did/     Thus  he. 

Aerius,  Ann.  Chr.  371. 

Aerius  is  confessed  to  have  been  Presbyterian. 
But,  saith  Mr  Rhind,  *  he  was  an  infamous  heretic* 

*  Cypr.  Isot.  f  The  ancient  Bishops  considered. 

\  Coustitut.  Monastic,  Cap.  xxii. 


188        ■  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Be  it  so,  yet  not   a  greater  one   than   Tertullian, 
whom,  yet,  Mr  Khind  cited  in  favours  of  episco- 
pacy.     For,    besides  his   MontanigYn,   some  of  the 
learn edest   doctors,   in  the  present  Roman  Church, 
have  taken  a  great  deal  of  pains,   saith  Dr  Symon 
Patrick,*  to  make  the  world  beheve  that  Tertullian, 
and  a  number  of  other  ancient  Fathers,  were  infect- 
ed with  the  Arian  heresy.    But  who  says  that  Aerius 
was  a  heretic  ?     Mr  Ilhind  answers,  it  was  Epipha- 
nius,    Heres.   LXXV.      But  who   knows   not   that 
Epiphanius's  testimony  is  of  very  small  weight?     Is 
it  not  his  own  character  that  his  learning  was  above 
his  judgment,  but  his  invention  above  them  both  ? 
Was  there  ever  a  more  pitiful  piece  written  than 
his   book   about   heresies  ?      Was  there    ever   any 
thing  weaker  than  what  he  has  advanced   against 
Aerius,  even  upon  the  point  of  episcopacy  ?      Do 
not  the  Episcopal  writers,!  themselves,  own,  that  he 
has  spoken  nonsense  on  that  head  ?   Must  not  every 
Protestant  own  that  Aerius  was  a  better  man  than 
himself,  and  more  orthodox  in  the  faith,  when  he 
condemned  prayers  for  the  dead,  which  Epiphanius 
undertakes  to  justify  against  him.     Is  it  not  known 
that  a  great  deal  more  has  been  said  to  purge  Aerius 
from  the  charge  of  Arianism  than  ever  was,  or,  per- 
haps can  be  said,  for  proving  him  guilty  of  it  ?    Mr 
Ilhind  then  ought  to  have  been  a  little  more  modest 
in   his  character  of  Aerius,  till  he  had  discoursed 
the  matter  more  fully. 

Ambrose,  An?i.  CJir.  376. 

Ambrose,  or  the  Hilary,  whom  I  cited  before, 
upon  these  words,  Eph.  iv.  2.  '  And  he  gave  some 
*  Apostles,'  gives  a  plain  account  of  the  change, 
'  After,'  saith  he,t  '  that  churches  were  planted  in 

*  On  Bellarmine's  2(1  Note  of  the  Church. 

f  Dr  Iteignold's  Letter  to  Sir  Francis  KnoUes,  Bellarmine,  Tom, 
J.  Contra.  5.  Lib.  I.  Cap.  xv. 

;[:  Tamen  postquam  omnibus  locis  ecclesioe  sunt  constitutse,   et 

officia  ortlinata  :    Aliter  composita  res  est,  quam  caeperat, Ideo 

non  per  omnia  conveniunt  Scriptu'Apostoli  ordiuationi  quae  nunc  ia 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  189 

*  all  places,  and  offices  ordained,  matters  were 
<  settled  otherwise  than  they   were  in   the  begin- 

*  ning. And  thence  it  is  that  the  Apostles'  writ- 

*  ings  do  not,   in  all  things,  agree  to  the   present 

*  constitution  of  the   Churcli,   because    they  were 

*  written  under  tiie  first  rise  of  the  Church  :     For 

*  he  calls  Timothy,  who  was  created  a  Presbyter  by 
'  him,  a  Bishop  :  For  so,  at  first,  the  Presbyters 
'  were  called,  among  whom  this  was  the  course  of 
'  governing  churches,  that  as  one  withdrew  another 

*  took  his  place ;  and,  in  Egypt,  even  at  this  da}^, 
'  the  Presbyters  ordain  in  the  Bishop's  absence. 
'  But,  because  the  following  Presbyters  began  to  be 
*.  found  unworthy  to  hold  the  first  place,  the  method 
'  was  changed,  the  council  providing  that  not  order 
'  but  merit  should  create  a  Bishop/  Thus  he.  And 
Augustine,  as  Stillingfleet*  observes,  cites  these  com- 
mentaries with  applause,"  without  stigmatizing  him 
for  a  heretic. 

Chrysostom,  A?i7i,  Chr.   398. 

Chrysostom  delivers  himself  with  abundance  of 
freedom,  on  the  Presbyterian  side.  *  The  Apostles,' 
saith  he,t '  having  discoursed  concerning  the  Bishops, 
'  and  described  them,  declaring  what  they  ought  to 

*  have,  and  from  what  they  ought  to  abstain  ;  omit- 
'  ing  the  order  of  Presbyters,  he  descends  to  the 
'  deacons  ;  and  why  so,  but  because  between 
'  Bishop  and  Presbyter  there  is  no  great  odds  ?  and 

*  to  tliem  is  committed  both  the  instruction  and  the 
'  presidency  of  the    Church  :      And  whatever  he 

*  said  of  Bishops  agrees  also  to  Presbyters.     In  or- 

ecclesla  est,  r^uia  Iicec  inter  ipsa  Piiniordia  sunt  sciipta.  Nam  et 
Timotlujuni  Pixshyterum  a  se  cieatum  Episcopum  vocat,  quia  pri- 
niuni  Prcsbyteri  Kpiscopi  appellebantur.  Ut  recedente  uno  sequens 
ei  snccederet.  Dcnique  apud  ^gyptuni  Presbyleri  consignant,  si 
pra;sens  non  sit  Episcopus.  Sed  quia  Caiperunt  sequentes  Prcsby- 
teri indigni  inveniri  ad  primatus  teneiidos  j  imniutata  est  ratio, 
prospiciente  concilio:  Ut  non  ordo,  sed  nieritum  crearet  Episcopum, 
nmlloium  Sacredotum  judicio  constitutum,  ue  indignus  teniere  usur- 
paret  et  esset  nuiltis  scandalum.      Ambros.  in  Epii.  As. 

*  Irenic.  p.  i513.  \   In  prior  Ep.  ad  Tim.  Honi.  xi. 


190  DEPBNCE  OF  THE 

«  dination  alone  they  have  gone  beyond,  and,  in 

*  this  only  they  seem  to  defraud  *  the  Presbyters.* 
Thus  he,     *  And,'  saith  Willet,t  «  the  distinction 

*  of  Bishops  and  Presbyters,  as  it  is  now  received, 

*  cannot  be  directly  proved  out  of  Scripture  :  And 
«  of  this  judgment,  Bishop  Jewell  against  Harding 

*  sheweth  Chrysostom  to  have  been.'  So  that  here 
we  have  two  Church  of  England  divines  owning 
Chrysostom  to  be  on  our  side. 

Augustine,  Ann.  Chr.  420. 

Augustine,  in  his  epistle  to  Jerome,  disclaims  the 
Divine  institution  of  Prelacy,  and  founds  it  upon 
Ecclesiastic  use.    *  Although,'  saith  hct  *  according 

*  to  the  words  of  honour,  which  use  has  now  made 

*  fashionable  in  the  Church,  the  Episcopate  is  great- 
«  er  than  the  Presbyterate  :'  Yet  in  many  things  is 
Augustine  inferior  to  Jerome.  That  this  testimony 
is  not  strained,  I  appeal  to  Bishop  Jewell's  declara- 
tion.    In  St  Jerome's  time,'  saith  he,§  '  there  were 

*  Metropolitans,    Archbishops,    Archdeacons,    and 

*  others,  but   Christ   appointed  not  these   distinc- 

*  tions  of  orders  from  the  beginning.     This  is  the 

*  thing  which  we  defend.  St  Jerome  saith,  *  Let 
**  Bishops  understand  that  they  are  in  authority  over 
**  priests  more  by  custom  than  by  order  of  God's 
**  truth.'  And  Augustine  declares  *  That,  the  office 
**  of  a  Bishop  is  above  the  office  of  a  priest,  not  by 
"  authority  of  the  Scripture,  but  after  the  names  of 
**  honour  which  the  custom  of  the  Church  hath  now 
"  obtained."     Thus  Bishop  Jewell. 

Thkodoret,   Jnn.  Chr.  430. 

Theodoret,    in  like   manner,   saith, il  '  the   apos- 

*  ties  call  a   Presbyter   a   Bishop,    as   we   shewed 

*  Vide  1  Thess.  C,  iv.  v.  6.  in  the  Greek,  and  compare  it  witli 
Chrysostom's.         f   ^ynops.  Faplb.  Coiurov.  V.  Quest,  iii.  p.  27S. 

t  Quanquani  cnim  secundum  lionorum  vocabula,  qu£E  jam  eccle- 
siae  usus  obtinuii.  Episcopatus  Prcsbyterio  major  sit :  Tameu  in 
multis  Rebus  Au^ustinus  Hieronymo  minor  est  Aug.  Ep.  19. 

$   Apolo^r.  Part.  ii.  C,  iii.  Div.  5,      |1    In  prior  Ep.  ad  Tiin.  C.  iii. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  191 

*  when  we  exponed  the  Epistle  to  the  Phih'ppians, 
«  which  may  be  also  learned  from  this  place  ;  for, 

*  after  the  precepts  proper  to  Bishops,  he  describes 

*  the  things  that  agree  to  deacons  :  But,  as  I  said,  of 

*  old  they  called  the  same  men  both  Bishops  and 

*  Presbyters.*     Thus  Theodoret. 

Primasius,  Anno  Chr.  440- 

Primasius,  who  is  said  by  some  to  have  been 
Augustine's  disciple,  puts  the  question,  *  why   the 

*  Apostle  leaps  from  the  duties  of  bishops  to  the 

*  duties  of  deacons,  without  any  mention  of  pres- 

*  byters  ?'  and  answers    plainly,   as  before,    '  that 

*  bishops  and  presbyters  are  the  same  degree.  * 

Sedulils,  Anno  Chr.  470. 

Sedulius,  our  countryman,  in  his  Commentaries 
on  Tim.  1.  asserts  the  identity  of  bishop  and  pres- 
byter, that  not  only  the  names  are  interchangeable, 
but  the  office  the  same  ;  many  of  them  being  to  be 
found  in  one  city ;  which  could  not  be  true  of  dio- 
cesan bishops.  And  for  proof  and  instance  he 
adduces  the  elders  of  Ephestis,  Acts  xx.  who,  dwell- 
ing all  in  one  city,  though  they  are  called  elders  or 
presbyters,  in  the  17th  verse,  are  yet  called  bishops  in 
the  '28th  verse.  Indeed  it  was  no  wonder  Sedulius 
was  Presbyterian  :  For,  though  he  wrote  not  his 
Commentaries  till  he  went  abroad,  yet,  in  Scotland, 
where  he  was  born  and  bred,  there  was  no  such 
thing  as  a  bishop  while  he  lived  in  it }  t  whatever 
Spottiswood  hath  said  to  the  contrary. 

Concilium  IIispalense  II.  Anno  Chr,  619. 

The  second  Council  of  Seville  plainlydeclares,  'That 
'  though  there  are  many  functions  of  the  ministry, 

*  common  to  the  presbyters  with   the  bishops,  yet 

*  by  the  modern  and  ecclesiastical  rules,  there  are  some 

*  In  1  Tim.  lii. 

f  See   Daliymple's  Collect,   c.  Iv.   5.     Scdulil  Poem.     Piefat. 
Dupiu,  Cent.  v.  p,  50. 


192  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

'  functions  denied  to  them,  such  as  the  ordination 

*  of  presbyters.'*  That  council,  we  see,  does  not 
insist  upon  divine  right,  but  upon  ecclesiastical  rules, 
and  owns  the  appropriation  of  ordination  to  the 
bishop  to  be  a  modern  practice. 

Theophi'la€t,  Anno  Chr.  880. 

I  might  also  give  the  testimony  of  Theophylact, 
who  is  said  by  some  to  have  flourished  about  the 
year  880,  but  placed  by  Baronius  in  the  year  1071. 
But  his  testimony  being  the  same  with  that  of 
Chrysostom,  whose  echo  Stillingfleet  calls  him,  I 
need  not  repeat  his  words. 

Oecumenius,  Anno  Chr,  900. 

Oecumenius,  said  by  some  to  have  lived  in  the 
eighth,  by  some  in  the  ninth,  and  by  others  put  off 
till  the  eleventh  century^  upon  Acts  xx.  17,  thus 
delivers  himself.  '  Many  are  ignorant  of  the  manner, 
'  especially  of  the  New  Testament,  whereby  bishops 

*  are  called  presbyters,  and  presbyters  bishops.'  This 
may  be  observed  both  from  this  place,  and  from  the 
Epistle  to  Titus,  and  fi'pm  the  Epistle  to  the  Philip- 
pians,  and  from  the  fifst  Epistle  to  Timothy.  From 
this  place,  therefore,  of  the  Acts,^we  may  arrive  at  the 
certainty  of  this  matter :  For  thus  it  is  written, 
'  From  Miletus  he  sent  and  called  the  elders  of  the 

*  church.'  It  is  not  said,  the  bishops  ;  and  yet  after- 
wards he  subjoins,  *  over  which  the  Holy  Ghost  has 
«  made  you  bishops,  to  feed  or  rule  the  church.'  And 
from  the  Epistle  to  Titus, '  that  thou  mightest  appoint 

*  elders  in  every  city,'  which  elders  were  after- 
wards called  bishops.  And  from  the  Epistle  to  the 
Philippians.     '  To  all  that  are  at  Phhipi  with  the 

*  bishops  and  deacons.'  And,  as  I  believe,  the 
same  may  be  gathered  from  the  First  Epistle  to 
Timothy.      *  If  any    man    desire   the   office  of  a 

^  *  Caranz.  Summ.  Concil.  HIspal.  Can.  7  p.  [niilii]  269,  qimm- 
vis  cum  Episcopis  pluiima  illis  Ministerlorum  communis  sit  clispen- 
satio,  qusedani  Novellis  et  EcclesiasUcis  regulis  sibi  piohibita 
lint,  sicut  Presbyteronim  consecratio. 


nove- 
ratio. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  193 

«  bishop,  he  desires  a  good  work.     Thus  Oecume- 
nius. 

CANON    LAW. 

To  all  these  we  may  join  the  Canon  Law,  in  which 
we   find  Pope  Urban  pronouncing  in  these  words : 

*  We  call   the  diaconate  and  the  presbyterate  the 

*  sacred  orders,  for  these  alone  the  primitive  church 

*  is  read  to  have  had.'* 

Jerome,  Ann.  Chr.  385. 

And  now  I  think  I  may  conclude  with  Jerome's 
testimony,  who  has  declared  more  roundly  for  Pres- 
bytery, than  any,  perhaps  all  the  Fathers  together, 
ever  did  for  Episcopacy.  Jerome,  I  say,  of  whom 
Erasmus  witnesseth  that  he  was,  without  contro- 
versy, the  most  learned  of  all  Christians,  Prince  of 
Divines,  and  for  eloquence  that  he  excelled  Cicero. 
We  have  heard  him  already  in  his  famous  Epistle  to 
Evagrius.  And  Mr  Rhind,  p.  114,  seems  as  if  he 
would  have  his  reader  believe  that  this  is  the  only 
place  in  which  he  declares  for  presbytery.  But  here- 
in he  imposes  upon  his  reader :  elsewhere,  viz, 
in  his  Commentaries  upon  the  Epistle  to  Titus,  he 
declares  yet  more  explicitly  for  presbytery,  if  more 
can  be,  than  in  that  famous  epistle.  Nor  does  he 
manage  his  business,  as  the  pretended  patron  of 
Episcopacy,  the  false  Ignatius,  does  his,  by  a  flow  of 
words  and  high  ranting  expressions,  which  must 
needs  give  scandal  to  all  the  world  ;  but  he  talks 
like  a  learned  man,  reasons  the  matter,  applies  him- 
self to  his  reader's  understanding,  does  not  put  him 
off  with  rapture  and  harangue,  but  convinces  him 
by  plain  downright  argument.  I  shall  give  his 
testimony  at  large,  and  so  much  the  rather,  that  it 
contains  almost  all  the  Scripture  arguments  for  Pres- 
bytery. 

*  Let  us,'  saith  he,  t  *  carefully  heed  the  words  of 

*  Decret.  ima  pars  Dist.  60.  c.  4.  nullus  in  Epis.  Sacros  autetn 
ovdines  dicinms  Diaconatuni  et  Presbj-teratum.  Hos  siquidein 
solos  Primitiva  legitur  habuisse  Ecclesia. 

t  Comraent,  in  Tit. 

N 


194 


Dr.l'LSCE  OF  THE 


'  the  Apostle,  saying,  '  tlmt  llioii  mavest  ordain  eld- 
*'  ers  ill  every  city  as  I  have  appointed  thee.'     Who, 

*  discoursing  in  what  follows,  what  sort  of  presbyter 

*  ought  to  be  ordained,  says  this,  '  if  any  one  be 
"  blameless,   the  husband  of  one   wife,*  &c.   after- 

*  wards  adds,  •  for  a  Bishop  must  be  blameless  as 
*'  the  steward  of  God.*     A  Presbyter  is  therefore  the 

*  same  with   a   Bishop.      And  before  that,   by  the 

*  deviPs  instinct,  there  were  parties  in  religion, 
'  and  it  was  said  among  the  people,   I  am  of  Paul,  I 

*  of  Apollos,  and  I  of  Cephas,  the  churches   were  go- 

*  verned  by  tlie  common  council  of  Presbyters.  But 
'  after  that,   every  one  began  to  think  that  those 

*  whom  he  iiad  baptised  were  his  own,  not  Christ's. 

*  It  vv'as  decreed  in  the  whole  world,  that  one  chosen 

*  from  among  the  Presbyters  should  be  set  above  the 
'  rest,  to  whom  all  care  of  the  church  should  belong, 

*  and  that  the  seeds  of  schisms  might  be  taken  away. 

*  If  any  one  think  that  this  is  our  judgment,  and  not 

*  the  judgment  of  the  Scriptures,  that  a  Bishop  and 

*  Presbyter  are  one  ;  and  that  the  one  is  a  name  of 

*  age,   the   otlier   of  ofHce,  let  him  read  again  the 

*  words  of  the  Apostle  to  the  Philippians,  saying, 
*'  Paul  and  Timotheus,  the  servants  of  Jesus  Christ, 
*'  to  all  the  saints  in  Jesus  Christ  that  are  at  Philippi, 
*'  with  the  Bishops  and  Deacons,  grace  to  you  and 
**  peace,*  and  so  on.  Philippi  is  one  city  of  Ma- 
'  cedonia ;    and    surely    in    one    city    there    could 

*  not  be  a  })huality  of  such   as  are  called   Bishops. 

*  But  because  at  that  time  they    called  the  same 

*  persons  bishops  and  presbyters,  therefore  he  spoke 

*  indiiferenLly  of  bisho})s  as  of  presbyters.  This 
'  may   yet    seem    doubtful    to  some,    unless    it  be 

*  proven  by  another  testimony.     In  the  Acts  of  the 

*  Apostles  it  is  written,  that  when   the  apostle  had 

*  come  to  Ivliletus,  he  sent  to  Ephesus,  and  called 

*  the  presb}  ters  of  that  same  church  ;  to  wliom  af- 

*  terward,  among  other  things,  he  said,  *  Take  heed 
"  to  yourselves,  and  to  all  the  flock  over  which  the 
**  Holy  Ghost  hath  made  you  bishops,  to  feed  the 
"  Church  of  the   Lord,   which    he  hath  purchased 


PrvESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  195 

"  with  his  own  blood.'  And  here  observe  carefully, 
'  how,  calling  the  presbyters  of  the  one  city  of  Ephe- 

*  sus,  he  afterwards  calls  the  same  persons  bishops, 

*  If  any  will  receive  that  epistle,  which  is  written 

*  to   the    Hebrews  under  the  name  of  Paul,  there 

*  also  the  care  of   the   church  is   equally    divided 

*  among  many  ;  for  he  vvrites  to  the  people,  *  Obey 
"them  that  have  the  rule  over  you,  and  submit 
"yourselves,  for  they  watch  for  your  souls  as  those 
**  that  must  give  an  account,  that  they  may  not  do 
"  it  with  grief,  for  this  is  unprofitable  for  you.'  And 

*  Peter,  who  received  his  name  from  the  strength 

*  of  his  faith,  speaketh  in  his  epistle,  saying,  '  The 
"  presbyters  who  are  among  you  I  exhort,  who  am 
"  also  a  presbyter,  and  a  witness  of  the  sufferings 
*'  of  Christ,  and  a  partaker  of  the  glory  that  shall 
"  be  revealed  ;  feed  the  flock  of  the  Lord  which  is 
*'  among  you,   not  as  of  necessity,  but  willingly.* 

*  We  have  alleged  these  things,  that  we  might  shew, 

*  that  among  the  ancients  the  presbyters  were  the 

*  same  with  the  bishops  :  but  that,  by  little  and  little 

*  the  roots  of  dissention  might  be  plucked  up,  the 

*  whole  care  was  devolved  upon  one.     As,  there- 

*  fore,  the  presbyters  know,  that  by  the  custom  of- 

*  the  church,  they  are  subject  to  him  who  is  set  over 

*  them  ;  so  let  the  bishops  know  that  they  are 
'  greater  than  the  presbyters  rather  by  custom,  than 

*  the  truth  of  the  Lord's  disposition  or  ordering, 

*  and  that  they  ought  to  govern  the  church  in  com- 

*  mon,  imitating   Moses,  who,  when  he  had  it  in 

*  his  power  alone  to  govern  the  people  of  Israel, 
'  chose  seventy  with  whom  he  might  judge  thepeo- 
'  pie.'  Thus  Jerome.  And  I  know  not  how  any 
Scots  Presbyterian  could  have  written  more  patly  in 
favours  of  Presbytery.  Yet  Mr  Rhind  has  many 
things  to  except  against  Jerome's  testimony,  whom 
therefore  I  reserved  to  the  last,  putting  him  out  of 
the  due  order  of  time,  that  I  might  consider  these 
exceptions  without  interrupting  the  list. 

1.  He  excepts,  p.  114,    *that  Jerome  lived  too 
*  late  to  testify  concerning  matters  of  fact  that  hap- 

N  2 


193  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  pened  about  tlie  beginning  of  the  second  century.' 
Now,  Jerome  was  born  Anno  Chr.  329.  Did  he 
hve  too  late  to  testify  of  wliat  happened  within  less 
than  200  years  before  his  birth  ?  If  so,  the  testi- 
mony of  most  part  of  the  Fathers,  nay,  indeed  of 
almost  all  historians,  will  be  of  very  little  worth. 
Do  we  at  this  present  live  too  late  to  testify  con- 
cerning the  form  of  government  which  obtained  in 
Scotland  about  the  year  1520,  when  almost  every 
ploughman  can  tell  it  was  Popery  ? 

2.  He  excepts,  that  Jerome  is  but  testis  singuhris, 
(ibid.  J  It  is  true,  if  a  score  or  more  be  the  same 
thing  with  one,  then  Jerome  is  testis  singularis.  But 
when  we  have  found  so  many  of  the  Fathers  con- 
curring with  him,  I  need  not  tell  how  false  that  ex- 
ception is. 

3.  He  excepts,  (ibid.  J  *  that  Jerome  destroys  the 

*  credit  of  his  own  testimony,  by  contradicting  him- 

*  self  in  this  very  point. — In  Epist.  ad  Heliodor.  and 

*  Nepotian,  and  in  Comment,  in  Psal.  xlv.  ver.  16.' 
The  very  truth  is,  thei'e  are  few  of  the  Fathers  who 
do  not  in  some  points  contradict  themselves,  as  well 
as  one  another.  But,  for  these  places  which  Mr 
Rhind  has  cited,  they  signify  nothing  unless  he 
had  pointed  to  the  particular  words  of  them  wherein 
he  thinks  Jerome  has  contradicted  himself.  For 
instance,  in  the  Epist.  to  Heliodor,  he  makes  the 
presbyters  to  succeed  to  the  apostles,  and  to  have 
the  power  of  excommunication,  &c.*  I  apprehend 
this  is  no  argument  either  for  Episcopacy,  or  that 
he  has  contradicted  himself.  And  that  he  has  nei- 
ther there,  nor  indeed  any  where  else,  contradicted 
himself  in  this  point,  Stillingfleet  is  a  pretty  compe- 
tent witness.  '  Among  all  the  fifteen  testimonies,' 
aaith  hcjt   *  produced  by  a  learned  writer  out  of  Je- 

*  rome,   for  the  superiority  of  bishops  above  pres- 

•  Absit  lit  de  his  quicqiiam  sinistrum  loqiiar,  qui  Apostollco 
gradui  succedentes  Christ!  corpus  sacio  ore  con&ciunt. — Milii  ante 
Presbyterum  sedcre  uon  licet  \  Illi,  si  peccavero,  lieet  tradere  nie 
Satanae. 

f  Irenic.p  ,  277. 


rRESBYTEIJIAN  GOVERNMENT.  197 

'  byters,  I  cannot  find  one  that  does  found  it  upon 

*  divine  right,  but  only  on  the  convenience  of  such 

*  an  order  for  the  peace  and  unity  of  the  Church  of 
«  God.* 

4.  He  excepts,  f  ibid. J   *  that  it  reproacheth   the 
'  wisdom  of  our  Lord  and  his  apostles,  to  suppose 

*  that  they  did  establish  a  form  of  government  ne- 

*  cessarily  productive  of  schisms.*  This  is  to  his 
old  tune  of  prescribing  to  Christ  and  his  apostles. 
The  government  which  they  established,  whicii,  I 
hope,  we  have  proven  to  have  been  Presbyterian, 
did  not  necessarily,  that  is,  in  the  nature  of  the 
thing,  produce  schisms  ;  but  by  accident  only.  Our 
Saviour  foresaw  that  schisms  would  arise  even  under 
the  government  of  divine  institution.  '  Suppose  ye 
'  that  I  am  come  to  give  peace  on  earth  ?  1  tell  you 
'  nay,  but  rather  division.'  Luke  xii.  51.  And  the 
apostles  not  only  foresaw  but  felt  it.     '  I  hear  that 

*  there  be  divisions  among  you.'  1  Cor.  xi,  IS. 
And  yet  they  would  not  prevent  them,  by  setting  up 
a  government  that  should  be  utterly  incapable  of 
them.  No.  God  had  infinitely  wise  ends  to  serve 
by  not  doing  so-    '  I  hear  that  there  be  divisions 

*  (schisms)  among  you,  and  1  partly  believe  it.    For 

*  there  must  be  also  heresies  (sects)  among  you,  that 

*  they  which  are  approved,   may  be  made  manifest 

*  among  you.'  1  Cor.  xi.  18, 19. 

5.  He  excepts,  p.  115,  '  that  it  is  too  severe  a 

*  charge  to  be  offered  against    the  Catholic  Church, 

*  that  it  would  endeavour  to  heal  these  breaches  by 

*  a  device  of  its  own  invention — that  is,  do  evil  that 

*  good  might  come  of  it.*  I  answer  :  It  is  con- 
fessed, the  charge  is  severe  ;  but  that  which  makes 
it  so  is,  that  it  is  perfectly  true  j  and  not  in  that 
only,  but  in  a  thousand  other  cases ;  as  is  evident 
from  the  innumerable  corruptions,  which,  by  degrees, 
did  overspread  the  whole  church.  And  Whittaker — 
their  own  Whittaker — discoursing  of  Jerome's  fore- 
said testimonies,  very  frankly  tells,  '  that  the  remedy 

*  was  almost  worse  than  the  disease.     For,   as  first 

*  one  Presbyter  was  set  over  the  rest,  and  made  Bi- 


198  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  shop,  SO  afterwards  one  Bishop  was  set  over  the 
'  rest ;  and  so  that  custom  begot  the  Pope  with  his 

*  monarchy,  and,  by  Httle  and  Httle,  brought  them 

*  into  the  church.'  Thus  he ;  *  and  it  is  certain 
that  schisms  were  never  so  frequent  as  after  Episco- 
pacy prevailed  j  and  Bishops  tliemselves  were  gene- 
rally either  the  authors,  occasion,  or  fomenters  of 
them.  And  ancient  histories  supply  us  with  such 
dreadful  accounts  of  such  murder,  bloodshed  and 
horrid  barbarities,  committed  by  the  contending 
parties  at  the  election  of  bishops,  as  are  not  to  be 
paralleled  among  the  heathens.  So  much  in  vindi- 
cation of  Jerome,  who,  I  hope,  is  still  safe  to  us,  after 
all  Mr  Rhind's  exceptions. 

And  now,  to  conclude  this  argument :  It  was  so 
far  from  being  morally  impossible  that  prelacy  should 
obtain,  even  in  spite  of  the  divine  institution  of 
Presbytery ;  that,  considering  the  corruption  of  hu- 
man nature,  it  had  been  next  to  a  miracle  if  it  had 
rot  obtained.  For  is  there  any  thing  to  which  man 
is  more  violently  addicted  than  tlie  thwarting  God's 
institutions  ?  Did  not  this  humour  begin  to  work 
even  in  the  Paradisaical  state  ?  What  a  fine  speech 
could  Mr  Rhind  make  to  disprove  the  Israelites 
making  the  golden  calf  at  Horeb  !  •  No.     It  was 

*  morally  impossible  they   should.     God   had  deli- 

*  vered  them  out  of  Egypt  with  a  mighty  hand,  and 

*  in  a  wonderful  manner :   He  had  dried  up  the  Red 

*  Sea  before  them,  and  drowned  their  enemies  in  it: 

*  He  had  given  them  the  law,  with  ail  the  solemni- 

*  ties  of  majesty  and  circumstances  of  terror  ;  there- 

*  in  he  had  expressly  inhibited  them  to  make  unto 

*  themselves  any  graven  imnge :    they  had  in  the 

*  most  solemn  manner  stipulated  obedience.    Would 

*  they  now,  after  all  this,   within  forty  days  too,  so 

*  impiously  oppose  God,  so  perfidiously  violate  their 

*  Sed  ipso  morbo  deterius  pene  Rcmedium  fult ',  nam  ut  primo 
unus  Presbyter  reliquis  piaelatus  est,  efc  factus  Episcopiis  :  Ita 
postea  unus  Episcopus  reliquis  est  praelatus.  Sic  ista  tonsuetudo 
papam  cum  sua  monarchia  peperit,  et  Paulatira  in  Ecclesiara  iij- 
vexit.     De  Regim.  Eccles.  p.  54-0.  '  i' 


rnESBYTElJIAN  GOVEIINMENT.  199 

«  own  engagements,  as  to  contravene  that  law  ?  No. 
<  The  men  of  them  surely  were  masters  of  more 

*  reason  :  the  women  and  children  were  more  fond 

*  of  their  jewels   and  ear-rings,  than  to  part  with 

*  them  to  be  melted  down  into  an  idol :  all  of  them 

*  had  either  a  warmer  sense  of  God's  late   mercies, 

*  or  a  more  terrible  impression    of  his   majetsy  and 

*  justice,  from  the  late  appearance  he  had  made  on 
'  Mount  Sinai,  than  to  venture  on   such  a  prank. 

*  Suppose  they   had   been   all  willing,    yet,  would 

*  ever  Aaron  have  complied  with  the  motion  ?    No. 

*  It  must  needs  be  all  legend   and  fable.      And, 

*  which  confirms  this,  Josephus,  who  has  given  us 

*  so  judicious  and  accurate  a  history  of  the  Jews,  is 

*  utterly  silent  of  it.'  And  yet,  how  impossible  so- 
ever it  was,  there  is,  notwithstanding,  a  certain  book 
which  common  folks  call  the  Bible,  and  Christians 
believe  to  be  the  divine  oracles,  that  assures  us  that 
the  people  urged  it;  Aaron  did  it,  and  the  molten 
Cttlf  was  set  up  and  consecrated  with  great  triumph 
and  without  contradiction-     '  These  be  thy  gods  O 

*  Israel,  which  brought  thee  out  of  the  land  of  I^^gypt  :* 
and  without  any  further  act  for  conformity,  the 
people  got  up  early  next  morning,  and  offered  up 
;th.eir  oxen  to  the  calf,  the  god  and  the  sacri.'ice 
being  out  of  the  same  herd.  So  easy  a  thing  is  it 
.to  make  a  change  in  religion  to  the  worse,  yea,  and 
to  bring  about  an  universal  compliance  with  the 
change.  Vain  man  would  be  wise,  though  he  be 
born  like  a  wild  ass's  colt.  '^Jliere  is  nothing  men 
in  all  ages  have  been  more  bewitched  with,  than  an 
itch  of  refining  upon  God's  appointments.  And  a 
conceit  that  they  were  able  to  better  them,  and  that 
execrable  principle,  that  they  had  power  to  do  so, 
have  been  the  original  of  all  the  corruptions  that 
have  ever  defiled  or  pestered  the  church.  It  is  plain 
that  all  the  fopperies  and  ceremonies,  that  have  crept 
into  the  worship  of  God,  owe  their  birth  to  this. 
And  it  is  no  less  plain,  from  Jerome's  former  account, 
that  Prelacy  was  hewn  out  of  the  same  quarry.  Some 
aspiring  men  have  coloured  their  ambition  with  the 


200  DEFENCE  or  THE 

pretext  of  remedying  schisms  ;  and  the  rest,  either 
through  want  of"  thought  or  courage,  have  been 
gulled  into  a  compliance,  or  blinded  possibly  with 
the  hopes,  that  the  dignity  might  one  day  fall  to 
their  own  share.     But  enough  of  this. 


Sect.  VI, 

Wherein  Mr  Rhino's  Reasonings  against  the  Presbytaian 
Ruling-Elders  and  Deacons^  are  examined,  from  j).  1 02  to 
p.  107. 

The  main  part  of  the  controversy,  viz.  *  Whether 

*  the  order  of  Bishops,  as  superior  to  Presbyters,  be 

*  of  divine  apostolical  institution,'  being  thus  dis- 
cussed, wfc  are  next  to  consider  what  Mr  Rhind  has 
advanced  against  the  Presbyterian  Ruling-Elders 
and  Deacons.     And  first,  against  the  ruling-elders. 


ARTICLE  I. 


Wherein  Mr-  Rhind* s  reasonings  against  the  Vreshy* 
terian  Ruling-Elders  are  ej^amined. 

1.  He  objects  that  the  Presbyterian  ruling-elder 
is  an  officer  of  Calvin's  institution,  p.  102.  But 
here  his  history  has  failed  him  ;  for  the  churches  of 
Bohemia  had  such  officers  before  ever  Calvin  set  up 
the  discipline  of  Geneva.  And  Martin  Bucer,  di- 
vinity professor  in  Cambridge,  approved  and  com- 
mended the  Bohemian  practice  ;  and  justified  it, 
both  from  the  Scriptures  and  the  writings  of  the  Fa- 
thers. This  was  long  since  suggested  by  the  Pres- 
byterian authors,*   and  I  do  not  find  that  ever  any 

*  Alt.,Damasc.  p.  695. 


PIIESBYTEUIAN    GOVEIIXMENT.  201 

answer  was  returned  to  it ;  but  there  is  no  other 
way  of  furnishing  out  the  Episcopal  books,  but  by 
repeating  the  same  baffled  arguments  over  and  over 
again.  It  is  plain,  then,  how  modern  soever  the 
order  of  ruHng-elders  may  be,  yet  it  is  not  of  Cal- 
vin's institution. 

2.  He  objects,  f  ibid. J  *  that  such  an  officer  was 

*  never  heard  of  in  the  church  till  1500  years  after 

*  the  sealing  of  the  canon  of  the  Scripture.'  But 
here  he  is  out  again,  in  point  of  history  ;  yea,  and 
contradicts  his  former  argument.  For,  by  the  com- 
mon account,  the  canon  of  the  Scripture  was  not 
sealed  before  the  year  of  Christ  96.  The  discipline 
and  ruling  elders  were  established  at  Geneva  in  the 
year  1542.  So  that  he  is  wrong  in  his  account  by 
more  than  50  years,  even  keeping  within  the  bounds 
of  the  reformation  by  Calvin, 

3.  He  objects,  (ibid. J  *  that  there  is  not  a  tittle 

*  concerning  them  in  the  Bible.'  This  is  not  argu- 
ing, but  impudence.  We  have  an  account  of  them, 
Rom.  xii.  8.  in  these  words,  *  He  that  ruleth,  with 

*  diligence.'  And  1  Cor.  xii.  28.  we  have  them 
mentioned  under  the  title  of  *  Governments.'  And 
1  Tim.  v.  17.  'Let  the  elders  that  rule  well  be 
'  counted  worthy  of  double  honour,  especially  they 

*  who  labour  in  the  word  and  doctrine.' — '  By  which 

*  words,'   saith   Dr  Whittaker,  in  his  Prelections, 

*  the  Apostle  manifestly  distinguisheth  betwixt  the 

*  bishops  and  inspectors  of  the  church.     If  all  that 

*  rule  well  are  worthy  of  double  honour,   especially 

*  they  who  labour  in  the  word  and  doctrine,  it  is 
'  clear  there  were  some  who  did  not  labour  ;  for  if 

*  they  had  all  done  so,  the  text  had  been  nonsense  ; 

*  but  the  word  especiallij  makes  the  diflTerence.     If  I 

*  should  say,  that  all  those  who  study  at  the  Uni- 
'  versity  are  worthy  of  double  honour,  especially 

*  they  who  labour  in  the  study  of  theology,  I  be- 
'  hoved  either  to  mean,  that  all  do  not  apply  them- 

*  selves  to  the  study  of  theology,   or  I  should  speak 

*  nonsense.  Wherefore  I  confess  that  to  be  the 
'  most  genuine  sense  of  the  text,  by  which  the  pas- 


202  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

*  tors  and  doctors  are  distinguislied  from  those  who 
'  only  governed  :   Rom.  xii.   8.      And  concerning 

*  whom  we  read  in  Ambrose  on  1  Tim.  v.'  Thus 
that  great  light  and  patron  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land.* But  what  says  Mr  Rhind  to  it  ?  Not  one 
syllable.  He  owns  that  Presbyterians  found  upon 
texts  of  Scripture,  but  is  so  wise  as  not  to  name 
them,  far  less  to  essay  to  wring  them  from  the  Pres- 
byterian sense.  And  indeed  his  conduct  in  this  is 
wiser  than  any  where  else  in  his  book  :  For,  it  would 
touch  any  man  of  bowels  with  commiseration,  to 
see  into  what  various  forms  the  Episcopal  writers 
twist  themselves,  to  avoid  the  force  of  the  text  last 
cited.  It  has  but  fourteen  words  in  the  original, 
even  particles  included,  and  they  have  put  at  least 
fourteen  senses  on  it.  Didoclavius  discussed  ten  of 
them  in  his  days,  and  they  have  been  ever  since  in- 
:venting  new  ones.  And  had  Mr  Rhind  told  us 
which  of  them  he  pitched  on,-  I  do  not  believe  it 
would  be  any  hard  matter  to  discuss  that  too,  uur 
less  it  be  one  of  his  own,  which  the  world  never 
yet  heard  of;  for  indeed  the  sense  of  the  text  is  so 
very  obvious,  that  none  can  miss  it  who  does  not 
industriously  resolve  to  torture  it.  He  saw  very 
well  that  he  could  have  made  but  a  scurvy  figure, 
had  he  tried  his  critical  talent  on  it  ;  and  therefore 
he  had  recourse  to  the  popular  art  o£  declaiming  a- 
gainst  the  ignorance  or  disingenuity  of  the  Presby- 
terians. And  every  body  must  own  that  this  was  both 
more  easy  and  innocent  than  if  he  had  fallen  to  the 
wresting  of  the  Scripture,  which  would  have  both 
exposed  his  weakness,  and  made  him  liable  to  dam- 
nation. And  yet  he  is  unlucky  even  in  that  same 
popular  art,  the  Episcopal  writers  themselves  hav- 
ing proclaimed  it  ignorance  to  take  the  said  text  in 
any  other  than  the  Presbyterian  sense.  '  Art  thou 
'  so  ignorant,'  saith  the   forecited  \Vhittaker,t  to 

*  Apud.  Didoclav.  p.  681.     Ex  Slieervocllo. 

•)•  Jta  ignarus  es,  ut  esse  in  Cliristi  ecclesia  Fresbyteros  nescias 
qui  gubernatloni  Lantum,  non  verbi  aut  sacramentorum  adminis- 
tr»tioni  operam  darent. 


PRESBYTEniAN  GOVERNMENT.  203 

Dury,  the  Scotch  Jesuit,  *  that  thou  knowest  not 

*  that  there  are  elders  in  the  Church  of  Christ  whose 
«  work  it  is  to  govern  only,  not  to  preach  the  word 

•  or  dispense  the  sacraments.* 

4.  He  objects,  p.    10:3,  that  this,  viz.    the  busi- 
ness of  the  ruling  elders,  seems  to  be  the  weak  side 
of  the  party,  their  more  learned  advocates  having 
abandoned  its  defence.     Who  are  these,  pray  ?  Nay, 
we  must  wait  for  a  third  edition   of  this   book  be- 
fore we  know  that.    It  was  his  business  to  assert,  not 
to  prove.     For  my  own  part,  I  neither  know,  nor 
can  hear  of  any  Presbyterian,  learned  or  unlearned, 
that  has  abandoned  its  defence.  It  is  true,  Mr  Jame- 
son of  late  has  said  *  that  the  ruling  elders  are  not 
in  a  strict  sense  church  officers,  and  retracts  any 
thins:  he  had  said  before  to  the  contrarv.     And  him 
indeed  I  acknowledge   to  be  a  very  learned  man. 
But  has  he  therefore  abandoned  the  defence  of  the 
ruling  elders  ?  No.     He  owns  they  are  the  repre- 
sentatives of  the  sacra  jylebs  ;  he  has  proved  by  very 
many  authorities.  Episcopal,  too,  among  the   rest, 
that  such  ought  to  be  in  the  church. — Nay,  the  very 
argument  of  his  chapter  is  the  divine  right  of  ruling 
elders  sustained.     W  here,  then,  is  that  advocate  for 
presbytery  that   has  abandoned  its  defence .''  If  any 
has,  we  are   not  likely  to  be  altogether  losers,  the 
advocates  for  prelacy  having  taken  it  up.     Not  to 
name  again  the  learned  V'liitlaker,  Dr  Whitby  on 
the  forecited  text  has  delivered  himself  according 
to  our  hearts  wish.     '  The  elders,'  saith  he,  '  among 
*  the  Jews  were  of  two  sorts.     \st.  Such  as  govern- 
ed in  the  synagogue.     And,  '2.dhj^  Such  as  minister- 
ed in  reading  and  expounding  their  scriptures  and 
traditions,  and  from   them  pronouncing  what  did 
bind  or  loose,  or  what  was  forbidden,  and  what 
was  lawful  to  be  done. — And  these  the  Apostle 
here  declares  to  be  the  most  honourable,  and  w^or- 
^  thy    of  the    chiefest    reward :    accordingly,    the 
Apostle,  reckoning  up  the  offices  God  had  appoint" 

*  Cypr.  Isot.  p.  540. 

s 


204  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  ed  in  the  church,  places  teachers  before  govern- 

*  ments,'   1  Cor.  xii. 

5.   He  objects,  p.    104,  '  that  all  the  Ecclesias- 

*  tics  in  the  apostolical  age  were  initiated  into  their 

*  respective   offices    by   the  imposition    of    hands  ; 

*  whereas  ruling  elders  are  admitted  by  no  such  ce- 

*  remony ;  or  if  there  be  any  solemnity  used  at  all 

*  in   their  designation  to  the  office,  it  is  performed 
'  by  every  parish  minister  in  his  private  congrega- 

*  tion  ;  which  is  contrary  to  Presbyterian  principles, 

*  and  is  to  exercise   the  sole  power  of  ordination, 

*  which  is  not  so  much  as  pretended  to  by  bishops/ 
It  is  answered,  1st,  The  want  of  the  imposition 
of  hands  will  not  argue  them  to  be  no  church  offi- 
cers. Not  to  mention  the  Apostles  and  Gregory 
Thaumaturgus,  of  whom  before  ; — Ignatius  himself^ 
if  all  traditions  are  true,  was  not  ordained  by  impo- 
sition of  hands.*  Nobody  doubts  it  is  very  lawful, 
and  for  my  own  part  I  heartily  wish  it  were  practis- 
ed, but  I  deny  that  it  is  absolutely  necessary,  there 
being  no  precept  enjoining  it,  and  the  gift  of  the 
Holy  Ghost  in  his  extraordinary  Charismata,  which 
accompanied  the  imposition  of  the  Apostles  hands, 
being  now  ceased.  And  of  this  judgment  are  not 
only  Presbyterians,  but  even  the  most  learned  men 
of  the  Church  of  Rome  herself,  though  otherwise 
so  much  addicted  to  ceremonies.  Of  this,  to  omit 
other  testimonies,  that  judicious  historian,  Father 
Paul,  informs  us,t  '  Melchior   Cornelius,   a  Portu- 

*  gal,'  saith  he,  *  seemed  to  speak  much  to  the  pur- 

*  pose,  who  said,  the  Apostles  did  undoubtedly  use 

*  imposition  of  hands  in  ordination,  so  that  none  is 
'  mentioned  in  the  Holy  Scripture  without  that  cere- 
'  mony,    which,    in   succeeding  ages,  was  thought 

*  to  be  so  essential,  that  ordination  was  called  by 

*  that  name.     Notwithstanding  Gregory  the  Ninth 

*  saith,  it  was  a  rite  brought  in,  and  many  divines 

*  do  not  hold  it  to   be  necessary,  howsoever  others 

*  Dr  Wake's  Genuine  Ep.  2d.  edit.  p.  4^. 
1  Hist.  Council  of  Trent,  p.  555. 


PRESBYTERIAN    GOVERNMENT.  205 

'  be  of  a  contrary  opinion.     And  the  famous  canon- 

*  ists,  Hostiensis,  Joannes  Andreas,  Abbas,  and 
<  others,  do  affirm,  that  the  Pope  may  ordain  a 
'  priest  with  these  words  only,  '  Be  thou  a  Priest ;' 
«  and  which    is    of  more  importance,  Innocentius, 

*  Father  of  the  Canonists,  saith,  that  if  the  forms 

*  had  not  been  invented,  it  had  been   sufficient  if 

*  the  ordainer  had  used  these  words  only,  or  others 

*  equivalent,  because  they  were  instituted  by  the 

*  church  afterwards  to  be  observed,  'idly.  That 
Bishops  do  not  pretend  to  the  sole  power  of  ordina- 
tion is  shamelessly  false.  We  have  given  testimony 
before,  p.  Q5^  that  they  not  only  pretend  to  it,  but 
practise  it.  And  after  that  heap  of  proofs  which 
Mr  Jameson  has  brought  in  his  Cyprianus  Isotimus 
for  that  purpose,  a  man  must  be  even  steeled  in  the 
forehead  that  denies  it.  And  even  when  the  Pres- 
byters are  admitted  to  join  with  the  Bishop  in  acts 
of  ordination,  it  is  merely  as  witnesses  or  consenters, 
not  as  having  the  least  share  of  power.  This,  Mr 
Drury  has  most  roundly  asserted  in  the  Vindication 
of  his  Answer  to  Mr  Boyse's  Sermon  concerning  the 
scriptural  Bishop  ;  and,  as  I  am  informed,  is  dig- 
nified with  the  title  of  Doctor  for  his  pains. — '  All,* 
saith  he,  '  that  the  Presbyters  had  to  do,  was  only 
'  to  give  their  consent,  and  to  let  the  church  know 

*  that  so  sacred  an  action  was  not  done  rashly,  nor 
'  out  of  favour  and  affijction.  That  they  had  no 
'  divine  right  to  concur  with  the  Bishop,  that 
'  the  power  of  ordination  was  in  the  Bishop  alone, 
'  the   Presbyters  were  only  allowed  to  perform  a 

*  share  in  the  outward  ceremony.'  Qdly,  That  the 
solemnity  used  in  the  designation  of  the  ruling  el- 
ders to  their  office,  is  contrary  to  Presbyterian  prin- 
ciples, Mr  Ilhind  ought  to  have  proved,  not  merely 
asserted  :  for,  by  doing  so,  he  has  mightily  exposed 
himself.  It  is  true,  it  is  performed  by  every  parish 
minister  in  his  private  congregation  ;  he  alone  en- 
joins them  their  duty,  takes  their  engagements,  and 
by  solemn  prayer  sets  them  apart  for  the  office. 
And,  as  this  is  their  constant  practice,  so  they  have 

2 


206  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

still  owned  it  to  be  their  principle,  that  it  is  lawful 
so  to  do.  But  then  the  trial  is  made  by  the  minister 
and  eldership  of  the  congregation ;  or,  in  want  of 
these,  by  the  presbytery ;  and  the  whole  people  are, 
by  a  public  edict,  allowed,  nay  required,  to  repre- 
sent their  objections  against  their  admission,  if  any 
they  have.  This  is  to  treat  the  people  like  ra- 
tional creatures  :  whereas,  the  bishop's  putting  men 
into  deacon's  or  priest's  orders  privately  in  his 
own  chamber,  which  was  the  constant  practice  in 
the  late  Episcopal  times,  not  oniy  chokes  rea^.on, 
makes  beasts  of  the  people,  but  is  contrary  to  the 
whole  stream  of  antiquity,  '  The  people  themselves, 

*  as  it  is  in  Cyprian,*  having  especially  the  power  of 
'  chusing  worthy  priests,  or  of  rejecting  such  as  are 

*  unworthy.' 

6.  He  objects,  p.  105,  that  the  Scriptural  Pres- 
byters were  to  continue  ad  vitam  ant  culpam.  I  an- 
swer, so  are  the  Presbyterian  elders.  Por,  once  an 
elder  still  an  elder,  unless  he  is  deposed  for  malver- 
sation. If,  in  some  great  towns,  they  are  relieved 
in  course  by  others,  or  honourably  dismissed  upon 
their  desire^  when  age  disables  them  for  service, 
this  is  only  such  an  allowance  as  was  made  to  the 
Levites  under  the  law ;  and,  therefore,  is  not  incon- 
sistent with  the  character  of  a  church  officer. 

7.  He  objects,   (ibid.)  '  that  the  Scriptural  Pres- 

*  byters  were  allowed    their   proper    maintenance, 

*  whereas  the  Presbyterian  Elders  plead  no  title  to 

*  any  such  thing,  but  are  rather  losers  by  the  inter- 

*  ruption  of  their  trades.'  The  answer  is  plain. 
The  same  scripture  which  founds  their  ofiice,  entitles 
them  to  maintenance — For  the  double  honour  cer- 
tainly imports  no  less.  But  that  they  do  not  plead  it,  is 
because  the  government  has  settled  no  fund  for  that 
purpose,  and  that,  in  the  present  circumstances,  they 
know  it  would  be  in  vain  to  plead  it.  But  will  that 
make   them   no   church    officers  ?      Was    Paul    no 

*  Plebs  ipsa  maxime  habet  potestatem  vel  Eligendl  dignos 
Sacerdotes  vel  indignos  recusandi.     Ep.  67. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  207 

church  officer,  because  he  made  the  gospel  of  Christ 
without  charge  ;  1  Cor.  ix.  18  ?  Are  not  the  Epis- 
copal deacons  church  officers  ?  They  are  not  now 
provided  in  any  maintenance,  whereas,  in  the  pri- 
mitive church,  they  were,  as  Jerome  witnesseth, 
better  seen  to  than  the  presbyters  themselves.*  It 
is  true,  the  Presbyterian  elders  are  sometimes  avo- 
cate  from  their  employments  by  their  office.  But 
this  only  speaks  forth  their  generous  temper,  in  that 
they  prefer  the  public  service  of  the  church  to  their 
private  interest.  Nor  are  they  likely  to  be  loser* 
thereby  :  For,  God  will  not  be  unmindful,  nor  for- 
get their  work  and  labour  of  love. 

8.  He   argues,   (ibid.^     *  were  there    any  foun- 

*  dation  for  such  an  otfice  in  the  Holy  Scriptures, 

*  whence  was  it  that  ruling  elders  did  so  early,  so 
'  universally,  and  so  tamely  give  up  their  divine  right, 

*  that  there  is  no  once  mention  made  of  any  such  by 

*  divine  right  in  the  Homilies  and  Commentaries  of 

*  the  Fathers.'  For  answer,  I  shall  read,  to  Mr  Rhind, 
a  homily  from  the  commentaries  of  one  of  the  Fa- 
thers. *  Age,'  saith  the  forecited  Ambrose  or  Hi- 
lary, +  '  is  honourable  among  all  nations  ;  whence 
'  first  the  Synagogue,  and  afterwards  the  Church, 

*  had   Elders,  without  whose   council  nothing  was 

*  done  in  the  Church.    Which,  by  what  negligence 

*  it  is  fallen  into  desuetude,  I  know  not,  if  it  be  not 

*  through  the  sloth,  or  rather  pride,  of  the  Doctors, 

*  whilst  they  alone  will  seem  to  be  something.'  Thus 
he.  I  think  it  is  tolerably  clear  from  this  testimony, 
that  there  vv^ere  Elders  in  the  Church  at  first :  For 
it  is  not  possible  Hilary  could  understand  either 
Bishops  or  preaching  Presbyters  by  them,  seeing 
these  still  continued  in  the  Church.  And  I  think 
it  is  as  clear,  that  their  being  disused,  was  owing  to 

*  Aut  si  ex  Diacono  ordinatur  Presbyter,  noverit  se  lucris 
minorem,  sacerdotio  esse  niajorem.     Kp.  ad 

f  Nam  apud  omncs  utique  gentes  honorabilis  est  senectus,  un- 
de  et  Synagoga  et  postca  ecclesia  scniores  habuit,  quorum  sine 
consilio  nihil  agebatur  in  ecclesia.  Quod,  qua  negligentia  obso- 
leverit,  nescio,  nisi  forte  doctorum  desidia  aut  magis  supcrbia, 
duni  soli  volunt  aliquid  videri.     Comment,  in  1  Tim.  v.  1. 


208  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  prelatic  spirit  of  ambition,  which  has  been  the 
mother  of  so  many  mischiefs  to  the  Church.  It  is, 
therefore,  no  wonder  that  we  do  not  find  the  names 
of  the  Riding-  Elders  in  the  acts  of  the  General  or 
Provincial  Councils,  when  the  Doctors  were  of  such 
an  usurpino-  temper.  And  perhaps  that  is  the  rea- 
son why  there  are  so  very  few  councils  that  had  a 
good  issue,  or  of  whom  we  have  a  comfortable  ac- 
count. Even  the  Fathers  of  the  first  Council  of 
Nice  were  in  peril  of  throwing  their  Bibles  at  one 
another's  heads,  had  not  Constantine  wisely  mode- 
rated their  choler,  and  charitably  burned  their  scan- 
dalous libels  against  one  another.  Mr  Rhind,  in- 
deed, p.  218,  taxes  the  Presbyterians,  that  they 
dubbed  here  a  godly  Webster,  there  a  sanctified 
Cobbler,  Ruling  Elders.  But  I  cannot  see  why  ei- 
ther the  Webster  or  the  cobbler  might  not  be  as  use- 
ful members  in  a  council  as  many  of  the  Bishops. 
For,  we  have  uncontested  evidences,  *  that  many  of 
them  could  not  read  or  write  their  own  name.  Mr 
Rhind  ought  to  have  been  aware  how  he  inferred 
that  the  Ruling  Elders  are  no  Church  officers,  be- 
cause they  were  not  present  at  councils,  nor  their 
names  recorded  in  the  acts  of  them  :  For,  if  that 
argument  be  good,  it  will  prove  that  even  the  Epis- 
copal Presbyters  are  not  Church  officers  ;  Bellarmine 
having  shewn,  t  at  great  length,  that  Prelates  alone 
have  power  to  sit  and  vote  in  councils.  However, 
this  is  enough  for  the  Presbyterian  practice,  that  in 
the  first  and  best  council  that  ever  was,  I  mean  that 

*  Helius  Episcopus  HadrianopoHtanus  definiens  subscripsi  per 
Romanum  Episcopum  Myionum,  eo  quod  nesciam  literas.  Ca- 
jumus  Episcopus  Pliaenicensis  detiniens  subscripsi  per  coepisco- 
pum  meum  Dionysium,  propterea  quod  literas  ignorem.  Concil. 
Ephes.  2.  in  Act.  i.  Clialced.  Cone,  in  Arab.  Tom.  i.  p.  830.  Cone. 
Ephes.  i.  Patricias  Presbyter  de  vico  paradoxilo,  manu  utens 
iTiaximi  compresbyteri,  ob  hoc,  quod  literas  ignorarem.  Zenon 
chorcpiscopus — manum  accomodavi  pro  eo  ego  FJavius  Palla- 
dius,  ob  hoc  quod  presens  dixerit  literas  se  ignorare,  in  Act.  1. 
Con.  Chalced.  in  Crab.  p.  8l6.  vide  plura  apud  Clarkson,  Disc, 
concerning  Liturgies,  p.  196. 

f  De  Concil.  Lib.  i.  cap.  15. 


pi:cLi?VTEiii.\x  govi:::n.ment. 


209 


at  Jerusalem,  Acts  xv.  both  the  Apostles  and  Eld- 
ers ;  yea,  and  the  whole  Church,  v.  22.  were  Mem- 
bers  ;'  and  tlie  acts  and  decrees  thereof  passed,  not 
only  by  their  advice,  but  with  tlieir  suffrage. 

Thus,  now,  we  have  seen  that  the  lluhng  Elders 
are  of  Divine  institution  ;  that  tliey  obtained  in  tlie 
Primitive  Church  ;  that  they  fell  into  desuetude 
through  the  pride  of  the  Bishops;  and  that,  in  tlie 
best  constituted  ciiurches  in  the  world,  they  were 
revived  again  upon  tiie  first  dawning  of  the  liefor. 
mation. 

And  indeed  the  wisdom  of  our  Lord,  and  his  care 
of  his  Ciuuch,  is  very  much  seen  in  the  institution. 
For,  as  he  lias  appointed  Ministers,  that  the  faith 
of  the  Church  may  be  kept  sound ;  and  Deacons, 
that  the  wants  of  her  poor  members  might  be  sup- 
plied ;  so  he  has  appointed  Ruling  Elders  to  over- 
see the  manners  and  outward  conversation  of  Chris- 
tians, that  tiiey  be  such  as  become  the  Gospel.  Be- 
sides, by  this  constitution,  the  discipHne  is  the  more 
willingly  submitted  to  by  the  people,  being  exercised 
by  persons  chosen  from  among  themselves,  appoint- 
ed to  re()resent  them,  to  take  care  of  their  interest, 
and  that  they  may  have  no  reason  to  complain  of  the 
rigour  or  severity  of  the  Ministers.  To  illustrate 
tliis  a  little  from  the  constitution  of  the  civil  govern- 
ment :  Princes  ordinarily  live  in  state  ;  see  nothing 
but  coaclies  and  six,  fine  rooms,  and  full  tables  ; 
nor  does  any  body  appear  before  them  but  in  his 
Sunday's  clothes.  All  this  is  very  necessary  and 
reasonable  ;  yet  it  leaves  them  very  much  unac- 
quainted with  the  condition  of  the  country  ;  nor 
can  they  have  other  than  a  very  faint  sense  of 
the  ])ressures  and  calamities  their  people  may  be 
groaning  uniler  :  And  were  the  legislature  solely  in 
their  hands,  they  could  hardly  escape  being  bhuneil 
for  every  thing  the  people  n)ight  think  a  grievance. 
But  now,  when  a  Puiliamenl  meets  once  a-year,  the 
Prince  gets  the  condition  of  the  people  in  the  most 
remote  corners  of  the  kingdom  represented  ;  and  the 
people  cannot  but  besatisried,when  they  consider  they 

o 


210  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

are  governed  by  no  other  laws,  nor  burdened  with 
other  taxes,  than  what  were  asked  and  enacted  with 
their  own  consent ;  or,  wliich  is  the  same  thing,  by 
representatives  of  their  own  choosing.  Just  so;  mi- 
nisters, through  their  retired  course  of  life,  are  or- 
dinarily very  much  strangers  to  the  way  of  the  world, 
and  are  ready  to  measure  the  world  by  the  abstract 
notions  they  have  gathered  out  of  books,  or  from 
their  own  solitary  musings,  which  do  not  always 
suit  with  the  practical  part  of  life.  Hence  it  comes 
to  pass,  that,  till  age  and  experience  have  mellowed 
them,  they  are  apt  to  have  too  much  keenness  on 
their  spirits,  and  to  express  too  much  rigour  in  their 
actings.  But  Ruling  Elders  are  more  conversant 
in  the  world,  know  better  what  the  times  will  bear, 
and  what  allowances  are  necessary  to  be  made  in 
this  or  that  case.  Now,  when  the  people  (in  the 
case  of  scandals),  see  themselves  judged  by  such 
persons,  and  that  there  is  no  other  discipline  exer- 
cised on  them,  but  what  even  their  own  neighbours, 
as  well  as  their  ministers,  think  reasonable,  they  can 
have  no  just  cause  of  complaint. 

To  conclude  :  It  is  very  strange  that  the  Episco- 
pal writers  should  inveigh  against  officers,  whose  pro- 
vince it  is  only  to  govern,  not  to  preach,  I  mean 
by  them.selves,  seeing  they  have  loudly  proclaimed 
to  the  world,  that  they  look  upon  their  Bishops  on- 
ly as  such.  Thus,  Dr  South,*  in  his  Sermon,  preach- 
ed at  the  consecration  of  the  Bishop  of  Rochester^ 
upon  Titus,  ii.  verse  ult, — *  These  things,  speak  and 

*  exhort,'  in  a  flat  contradiction  to  the  text,  says, 
'  That  a  teaching  talent  is  not  absolutely  necessary 
'  in  a  Bishop,  nor  is  of  the  vital  constitution  of  his 

*  function.     If  he  have  it,  it  is  not  to  be  refused ; 

*  but  if  he  have  it  not,  it  is  not  much  to  be  desired.* 
And  if  any  of  their  Bishops  do  make  conscience  of 
constant  preaching,  as  some  of  them  have  done,  it 
is  reckoned  a  labour  of  love,  as  not  having  a  care  of 
souls.     Thus,  the  Bishop  of  Sarum,  in  his  Funeral 

*  Vol.  I.  p.  209,  &c. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  211 

Sermon  on  Dr  Tillotson,  the  late  Archbishop  of 
Canterbury :  *  In  his  function,'  saith  he,  *  he  was 
«  a  constant  preacher :  For  though  he  had  no  care 
«  of  souls  upon  him,  yet  few  that  had  laboured  so 
*  painfully  as  he  did.'  And  yet  the  Archbishops  and 
Bishops  have,  above  all  the  other  clergy,  the  great- 
est honour  and  the  largest  provision.  I  wonder  up- 
on what  account,  if  it  be  none  of  their  duty  to  la- 
bour in  the  word  and  doctrine.  And  I  wonder  how 
Episcopal  Ruling  Elders  can  be  lawful,  and  Presby- 
terian Ruling  Elders  not  so.     But  enough  of  this. 


ARTICLE  II. 


Wherein  3/r  R hind's  Reasonings  against  the  PreS' 
byterian  Deacons,  are  examined.     P.  106,  107. 

1.  He  objects,  that  the  primitive  Deacons  did 
preach  and  baptize,  which  the  Presbyterian  Deacons 
cannot  do ;  therefore  they  are  not  the  same.  It  is 
answered :  The  Scripture  Deacons,  by  virtue  of 
their  office,  were  neither  to  preach  nor  baptize,  but 
to  serve  tables :  For  the  Apostles  unloaded  them- 
selves of  the  latter  function,  because  they  could  not, 
with  it,  discharge  the  former ;  Acts,  vi.  2.  *  It  is  not 

*  reason  that  we  should  leave  the  word  of  God,  and 
'  serve  tables.'  *  But,'  says  Mr  Rhind,  *  Philip, 
'  who  was  ordained  a  Deacon,  Acts,  vi.  did  preach 
«  and  baptize,'  Acts,  viii.  12,  13.  It  is  answered: 
1st,  We  have  heard  Hilary  before  declaring,  that  it 
was  allowed  to  all  in  the  beginning  to  preach  the 
gospel,  and  to  baptize.  2dly,  Philip  was  an  Evan- 
gelist; and  in  that  capacity,  preached  and  baptized. 
'  But,'  says  Mr  Rhind,  *  we  read  of  no  second  ordi- 

*  nation  he  had  for  these  purposes.'   Is  not  this  pret- 

0  2 


212  DrFKXCE  oy  the 

ty  ?  Is  he  not  expressly  called  an  Evangelist,  Acts, 
xxi.  8.  And  shall  we  think  he  took  up  the  office  at 
his  own  hand,  without  being  ordained  to  it,  because 
■we  do  not  read  of  his  ordination  ?  Or  does  he  think 
that  Evangelists  had  not  power  to  baptize  ?  '  But,' 
adds  he,  '  we  find  Peter  and  John  commissioned  by 

*  the  Apostles  to  confirm  the  Samaritans,  which  of*- 
'  fice  Philip  could  have  discharged,  had  he  been  an' 

*  Evangelist.'  I  answer:  He  could  not.  For  the 
confirmation  that  is  there  meant,  is  the  giving  of 
the  Holy  Ghost  in  his  extraordinary  c//flm/?Zf//^,  as  is- 
evident  from  the  whole  history — and  this  none  but 
the  Apostles  could  give  ;  nor  is  there  one  instance, 
either  in  the  Scripture  or  Church  history,  where 
ever  any  but  the  Apostles  either  did  or  could  give 
it.  But  Mr  Rhind  has  strongly  imagined,  that  the 
present  usage  among  the  Prelatists  is  according  to 
the  New  Testament  practice  ;  whereas,  indeed,  Epis- 
copal confirmation  is  a  thing  unheard-of  in  the  Scrip- 
ture, and  so  is  a  baptizing  Deacon.  Nor  can  I  look 
upon  baptism,  administered  by  an  Episcopal  Deacon, 
any  otherwise  than  as  if  it  had  been  administered  by 
a  Webster  or  cobbler  Ruling  Elder  or  Deacon  among 
the  Presbyterians.  I  am  sure  there  is  not  the  least 
countenance  for  it  in  the  Scripture.  I  am  sure  the 
very  design  of  the  Deacon's  office  declares  that  bap- 
tizing is  no  part  of  it.  I  am  sure,  likewise,  the  Pres- 
byterian Deacon  is  the  only  Deacon  by  Scripture 
warrant,  wlien  the  word  is  taken  as  signifying  an  of- 
ficer inferior  to  a  Presbyter. 

2.  He   objects,    *  that  the  ancient  Deacons  did 

*  constitute   one  of  the  ordinary  and  perpetual  or- 

*  ders  of  ecclesiastics,    whereas   the    Presbyterian 

*  Deacons   are  only  in   a  few  of  the  larger  towns, 

*  there  being  none  sucli  in  any  other  part  of  the  na- 

*  tion.'  It  is  answered  :  They  are  in  every  congre- 
gation where  they  can  be  had  ;  and,  to  my  cer- 
tain knowledge,  in  the  lesser  as  well  as  larger  towns ; 
yea,  in  many  country  congregations.  And  every 
minister  is  posed  upon  it  by  the  Presbytery  twice  a- 
year,  whether  his  session  be  constituted  with  deacons 


PnEGBYTEIlIAN  GCYZriN-MENT.  213 

as  well  as  elders.  Possibly  some  congregations  may 
have  little  or  no  stock  ;  and  perhaps  as  few  poor 
that  want  it.  What  is  the  great  hazard,  though,  in 
such  a  case,  they  have  no  deacons?  *  O,'  saith  Mr 
Rhind,  *  it  is  a  fundamental  defect,  if  they  believe 
*  them  to  be  of  Divine  institution.'  Very  well  ar- 
gued !  As  if  Deacons  were  absolutely  necessary  to 
the  constitution  of  a  church.  But  time  was,  when 
there  were  no  such  officers  in  being,  nor  any  order 
for  them  ;  nor,  in  all  probability,  wotdd  there  ever 
have  been  any,  had  not  the  emergent  circumstances 
of  the  Church  made  it  necessary.  How  many  in- 
stances have  we  in  Church  history,  of  Bishops  with- 
out Presbyters  ?  But  was  that  a  fundamental  de- 
fect ?  Or  would  it  be  sufficient  whereupon  to  infer, 
that  Presbyters  are  not  Church  officers ;  or  that  the 
office  is  not  of  Divine  institution  ?  It  is  nauseous 
to  answer  such  stuff.  So  much  for  the  Presby- 
terian Deacons. 


The  Conclusion  of  the  Chapter  concerning  Church- 

Government, 

Thus  now  I  have  got  through  the  controversy  of 
the  government  of  the  Church  ;  and  hope  I  have 
made  it  sufficiently  clear,  that,  neither  from  the  na- 
ture of  the  thing,  nor  the  form  of  government  among 
the  Jews,  nor  political  necessity,  nor  the  institution 
of  our  Lord,  nor  the  practice  of  the  Apostles,  nor 
the  pretended  Episcopacy  of  Timothy  and  Titus, 
nor  the  apocalyptic  angels,  nor  the  testimony  of  an- 
tiquity, nor  indeed  from  any  thing  else  Mr  Rhind 
has  advanced,  does  it  appear,  that,  by  Divine  right, 
there  is,  or  ought  to  be,  any  officer  in  the  Church 
superior  to  the  preaching  Presbyter.  Consequent- 
ly, the  Presbyterian  government  is  not  schismatical, 
but  that  which  was  originally  instituted,  and  did  at 


214 


DEFENCE  OP  THE 


first  obtain.  Consequently  Mr  Rhintl,  in  separat- 
ing from  it,  (the  same  is  to  be  said  of  all  others  in 
his  case,)  is  become  a  schismatic.  Consequently, 
Episcopal  ordination  is  so  far  from  being  necessary, 
that  it  is  without,  and  therefore  contrary  to  Divine 
institution. 

And  now  to  conclude.  I  cannot  but  look  upon  it 
as  one  of  the  nicest  turns  I  ever  heard  was  given 
to  a  cause,  that  our  Scotch  Episcopalians,  who,  the 
other  day,  while  they  were  in  possession,  were  glad 
to  find  a  few  colours,  and  watery  ones  they  were, 
God  wot,  to  prove  Episcopacy  lawful ;  and  would 
have  been  heartily  well  content,  if  people  would 
have  acquiesced  in  it  as  tolerable ;  that  they,  I  say, 
should,  now  when  they  had  lost  all,  set  up  for  the 
absolute  necessity  of  it,  and  hope  to  recover  the 
saddle  by  that  politic  j  I  cannot  help  saying,  in  the 
words  of  Catullus, 

Res  est  ridicula  et  nimisjocosa. 

It  is  much  such  another  trick  as  the  church  of 
Rome  serves  the  Protestants  :  When  she  finds  her 
religion  ahnost  one  continued  scab  of  errors  and  cor- 
ruptions, she  puts  on  a  brazen  impudence,  and  will 
needs  have  them  to  dispute  her  infallibility.  I  must 
then  advise  our  Episcopal  writers  to  be  so  modest, 
as  not  to  grasp  at  all ;  but  to  content  themselves, 
as  their  fathers  did  before  them,  with  essays  to  prove 
the  lawfulness  of  Episcopacy,  without  insisting  on 
the  necessity  of  it.  And,  as  for  others,  besides  the 
clergy,  who  are  become  disciples  to  this  new  hypo- 
thesis, I  cannot  but  seriously  exhort  them  to  con- 
sider the  horrid  un charitableness,  and  bloody  cruel- 
ty of  it,  no  where  to  be  paralleled,  except  amongst 
the  most  bigotted  Papists.  I  crave  leave,  then,  to 
address  you  in  a  few  words. 

I  hope,  gentlemen,  you  know  that  there  are 
other  churches  in  the  world,  besides  the  Presby- 
terians in  Scotland,  which  neither  believe  the  neces- 
sity of  Bishops,  nor  maintain  union  with  them  : 
There  are  our  brethren  dissenters  in  England  and 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  215 

Ireland,  a  pretty  considerable  body.  There  was  the 
French  reformed  Church,  while  she  stood,  and  what 
yet  remains  of  her  in  a  dispersed  condition.  There  are 
the  Belgic  Churches,  the  Church  of  Geneva,  the 
reformed  Cantons,  with  iheir  Protestant  Confede- 
rates ;  and  New  England  on  the  other  side  of  the 
world — all  which  own  no  such  office  as  that  of  a  Dio- 
cesan Bishop.  Now,  pray  Gentlemen,  do  you  think 
it  nothing  to  unchurch  all  these  ;  and,  which  is  the 
necessary  consequence  of  that,  to  give  them  to  the 
devil ;  when  yet  all  the  world  sees  that,  generally 
speaking,  their  conversation  is  at  least  as  good,  and 
as  becoming  the  gospel  as  your  own  ?  Do  ye 
think  it  nothing,  by  your  bigotted  notions,  thus  to 
weaken  the  Protestant  interest,  and  to  make  such  a 
dangerous  concession  to  the  Papists,  that  so  fair  a 
part  of  the  Protestant  world  is  in  a  state  of  schism, 
out  of  favour  with  God,  and  incapable  of  salvation  ; 
and  all  this  merely  for  the  want  of  Prelates,  of  whom 
there  is  not  the  least  mention  in  Scripture  ? 

And  yet  the  malign  influence  of  your  principle 
does  not  sist  within  these  bounds  I  have  mentioned. 
No,  all  the  Churches  who  have  only  superintendents, 
are  in  quite  as  dangerous  a  condition  as  the  former. 
For,  besides  that  these  superintendents  positively 
disown  their  superiority  over  their  brethren  to  be 
by  divine  right ;  we  have,  p.  4.5,  heard  Mr  Dodwell 
declaring,  that  they  are  not  sufficient  for  a  principle 
of  unity,  and  consequently  cannot  be  the  medium  of 
union  with  Christ.  Now,  pray  consider  what  a  ha- 
vock  this  must  needs  make  of  the  remaining  Pro- 
testant Churches.  Lest  you  should  think  me  par- 
tial in  giving  the  detail  of  them,  take  it  in  Stilling- 
fleet*s  words.     '  in  Holstein,'  saith  he,*  *  Pomeren, 

*  Mecklenburg,  Brunswick,  Lunenburg,  Bremen, 
'  Oldenburg,  East  Friesland,  Hessen,  Saxony,  and 
'  all  the  upper  part  of  Germany,  and  the  Protestant 

*  Imperial  cities,  Church-Government  is  in  the  hands 
'  of  Superintendents.  In  the  Palatinate,  they  have 
'  Inspectors  and  Pra^positi,  over  which  is  the  cccle- 

•  Irenic.  p.  411. 


21, 


r.EFENCr   OF   TITE 


*  siastical  consistory. — And  so  they  liave  their  Prae- 

*  positors  in  Werteravv,  Hessen  and  Aniialt.    And  in 

*  Transylvania,  Polonia  and  Bohemia,  they  have 
'  their  Seniores.     All  these,'  he  adds, '  acknowledge 

*  no  such  thing  as  a  divine  right  of  Episcopacy,  but 

*  stiffly  maintain  Jerome's  opinion  of  the  primitive 

*  equality  of  gospel  ministers.*  And,  therefore,  they 
must  all  go  over  at  the  same  ferry,  with  plain  parity 
men  ;  and  you  know  you  have  assigned  them  but  in- 
different quarters  against  their  landing. 

Yet  further,  even  in  Denmark,  Norway  and  Swe- 
den, though  there  are  a  few  that  have  the  name  of 
Bishops,  yet  they  are  vevy  far  from  being  looked  on 
as  the  centre  of  union,  or  mystical  Fligh  Priests,  or 
th?^  visible  representatives  of  God  and  Christ,  by 
whom,  alone,  people  can  have  union  with  the  Divine 
persons,  v^'hich  is  your  scheme.  No,  they  have  no 
such  whimsies  amo'ig  them  ;  on  the  contrary,  writers 
speak  most  diminutively  of  tiieir  power.  *  Here,  viz. 
'  in  Denmark,'  saith  the  author  of  the  present  state 
of  Europe,  for  the  year  1705,  p.  134,  '  are  Bishops, 

*  but  they  are  not  much  different  in  effect  from  su- 
'  perintendents  in  other  places,  depending  on  the  su- 
'  perior  consistory.'  *  And,'  saith  the  excellent  au- 
thor of  the  account  of  Denmark,  for  the  year  1692, 
third  edition,   p.    231.   '  there  are  six   superintend- 

*  ents  in  Denmark,  who  take  it  very  kindly  to  be 

*  called  Bishops,  and  my  Lord.     There  are  also  four 

*  in  Norway.     These  have  no  temporalities,  keep  no 

*  ecclesiastical  courts,  have  no  cathedrals  with  Pre- 

*  bends.   Canons,   Deacons,   Sub-Deacons,    &c.  but 

*  are  only  primi  inter  pares.'  Thus  he.  And  it  is 
certain,  that  in  the  beginning  of  the  reformation, 
it  was  Bugenhagius,  (who  was  but  a  Presbyter,)  that 
ordained  their  first  seven  superintendents,  or  Bishops, 
from  whom  all  their  succession  to  this  day  does  flow.* 
The  same  is  the  case  of  Sweden.     '  The  Archbish- 

*  ops  and  Bishops  of  this  kingdom,'  saith  the  fore- 
cited  author  of  the  present  state  of  Europe,  p,   147, 

*  Vide  Chytraeura  Saxon,  p.  431, 


niESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  217 

*  retain  little  more  than  the  name,  and  a  bare  pri- 
'  mary  sort  of  superiority  over  other  superintendents, 

*  the  estabiishinj^  of"  the  Lutiieran  religion  having  de- 

*  prived  them  of  the  ecclesiastical  jurisdiction,  which 

*  they  exercised  before  the  reformation.'  Thus  he. 
And  to  the  same  purpose,  Stillingfleet,  *  concerning 
both  these  kingdoms.    '  In  Sweden,'  saith  he, '  there 

*  is  one   Archbishop  and  seven  Bishops,  and  so  in 

*  Denmark,  though  not  with  so  great  authority.' 

By  this  calculation,  the  whole  foreign  reformed 
Churches  will  be  found  to  be  of  Presbyterian  prin- 
ciples, and  consequently  not  a  true  Church  among 
them  all,  by  your  scheme.  You  will  perhaps  say, 
that  as  for  Sweden  and  Denmark,  it  is  enough  to 
save  them  from  the  guilt  of  schism,  that  they  have 
such  as  are  called  Bishops,  how  small  soever  their 
authority  be ;  and  though  the  Divine  institu- 
tion, or  necessity  of  thern,  is  not  believed.  But, 
pray  Gentlemen,  consider  if  their  practice  save  them 
from  the  guilt  of  schism  ;  does  not  their  belief  involve 
them  in  the  guilt  of  heresy  ?  If  union  with  the 
Bishop  be,  by  Divine  command,  a  necessary  duty, 
then,  certainly,  the  belief  of  it  is  a  fundamental  ar- 
ticle, and,  consequently,  the  denying  thereof,  as  all 
those  of  the  Lutheran  communion  do,  must  be  here- 
sy. And  so  you  have  very  charitably  disposed  of 
all  the  Protestant  Churches,  sending  them  whole- 
sale to  hell,  upon  the  account,  either  of  heresy,  or 
schism. 

1  foresee  what  reply  you  will  make  to  all  this,  viz. 
that  the  uncharitableiiess  of  a  doctrine  is  no  argu- 
ment against  the  truth  of  it.  That  our  thoughts  do 
not  alter  the  nature  of  things,  nor  can  change  Di- 
vine establishments  ;  and,  therefore,  if  it  be  true  that 
Episcopal  ordination  is  necessary  to  make  a  minister, 
without  which  his  acts  are  not  valid  ;  and  that  union 
with  the  Bishop  is  necessary  to  eternal  life,  without 
which,  people  cannot  expect  it,  be  the  consequences 
of  this  never  so  heavy,  or  extend  themselves  to  never 

*  Irenic.  ubi  supra 


218  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

SO  many,  that  Is  what  you  cannot  Iielp, — the  truth 
must  be  maintained,  and  that  you  express  your  cha- 
rity sufficiently,  by  telling  us  of  our  danger,  and  that 
it  would  be  the  most  uncharitable  thing  in  the  world 
to  conceal  the  same  from  us,  or  to  shew  it  less  than 
really  it  is,  to  which  I  answer : — It  is  very  true,  our 
thoughts  do  not  alter  the  nature  of  things,  nor  will 
your  rigour,  or  our  charity,  make  the  other's  prin- 
ciples either  truer  or  falser.  But  though  it  do  not 
make,  yet  it  may  go  a  great  length  to  shew  whether 
they  be  true  or  false.  For,  it  is  a  shrewd  presump- 
tion in  most  cases,  that  the  opinion  which  wants 
charity,  is  not  from  God,  and  that  the  error  lies  on 
the  damning  side.  This  the  Divines  of  the  Church 
of  England  have  oftentimes  observed  in  their  dis- 
putes against  the  Church  of  Rome,  but  their  late 
writers  for  Episcopacy  quite  forget  it  in  dealing  with 
the  Presbyterians.  A  good  and  wise  man,  even 
though  he  have  the  truth  on  his  side,  will  yet  make  all 
the  allowances  the  case  will  reasonably  bear  for  those 
that  differ  from  him.  He  will  consider  that  their 
dissenting  from  him  may  proceed  from  education, 
the  difficulty  of  the  controversy,  the  want  of  due 
helps,  or  of  a  suitable  genius  and  capacity.  And  if 
he  himself  make  allowances  for  them,  on  these,  or 
the  like  accounts,  he  will  readily  believe  that  a  mer- 
ciful God  will  do  so  much  more  ;  but  when  a  man's 
mind  is  darkened  with  error,  at  the  same  time  his 
temper  is  soured,  and  because  he  cannot  reason 
others  into  the  same  opinion  with  himself,  therefore 
he  essays  to  fright  them  into  it  with  the  argument  of 
damnation.  And  this,  gentlemen,  I  must  take  the 
freedom  to  say,  1  apprehend  to  be  your  case  ;  for, 
pray,  whence  all  this  height ; — on  what  is  all  this  as- 
suming in  your  own  case  founded  ?  Mr  llhind,  to 
give  him  his  due,  has  laid  out  all  your  best  argu- 
ments in  their  strength,  and  set  them  off  with  abun- 
dance of  elegancy  ;  I  appeal  to  yourselves,  whether 
every  one  of  them  is  not  answered  to  satisfaction. 

I.  Is  it  on  the  Scriptures  you  found  ?     Mr  Dod- 
well  has  fairly  quitted  that  fort,  and  frankly  owns 

2 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  219 

that  your  prelacy  is  not  to  be  found  there,  and  tliat 
the  original  of  it  is  at  least  ten  years  posterior  to  the 
sealing  of  the  canon  of  the  Scripture,  and  half  a 
dozen  years  to  the  death  of  John,  the  longest  lived 
of  the  Apostles.  And  as  to  the  business  of  ordina- 
tion which  you  so  much  insist  on,  he  not  only  sup- 
poses* that  Presbyters  migiit  chuse  their  Bishop, — 
might  use  all  the  ceremonies  of  consecration  to  him, 
— might  invest  him  in  his  office  by  prayer  and  impo- 
sition of  hands,  but  also  tells,  *  that  he  is  apt  to  think 
*  that  this  must  have  been  the  way  observed  at  first 
'  in  the  making  of  Bishops.'  Now,  if  the  Presbyters 
have  power  of  ordaining  Bishops,  is  it  not  strange 
that  they  should  want  the  power  of  ordaining  Pres- 
byters like  themselves, — has  God  any  where  forbid- 
den it  ?  No  :  But  Mr  Dodwell  would  persuade  us 
of  it  by  a  simile,  which  yet  is  but  a  weak  way  of  ar- 
guing, viz. — That,  as  though  a  Prince  is  inaugurated 
by  his  subjects,  yet  when  once  he  is  inaugurated, 
they  have  not  any  power  over  him,  nor  can  act  any 
thing  without  him,  or  withdraw  their  obedience  from 
him,  so  neither  can  the  Presbyters,  when  once  they 
have  ordained  a  Bishop  over  themselves,  do  any 
thing,  either  without  him,  or  in  opposition  to  him  ; 
and  that  all  such  acts  are  not  only  punishable,  but 
invalid.  But  all  this  reasoning  is  founded  on  two 
most  precarious  suppositions,  viz.  1st,  That  the  Pres- 
byters are  obliged  to  have  a  Bishop  over  them.  And, 
2^/3/,  That  every  Bishop  is  a  monarch  in  his  own 
diocese,  for  which  there  is  just  as  much  to  be  said 
as  there  is  for  the  French  King's  being  universal 
monarch  of  the  world,  or  the  Pope  of  the  Catho- 
lic Church.  Such  things  ought  to  be  proved,  not 
presumed  ;  so  much  the  rather,  that  in  fact,  we  find 
the  Presbyters  of  the  Church  of  England,  even  the 
High-Church  Presbyters,have  disowned  that  princi])le. 
For,  in  the  late  famous  contests  between  the  two 
houses  of  convocation,  the  plurality  in  the  lower  house 
assumed  to  themselves  a  power  over,  and  set  them- 

*  Separat.  of  Churches,  Chap.  xxiv.  p.  522. 


220  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

selves  in  opposition  to  tiieir  superiors :  and  would 
needs  have  their  metropoHtan  and  bishops  to  be  ac- 
countable to  them  for  their  conduct  in  their  visita- 
tions ;  they  would  needs  censure  the  bishop  of  Sa- 
rum's  book  on  the  XXXIX  articles:  nay,  would 
needs  sit  and  act  too,  after  the  Metropolitan,  their 
president,  had  adjourned  them.  By  this  conduct  of 
their's  they  broke  through  the  Ignatian  and  Dodwel- 
lian  scheme  at  once,  and  loudly  proclaimed  to  the 
world  that  they  did  not  believe  their  bishops  to  be 
absolute  monarchs.  Thus,  the  Presbyterians  were 
beholden  to  the  lower  house  of  convocation. — But 
indeed  the  upper  house  obliged  them  no  less.  For, 
the  lower  house,  apprised  of  the  constructions  were 
made  of  their  actings,  on  December  11,  1702,  sent 
a  declaration  to  the  upper  house,  whereof  the  import 
was,  *  That  whereas  they  had  been  scandalously  and 

*  maliciously  represented  as  favourers  of  Presbytery, 

*  in  opposition  to   Episcopacy,  they  now  declared, 

*  that  they  acknowledged  the  order  of  bishops  to  be 

*  of  divine  Apostolical  institution.'  Several  of  the 
lower  house  had  dissented  from  this  declaration,  and 
refused  to  subscribe  it.  But  did  not  their  Lordships 
in  the  upper  house  go  into  it .?  No.  Notwithstand- 
ing the  lower  house,  by  an  additional  address,  begged 
their  Lordships  to  abett  and  support  the  foresaid  doC" 
trine,  yet  their  Lordships  objected  against  the  lega- 
lity of  asserting  it,  and  in  end  flatly  refused  it.  So 
that,  even  in  England  itself,  to  this  day  there  has 
never  been  any  declaration  made  of  the  divine  in- 
stitution of  prelacy,  either  by  parliament  or  convo- 
cation :  nor  can  I  find  that  there  is  any  thing  in  any 
of  their  public  formulas  asserting  it,  except  some 
words  in  the  preface  to  the  form  of  ordination,  which 
are  too  loose  and  weak  to  bear  such  a  weight.  And 
it  is  certain,  that,  at  the  reformation,  prelacy  was 
set  up  in  England  on  a  far  different  footing  from  that 
of  divine  right.  For  in  King  Henry  the  VllL's  reign, 
anno  1539,  '  The  bishops,'  saith  Dr  Burnet,*  '  took 

*  Hist.  Reform.  Abridg.  Vol.  I.  p.  228. 


PRESBYTEllIAN   GOVERNMENT.  ^21 

*  out  commissions  from  the  king,  by  which  t-iey  ac- 
«  knovvledged  that  all  jurisdiction,  civil  anl  eccle- 

*  siastical,  flowed  from  the  king,  and  that  th  >y  ex- 

*  ercised  it  only  at  the  king's  courtesy,  an  J  t'lat  as 

*  they  had  it  of  his  bounty,  so  they  would  be  ready 

*  to  deliver  it  up  at  his  pleasure  ;  and  therefore  tiie 

*  king  did  empower  them,  in  liis  stead,  to  or  !ain, 

*  give  institution,  and   do  all  the  other  parts  of  the 

*  Episcopal  function.'  Upon  which  the  historian 
makes  this  remark,  *  By  this  they  were  made  the 

*  king's  bishops  indeed.' 

Nor  was  the  matter  mended  by  King  Edward  VL, 

*  in  the  first  year  of  whose  reign,'  says  the  same 
historian,*  *  all  that  held  offices  were  required  to  come 

*  and  renew  their  commissions.  Among  the  rest 
'  the  bishops  came,  and  took  out  such  commissions 

*  as  were  granted  in  the  former  reign,  viz.  to  hold 

*  their  bisliopricks   during  pleasure,  and  were  em- 

*  powered  in  the  king's  name,  as  his  delegates,  to 

*  perform  all  the  parts  of  the  Episcopal  function  ; 

*  and  Cranmer  set  an  example  to  the  rest  in  taking 

*  cut  one  of  them.'  And  indeed  Heylin  acknow- 
ledges, t  that  King  Edward's  first  parliament  forced 
the  Episcopal  order  from  their  strong-hold  of  divine 
institution,  and  made  them  no  other  than  the  king's 
ministers  only. 

Upon  this  footing  w^as  prelacy  settled  even  in  Eng- 
land at  the  reformation  :  and  1  challenge  any  man 
to  produce  documents  where,  ever  to  this  day,  they 
have  bettered  its  foundation,  or  settled  it  upon  scrip- 
ture authority  or  divine  institution.  And  must  the 
Scots  Presbyterians  be  schismatics  for  not  believing 
what  the  whole  foreign  Protestant  Churches  have  de- 
clared against,  and  England  herself  durst  never  as- 
sert.''  Gentlemen,  I  can  assure  you  there  is  nothing 
in  the  world  makes  a  party  appear  with  a  more  con- 
temptible figure  than  weak  arguments  and  a  high 
air.  Please,  therefore,  only  to  lower  your  air  in  pro- 
portion to  your  arguments,  and  I  hope  it  will  be  no 
hard  matter  to  deal  with  you.     It  is  true,  your  late 

•  Ubi  supra,  Vol.  II.  p.  4-.  f  Hist.  Edw.  VI.  p.  51. 


222  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

writers  will  needs  persuadp  you  that  all  Christianity 
depends  on  prelacy,  and  that  there  cannot  be  any 
church  where  it  obtains  not ;  and  their  plot,  viz. 
the  ruin  of  the  whole  Protestant  interest  through  the 
world,  is  too  evident  either  to  be  mistaken  by  us, 
or  coloured  by  themselves.  But  I  must  tell  you, 
that  Cranmer,  Therleby,  Redman,  Cox,  Whitgift, 
Cosins,  Low,  Bridges,  Hooker,  Downham,  Willet, 
Mason,  Chillingworth,  SutclifFe,  and  all  those  great 
names  who,  for  several  scores  of  years  after  the  re- 
formation, baffled  Popery  by  their  arguments,  or 
gave  testimony  against  it  by  their  blood — though 
they  were  deeply  engaged  in  the  interests  of  prela- 
cy, and  loved  it  with  their  soul — yet  they  still  either 
denied  the  necessity  of  it,  or  frankly  disowned  its 
being  founded  on  Scripture.  And  when  the  Scrip- 
ture fort  is  forsaken,  pray,  what  will  ye  betake  your- 
selves to  ?  For, 

II.  Will  you  found  on  the  Fathers  ?  It  is  true  your 
writers  amuse  you  with  their  names,  and  dazzle  your 
eyes  with  citations  out  of  them,  which  mention  Bi- 
shop and  Presbyter  as  distinct.  But,  pray  desire 
them  to  cite  the  Fathers  declaring  for  the  divine 
right  of  that  distinction,  as  the  Presbyterians  cite 
them  declaring  for  their  Scripture  identity.  With- 
out this,  all  their  endeavours  are  only  a  learned  la- 
bour to  bubble  the  world,  and  does  either  discover 
their  own,  or  presume  their  readers'  want  of  judg- 
ment. Stillingfleet  has  spoken  ingenuously  on  this 
head.  '  As  to  the  matter  itself,*  saith  he,*  '  I  be- 
'  lieve  upon  the  strictest  enquiry,  Medina's  judg- 
'  ment  will  prove  true,  that  Jerome,  Austin,  Am- 
'  brose,  Sedulius,  Primasius,  Chrysostom,  Theodo- 
«  ret,  Theophylact,  were  all  of  Aerius's  judgment 
'  as  to  the  identity  of  both  name  and  order  of  Bi- 
*  shops  and  Presbyters  in  the  primitive  church.'  I 
have  shewn  how,  not  only  these,  but  several  others 
of  the  Fathers,  are  on  the  Presbyterian  side  ;  and  ac- 
knowledge not  only  that  the  names  Bishop  and  Pres- 
byter are  common,  but  also  that  th«  office  and  cha- 

*  Irenic.  p.  276. 


PRESBYTERIAN  GOVERNMENT.  223 

racter  was  the  same  in  the  Apostolic  times.  I  have 
produced  them  interpreting  the  Scriptures  that  relate 
to  this  controversy,  as  the  Presbyterians  now  do.  I 
have  shewn  that  the  Divines  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land, even  her  bishops  and  doctors,  acknowledge  the 
Fathers  to  be  on  the  side  of  Presbytery.  If  the  Epis- 
copal writers  can  produce  as  many  of  the  Fathers  de- 
claring as  expressly  for  the  superiority  of  Bishops 
above  Presbyters  by  divine  right ;  if  they  can  find 
them  interpreting  the  Scriptures  that  way,  and  then 
back  all  with  the  approbation  of  our  Presbyterian 
writers,  as  I  have  done  what  I  alleged  with  the  ap- 
probation of  the  Episcopal ;  I  hereby  engage  to  be- 
come their  proselyte.  If  this  is  not  to  be  done,  you 
must  blame  yourselves  you  have  not  more  disciples. 
But  it  is  high  time  to  proceed  with  Mr  Rhind. 


CHAPTER  III. 

WHEREIN  MR  RHIND's  SFXOND  REASON  FOR  SEPARAT- 
ING FROM  THE  PRESBYTERIAN  PARTY,  VIZ.  THAT 
THEIR  ARTICLES  OF  FAITH  ARE  FUNDAMENTALLY 
FALSI':  AND  PERNICIOUS,  IS  EXAMINED.  FROM  P. 
119    TO  P.  148. 

This  is  a  very  high  charge,  and  for  making  it 
good,  he  insists  against  the  doctrine  of  the  decrees 
in  general ;  the  decrees  of  predestination  and  repro- 
bation in  particular  ;  the  doctrine  of  the  efficacy  of 
grace,  and  the  doctrine  of  the  perseverance  of  the 
saints.  For  answer,  I  shall  first  particularly  consi- 
der his  objections  against  tliese  doctrines  ;  and,  se- 
condly, prove  that  they  arc  the  doctrines  of  the  whole 
Christian  church. 


224  DEFENCE  OF  THE 


Sect.  III. 

WJierein  Mr  Rhind's  Objections  against  tJie'Presbyterian  Arti- 
cles of  Faith,  are  cofisidered, 

OF  THE  DIVINE  DECREES  IN  GENERAL. 

In  thej^r.9^  place,  Mr  Rhine!  insists  against  the 
doctrine  of  the  eternal  decrees  in  general,  which,  in 
the  Westminster  lesser  Catechism,  are  defined  to  be 

*  God's  eternal  purpose,  according  to  the  counsel  of 

*  his  own  will,  whereby,  for  his  own  glory,  he  hath 

*  fore-ordained  whatsoevercomes  to  pass.'  One  would 
think  the  truth  of  such  a  doctrine  was  beyond  debate. 
For,  doth  not  the  infinite  perfection  of  the  divine 
nature,  and  the  dependence  of  the  creature  upon 
God,  in  its  actions  as  well  as  being,  argue  sucli  de- 
crees? Does  not  the  infallible  omniscience  of  God 
necessarily  infer  them  ?  Is  it  possible  otherwise  to 
conceive  how  events,  that  flow  from  rational  free 
agents,  or  depend  upon  contingent  causes,  should 
be  certainly  known,  when  they  are  not  certainly  to 
be?  Does  Mr  Rhind  think  that  God  has  forsaken 
the  earthjOrlaid  the  reins  on  the  neck  of  the  creatures, 
allowing  them  to  hurry  both  themselves  and  him 
whither  they  list  ?  Has  he  formed  his  notions  of 
the  Deity  upon  Lucretius's  system,  who  would  com- 
pliment him  out  of  his  concernment  for  the  world. 

Immortnli  cevo  snmma  cum  pace  fruntur 
Semota  a  noslris  Rebus  icjunctague  longe. 

Or  doth  he  think  him  such  a  one  as  himself,  to  take 
his  measures  upon  the  spot  as  he  sees  things  are  like- 
ly to  frame  ?  In  the  confidence  of  what  did  he  op- 
pose such  a  doctrine  ? 

'  Why,'  saithhe,  p.  120,  *  nothing  comes  to  pas3 

*  more  frequently  than  sin  :  And  therefore  if  God 
'  has  fore-ordained  whatsoever  comes  to  pass,  then 
'  it  will  follow  that  God  has  ordained  sin,  and  con- 

*  sequently  must  be  the  author  of  sin,  which  is  blas- 

*  phemous,  and  destroys  the  essential  distinction  be- 


I-KESBYTERIAN    FAITH. 


225 


«  twixtgood  and  evil,  ail  just  notions  of  God,  the 
*  natural  freedom  of  man's  will,  takes  away  rewards 
'  and  punishments,  and  in  a  word,  excuses  the  sinner 
«  and  lays  tlie  blame  upon  God.'  This  is  the  full 
sum  of  what  he  has  offered  against  the  Presbyterian 
doctrine  of  the  decrees.     But, 

I.  These  are  not  arguments  against,  but  conse- 
quences wrung  from  it ;  consequences,  too,  which  the 
Presbyterians  refuse  with  abhorrence,  and  that  in 
their  public  formulas.  Thus,  in  their  Confession  of 
Faith*  they  teach,  '  That  God  from  all  eternity  did, 

*  by  the  most  wise  and  holy  counsel  of  his  own  will, 

*  freely  and  unchangeably  ordain  whatsoever  comes 
'  to  pass :  Yet  so,  as  that  neither  is  God  the  author 

*  of  sin,  nor  is  violence  offered  to  the   will    of  the 

*  creatures,  nor  is  the  liberty  or  contingenc}''  of  se- 

*  cond  causes  taken  away  but  rather  established.'  It 
is  therefore  not  only  uncharitable  but  unjust  to  load 
the  doctrine  with  such  consequences,  when  they  ex- 
pressly declare,  that  they  do  not  understand  the  doc- 
trine in  such  a  sense,  as  to  admit  of  these  consequen- 
ces. 

II.  Cannot  Mr  Rhind  conceive,  that  it  is  very 
possible  for  the  Divine  majesty  to  decree  the  event, 
without  decreeing  the  sin  that  adheres  to  it,  any 
further  than  that  he  will  permit,  direct,  and  over- 
rule it,  to  serve  his  own  wise  and  holy  ends  ?  Whe- 
ther he  can  conceive  it  or  not,  there  is  no  one  thing 
more  expressly  laid  down  in  the  Scripture  than  this. 
I  am  very  sure  that  Shimei  sinned  grievously  in  curs- 
ing David,  and  yet  I  am  as  sure  that  the  Lord  said 
unto  him.  Curse  David.t  I  am  sure  it  was  with  wick- 
ed hands  tliat  Herod,  Pontius  Pilate  and  the  people 
of  the  Jews  took  and  crucified  and  slew  the  Son  of 
God.t  But  I  am  as  sure,  not  only  that  he  was  de- 
livered by  the  determinate  counsel  and  foreknow- 
ledge of  God,  but  also  that  they  did  nothing  to  him 
but  what  God's  hand  and  counsel  determined  before 
to  be  done.§     Are  the  expressions  in   the  Presby- 

*  Chap.  iii.  Sect.  1.         f  2  Sara.  xvi.  10.         %   Acts,  ii.  23. 
§  Acts,  iv.  37.  28. 

P 


226  DEFENci:  or  the 

terian  Catechism  harder  than  these  of  the  Scripture  ? 
And  must  not  Presbyterians  teach  as  the  Scriptures 
do,  because  Mr  llhind  will  needs  harangue  a  little 
against  them  ? 

HI.  How  does  the  decree  of  God  excuse  the  sin- 
ner ?  Does  not  Mr  llhind  know,  that  it  is  not  the 
decree,  but  the  precept,  tiiatis  given  to  be  the  stand- 
ard of  our  obedience  ?  No,  indeed  ;  this  Mr  Rhind 
knew  not,  or  did  not  advert  to  :  For  he  has  expressly 
made  the  decrees  and  the  commands  of  God  the 
same  thing ;  and  the  decrees  to  be  the  rule  of  our 
duty.  '  If,*  saith  he,  p.  121,  'God  has  decreed  sin, 
'  it  is  our  duty  to  commit  it,  his  commands  being  the 

*  standard  of  our  obedience.'  This  is  a  horrid  blun- 
der he  has  made.  So  far  are  the  decrees  from  be- 
ing the  rule  of  our  duty,  that  it  is  both  impossible 
to  know  them,  and  a  crime  to  enquire  into  them,  any 
further  than  as  God   has  revealed  them  in   his  word. 

*  Secret  things  belong  unto  the  Lord  our  God  ;    But 

*  those  things  which  are  revealed  belong  unto  us.'* 
And  therefore  God  very  justly  punishes  the  sinner, 
not  for  fulfilling  his  decrees,  in  which  he  was  not  con- 
cerned, but  for  transgressing  his  precepts,  which  he 
had  revealed  to  him.  God  decreed  that  the  son  of  man 
should  be  betrayed,  and  betrayed  by  Judas  too.  '  The 
'  son  of  man  goethas  it  was  determined;'  tyet  this  de- 
cree could  not  excuse  Judas,  because  he  neither  de- 
signed the  fulfilling  of  it  by  his  treachery,  nor  indeed 
was  it  given  him  as  the  rule  of  his  behaviour  :  And 
therefore  it  is  presently  added,  '  wo  unto  that  man 

*  by  whom  he  is  betrayed.'  And  therefore  when  Mr 
llhind  affirms,  p.  130,  *  that  it  is  nonsensical  and  blas- 
'  phemous  to  suppose  that  God's  secret  and  reveal- 

*  ed  win  arenotone,  he  contradicts  express  Scripture, 

*  and  thereby  makes  him-^elf  guilty  of  that  blasphe- 

*  my  he  imputes  to  others.' 

IV.  Whatever  difficulties  there  are  in  the  Presby- 
terian doctrine  of  the  decrees,  the  Arminians  must 
be  intolerably  fanciful,  if  they  do  not  own  that 
they  are  at  least  equal  on  their  side  j  with  this  very 

*  Deut.  xxix,  29.  f  Luke,  xxii.  U2. 


PIIESBYTEHIAX  FAITH.  227 

considerable  liiiToience,  that  generally  the  objec- 
tions against  the  Presbyterian  doctrine  arise  from 
pretended  reason,  whereas  the  objections  against 
the  Arminian  doctrine  are  founded,  not  only  upon 
plain  reason,  but  express  declarations  of  Scripture  : 
And  where  these  are,  and  the  contest  is  betwixt 
seeming  reason  and  the  clear  revelation  of  God;  it. 
seems  but  good  manners  to  yield  to  God,  Mr  Rhind 
cannot  digest  this  doctrine  of  the  decrees,  because 
he  cannot  (without  submitting  his  judgment  to  the 
Scriptures),  by  mere  strength  of  natural  reason,  an- 
swer all  the  difficulties  and  objections  that  may  be 
brouf^ht  aii^ainst  it.  But  can  he  answer  all  difficulties 
and  objections  agains  a  Trinity  of  persons  in  the 
Divine  nature  ?  Can  he  answer  all  the  objections 
that  may  be  made  against  the  resurrection  of  the  body 
after  the  infinite  and  inconceivable  changes  which 
time  and  corruption  bring  upon  it  ?  If  he  can  answer 
these,  I  say,  upon  the  mere  strength  of  reason,  it  must 
be  owned  he  is  the  ablest  divinethe  world  was  ever  yet 
blessed  with.  If  he  will  not  believe  them,  because 
he  cannot  answer  all  objections  against  them  ;  then 
it  is  plain  he  ought  to  have  continued  in  his  state 
of  discreet  scepticism  to  this  day.  But  if  he  can 
believe  these  doctrines  notwithstanding  his  inability 
to  solve  the  difficulties  that  hang  on  them ;  why 
might  he  not  also  believe  that  God  has  decree^ 
whatsoever  comes  to  pass  ;  for  the  one  is  as  plain- 
ly revealed  in  the  Scripture  as  the  other  ?     And, 

V.  There  is  so  much  the  more  reason  for  this, 
that  the  belief  of  the  decrees  is  necessary  in  order 
to  the  conduct  of  life.  For  when  I  am  afflicted  by 
the  hands  of  wicked  men,  and  suffer  from  their  sins, 
how  shall  I  possess  my  soul  in  })atiencer,  or  keep  my- 
self from  revenge,  if  I  do  not  believe  that,  thongli 
God  is  absolutely  free  of  their  sin,  yet  he  uses  theai 
as  the  tools  and  instruments  of  his  providence  for 
serving  his  purposes  upon  me,  and  that  such  things 
were  measured  out  for  me  by  his  decree  ?  It  was 
upon  this  consideration  that  Job  sinned  not,  nor 
charged  God  foolishly,  notwithstanding  the  injuries 

P   2 


228  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

the  Sabeans  and  Chaldeans  had  done  him. — It  was 
this  preserved  Joseph  from  all  resentment  against  his 
brethren  for  their  barbarous  usage  of   him  :    *  Ye 

*  thought  evil  against  me,  but  God  meant  it  unto 

*  good.'  Gen.  1.  20. — It  was  upon  this  that  David 
quieted  his  spirit,  *  and  was  dumb,  not  opening  his 
'  mouth,  because  the  Lord  had  done  it.'  Psalm  xxxix. 
9:  And  what  God  does  in  lime  without  sin,  mioht 
he  not  trom  all  eternity  decree  without  sin  ? — It  was 
upon  this  argument  that  our  blessed  Saviour  bore  the 
contradictions  and  cruelty  of  sinners  with  a  perfect 
composure  of  spirit :    '  The  cup  that  my  Father  hath 

*  given  me  to  drink  shall  1  not  drink  it  ?'  John 
xviii.  II.  Nay,  even  a  heathen  Seneca  prescribes 
the  belief  of  the  doctrine  of  the  decrees  to  his  friend 
as  a  remedy  against  all  ruffling  of  spirit  under  inju- 
ries and  troubles.     *  Losses,'  saith  he,  *  *  wounds, 

*  fears  are  come  upon  you  ;  these  things  are  usual. 

*  That  is  little,  these  things  are  needful,  they  are 
'  decreed  and  do  not  come  by  chance.'  I  hope,  then, 
in  all  this  doctrine  there  is  nothing  either  false  or 
pernicious,  much  less  any  thing  that  is  fundament- 
ally so. 

OF  THE  DECREE  OF  PREDESTINATION. 

In  the  second  place,  Mr  Rhind  insists  against  the 
Presbyterian  doctrine  of  God's  irrespective  decrees 
relating  to  mankind,  contained  in  their  Confession 
of  Faith,  Chap.  III.  viz.     '  That  God  has,  by  his 

*  eternal  and  immutable  purpose,   and    the  secret 

*  counsel  aiad  good  pleasure  of  his  own  will,  chosen 

*  some  to  everlasting  life,  without  any   foresight  of 

*  faith  or  good  works,  or  perseverance  in   either  of 

*  them.     And  that  he  hath,  by  the  same  eternal  and 

*  unchangeable  counsel  of  his  own  will,  passed  by, 

*  and  ordaine'd  others  to  wrath  for  their  sin.'    '  This 

*  doctrine,'  he  argues,  *  contradicts  the  holiness,  jus- 
'  tice  and  truth  of  God,  is  contrary  to  the  design  of 
'  all  revelation,  and  to  express  testimonies  of  Scrip- 

•  Damna,  Vulnera,  Metus  inciderunt;  solet  fieri.  Hoc  parum 
est,  debuit  fieri.  Decernuntur  ista,  non  accidunt,  Senec.  Ep» 
96. 


PRESBYTERIAN    FAITH.  229 

*  ture,  and  is  perniciously  influential  upon  Christian 
«  life,'  p.  122 — 135.  It  is  against  my  will  that  I 
engage  in  this  mysterious  controversy,  in  which 
every  man  ouglit  to  be  wise  to  sobriety.  But,  I  hope 
it  will  not  be  difficult  to  suggest  as  much  as  will  take 
off  Mr  Rhind's  objections,  without  going  beyond  my 
line.     For  answer,  then, 

I.  It  is  abundantly  strange  that  this  doctrine 
should  be  opposed  by  such  as  have  read  the  Scrip- 
ture and  the  Epistles  of  Paul,  who  has  insisted  on  it 
at  large  in  the  eighth  arid  ninth  chapters  of  the 
Epistle  to  the  Romans ;  and  besides,  has  frequently 
asserted  it  here  and  there,  in  particular  hints,  which 
Mr  Rhind,  p.  182,  very  mannerly  calls  dismember- 
ed shreds,  as  if  the  Apostle  had  lost  his  connection 
always  when  he  touched  on  that  doctrine.  But  what 
can  Mr  Rhind  say  to  those  many  places  of  Scripture, 
which  he  cannot  but  know  are  insisted  on  by  the 
Presbyterians  in  defence  of  that  doctrine  ?  Why,  he 
has  rid  his  hands  of  them  by  one  fearless  stroke, 
boldly  pronouncing,  in  the  place  just  now  cited, 
that  these  are  the  passages  hard  to  be  understood 
pointed  at  by  the  Apostle  Peter,  2  Ep.  iii.  16,  *  which 

*  some  wrest  to  their  own  destruction.'  But  who 
told  him  that  Peter  pointed  at  these  passages  ?  Did 
any  spirit  reveal  it  to  him  ?  Do  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land doctors  teach  him  so  ?  No,  surely.  Drs  Plam- 
mond  and  Whitby,  the  two  most  famous  expositors 
that  have  yet  appeared,  assert,  that  it  is  the  doctrine 
of  the  coming  of  our  Lord  that  Peter  there  points 
at,  and  not  the  doctrine  of  predestination,  or  any 
thing  near  it.  And,  if  Mr  Khind  had  consulted  the 
Greek  original,  he  had  seen  that  Peter  did  not  refer 
to  Paul's  Epistles,  but  to  the  subjects  he  had  been 
treating  of,  when  he  used  these  words,  '  in  which 

*  there  are  some  things  hard  to  be  understood.' 

II.  It  is  very  true  the  Presbyterians  teach,  that 
by  the  decree  of  God,  for  the  manifestation  of  his 
glory,  some  men  are  predestinated  unto  everlasting 
life,  and  others  fore-ordained  to  everlasting  death  : 
And  there  does  indeed  lie  a  shrewd  objection  against 


230 


DEFEXCE    OF    THE 


it,  viz.     *  That  it  is  not  in  the  power  of  man  to  pre- 

*  vent  his  own  damnation,  if  he   has  been  fore-or- 

*  dained  to  it  :*  But  then  (which  might  have  dis- 
couraged Mr  Rhind  to  bring  it  into  the  field  again), 
the  Apostle  Paul  both  foresaw  it  and  silenced  it, 
Kom.  ix.  14.  &c.  '  What  shall  we  say  then  ?  Is  there 

*  unrighteousness  with  God  ?  God  forbid.  For  he 
'  saith  to  Moses,  I  will  have  mercy  on  whom  I  will 

*  have  mercy,  and  I  will  have  compassion  on  whom 

*  I  will  have  compassion.     So  then  it  is  not  of  him 

*  that  willeth,  nor  of  him  that  runneth,  but  of  God 
'  that  sheweth  mercy. — Therefore  hath  he  mercy  on 

*  whom  he  will  have  mercy,  and  whom  he  will,  he 

*  hardeneth.     Thou  wilt  say  then  unto  me,  why 

*  doth  he  yet  find  fault  ?  For  who  hath  resisted  his 
'  will  ?  Nay  but,  O  man,  who  art  thou  that  repliest 
'  against  God  ?'  Here  is  a  full  assertion  and  fair 
vindication  of  the  Presbyterian  doctrine  ;  and  what- 
ever objections  our  minds  may  raise  against  it,  yet 
there  is  no  one  doctrine  more  clearly  expressed,  or 
strongly  asserted,  in  all  the  Scripture,  than  this.  And, 
which  confirms  all,  it  is  beyond  all  controversy,  by 
observations  from  Providence,  that  God  acts  with 
an  absolute  sovereignty,  even  in  the  dispensations  of 
the  means  of  grace  in  time,  which  is  a  certain  docu- 
ment that  he  acted  the  same  way  in  his  eternal  de- 
crees. The  world  was  for  many  ages  delivered  up 
to  idolatry ;  and,  since  the  Christian  religion  has  ap- 
peared, we  see  vast  tracts  of  countries  which  have 
continued  ever  since  in  idolatry  ;  others  are  fallen 
under  Mahometanism  ;  and  the  state  of  Christen- 
dom is,  in  the  Eastern  parts  of  it,  under  so  much  ig- 
norance, and  the  greatest  part  of  the  West  is  under 
so  much  corruption,  that  we  must  confess  the  far 
greatest  part  of  mankind  has  been  in  all  ages  left 
destitute  of  the  means  of  grace,  and  great  numbers 
of  men  are  born  in  such  circumstances,  that  it  is 
morally  impossible  that  they  should  not  perish  in 
them.  If  God  thus  leaves  whole  nations  in  such 
darkness  and  corruption,  and  freely  chuses  others  to 
communicate  the  knowledge  of  himself  to  them, 


PUESBYTEEIAX  FAITH. 


231 


then  we  need  not  wonder  that  he  holds  the  same 
method  with  individuals,  that  he  doth  with  whole 
bodies :  for,  the  rejecting  of  whole  nations  by  the 
lump  for  so  many  ages,  is  more  hard  to  be  account- 
ed for  by  us  than  the  selecting  of  a  few,  and  the 
leaving  others  in  that  state  of  ignorance  and  bruta- 
lity. *  But  it  becomes  no  man  to  quarrel  with  God, 
and  impeach  him  on  his  other  attributes,  because  he 
will  exercise  his  sovereignty,  when  we  are  both  as- 
sured by  the  sacred  oracles,  and  see  it  with  our  eyes 
in  the  course  of  his  providence,  that  '  his  judgments 
'  are  unsearchable,  and  his  ways  past  finding  out.* 

III.     There  lies  no  just  objection  from  this  doc- 
trine against   the  holiness,   justice    or  sincerity  of 
God.     Firsts  Not  against  his  holiness.  He  has  given 
men  holy  laws,  lie  forces  none  to  transgress  them. 
It  is  true  they  cannot  keep  them  without  his  grace ; 
but  is  God  a  debtor  of  that  to  any  man,    *  who  has 
f  first  given  unto  him,  and  it  shall  be  recompensed  t* 
Secondly,  Not  against  his  justice  :  for  he  damns  no 
man  but  for  sin,   nor  does  he  damn  one  repenting 
sinner  and  save  another  ;  but  he   damns  all  impeni- 
tents  and  saves  all  penitents,  without  respect  of  per- 
sons.    It  is  true  he  gives  repentance  to  some  which 
he  denies  to  others  ;  but  that  is  an  act  of  his  grace, 
upon  which  liis  justice  can  no  more  be  quarrelled, 
than  for  his  giving  the  means  of  grace  to  Christians, 
which  he  has  denied  to  Pagans.     Plainly,  be  created 
our  first  parents  perfect  and  upright,  he  gave  them 
a  power  to  stand,  he  did  not  force  them  to  fall ;  yet 
he  permitted  them  to  do  so  through  the  freedom  of 
then-  own  will,  to  which  they  were  left.    By  their  fall 
their  whole  posterity  became  at  once  guilty  and  cor- 
rupt, just  as   a  leperous    parent   begets  a  leperous 
child,  and  a  rebel  father  forfeits  the  estate,  not  only 
for  himself,  but  for  all  his  posterity  that  are,  by  the 
mere  strength  of  nature,  to  descend  from  him,  unless 
they  be  restored  by   the  prince's  grace.     ^\\  when 
God  found  all  mankind  in  this  condition,  and  from 
all  eternity  foresaw   that,  by   his  permission,  ti^ey 
would  throw  themselves  into  itj  where  is  the  injus* 

*  Set  Bp.  Burnet  on  the  xxxlx.  Art.  p.  154. 


232  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

lice  in  chasing  some  of  them  as  vessels  of  mercy  ; 
and  passing  by  others,  leaving  them  to  inherit  the 
choice  which  their  first  parents  or  themselves,  or  both, 
had  made  for  them,  and  then  reprobating  them  to 
damnation  for  their  sins  ?  Where  is  there  any  thing 
of  injustice  in  all  this  ?  Nay,  is  there  not  here  a 
most  glorious  scene  opened,  wherein  at  once  justice 
is  magnified,  and  mercy  gratified  ;  and  both  love  and 
reverence  secured  to  the  divine  majesty  ?  And  it  is 
upon  this  consideration  that  we  find  the  Apostle  sa- 
tisfying the  objection  which  formerly  we  heard  him 
silencing.  '  What  if  God,  willing  to  shew  his  wrath, 
'  and  to  make  his  power  known,  endured  with  much 
*■  long  suffering  the  vessels  of  wrath  fitted  to  destruc- 
'  tion  :  And  that  he  might  make  known  the  riches 
'  of  his  glory  on  the  vessels  of  mercy,  which  he  had 
'  afore  prepared  unto  glory,*  Rom.  ix.  22,  23. 
Tliirdlijy  Not  against  his  sincerity.  For,  why  may 
not  God  require  obedience  from  the  eleci,  when  his 
very  requiring  it  is  one  of  the  means  by  which  he  de- 
termines them  to  it.  AVhy  may  not  he  threaten  them 
with  damnation  in  case  of  disobedience,  when  the 
threatening  is  the  mean  appointed  for  scaring  them 
from  it.  Is  there  any  thing  here  but  the  use  of  a 
most  rational  mean  for  compassing  a  most  holy  end  ? 
Is  it  any  objection  against  Providence,  that  the  sun 
is  suffered  to  shine,  and  the  rain  to  fall,  on  the  tares 
as  well  as  the  wheat  growing  together  in  the  same 
common  field,  though  the  first  are  to  be  burned,  the 
latter  to  be  gathered  into  the  barn  ?  As  little  objec- 
tion is  it  in  this  case,  that,  while  the  elect  and  re- 
probate live  mixed  together  in  the  visible  church, 
the  exhortations  of  the  gospel  are  directed,  and  the 
offers  of  life  and  salvation  made  in  a  general  style. 
And,  to  call  this  dissimulation,  and  a  cruel  and  disin- 
genuous procedure,  as  Mr  Uhind  does,  p.  129, 
when  it  is  so  easy  to  be  accounted  for  by  reason,  even 
upon  the  Presbyterian  hypothesis,  was  the  most  pre- 
sumptuous blasphemy. 

IV.   The    said   Presbyterian    doctrine   is   no  way 
contrary  to    the    design   of    revelation,  nor  to  any 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  233 

one  testimony  of  Scripture.  1st,  It  is  no  way 
contrary  to  the  design  of  revelation :  And  Mr 
Rhind's  medium,  for  proving  that  it  is,  discovers 
either  a  most  vicious  mind,  or  a  most  prodigious  igno- 
rance of  the  controversy.     *  According  to  this  doc- 

*  trine,'  saith  he,  p.  130,  ••  our  faith  and  obedience 
'  cannot  make  our  case  better  nor  worse  ;    it  being 

*  unalterably  fixed  by  a  prior  will,  without  regard  to 

*  either.*  Was  it  malice  or  mistake  made  him  talk 
at  this  rate  ?  Does  not  the  Apostle  teach  *  that 
God  has  chosen  us  to  salvation  through  sanctifica- 
tion  of  the  spirit  and  belief  of  the  truth  ?  Did  ever 
any  Presbyterian  teach  otherwise  ?  Do  they  ever 
separate  betwixt  the  end  and  the  means  ?  Do  not 
they  constantly  affirm  that  holiness  and  happiness, 
sin  and  misery,  are  linked  together,  as  in  the  nature 
of  the  thing,  so  also  in  the  decree  of  God  ?  To 
assert,  then,  that  the  doctrine  of  the  decrees  sup- 
poseth  God  to  admit  to  heaven,  and  dispatch  to 
hell,  without  respect  either  to  faith  and  obedience 
on  the  one  hand,  or  infidelity  and  impenitence  on 
the  other,  was  to  bid  a  defiance  both  to  modesty 
and  truth.  2d,  It  is  not  contrary  to  any  testimony 
of  Scripture.  Mr  Rhind  instances  two,  1  Tim.  ii.  4. 
'  That  God  would  have  all  men  to  be  saved.*  But, 
were  that  to  be  understood  of  God*s  secret  will, 
pray,  how  could  any  man  be  lost ;    '  For  who  hath 

*  resisted  his  will  ?  The  counsel  of  the  Lord  stand- 
'  eth  fast,  and  the  thoughts  of  his  heart  to  all  ge- 

*  nerations.'t  The  meaning  of  the  place,  then,  is 
obvious,  viz.  That  we  should  pray  for  kings,  and 
all  that  are  in  authority,  as  well  as  for  others,  be- 
cause there  is  no  rank  or  order  of  men  whose  faith 
and  obedience  he  will  not  accept  of,  and  upon  it 
save  them  at  the  last ;  in  token  whereof  he  has 
given  them  his  revealed  will,  which  commands  all 
men  every  where  to  repent :  and  it  is  with  respect 
to  this,  that  he  is  said  to  will  that  they  should  be 
saved,  and  not  with  respect  to  any  uncertain  hover- 
ing purpose  to  be  determined  by  the  creature,  which 

*  2  Tbess.  ii,  13.  f  Rom.  ix.  19.     Psal.  xxxlli.  11. 


234  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

is  a  thing  inconsistent  with  the  pprfection  of  his  na- 
ture. The  other  Scripture  is  Mark  xvi.  16.  *  He 
'  that  beheveth  and  is  baptised  shall  be  saved,   but 

*  he  that  beheveth  not  shall  be  damned.' — *  Which,' 
saith  he,  *  plainly  supposeth,   that  a  man   may  or 

*  may  not  believe.'  But  this  is  manifestly  false. 
The  design  of  the  text  is  not  to  shew  what  man  may 
or  may  not  do,  but  to  express  the  connection  there 
is  betw^ixt  faith  and  salvation,  infidelity  and  damna- 
tion. Faith  is  not  of  the  growth  of  our  own  nature 
or  will,  but  is  the  effect  of  the  operation  of  the  Spi- 
rit of  God  ;  and  to  deny  this,  as  Mr  Rhind  does  all 
along,  is  quite  to  subvert  the  gospel.  To  these  two 
scriptures  he  adds,  p.  131,  an  argument,  which  is 
this  :  '  All  to  whom  the  gospel  is  preached  areoblig- 

*  ed  to  believe  that  Christ  is  their  Saviour,  and  die4 

*  for  them.     But   none   can  be  bound  to  believe  a 

*  lie,  therefore  Christ  most  certainly  died  lor  all  to 
'  whom  the  gospel  is  revealed  ;  and  if  so,   then  the 

*  doctiine,  winch  asserts  the  salvability  only  of  a 

*  select  few,  is  demonstratively  false.'  But  this  ar- 
gument stands  on  a  lame  foot.  All  to  whom  the 
gospel  is  preached  are  indeed  obliged  to  believe,  in 
the  general,  that  Christ  died  for,  and  is  the  Saviour 
of  all  that  believe  ;  and  from  thence,  if  they  (with 
the  joint  testimony  of  God's  Spirit),  are  conscious 
to  themselves,  that  they  do  believe  with  such  a  faith 
as  is  necessary  to  salvation,  they  may  confidently 
infer  that  Christ  died  for  them,  and  is  their  Saviour: 
but  to  believe  that  Christ  died  for  me  in  particular, 
while  1  make  no  conscience  of  answering  the  terms 
of  the  gospel,  is  to  believe  both  v.ilhout  warrant 
and  evidence.  The  foundation,  then,  of  his  argu- 
ment being  false,  the  whole  frame  of  it  must  needs 
fall  to  the  ground. 

V.  I  add,  that  this  doctrine  has  no  pernicious  in- 
fluence on  the  Christian  life,  when  it  is  improved  as 
it  ought  to  be.  Mr  llhind  expressly  asserts,  p. 
132,  that  it  has,  as  running  j)e()ple  into  the  most 
sinful  security,  or  into  the  height  of  despair,  be- 
yond the  capacity  of    a  Calvinist  cauist  to    give 


TRESBYTERIAN   FAITH.  £35 

check  to  either.  But,  in  opposition  to  Mr  Rhind, 
I  affirm,  with  the  Church  of  England,  in  her  17th 
Article,  *  That  though,  for  curious  and  carnal  per- 

*  sons,  lacking  the  spirit  of  Cluist,  to  have  conti- 

*  nually  before  their  eyes  the  sentence  of  God*s  Pre- 

*  destination,  is  a  most  dangerous  downfall,  where- 

*  by  the  devil  doth  thrust  them   eitiier  into  despe- 

*  ration,    or   into  wretchlessness  of   most  unclean 

*  living,  no  less  perilous  than  desperation.     Yet  the 

*  godly  consideration   of  predestination   and  our  e- 

*  lection  in  Christ  is  full  of  sweet,  pleasant,  and 

*  unspeakable  comfort  to  godly  persons,  and  such  as 
'  feel  in  themselves  the  working  of  the  Spirit  of 
'  Christ,  mortifying  the  works    of  the  flesh,    and 

*  their  earthly  members,  and  drawing  up  their  mind 

*  to  high   and  heavenly  things,  as  well,  because  it 

*  doth  greatly  establish  and  confirm  their  faith  of 

*  eternal  salvation  to  be  enjoyed  through  Christ,  as 
'  because  it  doth  fervently  kindle  tlieir  love  towards 
«  God.'  Thus  far  the  Church  of  England.  Be- 
sides, it  is  plain,  from  the  nature  of  the  thing,  that 
the  said  doctrine  teaclies  one  to  think  meanly  of 
himself,  and  to  ascribe  the  honour  of  all  to  God, 
which  lays  in  him  a  deep  foundation  for  humility  ; 
and  that  it  inclines  to  secret  prayer,  and  to  a  fixed 
dependence  on  God  ;  which  naturally  both  brings 
his  mind  to  a  good  state,  and  fixes  it  in  it.*  And, 
which  confirms  all,  we  see  in  fact  that  these  that 
believe  that  doctrine  are  generally  serious  and  con- 
cerned about  their  soul,  so  that  the  goodness  of 
their  heart  is  an  argument  of  the  rightness  of  their 
head.  I  do  not  know  if  as  much  can  be  said  of 
such  as  go  on  a  contrary  system.  Sure  I  am,  they 
are  under  shrewd  temptations  to  procrastinate  the 
work  of  their  souls :  For  when  the  Scripture  tells 
one,  that  all  that  believe  and  repent  (at  wiiat  time 
soever  it  be),  shall  be  saved.  And  Mr  Rhind  tells 
him,  that  he  may  repent  and  believe  when   he  will, 

'  that  he  has  it  in  his  own   power  to  do  so,  without 
the  assistance  of  any  uncommon  grace,  if  the  man 

•  Bp,  Burnet,  ubi  supia,  p.  1 66. 


236  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

believe  both  these  ;  I  mean,  both  the  Scriptures  and 
Mr  Rhind's  doctrine.  I  refer  it  to  any  one  to  say, 
whether,  in  that  case,  corruption  will  not  incline 
him  to  take  his  swing  in  sin,  in  hopes  that  he  may 
have  a  quiet  hour  at  death  to  dispatch  all  his  busi- 
ness.    But  enough  of  this. 


OF  THE  EFFICACY  OF  GRACE. 

In  the  third  place,  the  next  Presbyterian  doc-. 
trine  which  Mr  Rhind  attacks,  is  that  concerning 
the  efficacy  of  grace.  '  They  teach,'  saith  he,  p.  135, 
'  that  God,  to  attain  his  eternal  purpose,  does,  by 
*  an  irresistible  force,  work  grace  in  the  elect,  and, 
'  at  the  same  time,  denies  it  to  the  reprobate.'  This 
is  horridly  false:  for  they  expressly  disown  all  force  re- 
sistible or  irresistible  in  the  operation  of  grace  ;  and 
teach,*  that  though  the  elect  are  eifectually  drawn  to 
Christ,  yet  it  is  so,  as  that  they  come  most  freely, being 
made  willing  by  his  grace.  And  is  it  not  very  easy 
to  conceive  how  there  may  be  efficacy,  yea,  and  in- 
superable efficacy  too,  (which  the  Presbyterians  own 
in  this  case),  without  the  least  force  ?  Is  it  not 
plain,  that  the  greater  evidence  there  is  for  any 
truth,  and  the  stronger  motives  there  are  to  any 
duty,  the  more  pleasure  the  soul  feels,  and,  conse- 
quently, the  greater  freedom  it  exercises  in  assent- 
ing to  the  one,  or  complying  with  the  other  ?  Is 
this  to  make  machines  of  men  ?  When  a  man  tells 
me  that  two  and  three  make  five,  the  native  evi- 
dence of  the  proposition  commands  my  assent.  But 
is  there,  therefore,  any  force  offisred  to  my  under- 
standing ?  Is  it  not  very  possible  for  the  Spirit  of 
God  to  set  home  the  sense  of  my  danger  through 
sin  upon  my  conscience  so  powerfully,  that  I  shall 
be  necessarily,  though  without  the  least  force,  de- 
termined to  fall  in  with  the  overtures  of  the  gospel, 
in  order  to  my  salvation  ?  And  is  it  not  needful  that 
theSpirit  of  God  do  act  thus,  considering  how  deeply 

*  Confess,  of  Faith,  Chap.  x.  Sect.  1. 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  237 

we  are  immersed  in  corruption,  blind  to  duty,  dead 
in  trespasses  and  sins,  who  cannot  of  ourselves  so 
much  as  think  one  good  thought.  And  does  not  the 
Scripture  assure  us  that  the  Spirit  of  God  does  act 
thus ;  that  he  works  in  us  both  to  will  and  to  do  ; 
that  his  people  shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  his 
power  ;  that  he  puts  his  spirit  within  us,  and  causes 
us  to  walk  in  his  statutes  ?  But  Mr  Rhind  cannot 
away  with  this  doctrine,  it  is  with  him  opposite  to 
truth,  and  destructive  of  Christian  life. 

First,  Saith  he,  p.  1 35,  '  It   is   opposite  to  truth. 

*  For  how  can  I  be  reasonably  commanded  to  believe 
'  and  repent,  who  am  supposed  to  have  no  strength 

*  to  do  either  ?'  How  could  Christ  reasonably  bid 
Lazarus  *  Come  forth,'  or  the  lame  man,  '  Take  up 
'  thy  bed  and  walk,'  when  the  one  was  dead,  the 
other  an  absolute  cripple  ?  Has  Mr  Rhind,  with 
Presbytery,  renounced  the  gospel  too  ?  Does  he 
believe  there  is  never  any  secret  efficacy  attends  the 
dispensation  thereof  ?  '  But,'  adds  he,  '  how  can 
'  that,  in  propriety  of  speech,  be  called  my  act, 

*  which  was  never  elicited  by  me  ?'  Very  strong  ! 
Because  another  raised  me  up,  therefore  my  stand- 
ing or  walking  is  not  my  act !  Because,  when  I  was 
lying  dead  in  sin,  the  spirit  of  God  quickened  me 
to  repent  and  believe  ;  therefore,  repenting  and  be- 
lieving, when  I  am  quickened,  is  not  my  act  ?  Be- 
cause Christ  draws  me,  therefore  it  is  not  I  that 
run,  notwithstanding  he  has  made  me  willing  to  it ! 
Was  this  to  argue  ? 

SecorulJij,  '  It  is,'  saith    he,  p.   136,  *  destructive 

*  of  Christian  life,  in   that  it  excuses  the  greatest 

*  villaiiies  under  pretence  of  exalting  the  free  grace 

*  of  God,  and  discourages  all  tlie   good  endeavours 

*  that  should  be  used.'  To  make  this  good,  he  in- 
troduces a  Calvinist  teacher  endeavouring  (but  with- 
out possibility  of  success),  to  reclaim  a  debauchee  of 
the  party.  Air  Rhind  has  acted  the  debauchee,  fur- 
nishing him  with  arguments,  formed,  as  he  imagines, 
upon  the  Presbyterian  hypothesis.  1  shall  crave  leave 


238  DSFEXCE  OF  THE 

to  act  the  Calvinist  teacher ;  and  dare  promise, 
though  not  actually  to  convert  the  debauchee, (that  is 
God's  work,)  yet  to  satisfy  his  objections,  even  by 
the  Presbyterian  scheme  of  principles.  The  dialogue 
then  stands  thus. 


Dialogue  between  a  Calvinist  Teacher  and  a  Debauchee 
of  the  Party. 

Calv.  Sir,  I  find  you  still  go  on  in  a  course  of  de- 
bauchery ;  I  have  often  told  you  before,  and  now 
tell  you  once  more,  that  unless  you  reform  you  will 
go  to  hell. 

Deb.  Alas,  Sir,  you  know,  that  I  cannot  effectu- 
ally reform  without  irresistible  grace,  and  I  am  not 
to  blame  that  I  am  not  yet  passive  of  it,  p.  136. 

Cah.  What,  Sir!  cannot  you  give  over  your  de- 
baucheries, your  drinking,  cursing,  swearing,  whor- 
ing, gaming,  without  irresistible  grace  ?  Did  1 
ever  teach  you  so?  Have  not  I  always  told  you, 
that  a  man  may  reform  these  vices  without  special 
grace?  How  can  you  say,  that  you  are  not  to  blame 
that  you  have  not  yet  been  passive  of  grace  ?  Have 
you  used  the  means,  cultivated  your  natural  faculties, 
improved  your  reason  ?  When  you  have  not  been 
faithful  in  that  which  is  less,  why  should  God  com- 
mit to  your  trust  that  which  is  more  ?  Are  not  you 
then  to  blame  ?  That  which  God  has  already  given 
you  was  sufficient  whereupon  to  have  either  prevent- 
ed or  broken  off  a  course  of  debauchery  ;  nay,  as  I 
have  often  told  you  before,  you  might  have  gone, 
upon  the  mere  strength  of  nature,  as  far  as  ever  a 
Plato  or  a  Seneca  went. 

Deb.  True,  Sir.  But  even  then  my  best  actions, 
without  this  grace,  would  be  but  so  many  splendid 
sins,  p.  137. 

Calv.  Right.  But  is  it  not  better  that  you  should 
be  guilty  only  of  these  splendid  sins  ;  that  is,  actions 
which,  though  not  fully  acceptable  with  God  through 
want  of  a  right  principle  and  Christian  motive  ;  yet 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  259 

Iiave  not  only  the  colour,  but  matter  too,  of  virtue  ; 
and  make  one  that  he  is  not  far  from  the  kingdom  of 
God  ;  were  not  this  better,  I  say,  than  that  you 
should  swell  (as  you  do)  in  vice  and  sensuality,  and 
makeyourself  the  reproach  of  human  nature,  and  the 
scandal  of  the  town  ? 

Deb.  But,  Sir,  the  reformation  which  you  preach 
can  be  of  no  advantage  to  my  soul  vvithout  grace ; 
and  seeing  this  grace  is  not  in  my  power,  I  hope  you 
will,  and  it  is  but  reasonable  you  should,  allow  me 
to  gratify  the  body,  seeing  the  contrary  cannot  in 
the  least  advance  the  interest  of  my  soul.     Ibid. 

Calv.  What  do  I  hear !  Would  such  a  reformation 
be  of  no  advantage  to  my  soul  ? — Not  in  the  least 
advance  the  interest  thereof  ?  Where  did  you  learn 
such  divinity  ?  Are  there  no  degrees  in  guilt  ?  And 
is  it  not  a  huge  advantage  to  want  the  least  degree 
thereof,  seeing  your  punishment  in  hell  must  rise  in 
proportion  thereto,  in  case  you  repent  not :  or  the 
stings  and  remorse  of  your  conscience  here,  even 
sup})ose  you  do  ?  And  is  the  insincere  and  transitory 
pleasure  of  sin  to  be  laid  in  the  balance  with  either 
of  these,  even  in  point  of  plain  reason  ?  But,  ab- 
stracting from  the  advantage  such  a  reformation 
Would  be  of  to  the  soul,  is  it  reasonable  I  should  al- 
low you  to  gratify  the  body  with  vice  ?  Vice,  I  say, 
whose  pleasures  are  hollow  in  the  present  enjoyment, 
and  will  at  long-run  ruin  your  body,  and  all  your 
temporal  interest :  when  even  that  virtue,  which 
you  may  attain  to  by  strength  of  reason,  carries  its 
own  reward  in  its  bosom  ;  and  recommends  itself 
both  by  the  much  more  manly  pleasures  which  at- 
tend its  exercise,  and  the  solid  advantages  that  fol- 
low upon  it  even  in  this  life.  Do  not  you  see  the 
drunkard  for  the  most  part  reduced  to  poverty, 
while  the  sober  man,  by  good  management  and  indus- 
trious frugality,  enjoys  a  comfortable  competency  ? 
Have  not  you  observed  the  first  seized  with  burning 
fevers  ;  or  surprised  with  a  sudden  death,  drowning 
in  his  own  vomit,  while  the  other  has  enjoyed  a 
healthful  and  vigorous  age  ?     Did  you  never  see  the 


240  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

ruins  of  lust  in  the  old  adulterer;  his  weak  limbs, 
and  meagre  carcase,  and  his  body  as  loathsome  as 
his  name  ?  Have  you  not  observed  what  confusion, 
jealousies,  discords,  and  misunderstandings  such  lewd 
persons  have  begot,  both  in  their  own  and  their 
neighbour's  family  ?  Has  not  this  one  sin  ruined 
some  of  the  greatest  families,  and  left  the  fairest 
estates  without  heirs  ?  While  on  the  other  hand,  the 
chaste  and  continent  person  has  retained  a  healthful 
body,  a  savory  name,  and  left  a  numerous  posterity 
behind  him.  So  that,  upon  the  whole,  your  reform- 
ing from  your  open  debaucheries  is  in  your  power 
by  the  strength  of  nature  :  and  is  the  most  prefer- 
able course  in  point  of  reason. 

Del).  But  I  am  uncertain  whether  I  be  one  of  the 
elect  or  reprobate.     Ibid. 

Calv.  No  wonder  truly,  seeing  you  still  continue  in 
your  debaucheries  :  for,  the  sanctification  of  the  spirit, 
and  the  belief  of  the  truth,  are  both  the  fruits  and 
evidences  of  election,  of  which  no  man  can  possibly 
be  certain  without  them,  nor  in  an  ordinary  way, 
but  by  them. 

Deb.  But  my  practice  depends  upon  my  know- 
ledge of  this.  For  if  I  be  one  of  the  elect,  I  will, 
some  time,  were  it  only  at  the  hour  of  death,  be  de- 
termined by  this  grace,  and  so  will  certainly  be  sav- 
ed, notwithstanding  the  lewdness  of  my  bygone  life  ; 
and  if  I  be  not,  why  should  I  abstain  from  sin,  when 
an  abstinence,  without  grace,  can  be  of  no  use  to 
me  ?  And  this  grace  I  cannot  command  :-  and  if  I 
be  none  of  the  elect,  I  am  not  to  expect  it ;  there- 
fore, seeing  I  am  to  forfeit  the  joys  of  heaven,  which 
is  my  misfortune,  not  my  fault,  you  must  excuse  me 
if  I  do  not  lose  the  pleasures  of  sin,  which  I  may  so 
freely  enjoy  ?     Ibid. 

Calv.  Pray,  Sir,  does  either  reason  or  Scripture 
dictate  such  a  conduct  to  you  ?  Or  are  these  ration- 
al inferences  from  the  doctrines  of  election  and  grace 
which  you  have  been  taught  ?  Is  it  not  necessary  in 
all  sciences  to  begin  at  what  is  most  easy  and  ob- 
vious, and  thence  to  come  to  the  knowledge  and 

2 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  241 

certainty  of  what  is  more  difficult  ?  Are  you  not  sen- 
sible that  (besides  all  the  other  flaws  in  your  reason- 
ing, such  as,  the  uselessness  of  an  abstinence  from 
sin,  which  I  have  already  discoursed),  you  begin  at 
the  wrong  end  ?  Whether  you  are  of  the  elect  or 
not  is  a  secret  with  God ;  not  otherwise  to  be  dis- 
covered by  you,  but  by  the  fruit  of  it,  I  mean  hoH- 
nessin  heart  and  life.  This  God  has  enjoined  in  his 
revealed  will ;  and,  therefore,  it  is  your  duty  to 
study  and  endeavour  it,  without  fear  of  any  latent 
decree  lying  against  you ;  and  if  you  attain  to  it, 
you  may  then  most  certainly  infer  trom  it  both  your 
election  and  salvation.  But  you  will  needs  invert 
God's  order :  you  must  needs  first  know  his  secret 
will,  before  you  apply  yourself  to  obey  his  revealed 
will ;  whereas,  he  has  enjoined  you  to  obey  his  re- 
vealed will,  and  thence  to  gather  his  secret  will  con- 
cerning yourself.  For  shame,  Sir,  make  better  use 
of  your  reason.  Apply  yourself  to  your  duty  which 
you  are  sure  you  ought  to  do;  and  do  not  expect 
to  be  saved  in  the  neglect  of  it  upon  the  account  of 
your  election — when  God  has  e::pressly  said  that  he 
has  chosen  us  that  we  should  be  holy.  Neither  be 
discouraged  from  it  with  the  apprehension  of  your 
reprobation  ;  seeing  you  own  yourself  to  be  uncer- 
tain of  it :  for  who  would  baulk  certain  duty  for  un- 
certain danger  ?  No  rational  man  would  reason  so 
weakly  about  his  temporal  affairs. 

Deb.  But,  Sir,  whether  I  be  of  the  elect  or  repro- 
bate, there  is  no  doing  of  my  duty,  should  I  never 
so  much  endeavour  it,  without  grace  ;  and,  therefore, 
whether  I  will  or  not,  I  must  continue  as  I  am  until 
it  shall  please  God  to  determine  me  by  his  irresist- 
ible power.     Ibid. 

Calv.  How,  Sir  !  May  not  ye  do  more  than  ye  do  ? 
Have  not  I  shewn  you  how  far  you  may  go  upon 
strength  of  nature  or  common  grace  ?  What  neces- 
sity then  are  you  under  to  continue  as  you  are  ?  Be- 
sides, if  together  with  other  means,  you  would  pray 
to  God  for  effectual  grace,  you  should  certainly  ob- 
tain it  J  if  you  do  not,  you  arc  inexcusable. 

Q 


242  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Deh.  Oh,  Sir,  what  an  idle  exhortation  is  that? 
For,  tell  me,  I  beseech  you,  is  it  not  the  prayer  of 
faith  which  only  prevaileth  with  God  ?     Ibid, 

Calv.  Right.     It  is  so. 

Deb.  And  is  not  faith  the  effect  of  his  irresistible 
grace  ?     Ibid. 

Calv.  True.  Of  his  insuperable  grace  it  is  :  For, 
as  for  these  terms  of  resistible  and  irresistible^  they 
were  first  contrived  or  occasioned  by  the  Arminians 
in  this  controversy. 

Deb.  Well,  then,  if  my  prayer  be  acceptable,  I 
have  this  grace,  and  it  is  needless  to  pray  for  what  I 
have  already.     P.  138. 

Calv.  That  is  a  false  inference :  For  faith,  and 
every  other  grace,  is  both  preserved  and  increased 
by  prayer,  and  other  means  to  be  used  by  us  ;  though 
it  is  indeed  needless  to  pray  for  the  first  gift  of  faith, 
after  I  am  sure  that  I  have  it,  which  I  suppose  you 
are  hot. 

Deb.  Well,  then,  if  my  prayer  be  not  acceptable, 
why  should  I  pray  for  what  I  am  not  to  obtain  ? 
Ibid. 

Calv.  Poor  sophistry.  God  commands  you  to  pray, 
and  that  command  makes  it  your  duty ;  and  it  is 
while  people  are  in  the  way  of  their  duty,  that  God 
ordinarily  comes  with  his  free  grace ;  whereas  the 
neglect  of  it  renders  them  certainly  inexcusable.  Up, 
then,  and  be  doing.  Break  off  your  course  of  de- 
bauchery, which  you  are  under  no  other  necessity  of 
continuing  in,  but  what  the  habit  of  it  has  brought 
upon  you  ;  and  ply  prayer  with  all  your  might,  which 
you  see  you  are  obliged  to  do  by  virtue  of  God's 
authority  j  and  assure  yourself,  that  God  will  not 
condemn  you  for  what  you  cannot^  but  for  what  you 
mil  not  do.  Observe  these  tilings,  I  say  ;  and  I  hope 
shortly  to  have  a  good  account  of  you.  And  I  hear- 
tily pray  God  it  may  be  so.     Adieu  ! 

Thus  I  have  allowed  tlie  Debauchee  to  argue  with 
all  the  strength  Mr  Ilhind  could  furnish  him  with 
from  the  Presbyterian  scheme.     And  upon  the  same 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  243 

Bclieme  I  have  answered  him  ;  and  I  refer  it  to  the 
reader,  whether,  if  corruption  do  not  prevail  over 
principle,  the  Debauchee  is  not  obliged,  even  by  the 
Presbyterian  principles,  to  mend  his  former  lewd  life, 
and  in  a  hopeful  way  to  make  a  good  Christian  (if 
he  will  be  true  to  his  principles),  in  spite  of  all  his 
objections.  Therefore,  which  was  the  thing  to  be 
proved,  the  Presbyterian  doctrine  concerning  the 
efficacy  of  grace,  is  not  destructive  of  Chris- 
tian Ijfe.  And  I  have  taken  this  pains,  and  been 
so  large  on  this  subject,  that  I  might  convince 
all  Debauchees  on  the  Presbyterian  side,  who  yet,  I 
hope,  are  not  more  numerous  than  those  on  the 
other,  that  their  lewdness  is  not  owing  to  their  prin- 
ciples, but  to  their  own  vicious  inclinations.  And  I 
pray  God  may  bless  what  I  have  advanced  for  the  re- 
claiming them. 

OF  THE  DOCTRINE  OF  PERSEVERANCE. 

In  \hQ  fourth  place,  The  last  Presbyterian  doc- 
trine which  Mr  Rhind  impugns,  is  that  of  perse- 
verance— that  the  saints  cannot  fall  away  totally,  nor 
finally,  from  the  estate  of  grace,  but  shall  certainly 
persevere  therein  to  the  end,  and  will  be  eternally 
saved. 

Now,  too  sad  experience  teaches,  that  even  the 
saints  may,  through  the  temptations  of  Satan,  and 
the  world,  the  prevalency  of  corruption  remaining 
in  them,  and  the  neglect  of  the  means  of  their  pre- 
servation, fall  into  grievous  sins,  and  for  a  time  con- 
tinue therein  ;  whereby  they  incur  God's  displeasure, 
and  grieve  his  Holy  Spirit,  come  to  be  deprived  of 
some  measure  of  their  graces  and  comforts,  have 
their  hearts  hardened,  and  tlieir  consciences  wound- 
ed ;  hurt  and  scandalize  others,  and  bring  temporal 
judgments  upon  themselves.  All  this  the  Presbyte- 
rians acknowledge.  *  But  that  they  should  totally 
and  finally  fall  away,  the  immutability  of  the  de- 
cree of  election  flowing  from  the  free  and  unchango* 

*  Confess,  of  Faith,  Chap.  xvii.  Sect.  5. 
(l2 


244  DEFUNCE  OF  THE 

able  love  of  God  the  flither ;  the  efficacy  of  the 
merit  and  intercession  of  Jesus  Christ ;  the  abiding 
of  the  Spirit  and  of  the  seed  of  God  within  them  j 
and  the  nature  of  the  covenant  of  grace,  will  not  suf- 
fer us  to  believe. 

But  Mr  Rhind  is  of  a  contrary  mind,  and  endea- 
vours to  disprove  this  doctrine  from  four  arguments. 
P.  138-148. 

I.  *  The  exhortations  to  perseverance,'  saith  he, 

*  the  encouragements  promised  upon  it,  and  the  se- 

*  vere  threatenings  in  case  of  apostacy,  do  evident- 
^  ly  suppose  the  possibility  of  a  fall.'  I  deny  it ; 
they  are  only  means  appointed  by  God  for  their  per. 
severance  j  and  do  in  their  own  nature  contribute 
to  that  end.  *  That  cannot  be,'  saith  Mr  Rhind  ; 
'  for  that  v/ere  to  contradict  the  Confession  of  Faith, 
'  which  says,  '  That  the  perseverance  of  the  saints 
*'  does  not  depend  upon  their  own  free  will."  Strong- 
ly argued !  Their  perseverance  does  not  depend  up- 
on their  own  free  will ;  ergo,  exhortations,  encou- 
ragements, and  threatenings,  cannot  contribute  to 
determine  and  fix  their  will !  Our  daily  bread  comes 
from  God ;  ergo,  He  cannot  require  our  daily  la- 
bour for  gaining  it !  God  has  infallibly  promised, 
that  the  saints  shall  persevere ;  ergo,  he  must  not 
use  rational  means  to  make  them  do  so !  Mr  Rhind, 
it  seems,  must  be  incurably  gone  in  the  Logics. 

II.  He  argues  from  a  text  of  Scripture,  viz. 
Heb.  vi.  5,  6.  '  It  is  impossible  for  those  who  were 
'  once  enlightened,  and  have  tasted  of  the  heaven- 
^  ly  gift,  and  were  made  partakers  of  the  Holy 
'  Ghost,  and  of  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come, 

*  it"  they  shall  fall  away,  to  renew  them  again  unto 
'  repentance.*     '  These,'  he  alleges,  p.   140,  *  are 

*  epithets  so  peculiar  to  the  truly  faithful,  that  he 
'  challenges  us  to  shew  where  any  of  them,  much 

*  less  all  together,  are  applied  to  any  other  in  the 
'  Scriptures,  and  yet  such  might  fall  away.'  A  fair 
challenge.  But  then,  very  unhappily,  there  is  not  one 
of  these  epithets  peculiar  to  the  truly  faithful.  Not 
one  of  them  but  what  is   found  to  be  applied  to 


PRESBYTERIAN    FAITH.  245 

wicked  men  or  hypocrites  ;  yea,  sometimes,  they 
are  all  applied  together  to  such.  Plainly,  the  mean- 
ing of  the  text  is,  that  such  as  have  been  convinced 
of  the  truth  of  the  Christian  religion,  and  have  made 
public  profession  thereof  by  baptism,  both  which 
are  included  in  the  term  enlightened ;  and  thereup- 
on have  tasted  of  the  heavenly  gift ;  that  is,  have 
not  only  been  affected  with  a  temporary  joy,  as  peo- 
ple naturally  are  upon  changes  ;  but  also,  which  was 
very  frequent  in  the  Apostolic  times,  have  been 
blessed  with  the  extraordinary  charismata^  miracles, 
tongues,  gifts  of  healing,  and  the  like,  expressed 
in  the  text,  by  being  made  '  partakers  of  the  Holy 
'  Ghost,  and  of  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come  j' 
if,  saith  the  Apostle,  such  persons  thus  privileged 
shall  afterwards  apostatize  to  Paganism,  their  apos- 
tacy  so  hardens  them,  and  lays  waste  their  con- 
science in  so  dreadful  a  manner,  that  it  is  impossi- 
ble for  them  to  return  again  by  repentance ;  nor 
ought  they,  as  some  say,  be  re-admitted  to  the  peace 
of  the  Church.  This  is  the  sense  of  the  text  j 
but  where  is  there  any  thing  here  peculiar  to  the 
truly  faithful,  any  thing  which  notoriously  wicked 
men  or  hypocrites  have  not  been  privileged  with  ? 
'  Balaam  was  enlightened ;  he  was  the  man  whose 

*  eyes  were  open,  and  who  had  a  vision  of  the  Al- 
'  mighty.'  Numb,  xxxiv.  3,  4.  Simon  Magus  *  be- 
'  lieved,  and  was  baptized.'  Acts,  viii.  13.  The 
stoney-ground  hearers  *  received  the  word  with  joy, 

*  and  yet  they  had  no  root  in  themselves,  and  there- 

*  fore  endured  but  for  a  while.'  Matth.  xiii.  20,  21. 
And  many  will  say  to  our  Lord  at  the  last  day, '  Have 

*  we  not  prophesied  in  thy  name  ?  and  in  thy  name 
'  cast  out  devils  ?  and  in  thy  name  done  many  won- 

*  derful  works  ?'  To  whom  our  Lord,  notwithstand- 
ing, will  profess,  not  only  that  *  He  does  not  know 

*  them,'  but,  that  '  He  never  knew  them.' 

\\\.  He  argues  from  exam[)lc,  viz.  the  glorious 
angels  who  became  incorrigible  devils ;  the  inno- 
cent Adam,  who  became  a  child  of  wrath  ;  David, 
who  was  deliberately  guilty  of  adultery  and  murder ; 


246  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

Solomon,  who  was  guilty  of  repeated  adultery  and 
idolatry  ;  Hymeneus  and  Alexander,  who  were  guil- 
ty of  apostacy  and  blasphemy. 

As  for  the  two  first  examples,  the  Angels  and 
Adam,  they  are  impertinent.  It  is  the  perseverance 
of  the  saints  under  the  covenant  of  grace  which  the 
Presbyterians  affirm,  and  not  of  any  creature  in  its 
natural  state.  It  is  true  the  best  saints  cannot  pre- 
tend to  equal  either  the  angels  or  Adam  in  holi- 
ness ;  but  it  is  not  upon  the  measure  of  holiness,  but 
the  immutability  of  God's  decree,  and  such  other 
grounds  as  I  have  already  mentioned,  that  the  per- 
severance of  the  saints  depends. 

As  for  David  and  Solomon,  Mr  Rhind  does  not 
affirm  that  they  fell  finally  away,  and  were  damn- 
ed ;  and  therefore  I  need  not  stay  to  disprove  that 
they  were.  The  Presbyterians  grant  that  their  grace 
was  not  only  impaired,  but  laid  asleep  for  a  time  like 
live  embers,  raked  up  under  the  thick  ashes,  chok- 
ing both  the  light  and  the  heat.  But  Mr  Rhind 
avers  it  was  totally  lost.  Let  us  consider  on  what 
grounds  he  avers  this. 

First,  As  to  David. — And  here  Mr  Rhind  falls 
into  a  couple  of  the  most  prodigious  blunders  I  have 
readily  heard.  Take  his  words :  '  If,*  saith  he,  p. 
142,  *  this  commination,  viz.  *  that  murderers  and 
"  adulterers  cannot  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven,* 

•  be  not  false  and  delusory,  David  was,  upon  the 
'  commission  of  these  sins,  liable  to  damnation  ;  and 

*  if  so,  he  had  certainly  fallen  from  the  state  of  grace ; 
'  seeing,  according  to  our  adversaries,  none  who  are 
'  in  that  state  can  be  thus  liable.'  Thus  he.  Now, 
First,  Did  ever  the  Presbyterians  teach,  that  none 
who  are  in  a  state  of  grace  can  be  liable  to  damna- 
tion ?  So  far  from  it,  that  they  teach,that  there  is  not 
one  man,  even  in  a  state  of  grace,  who  is  not  liable 
to  damnation.  Secondlij,  Is  every  one  who  is  liable 
to  damnation  fallen  from  a^state  of  grace  ?  Why, 
then,  the  most  righteous  man  on  earth  falls  from  a 
.state  of  grace  every  day  :  For  he  sinneth  every  day, 
and  the  least  sin  makes  him  liable  to  damnation,unless 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH. 


247 


Mr  Rhind  will  distinguish  sins  into  venial  and  mor- 
tal. He  has  another  proof  against  David,  viz.  *  That 

*  having  by  his  adultery  become  one  with  a  harlot, 

*  he  must  at  that  time  have  been  disjoined  from 

*  Christ  according  to  the  Apostle's  doctrine,  1.  Cor. 
«  vi.  15.  '  know  ye  not  that  your  bodies  are  the 
"  members  of  Christ  ?"  But  God  is  represented  in 
Scripture  as  bearing  the  bowels  of  a  father  towards 
his  people.  Now,  a  father  may  have  oft  times  cause 
to  be  angry  with  his  son,  and  not  only  to  frown  upon 
him,  but  to  chasten  him.  But  to  renounce  the  rela- 
tion of  a  father,  and  disinherit  him,  is  the  last  thing 
he  will  do.  So  in  this  case,  the  thing  that  David  had 
done  displeased  the  Lord  ;  yet  as  God  had  a  reserve 
of  kindness  for  him,  as  appeared  in  the  issue,  so  it 
is  plain  that  David  did  not  totally  renounce  God  : 
And  therefore,  in  his  penitential  psalm  on  that  oc- 
casion, though  he  prayed  indeed  that  God  would  re- 
store unto  him  the  joy  of  his  salvation,  which  in- 
timates that  he  was  under  the  frownings  of  his  coun- 
tenance, and  tokens  of  his  wrath,  yet  he  does  notpray 
that  God  would  restore  his  Holy  Spirit  unto  him, 
but  that  he  would  not  take  it  from  him,  which  is  at 
once  an  acknowledgment  of  his  justice,  that  he 
might  do  it ;  and  yet  of  his  goodness,  that  he  had 
not  done  it. 

As  for  Solomon,  Mr  Rhind  aggravates  his  crimes 
at  a  mighty  rate,  and  in  the  burlesque  style  ;  and  in- 
deed they  were  very  great ;  yet  it  does  not  become 
him,  nor  any  man  else,  to  be  harder  upon  him  than 
the  Spirit  of  God  in  the  Scriptures  has  been.  The 
Scripture  indeed  says,*   *  that  his  heart  wasnotper- 

*  feet  with  the  Lord  his  God,  and  that  he  went  not 
'  fully  after  the  Lord :'  But  no  where  does  it  in- 
sinuate that  ever  he  fell  quite  off  from  him.  Mr 
Rhind  urges,  '  that  the  j)lainest  philosophy  teacheth, 

*  that  two  contrary  habits  cannot  lodge  at  once  in 
'  the  same  subject  •,'  and  it  is  very  true,  that  in  the 
most  intense  degree  they  cannot :  But  all  the 
piiilosophy  that  ever  was  heard  of,  teacheth,  and  ex- 

*   I  Kings,  xi.  4-.  6. 


248  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

perience  convincetli,  that  in  more  remiss  degrees 
they  may ;  and  that  this  was  Solomon's  case,  the 
forecited  soft  expressions  of  the  Scripture  allow  us 
to  believe. 

As  for  Hymeneus  and  Alexander,  the  Apostle  in- 
deed says,  1.  Tim.  i.  19,  20,   *  that  they  had   made 

*  shipwreck  concerning  the  faith,*  that  is,  they  had 
thrown  off  the  Christian  profession:  But  he  does 
not  say,  that  they  had  made  shipwreck  of  the  faith  ; 
for  indeed  he  never  so  much  as  insinuates  that  ever 
they  had  been  endued  with  the  genuine  grace  of 
faith.  But,  says  Mr  Rhind,  Isty  *  how  could  it  of- 
'  fend  God,  or  harm  them,  to  lose  that  which  was 

*  not  the  true  and  saving  faith  ?'  It  seems,  then,  that 
when  a  wicked  man  openly  renounces  Christ,  it  does 
not,  by  Mr  Rhind's  account,  either  offend  God  or 
harm  himself.  This  is  pretty  strange  doctrine. 
2dii/,  Saith  he,  '  why  should  they  be  delivered  unto 

*  Satan  for  renouncing  the  faith,  if  it  was  not  that 

*  genuine  grace,  when   without   tliis   (according  to 

*  our  adversaries)  they  were  already  in  his  clutches  ? ' 
Strong  sense  !  A  scandalously  wicked  man  is  in  the 
clutches  of  Satan,  why  then  should  the  Church,  in 
case  of  his  obstinacy,  by  excommunication,  declare 
him  to  be  so  ?  Is  not  this  mighty  judicious  reason- 
ing ?     3dli/t  Saith  he,  *  it  was  the  same  faith   which 

*  Timothy  is  advised  to  hold  in  the  19th  verse.'  Right. 
It  was  the  Christian  faith,  the  profession  whereof 
they  had  cast  off:  but  how  does  it  appear  that  ever 
they  had  been  subjectively  possessed  of  it  ?  4thl^,  He 
excepts,  upon  the  5th  and  6th  verses,  where  it  is  said, 

2^^'*'^'--^     '  now  the  end  of  the  commandment  is  charity,  out 

*  of  a  pure  heart,  and  of  a  good   conscience,   and 

*  of  faith  unfeigned  :  from  which  some  having  swerv- 

*  ed,  have  turned  aside  unto  vain  jangling.'  But 
the  original  word  ^<^7oxn<i-ciVTii,  which  is  rendered  srverV' 
edjrom,  properly  signifies  not  to  aim  at ;  and  so  it 
cannot  import  that  these  persons  had  ever  been 
possessed  of  the  genuine  grace  of  faith.  Plainly, 
the  meaning  of  the  text  is,  that  some  preachers 
aimed  not  at  the  great  design  of  the  gospel,  but 


^'"^ 


PUESBYTEUIAN  FAITH.  249 

went  out  of  the  way  to  a  divinity  made  up  of  emp- 
ty words.  Thus  even  Dr  Hammond  expounds  it. 
But  what  relation  hath  this  either  to  falhng  or  not 
falling  from  grace. 

IV.  He  argues  from  the  nature  of  the  thing.  'If,' 
saith  he,  p.  146,  '  the  truly  gracious  not  only  may 

*  be,  but  actually  are   guilty  of  very  heinous  sins, 

*  which   cannot  be    denied  ;   then  either  these  sins 

*  are  offensive  to  God  or  they  are  not.'  I  answer 
they  are  oft'ensive,  and  thereby  God's  displeasure  is 
incurred,  and  his  holy  spirit  grieved,  as  we  have  al- 
ready heard  from  the  Confession  of  Faith  ;  and  there- 
fore Mr  Rhind  shews  what  a  wretchedly  abandoned 
creature  he  is,  when  he  represents  us  as  teaching, 
'  that  the  most  horrid  impieties  are  not  such  when 

*  committed  by  the  saints.'  But  what  would  he 
infer  from  this,  *  that  the  sins  of  the  saints  are  ofFcn- 

*  sive  to  God?'     *  Why,'  saith  he,  '  if  he  be  angry 

*  with  men  because  of  them,  they  cannot  at  the 
'  same  time  be  in  his  favour  ;  and  if  they  have  lost 
'  his  favour,  they  have  fallen  from  his  grace.'  Mon- 
strous nonsense  1  A  father  cannot  frown  upon  or 
correct  his  son  out  of  love !  He  cannot  be  angry 
with  him  unless  he  disown  him  !  A  prince  cannot 
be  displeased  with  his  subjects,  but  he  must  instant- 
ly denounce  them  rebels  !  This  is  such  weak  stuif, 
that  I  doubt  if  it  can  be  paralleled. 

Thus  now,  I  have  gone  through  the  doctrine  of 
the  decrees,  with  its  dependencies,  impugned  by  Mr 
Ilhind ;  and  though  I  acknowledge  these  doctrines 
are  such,  as  that  one  cannot  have  full  and  adequate 
notions  of  them,  the  largest  mind  being  too  narrow 
to  comprehend  them,  the  most  penetrating  wit  to 
sound  all  their  depths,  and  the  most  indefatigable 
study  to  conquer  all  the  difficulties  that  may  be 
charged  upon  them  any  other  way,  than  by  submit- 
ting our  judgments  to  the  revelation  of  God ;  yet 
I  hope  1  have  made  it  evident,  that  they  are  so  far 
from  being  false,  that  they  are,  indeed,  the  very  doc- 
trines of  the  Gospel,  and  most  consistent  with  a 
Christian  life.    But  the  writers  of  Mr  llhind's  stamp, 


250  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

form  to  themselves  an  imaginary  scheme  of  chimeri- 
cal notions,  and  having  christened  them  Presbyterian- 
ism,  they  fall  a  disputing  against  them  ;  and  when 
they  have  demohshed  the  brat  of  their  own  brains, 
they  crow  over  the  conquest,  as  if  they  had  confuted 
the  Presbyterian  doctrines.  That  nobody  may  be 
imposed  upon  by  their  misrepresentations,  as  the 
Presbyterians'  doctrine  may  be  easily  known  by  their 
-puhlicjbnmdas,  so  I  shall  give  a  just  representation 
of  the  conduct  of  their  ministers,  relating  to  these 
doctrines,  which  is  this  : 

We  never  teach  our  people  to  take  it  at  first  hand 
for  granted,  either  that  they  are  of  the  elect,  or  that 
they  are  of  the  reprobate ;  but  we  teach  them  first 
to  examine,  and  then  to  conclude.  And  in  the  ex- 
ercise of  this  examination,  we  never  teach  them  to 
begin  at  that  question, — Am  I  elected  ?  But  at  these. 
Do  I  believe, — do  I  repent, — have  T  a  conversation 
suitable  to  the  gospel  ?  If  their  consciences,  when 
thoroughly  examined,  give  a  satisfying  answer  to 
these,  we  bid  them  from  thence  conclude  their  elec- 
tion, and  exhort  them  to  go  on  in  working  out  their 
salvation  with  fear  and  trembling  :  But  if  their  con- 
sciences bring  in  a  negative  answer  upon  these  ques- 
tions, we  tell  them  they  are  in  a  most  dangerous 
state,  yet  we  forbid  them  to  conclude  themselves  re- 
probate J  for  we  do  not  think,  that  in  the  militant 
church,  the  words  elect,  and  believer,  are  of  the 
same  extent, — all  believers  are  elect,  but  all  the 
elect  are  not  as  yet  believers,  though  they  certainly 
shall  be  so.  Upon  this  principle,  we  exhort  them  to 
use  the  means — reading,  hearing,  meditation,  prayer, 
and  the  like.  And  though  we  dare  not  teach  them 
the  doctrine  of  merit,  either  cle  congruo  or  condigno, 
yet  we  assure  them,  upon  God's  promise,  that,  in  the 
use  of  means,  he  will  not  be  wanting  to  them  with 
his  grace.  But  if  they  shall  continue  to  neglect  the 
^  means,  we  assure  them  that  final  impenitency  is  an 
infallible  mark  of  reprobation,  and  the  cause  of 
damnation, — and  that  it  is  presumption  to  conclude 
themselves  elected,  when  they  feel  not  the  gospel 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  251 

evidences  thereof,  telling  them,  in  the  words  of  the 
Apostle,  that  God  hath  chosen  us  to  salvation, 
through  sanctification  of  the  spirit,  and  belief  of  the 
truth  ;  and  to  bring  home  the  title  of  Elect  to  them- 
selves, otherwise  than  upon  these  evidences,  we  dare 
not  teach  them. 

I  hope  there  is  nothing  in  all  this,  but  what  is  both 
agreeable  to  the  Scripture,  and  tends  to  promote 
holiness.  Here,  then,  I  might  put  an  end  to  this 
subject ;  but  there  is  something  further  to  be  done 
for  humbhng  the  pride  of  these  gentlemen,  who  are 
so  full  of  themselves  upon  Mr  Rhind's  scheme. 


Sect.  II. 


WJm-ein  is  proved,  that  the  Presbyterian  Article'^  ofFaith^  im- 
ptigned  hy  Mr  Rhind,  are  the  same  'with  those  of  the  voJioU 
Christian  Church. 

For  making  this  good  I  assert,— I.  That  these  doc- 
trines are  the  doctrines  of  the  whole  foreign  churches' 
that  go  by  the  name  of  reformed^  and  that  in  the 
judgment  of  the  highest  and  most  learned  Episcopa- 
lians, neither  in  tiiese,  nor,  indeed,  in  anything  elsei 
relating  to  doctrine,  do  they  maintain  any  thing  that 
is  fundamentally  false.  II.  That  these  doctrines 
are  the  doctrines  of  those  of  the  Episcopal  commu- 
nion in  Scotland.  III.  That  they  are  the  doctrines 
of  the  Church  of  England.  IV.  To  complete  all, 
that  the  Catholic  Church  of  Christ  hath  declared  these 
doctrines  to  be  the  orthodox  faith,  and  that  such  as 
oppose  them  are  worthy  of  an  anathema.  If  I  shall 
prove  all  these  things,  and  that  from  uncontested 
documents,  which  I  am  tolerably  sure  of  doing,  J 
hope  it  will  follow,  that  these  doctrines  can  be  no 
just  ground  of  separation  from  the  Presbyterians  ;  and 
that  such  as  do  separate  on  the  account  of  them, 
cannot  claim  communion  with  any  Church  in  the 
world.     Let  us  try  it  then. 

I.  I  say  that  these  doctrines  are  the  doctrines  of 
the  v/l.ole  foreign  churches,  which  go  by  the  name 


^52  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

of  Reformed.  For  proving  this,  I  need  not  appeal 
to  this  or  the  other  particular  divine.  No  :  I  refer 
the  reader  to  the  Syntagma  Cojifessiomim,  where  he 
may  have  the  confessions  of  all  the  reformed  churches 
under  his  view  at  once  ;  and  that  they  all  assert 
these  doctrines,  is  so  evident,  that  no  man  ever  to 
this  day  denied  it,  so  that  I  need  not  insist.  But 
then,  to  make  this  argument  complete,  I  add,  that, 
in  the  judgment  of  the  highest  and  most  learned 
Episcopalians,  neither  in  these,  nor  indeed  in  any 
thing  else  relating  to  doctrine,  do  they  maintain  any 
thing  that  is  fundamentally  false.  For  this,  the  tes- 
timony of  Mr  Dodwell  will  be  sufficient.  He,  in  his 
book,  which  I  have  so  often  before  cited,  I  mean  the 
Para^ncsis  ad  EcVteros,  in  order  to  recommend  Episco- 
pacy to  the  foreign  churches,  by  shewing  how  much 
it  would  conduce  to  the  good  of  the  Reformation, 
if  Bishops  were  restored,  writes  thus  : — *  Were  this 

*  done,*  saith  he,  *  '  I  do  not  indeed  see  why  com- 
'  munion  might  not  be  held  with  at  least  all  the  re- 

*  formed  churches.  For,  as  for  Socinians,  and  So- 
'  cinianiziug  Arminians,  I  do  not  think  them  wor- 

*  thy  the  name  of  Reformed.     But  as  to  the  rest,  I 

*  see  no  fundamental  doctrines  in  which  they  differ, 
'  I  mean,  which  are  clearly  delivered  in  the  Scrip- 

*  ture.  And  that  such  only  can  be  called  fundamen- 
'  tal  doctrines,  the  Reformed  at  least  are  agreed  ; 
'  nor  ought  any  doctrines,  which  are  not  fundamen- 
'  tal,  obstruct  communion  with  other  churches.' 
Thus  far  Mr  Dodvveli.  It  is,  then,  a  plain  case,  by 
his  judgment,  that  these  doctrines  which  Mr  Rhind 
has  quarrelled,  are  not  fundamentally  false,  and  that 
none  ought  to  separate  from  any  communion  on  the 

*  Nee  sane  video  cur,  id  si  fieret,  cum  omnibus,  saltem  Re- 
formatis  Ecclesiis,  commercium  illud  haberi  non  possit.  Nee 
enim  dignos  eo  nomine  puto  Socinianos,  nee  qui  Socinianis  favent 
Arminianos.  In  reliquis  fundamentalia  dogmata  nulla  video  in 
quibus  discrepent,  quas  quidem  pcrspicue  tradantur  in  scripturis: 
Haec  enim  sola  fundamentalia  appellari  posse,  convenlunt  saltem 
Reformat!.  Nee  debent  alia  dogmata  obstare  quo  minus  cum 
Ecclesiis  aliis  communio  servetur,  preterquam  fundamentalia.— 
Parwnes.  Sect.  5-1-.  p.  24'1. 


PRESBYTERIAN  FAITH.  253 

account  of  them,  and  as  little  from  the  Presbyte- 
rians in  Scotland  as  any.  For,  I  suppose,  every  man 
will  own,  that  there  is  no  society  under  the  cope  of 
Heaven  more  free  of  Socinianism,  or  that  favours 
Socinianizing  Arminians  less  than  they.  I  hope,  then, 
the  first  point  is  fairly  gained. 

II.  These  doctrines,  which  Mr  Rhind  has  quar- 
relled, are  the  doctrines  of  those  of  the  Episcopal 
communion  in  Scotland.  In  all  the  revolutions  since 
the  Reformation,  wherein  ever  Episcopacy  got  the 
ascendant,  we  hear  but  of  one  Confession  of  Faith 
formed  by  them,  and  that  was  in  the  Assembly  at 
Aberdeen,  anno  1616,  in  which  Archbishop  Spottis- 
wood  presided.     Now,  hear  some  articles  of  it. 

*  This  glorious  God,  from  all  eternity,  out  of  his 
wisdom  and  i)]finite  knowledge,  decreed  all  things 
that  were  after  to  be  done. 

*  This  God,  before  the  foundation  of  the  world  was 
laid,  according  to  tlie  good  pleasure  of  his  will,  for 
the  praise  of  the  glory  of  his  grace,  did  predesti- 
nate and  elect,  in  Christ,  some  men  and  angels  un- 
to eternal  felicity,  and  others  he  did  appoint  for  eter- 
nal condemnation,  according  to  the  counsel  of  his 
most  free,  most  just,  and  most  holy  will,  and  that 
to  the  praise  and  glory  of  his  justice. 

'  By  the  fall  of  Adam,  all  his  posterity  are  so  cor- 
rupted, from  their  conception  and  nativity,  that  none 
of  them  can  do  or  will  any  thing  truly  acceptable  un- 
to God,  till  they  be  renewed  by  the  will  and  spirit 
of  God,  and  by  faith  ingrafted  in  Christ  Jesus, 

*  Albeit  all  mankind  be  fallen  in  Adam,  yet  only 
these  who  are  elected  before  all  time,  are  in  time 
redeemed,  restored,  raised,  and  quickened  again ; 
not  of  themselves,  or  of  their  works  ;  lest  any  man 
should  glory,  but  only  of  the  mercy  of  God. 

*  We  believe,  that  albeit  the  elect  of  God,  through 
infirmity,  and  through  the  enticements  thereof, 
sin  grievously  to  the  offence  of  God,  yet  they 
cannot  altogether  fall  from  grace,  but  are  raised 
again  through  the  mercy  of  God,  and  kccped  to 


256  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

doctrines  contained  in  these  articles  are  fundament- 
ally false  and  pernicious,  how  can  any  clergyman 
with  a  good  conscience  promise  to  acquiesce  in  them  ? 
If  they  are  of  such  a  damning  nature,  is  he  not  ob- 
liged, under  pain  of  damnation  to  himself,  to  warn 
people  against  them  ?  These  two  things  I  have  sug- 
gested upon  supposition  that  no  more  but  an  ac- 
quiescence in  them  were  required.  But  then  I  add, 
Sdli/,  That  that  allegeance  is  even  impudently  false. 
For,  Jirst,  The  very  title  of  the  Articles  bears,  that 
they  were  agreed  upon,  not  only  for  the  avoiding 
of  the  diversities  of  opinions,  but  for  the  establishing 
of  consent  touching  true  religion.  Secondly^  By  the 
xxxvith  Canon,  1603,  all  Bishops  are  discharged  to 
ordain,  admit  or  licence  any  so  much  as  to  preach,  till 
such  person  acknowledge  all  and  every  the  Thirty- 
nine  Articles  to  be  agreeable  to  the  word  of  God, 
and  subscribe  the  same  willingly  and  ex  anhno.  Is 
it  possible  that  articles  can  be  agreeable  to  the  word 
of  God,  and  yet  at  the  same  time  fundamentally 
false  and  pernicious  :  Is  it  possible  one  can  subscribe 
them  as  agreeable  to  the  v/ord  d'lQ.Q^i  ex  anhno  with- 
out inward  assent?  Thirdly ,  By  the  statute  13th 
Eliz.  12,  it  is  ordained  that  every  person,  to  be 
admitted  to  a  benefice  with  cure,  shall,  within  two 
months  after  his  induction,  publicly  read  the  said  ar- 
ticles in  the  church  wliereof  he  hath  the  cure,  in 
common  prayer  time,  with  declaration  of  his  assent 
thereunto  j  and  if  afterward  he  shall  maintain  any 
doctrine  repugnant  to  the  said  Articles,  and  shall 
persist  therein,  it  shall  be  lawful  for  the  Bishop  to 
deprive  him.     So  much  for  the  first  defence. 

The  second  is,  *  that  these  Articles  being  con- 

*  ceived  in  such  general  words,  that  they  may  admit 

*  of  different  literal  and  grammatical  senses,  even 

*  when  the  senses  given  are  plainly  contrary  to  one 

*  another ;  the  Arminians  may  subscribe  them  with  a 
'  good  conscience,  and  without  anycquivocation.'  * 
But  this  defence  is  yet  worse  than  the  former,  if 
worse  could  be.     For,  Jirst,  Can  there  be  a  greater 

*  Sec  Burnet's  Expos,  p.  8. 


PHESBYTEJIIAN    FAITH.  257 

scandal  upon  a  churcli  than  to  represent  her  articles 
of  religion  as  a  nose-of-vvax,  that  may  be  twisted 
either  to  this  or  the  quite  contrary  side  ?  Is  it  pos- 
sible to  elicit  sound  and  orthodox  doctrir.e,  and 
doctrine  fundamentally  false  and  pernicious,  out  of 
the  same  words  ?  *  Doth  the  same  fountain  send 
*  forth  sweet  waters  and  bitter  ?'  2dljj,  Dr  Sache- 
verell  most  justly  reckons  them  *  false  brethren  who 
expound  any  of  these  articles  of  faith  in  such  a 
loose  and  vagrant  way  as  may  suit  them  as  well  to 
a  Mahometan's  as  a  Christian's  creed.  S^/y,  The 
Calvinistic  sense  (as  it  is  commonly  called),  was  the 
only  sense  designed  in  these  articles :  For,  the 
framers  of  them  were  Calvinists  themselves ;  t  and 
therefore  it  is  never  to  be  thought  they  would  frame 
them  so  as  to  be  capable  of  any  other  meaning. 
For,  pray  what  could  be  the  use  or  effect  of  an  ac- 
knowledgment of,  or  subscription  to  them,  on  that 
supposition  ?  4th/i/,  The  Church  of  England  has 
loudly  proclaimed  to  the  worhl,  that  she  owns  these 
articles  only  in  the  Calvinistic  sense  :  And  till  Laud, 
the  British  Herostratus,  began  to  set  the  nations  on 
fire,  the  Church  of  England  still  prosecuted  those 
that  impugned  that  sense  of  them  ;  and  the  noble 
Lord  Falkland,  in  his  forecited  speech,  tells  us,  that 
the  contrary  doctrines  had  not  been  oftener  preach- 
ed than  recanted.  Plainly,  the  English  Universi- 
ties, the  supreme  ecclesiastical  governors  of  the 
Church,  the  court,  and  the  delegates  to  foreign 
synods,  have  all  declared  for  these  Calvinistic  doc- 
trines, and  asserted  them  to  be  the  doctrines  of  the 
Church  of  England. 

First,  1  say  the  English  Universities  have  done 
*so.  In  the  year  I5v5,  one  Mr  Barret  of  Caius  Col- 
lege in  Cambridge,  ))reaclHng  in  the  University 
Church  called  St  Mary's,  adventured  on  an  invec- 
tive against  the  doctrines  of  predestination  and 
perseverance.  This  sermon,  though  preached  in 
Latin,  and  which,  therefore,  could  not  much  affect 

*  Sermon  on  False  Bretliren,  p.   (raihi)   11,   12. 
f  Burnet,    ubi  supra,  p.  l.)l,  152. 
11 


258  DEFEXCE  OF  THE 

the  vulgar,  yet  instantly  gave  the  alarm  to  the  Uni- 
versity. The  heads  of  the  several  houses,  viz.  Dr 
Some,  Dr  Duport,  Dr  Goad,  Dr  Tindall,  Dr  Whit- 
takers,  Dr  Barwell,  Dr  Jegom,  Dr  Preston,  Mr 
Chadderton,  and  Mr  Clayton,  presently  met  upon  it, 
and  upon  mature  deliberation  and  advice,  by  their 
unanimous  vote  adjudged  Mr  Barret  to  recant  his 
assertions  as  false,  erroneous  and  manifestly  repug- 
nant to  the  religion  received  and  established  in  the 
Church  of  England  by  public  and  lawful  authority. 
This  was  a  very  bitter  pill  to  Mr  Barret ;  yet  either 
his  stomach  or  his  conscience  prevailed  with  him  to 
give  it  throat.  Accordingly,  upon  the  lOth  of 
May  in  the  said  year,  he  appeared  in  the  University 
Church  where  he  had  offended,  and  made  a  fair  re- 
cantation. The  sermon  is  still  extant  in  print,  and 
I  shall  beg  leave  to  give  one  note  of  it.     *  These 

*  words,'  saith  he,  escaped  me,  viz.     '  As  for  those 

*  that  are  not  saved,  I  do  most  strongly  believe, 

*  and  do  freely  protest  that  I  am  so  persuaded  against 

*  Calvin,  Peter  Martyr,  and  the  rest,  that  sin  is  the 

*  true,  proper,  and  first  cause  of  reprobation.    But 

*  now,  being  better  instructed,  I  say,  that  the  re- 

*  probation  of  the  wicked  is  from   everlasting,  and 

*  that  that  saying  of  Augustine  to  Simplician  is  most 

*  true,  viz.  If  sin  were  the  cause  of  reprobation, 
'  then  no  man  should  be  elected,  because  God  doth 

*  foreknow  all  men  to  be  defiled  with  it.  And  (that 
'  I  may  speak  freely)  I  am  of  the  same  mind  ;  and 

*  do  believe  concerning  the  doctrine  of  election  and 
'  reprobation,  as  the  Church  of  England  believeth 

*  and  teacheth  in  the  book  of  the   articles  of  faith, 

*  in  the  article  of  predestination.     And  I  acknow- 

*  ledge,  that  by  tlie  virtue  of  the  prayer  of  Ciirist, 

*  every  true  believer  is  so  stayed  up,  that  his  faith 

*  cannot  fail.' — So  that  he  which  once  hath  this 
faith  shall  ever  hath  it.  Thus  Mr  Barret.  The 
whole  sermon  is  worthy  Mr  Rhind's  perusal  j  for  I 
have  the  charity  to  wish  that  he  may  one  day  have 
use  for  it. 

SecoiicUi/,  The  supreme  ecclesiastical  governors  of 


MIESCYTERIAN    FAITH.  259 

the  church  have  declared  yet  more  positively  for 
these  doctrines.  Upon  the  20th  of  November  in 
the  said  year  1595,  they  met  at  Lambeth,  and  framed 
the  famous  nine  Lambeth  articles,  which  are  as  fol- 
lows : — 


T/ze  Nine  Assertions  or  Articles  o/'  Lambeth, 
composed  and  agreed  upon  at  Lambeth  House  on 
the  '20th  day  of  November,  in  the  year  of  our  Lord 
1595,  by  John  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  Richard 
Bishop  of  London,  Richard  elect  Bishop  of  Bangor; 
and  sundry  other  reverend  and  learned  Divines 
there  present, 

1.  God  from  eternity  hath  predestinated  certain 
men  unto  life  ;  certain  men  he  hath  reprobated 
unto  death. 

2.  The  moving  or  efficient  cause  of  predestination 
unto  life,  is  not  tlie  foresight  of  faith,  or  of  per- 
severance, or  of  good  works,  or  of  any  thing  that 
is  in  the  persons  predestinated  ;  but  only  in  the 
will  of  the  well  pleased  God. 

3.  There  is  a  definite  and  certain  number  of  the 
predestinate  which  can  neither  be  augmented  nor 
diminished. 

4.  Those  who  are  not  predestinated  to  salvation 
shall  be  necessarily  damned  for  their  sins. 

5.  A  true,  living  and  justifying  faith,  and  the  spirit 
of  God  justifying,  is  not  extinguished,  it  falleth 
not  away,  it  vanishcth  not  away  in  the  elect  either 
finally  or  totally. 

6.  A  man  truly  fiaithful,  that  is,  such  a  one  who  is 
endued  with  a  justifying  faith,  is  certain,  with  the 
full  assurance  of  faith,  of  the  remission  of  his  sins, 
and  of  his  everlasting  salvation  by  Christ. 

7.  Saving  grace  is  not  given,  is  not  communicated, 
is  not  granted  to  all  men,  by  which  they  may  be 
saved  if  they  will. 

8.  No  man  can  come  unto  Christ,  unless  it  shall  be 
given  unio  him,  and  unless  the  father  shall  draw 

r2 


260 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


liim:     And  all  nuMi  are  not  drawn  by  the  lather, 

that  they  may  come  to  the  son. 
9.  It  is  not  in  the  ^vilI  or  power  of  every  one  to  be 

saved. 

Thus  far  the  Lambeth  Articles.  And  this  was  as 
plain  ixoing  to  work  as  one  could  wish. 

Thirdlij,  The  court  was  not  behind  with  the 
church.  When  afterwards  Armlnianisni  ])revailed 
in  the  United  Provinces,  and  had  caused  terrible 
convulsions,  Kiuir  James  VI.  was  aware  of  the  tianger 
the  British  domiuions  were  in.  He  was  a  Prince  very 
well  seen  in  the  Roman  classics,  and  no  doubt  had 
read  the 

Jam  proximns  ardct 
Ucalegon. — 

And  therefore  thought  it  reasonable  to  bestir  him- 
self to  prevent  the  spreading  of  the  flame.  For 
this  purpose  he  sent  over  his  ambassador  Sir  Dudley 
Carlton  to  persuade  the  States  to  provide  some  re- 
medy, and  to  smother  the  sparks  which  might  set 
him  on  fire.  Sir  Dudley,  upon  the  (ith  of  October 
lb*17,  attended  their  High  JMightinesscs  assembled 
at  the  Hague,  and  delivered  himself  in  a  most,  ela- 
borate speech,  wherein  he  declares  the  doctrine  in)- 
pugned  by  Arminius  to  be  the  true  'and  ancient 
doctrine,  and  to  have  been  received  and  authorised 
by  the  common  consent  of  all  the  reformed  churches ; 
and  that  the  schism  which  prevailed  within  the 
church,  and  the  faction  in  the  state,  were  both  owing 
to  Arminius.  I  hope  none  will  deny  that  Sir  Dudley 
had  his  great  master's  alloAvance  for  saying  all  this.* 
And  upon  the  whole,  he  solicits  them  to  call  a  synod 
for  determining  the  controverted  points. 

Four/Itlj/j  The  English  delegates  to  foreign  sy- 
nods have  declared  the  same  way.  Upon  the  fore- 
said solicitation,  the  synod  of  Dort  met,  and  was 
assisted  by  divines  from  the  Church  of  England  :  and 
in  the  said  synod  such  conclusions  were  made  upon 
the  five  articles,  as,  I  need  not  tell  any  body,  are  the 

•  See  the  speech  itself,  set  forth  by  authority.  London,  [irint- 
cj  by  William  Jones,  16"IS. 


PIlESBYTEltlAN   FAITH.  261 

very  same  with  the  doctrines  contained  in  the  West- 
mnister  Confession,  maintained  hy  the  Scots  Pres- 
byterians, and  now  impugned  by  Mr  llhind  and  tlje 
men  of  his  kidney.*  .Somewhile  after  the  return  of 
these  delegates  from  the  synod,  they  were  attacked 
by  a  certain  scribbler  on  their  conduct,  and  the  doc- 
trinal conclusions  they  had  gone  into.  They  thouglit 
it  necessary  to  defend  themselves,  and  accordingly 
wrote  A  joint  A  tlestation,fwhcreoi  take  the  last  words. 

*  Whatsoever  there  was  assented  unto  and  subscrib- 

*  ed  by  us  concerning  the  Five  Articles,  either  in  the 

*  joint  synodical  judgment,  or  in  our  particular  col- 

*  legiate  sufferage  (styled  in  the  acts  of  the  synod, 

*  Theologorum  Magnce  Britannice  Sententia,  and  at 
'  large  extant  there),  is  not  only  warrantable  by  the 

*  Holy  Scriptures,  but  also  conformable  to  the  receiv- 

*  ed  doctrine  of  our  said  venerable  mother  ; — which 

*  we  are  ready  to  maintain,  and  justify  against  all 
'  gainsayers,  whensoever  we  shall  be  thereunto  call- 
^  ed  by  lawful  authority.     Ita  alteslamur, 

'  Georgius  C'tcestriensis  Episcopus. 

*  Johannes  Sarisburiemis  Episcopus. 

*  Gualterus  Balcanquall  Dccan.  Rqff'. 

*  Samuel  Ward  Pub.  Profess.  Theol.  in  Acad. 

Cant,  et  Coll.  Sid,  Prcefect. 

*  Thomas  Goad  Sacra;  Theol.  Doctor,^ 

I  hope  all  this  is  more  than  sufficient  to  prove 
that  the  doctrines  impugned  by  Mr  lihind,  as  fun- 
damentally  false  and  pernicious,  are  the  doctrines  of 
the  Church  of  England,  and  that  they  are  not  only 
articles  of  peace,  but  articles  of  faith  too.  Think 
then  what  a  wise  part  he  has  acted,  in  separatin" 
from  the  Presbyterians,  upon  the  account  of  these 
articles,  and  joining  the  Church  of  England,  which 
has  expressly  declared  such,  as  affirm  tliem  to  be  in 
any  part  erroneous,  to  be  excommunicated  ipsojac- 
to.X     So  much  for  the  Church  of  England. 

*  Vide  Acta  Synod.  Dordrac. 
-j-  London,  printed  by  M.  llcshcr. 
X  Canon  v.  l60S. 


262  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

IV.  These  doctrines  are  the  doctrines  of  the  Ca- 
tholic Church  of  Christ,  which  has  also  declared, 
that  such  as  oppose  them  are  worthy  of  an  anathe- 
ma. AVhat  method  shall  I  take  to  prove  this  ?  Shall 
1  go  through  the  several  authors  in  the  several  ages? 
That  were  too  tedious.  But,  which  will  be  equally 
sufficient,  I  shall  prove  it  from  the  account  of  one 
who  was  Episcopalian  himself,  a  Scotsman  too,  and 
who  was  inferior  to  none  in  theological  abilities,  and 
is  held  in  the  greatest  veneration  by  all  of  the  Epis- 
copal communion.  The  person  I  mean,  is  Dr  John 
Forbes,  a  Corse  Divinity  Professor  at  Aberdeen. 
I  shall  prove  it  from  his  Instructio7WS  Historico  Tlieo- 
logiccu,  a  work,  which,  to  give  Bishop  Burnet's  cha- 
racter of  it,  *  *  If  he  had  been  suffered  to  enjoy  the 
'  privacies  of  his  retirement  and  study,  to  give  us  the 

*  second  volume,  had  been  the  greatest  treasure  of 

*  theological  learning  that  perhaps  the  world  has  yet 

*  seen.'  The  whole  eighth  book  of  the  foresaid  work 
is  written  on  purpose  to  shew,  that  these  doctrines, 
which  Mr  Ilhind  has  impugned,  were  the  doctrines 
of  the  Catholic  Church  of  Christ,  and  to  answer  the 
objections  of  the  Pelagians  and  Semi-Pelagians 
against  them  ;  which  objections  are  the  very  same 
with  those  Mr  Rhind  has  advanced.  He  has  com- 
prehended the  sum  of  the  controversy  in  the  12th 
chapter  of  his  said  8th  book,  in  seven  questions,  in 
which  he  runs  the  difference  betwixt  the  faith  of 
the  Catholic  Church  and  the  opinions  of  the  fore- 
said heretics.  These  questions  will  set  the  whole 
matter  in  a  true  light,  and  they  are  as  follows : 

1.  Quest.  Whether  are  the  foreseen  good  things  of 
those  who  are  elected,  their  will  and  faith  and  good 
works,  and  perseverance  in  them,  or  any  of  these 
things,  the  cause  for  which  they  are  elected,  or  a 
condition  prerequisite  in  those  that  were  to  be  elect- 
ed ?  Or  whether  all  those  things  in  the  elect  are  the 
effects  of  election  and  predestination  ?  The  Semi- 
Pelagians  affirmed  the  tirst  and  denied  the   latter. 

*  Preface  to  his  Life  of  Dr  Beddell, 


PRESBYTERIAN   FAITH.  S6S 

But  the  Catholics  denied  the  first  and  affirmed  the 
latter. 

2d  Quest.  Whether  is  not  the  number  of  the  elect, 
and  of  men  predestinated  by  God  to  grace  and  glory 
from  eternity,  definite  and  determined :  so  that  of 
them  none  sliall  perish,  and  besides  them  none  shall 
be  saved  ?  The  Semi-Pelagians  denied  it.  The  Ca- 
tholics  affirmed  it. 

2d  Quest.  Whether  hath  God,  from  eternity,  pre- 
destinated some  to  evil  ?  The  Semi- Pelagians  ut- 
terly deny  that  any  man  was  predestinated  either  to 
sin  or  to  destruction.  The  Catholics  distinguished, 
and  denied  that  any  man  was  predestinated  to  sin, 
but  affirmed  that  they  were  predestinated  to  punish- 
ment. 

4:th  Quest.  Whether,  of  the  reprobate,  did  God  find 
the  demerits  more  and  worse  than  of  those  whom  he 
elected,  and  therefore  reprobated  the  former  and 
predestinated  them  to  destruction,  and  elected  the 
latter  and  predestinated  them  to  life  eternal :  Or 
whether  he  did  not  find  them  both  equal  in  their 
demerits,  and  worthy  of  eternal  death?  The  Semi- 
Pelagians  affirmed  the  first.  The  Catholics  affirmed 
the  latter. 

5th  Quest.  Whether,  of  this  difference  or  discri- 
mination, whereby  some  are  predestinated  to  life 
eternal,  there  be  any  other  cause  assigned  in  the 
Scripture,  besides  the  most  free  will  of  God,  *  who 
'  hath  mercy  upon  whom  he  will  have  mercy,  and 
'  hardeneth  whom  he  will ;'  and  if  it  be  lawful 
for  us  to  search  for  any  other  cause  ?  The  Semi- 
Pelagians  affirmed  it.     The  Catholics  denied  it. 

6th  Quest.  Whether  does  this  doctrine  of  the  Ca- 
tholics attribute  either  injustice  or  cruelty  to  God, 
or  render  exhortations,  prayers,  and  the  study  of 
piety,  useless  to  men  .?  The  Semi- Pelagians  affirm- 
ed it.     The  Catholics  denied  it. 

7th  Quest.  Whether,  supposing  this  doctrine  of 
the  Catholics  true,  is  it  expedient  to  preach  it  open- 
ly and  in  earnest  to  the  people  ?  The  Semi-Pela- 
gians denied  it.     But  the  Catholics  affirmed  that  it 


264  DEFENCE  OF  TUE 

was  to  be  preached  openly  and  in  earnest,  yet  pru- 
dently and  seasonably,  as  all  divine  mysteries  ought 
to  be,  and  with  a  right  dividing  of  the  word  of 
truth. 

Thus  far  that  great  man.  And,  in  confirming 
these  Catholic  doctrines,  he  employs  the  rest  of 
the  said  book :  And  does  it  mainly  from  the  Testi- 
monies of  the  Fathers,  in  which  no  man  was  better 
seen.  And  to  crown  all,  in  the  4th  Chapter  of  the 
said  Eighth  Book,  he  declares,  that  the  contrary 
doctrines  were,  by  Maxentius,  Petrus  Diaconus,  and 
the  whole  Eastern  Churches  with  him  ;  by  Fulgen- 
tius  and  the  African  Bishops  ;  and  by  the  European 
Western  Churches,  judged  /lerctical,  destructively 
alien  from  the  Catholic  sense,  and  worthy  of  an  ana- 
tlienia  in  case  of  obstinacy  in  them. 

And  now  what  melancholy  reflections  must  Mr 
Rhind  make,  when  he  considers,  that,  as  by  the  for- 
mer part  of  his  Book,  he  made  himself  a  schisma- 
tic J  so,  by  this  part  of  it,  he  has  made  himself  a 
most  gross  heretic  ?  When  he  considers,  that  Mr 
Dodwell  himself  has  given  him  the  lie,  and  that  the 
whole  Foreign  Reformed  Churches,  our  Scotch  Epis- 
copalians, the  Church  of  England,  and  the  Catholic 
Church  of  Christ,  have  all  of  them  declared  for 
these  doctrines,  which  he  has  rejected  as  fundamen- 
tally false  and  pernicious ;  and  when  he  finds  him- 
selfi  by  the  judgment  of  the  Catholic  Church  through 
the  world,  enrolled  amongst  the  worst  of  heretics, 
pronounced  worthy  of  an  a7iathema^  and  standing 
tie  facto  excommunicated  by  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land ! 

That  I  may  conclude : — I  have  heard,  indeed, 
(though  I  think  it  but  a  fable),  of  a  Protestant  Church, 
some  where  on  this  side  Nova  Zembia,  though  I 
cannot  now  name  the  precipe  bearing  of  the  place, 
where  nothing  is  required  in  law  to  qualify  a  clergy- 
man, but  that  he  do  not  openly  deny  or  impugn  the 
doctrine  of  the  Trinity.  Though  he  does  not  be- 
lieve tiiat,  and  though  he  publicly  impugn  all  tlie 
other  articles  of  Christianity,  it  is  nothing..    I  grant 


PRESBYTEllIAN  WORSHIP.  265 

Mr  llhind  might  serve  for  a  priest  under  such  a 
constitution.  But  how  he  can  be  capable  to  serve 
as  such  in  Britain,  is  more  than  I  understand. — 
But  let  those  who  put  him  into  orders  look  to  that. 
I  proceed. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

wherein  mr  khind*s  third  reason  for  separat- 
ing from  the  presbyterians,  viz.  that  their 
Worship  is  chargeable  with  fundamental  cor- 
ruptions AND  defects  as  TO  THE  MATTER,  AND 
THAT  IT  IS  VERY  IMPERFECT  AS  TO  THE  MANNER,  IS 
EXAMINED.       FROM  P.    148  TO  P.    185, 

This,  Mr  Rhind  asserts,  p.  149.  And  if  it  ap- 
pear he  has  proved  it,  I  shall  own  his  separation  was 
just.  Imperfections  we  acknowledge,  as  I  think 
all  mankind  ought  to  do,  even  in  our  best  per- 
formances. But  fundamental  corruptions  and  de- 
fects we  refuse,  and  want  to  find  them  proved  against 
us.  In  the  mean  time,  to  separate  from  the  Scots 
worship,  because  of  its  corruption ;  and  to  go  over 
to  the  English  worship  as  purer,  looks  so  very  like 
a  jest,  that  for  my  heart  I  cannot  but  smile  at  it, 
as  I  am  sure  five  hundred  others  have  done  before 
me,  and  twice  as  many,  it  is  likely,  will  do  after 
me. 

Mr  Rhind  essays  the  proof  of  his  charge  in  two 
particulars,  viz.  Prayers  and  Sacraments.  I  shall 
distinctly  consider  what  he  has  advanced  on  each. 


^66  DEFENCE  OF  THE 


Sect.  I. 

Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  ILxceptions  agaimt  the  Presbyterians^ 
Prayers  are  Exavmied.  From  p,  149  to  p.  177. 

Against  these,  he  excepts  two  things  : — T.  That 
the  matter  of  them  is  corrupt  and  defective.  II.  That 
the  manner  of  them  is  so  far  from  being  the  best, 
tliat  it  is  very  imperfect.  His  proof  of  these  ex- 
ceptions I  shall  consider  in  so  many  Articles. 


ARTICLE    I. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Proofs,  That  the  Matter  of 
the  Presbyterians'  Prayers  is  Corrupt  and  Defec- 
tivey  are  Considered.     From  p.  149  to  p.  156. 

Foil  making  good  this  charge,  first,  He  argues, 
that  it  must  be  so.  Secondly,  He  makes  an  induc- 
ton  of  the  particulars  wherein  it  is  so. 

First,  He  argues  that  it  must  be  so.  *  If,'  saitli 
he,  p.  149,  *  their  doctrine  be  corrupt,  so  must 
*  their  worship  be  too ;  because  the  doctrines 
'  which  are  the  common  subjects  of  their  sermons, 
'  do  likewise  constitute  the  substance  of  their 
'  prayers.'  The  answer  is  easy.  I  have  proved,  in 
the  preceding  chapter,  that  these  doctrines,  which 
he  charges  as  corrupt,  are  the  doctrines  of  the  Ca- 
tholic Church  of  Christ,  believed  by  every  Chris- 
tian, long  before  the  upstart  sect  of  the  Highflyers 
was  heard  of  in  the  workl.  Therefore  the  prayers 
which  are  formed  agreeably  to  these  doctrines  can- 
not be  corrupt.  Suppose  now  I  had  been  preach- 
ing the  doctrine  of  absolute  election  :  After  sermon 
I  break  out  into  a  prayer  to  this  purpose  : 

*  O  God  we  thank  thee  that  thou  hast  predestinat- 
ed us  unto  the  adoption  of  children  by  Jesus  Christ 
to  thyself,  according  to  the  good  pleasure  of  thy 


PRESBYTERIAN  WORSHIP.  267 

will,  to  the  praise  and  glory  of  thy  grace,  whereby 
thou  hast  made  us  accepted  in  the  beloved  ;  and 
hast  from  the  beginning  chosen  us  to  salvation 
through  sanctification  of  the  Spirit  and  belief  of  the 
truth.  Thou  mightest  have  designed  us  for  vessels 
of  wrath,  as  thou  didst  the  fallen  angels,  and  then 
we  had  been  eternally  undone  without  all  [possible 
remedy.  There  was  nothing  in  us  to  move  thee 
when  we  lay  all  together  in  the  general  heap  of 
mankind.  It  was  thy  own  free  grace  and  bounty 
that  made  thee  to  take  delight  in  us,  to  chuse  us 
from  the  rest,  and  to  sever  us  from  those  many 
thousands  in  the  world  who  shall  perish  everlastingly. 
Give  us  grace,  we  beseech  thee,  that  we  may  give 
all  diligence  to  make  our  calling  and  election  sure.' 

This  prayer  is  exactly  formed  upon  the  scheme  of 
the  irrespective  decrees.  But  is  there  any  thing  in 
it  which  any  Christian  may  not  join  with  ?  Mr 
Rhind  must  needs  say  there  is.  In  the  mean  time 
I  must  tell  him,  I  was  taught  it  by  Wilkins,  bishop 
of  Chester,  *  who  should  have  known  what  was  sound, 
what  corrupt  doctrine,  at  least  as  well  as  Mr  llhind. 

Secondij/y  He  makes  an  induction  of  the  particu- 
lars wherein  the  Presbyterians*  prayers  are  corrupt 
or  defective.  Which  take  as  follows  in  ten  parti- 
culars, 

1.  *  They  pray,'  saith  he,   p.  150,  'for  the   con- 

*  tinuance  of  Presbyterian  government,  and  bless 

*  God  for  the  extirpation   of,  and   beseech  him  to 

*  preserve  this  nation  from.  Prelacy.*  But  I  have 
already  proved  that  Presbytery  is  of  divine  institu- 
tion, and  that  Prelacy  is  without  all  Scripture  war- 
rant. Therefore  such  prayers  are  so  far  from  being 
a  corruption,  that  they  are  a  duty,  even  as  much  a 
duty  as  it  is  to  pray,  that  every  plant  v.'hich  our 
Heavenly  Father  hath  not  planted  maybe  rooted  up. 

2.  '  They  thank  God,'  saith  he  f  ibid.  J  *  for  con- 
tinuing the  Presbyterian  doctrine.  But  this  I  have 
proved  to  be  the  doctrine  of  the  gospel,  and  be- 

*  Gift  of  Prayer,  CJiap.  xxviii.     Eighth  edition. 


268  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

lieved  by  all  tlic  Christian  Churcli.  It  were,  there- 
fore, the  worst  ingratitude  not  to  thank  God  for 
the  continuance  of  it. 

a.  '  They  never  omit,*  saith  lie,  ("ibid, J  '  in  their 

*  public  prayers,  to  ask   a  blessing  upon  the  word 

*  that  is  to  be,  or  has  been  preached/  It  is  true  we 
do  so,  and  let  him  make  his  worst  of  it.  And  when 
he  gets  a  new  revelation  to  prove  the  word  which 
we  preach  to  be  impiouii  and  false,  we  beg  he  may 
let  us  hear  of  it. 

4,  '  They  bless  God,'  saith  he,  (ibid,)  *  for,  and 

*  entreat  him  to  continue  the  purity  of  their  wor- 
'  ship.'  It  is  true  we  do  so,  and  I  hope  God  shall 
hear  us.  But  it  was  too  soon  for  him  to  assert  it  to 
be  corrupt,  before  he  had  proved  it  to  be  so.  This 
is  the  thing  they  call  begging  the  question,  or,  which 
is  worse,  proving  a  tiling  by  itself.  The  Presby- 
terian worship  is  corrupt,  because  it  is  corrupt  1  A 
very  handsome  way  of  discoursing,  and,  no  doubt, 
very  convincing ! 

5.  '  They  pray,*  saith  he,  p.  151,  '  tliat  God 
^  may  stop  the  progress  of  the  English  liturgy.*  Ans. 
Amen,  even  so  be  it.  But  why  could  not  Mr  Rhind 
join  in  such  a  prayer  ?  Why,  he  could  not  do  it, 
without  offending  God,  it  being  the  most  excellent 
of  all  others.  1  shall  not  say  what  it  may  be  in  its 
nature,  but  sure  I  am,  it  has  not  proved  such  in 
its  consequences  :  For,  since  ever  there  were  litur- 
gies in  the  world,  never  t\ny  of  them,  no,  not  all  of 
them  together,  have  occasioned  so  much  strife  a,nd  di- 
vision, so  much  war  p-nd  bloodshed,  as  that  has  done. 
But  he  gives  another  reason  why  he  could  not  join  in 
such  a  prayer,  which  is,  indeed,  a  very  notable  one. 

*  I  could  not  do  it,'  saith  he,  *  without  treason  against 

*  the  Queen,  it  being  that  which  her  Majesty  practises, 

*  and  has  authorised  (tolerated,  he  should  have  said,) 
'  the  exercise  of,  to  those  of  the  Episcopal  persua- 

*  sion  in  Scotland.*  Now,  1  ask,  l^t.  When  was  the 
law  made  which  makes  it  treason  to  pray  against 
the  progress  of  the  English  liturgy.  I  do  not  think 
there  is  any  thing  treason,  but  what  the  law  has  de- 


PRESBYTEHIAN  WORSHIP.  2G9 

clared  to  be  such.  Pray,  good  Mr  Rhind,  cite  tlie 
law  in  your  next,  that  we  may  be  aware  of  our  dan- 
ger. 2<//z/,  May  not  one,  with  a  very  good  con- 
science, both  pray  against,  and  practise  contrary  to 
what  the  Prince  practises.  I  suppose  the  Apostle 
Paul  did  both  in  his  time,  and  I  suppose  the  Church 
of  England  did  so  in  the  time  of  the  late  King  James. 
Mr  Hobbes,  indeed,  was  a  very  learned  man,  who 
made  the  King's  conscience  the  standard  for  the 
consciences  of  all  his  subjects,  just  as  the  great  clock 
rules  all  the  lesser  clocks  in  town  ;  yet  tliat  gentle- 
man's principles  have  not  been  always  well  spoken 
of:  But  it  seems  Mr  Rhind  intends  to  revive 
them.  Sdly,  Has  not  her  Majesty  and  the  Parlia- 
ment authorised  the  Presbyterian  government  and 
worship  ?  And  yet  do  not  the  Episcopal  clergy  in 
their  conventicles,  every  day,  both  pray  and  preach 
against  the  same,  and  that  without  any  fear  of  trea- 
son ?  4//////,  If  tlie  Scots  Episcopal  ministers  are  so 
chary  of  treason  against  the  Queen,  why  do  not 
they  so  much  as  pray  for  her  ?  Why  do  they  skip 
over  that  part  of  the  liturgy  which  is  designed  for 
her  ?  It  is  notoriously  known  that  the  generality  of 
them  do  this. 
6. '  They  pray,*  salth  he,  (ibid.)  *  for  a  blessing  upon 

*  their  kirk  judicatories  in  the  exercise  of  their  dis- 

*  cipline,  which,  in  many  instances,  I  know  to  be  scan- 

*  dalously  partial,  and  highly  unjust.*  Well,  let  us 
hear  one  of  these  instances  ?  No,  he  may  perhaps 
give  you  that  in  the  next  edition,  but  his  business 
in  this  was  to  assert.  Mr  Rhind  pretends  to  have 
gone  over  to  the  church  of  England. — What  is  the 
character  of  her  ecclesiastical  courts  ?  It  would  per- 
haps be  thought  ilUnature  in  me  to  give  one,  but  let 
us  hear  the  noble  historian.  Clarendon,  who  has  saved 
my  pains  to  purpose.  *  I  never  yet,*  saith  he,*  *  spoke 

*  with  one  clergyman,  who  hath  made  the  experience 
«  of  both  litigations,  that  hath  not  ingenuously  con- 
<  fessed,  he  had  rather,  in  respect  of  his  trouble, 

*  charge,  and  satisfaction  to  his  understanding,  have 

*  three  suits  depending  in  Westminster- Hall,  than 

•  Vol.  I.  B.  iv.  p.  242. 


270  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  one  in  the  Arches,  or  any  ecclesiastical  court.'  Now, 
though  Mr  Rhind  could  not  pray  for  a  blessing  on 
the  kirk  judicatories,  yet  may  he  not,  after  this,  with 
great  freedom  pray  for  one  upon  the  church  judi- 
catories ?  I  am  sure  they  have  much  need  of  pray- 
ers. 

7.  'They  do  not,'  says  he,  p.  151, 152, '  pray  for  the 

*  forgiveness  of  their  enemies  j'  and  he  is  so  high  upon 
this,  that  he  asserts,  '  during  the  22  years  1  was  a- 
«  mong  them,  1  do  not  remember  that  ever  I  heard 

*  one  of  them,   and  I  have  heard  some  hundreds,' 

*  press  it  as  a  duty,  or  once  offer  it  a  petition  to 

*  Almighty  God.' — I  wish  Mr  Rhind  had  given  us 
some  better  testimony  than  his  own ;  but,  seeing  he 
has  contented  himself  with  it,  I  think  it  may  be 
enough  to  lay  mine  in  the  balance  against  it ; — but 
then  I  shall  qualify  it,  that  it  may  be  enquired  into. 
I  have  very  seldom  occasion  to  hear  others  preach, 
I  am  now  writing  this  upon  the  11th  day  of  Novem- 
ber, 1713.     The  last  sermon  I  heard  preached  by 
another,  was  upon  Thursday,   the   22d  of  October 
last.     It  was  preached  by  Mr  Alexander  Muir,  Mi- 
nister of  Rutherglen,  in  the  High  Church  of  Glas- 
gow, in  that  part  of  it  commonly  called  the  Inner- 
Kirk,  before  a  numerous  audience,   upon   Rev.  iii. 
15,  16.     I  declare  I  never  conferred  with  him  upon 
the  subject  of  forgiveness  of  enemies,  either  before 
or  since ;  and  that  he  knows  nothing  of  my  intend- 
ing to  publish  this  passage.     He  is  known  to  be  a 
zealous  Presbyterian,    and  always   was    so.        And 
now,  after  all  these  circumstances,  I  declare,  and  I 
appeal  to  the  audience  for  the  verity  of  it,  that  I 
heard  him,  after  sermon,  pray,  in  terms,  that  God 
would  forgive  our  enemies.     This,  I  hope,  is  some 
better  than  Mr  Rhind's  negative,  and  1  pitched  on 
this  instance,  only  because  it  was  at  the  last  sermon 
1  heard  ;  for  though,  as  I  said,  I  have  rarely  occa- 
sion to  hear  sermon  from  others,  yet,   whenever  I 
chance  to  be  assistant  at  the  communion  any  wiiere, 
I  always  hear  all  persons  having  malice  solemnly  de- 
barred the  Lord's  table,  and  solemn  prayer  put  up 


PRESBYTERIAN  WORSHir  S7l 

to  God  for  the  forgiveness  of  enemies.  But  enough 
of  this,  we  may  possibly  hear  more  of  it  afterwards. 
8.  '  They  pray,'  saith  he,  p.  152,'  for  the  destruc- 
'  tion  of  their  enemies.' — How,  of  their  personal  ene- 
mies ?  If  so,  it  is  a  very  great  crime,  and  we  want 
to  have  the  criminals  named,  and  the  vouchers  ad- 
duced. Has  he  done  this  ?  No, '  But,'  saith  he, '  I  am 
'  ready  to  do  it.'  Was  lie  in  so  great  haste,  that  he 
could  not  stay  to  give  so  much  as  one  instance  ? 
Gentlemen  of  the  Episcopal  persuasion,  wlio  have 
adopted  and  cherished  this  book  of  Mr  Rhind's,  I 
appeal  to  you,  upon  your  honour,  sense,  and  con- 
science, whether  this  was  a  rational  way  of  writing, 
and  whether  it  is  not  scandalous,  in  the  last  degree, 
to  approve  of  it.   *  It  is  true,'  saith  Mr  Rhind,  *  they 

*  pretend  to  do  this,  because  those  against  whom  they 

*  pray,  are  enemies  to  truth,  and  persecutors  of  its 

*  professors  :'  Very  well;  and  if  that  pretence  be  true, 
are  they  not  just  in  doing  so  ?  No,  saith  he,  '  no  pre- 

*  tence  can  excuse  the  impiety  of  it.'  Strange  !  Are 
there  not  innumerable  precedents  for  it  in  Scripture  ? 
When  God  has  promised  to  consume  the  man  of  sin 
with  the  spirit  of  his  mouth,  and  to  destroy  him  with 
the  brightness  of  his  coming.  2.  Thes.  ii.  8.  Is  it  not 
lawful,  nay,  is  it  not  a  duty,  to  turn  this  promise  into 
prayer  ?  To  come  yet  a  little  nearer,  did  Mr  Rhind 
never  hear  of  an  address  made  by  the  Scots  prelates 
to  the  late  King  James,  wherein  they  prayed  that 
God  would  give  him  the  hearts  of  his  subjects,  and 
the  necks  of  his  enemies.*  Was  not  this  to  pray 
for  the  destruction  of  enemies  in  good  earnest,  and 
can  any  pretence  excuse  the  impiety  of  it  ? 

But  Mr  Rhind  had  a  secret  powerful  reason  for 
insisting  on  this  topic,  as  will  appear  by  his  enlarge- 
ment on  it.  He  alleges  that  this  pretence  and  prac- 
tice of  the  Presbyterians  argues  the  most  scandalous 
partiality,  and  vilest  hypocrisy.  Pray  how?  *  Why,* 
saith  he,  '  at  the  same  time  that  they  pray  for  the 
'  destruction  of  some,  upon  pretence,  that  they  per- 
i  secutethe  servants  of  God  •,  they  immediately  oft'er 
*  See  London  Gazette,  Numb.  2^98.  Aim.  1688, 


272  DEFEiVCE  OP  THE 

'  up  tlieir  most  fervent  addresses  for  the  prosperity 

*  of  others,  who  are  no  less  persecutors,  and  neglect 

*  to  offer  up  one  petition  for  a  third  sort,  who  have 

*  signahzed  themselves  in  behalf  of  such  as  suffer  for 
'  righteousness  sake.'  I  doubt  not  but  several 
readers  may  want  a  key  to  this  fine  harangue, 
but  I  believe  I  can  supply  them.  By  the  some, 
whose  destruction  the  Presbyterians  pray  for,  upon 
pretence  that  they  persecute  the  servants  of 
God,  he  means  the  French  King.  By  the  others, 
no  less  persecutors,  whose  prosperity  the  Pres- 
byterians pray  for,  he  means  the  house  of  Austria, 
the  Duke  of  Savoy,  and  such  other  Popish  confe- 
derates in  the  late  war.  By  the  third  sort,  whom 
the  Presbyterians  neglect  to  pray  for,  notwithstand- 
ing they  have  signalised  themselves  in  behalf  of  such 
who  suffer  for  righteousness'  sake,  he  means  the 
King  of  Sweden,  who  piously  gave  diversion  to  the 
allies  in  behalf  of  the  French  king :  and  no  doubt 
tlie  Presbyterians  were  very  guilty  in  not  praying  to 
God  for  success  to  him  in  so  laudable  a  service.  And 
now,  good  reader,  you  have  Mr  Rhind*s  heart,  and 
an  account  of  that  which,  beyond  peradventure,  he 
could,  least  of  all  others,  digest  in  the  Presbyterian 
devotions.  His  book  bears  date  in  the  preface,  6th 
December  171^2,  that  is,  about  half  a  year  before 
the  peace  was  concluded.  It  was  then  an  unpar- 
donable crime  in  the  Presbyterians  to  pray  for  the 
Queen  and  her  allies,  whereas  tliey  should  have  pray- 
ed for  the  French  King  and  his  assistants.  1  believe 
there  is  no  man  that  knows  any  thing  of  the  history 
of  Lewis's  reign,  but  knows  too,  that  Nero,  Domi- 
tian,  and  Dioclesian  were  merciful  princes  in  com- 
parison of  him  ;  and  therefore  such  as  would  alle- 
viate his  tyranny  and  persecution,  by  calling  the 
imputation  of  it  a  pretence,  ought  no  otherwise  to 
be  looked  on  than  as  avuwed  eiiemies  to  the  reform- 
ed interest.  And  though  many  in  Britain  and  Ire- 
land are  now  bewitched  with  a  spirit  of  infatuation 
in  favours  of  that  tyrant,  yet  I  hope  they  may  one 
day  have  their  eyes  opened  to  see  both  their  wick- 

2 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  273 

etlness  and  their  folly.  I  pray  God  it  be  not  too 
late,  and  at  the  expence  both  of  our  religion  and 
liberties.  But  now  as  to  the  business  of  the  prayers. 
How  often  did  her  majesty  declare  from  the  throne, 
that  the  reducing  the  Frencli  power  was  necessary 
for  securing,  not  only  the  Protestant  religion,  but 
the  liberties  of  Europe  too  ?  And  was  it  not  lawful 
to  pray  for  success  to  those  who  joined  with  her  ma- 
jesty in  so  good  a  work  ?  And  must  not  every  good 
man  in  the  three  nations  have  been  sensible  of  this  ? 
Because  the  people  of  Mr  Rhind's  kidney  are  con- 
tent to  barter  religion,  liberty,  and  all  the  most  va- 
luable interests  of  mankind,  for  the  dear  enjoyments 
of  slavery  and  superstition  ;  was  it  needful  that  the 
rest  of  the  nation  should  run  mad  with  them  ?  It 
is  true  the  house  of  Austria,  Savoy,  &c.  persecuted 
the  Protestants  in  Hungary,  Bohemia,  Piedmont,  and 
perhaps  with  less  fury  than  tlie  French  king  did  his 
subjects.  But  it  is  as  true  that  the  Presbyterians 
prayed  for  the  persecuted  in  these  places,  and  against 
their  persecutors,  so  far  as  concerned  the  matter  of 
religion,  in  the  same  terms  that  tliey  prayed  for  the 
persecuted  in  France,  and  against  the  French  king. 
And  it  is  true  also  they  blessed  God  for  any  free- 
dom was  procured  to  the  Protestants,  whether  by 
the  king  of  Sweden  or  any  other.  But  still  they 
prayed  against  the  French  king,  and  so  did  the 
Church  of  England.  For  did  not  her  majesty  order 
forms  of  prayer  and  thanksgiving,  to  be  composed 
by  the  bishops  at  the  o))ening  and  ending  of  each 
campaign,  for  success  against  him  ?  Nay,  did  not  the 
clergy,  by  direction  of  the  liturgy,*  pray  every  day 
during  the  war  that  God  would  abate  the  pride  of 
their  enemies,  assuage  their  mahce,  and  confound 
their  devices?  And  did  ever  the  Presbyterians  pray 
against  the  French  king  or  any  body  else  in  harsher 
terms  ?  And  is  it  not  the  duty  of  every  good  Chris- 
tian to  pray  for  the  destruction  of  the  power  of  one 
who,  besides  l)is  bloody  enmity  to  the  reformed  in- 

*  See  Prayer  in  llic  tinif  of  War  and  Tumults. 


274  DEFENCE  OF   THE 

terest,  is  notourly  known  to  be  an  oppressor  of  the 
liberties  of  mankind  ?  Add  to  all  this,  that  to  my 
certain  knowledge  the  Presbyterians  usually  pray^ 
that  if  it  be  possible,  God  would  give  him  repen- 
tance, which  I  hope  is  a  kinder  office  done  to  him, 
than  to  justify  his  unparalleled  wickedness,  as  some' 
others  do. 

9.  He  objects,  p.  154,  *  That  they  oifer  up  many 

*  nonsensical  petitions  to  God,  commit  many  blun- 
'  ders  and  tautologies,  transgress  the  most  funda-^ 

*  mental  rules  of  grammar,  rhetoric  and  logic/ 
Well,  how  does  he  prove  all  this  ?  You  are  not  to 
ask  that ;  he  can  do  it,  and  that  must  stand  for  as 
good  as  if  he  had  done  it.  But  how  can  he  do  it  ? 
Why,  '  the  expence  of  a  shilling,*   saith  he,   '  will 

*  procure  from  some  short-hand  writer  a  copy  of 
'  one  of  their  prayers  at  some  of  their  weekly  lec- 

*  tares  in  Edinburgh,  where  one  would  suppose  their 

*  men  of  best  sense  did  officiate.'  But  Vvhy  would 
he  hazard  his  beinp;  branded  as  a  malicious  slanderer 
rather  than  go  to  the  expence  of  a  shilling  ?  How- 
ever niggardly  he  is  of  his  purse,  it  seems  he  is  abun-^ 
dantly  prodigal  of  his  fame.  Besides,  when  he  has 
published  one  such  prayer,  I  hope  no  man  in  his  wits 
would  sustain  that  as  a  just  exception  against  the 
whole  communion.  There  are  no  doubt  weak  men 
among  the  Presbyterians.  But  does  not  the  same 
objection  lie  against  every  other  society,  though  a- 
gainst  none  so  much,  that  I  can  hear  oij  through  the 
broad  world,   as  against  the  English  inferior  clergy  ? 

*  The  much  greater  part  of  those  (as  the  Bishop  of 
'  Sarum  told  us  last  year  about  this  same  time),* 
'  who  come  to  be  ordained  are  ignorant,  to  a  degree 

*  not  to  bo  apprehended  by  those  who  are  not  oblig- 

*  ed  to  know  it.  The  easiest  part  of  knowledge  is 
'  that  to   which  they  are  the  greatest  strangers  ;  I 

*  mean  the  plainest  parts  of  the  Scriptures,which  they 

*  say,  in  excuse  of  their  ignorance,  that  their  tutors 

*  iii  the  Universities  never  mention  the  reading  of 

*  Preface  to  the  Fourth  Edition  of  his  Pastoral  Care. 


rUESBYTERIAN    WOIISIIIP. 


275 


to  them,  so  tliat  they  can  give  no  account,  or  at 
least  a  very  imperfect  one,  of  the  contents  even  of 
the  gospels.  Those  who  have  read  some  few- 
books,  yet  never  seem  to  have  read  the  Scriptures. 
Many  cannot  give  a  tolerable  account  even  of  the 
Catechism  itself,  how  short  and  plain  soever. 
They  cry  and  think  it  a  sad  disgrace  to  be  denied 
orders,  though  the  ignorance  of  some  is  such,  that 
in  a  well  regulated  slate  of  things,  they  would  ap- 
pear not  knowing  enough  to  be  admitted  to  the 
Holy  Sacrament.  This  does  often  tear  my  heart. 
The  case  is  not  much  better  in  many,  who,  having 
got  into  orders,  come  for  institution,  and  cannot 
make  it  appear  that  they  have  read  the  Scriptures, 
or  any  one  good  book,  since  they  were  ordained, 
so  that  the  small  measure  of  knowledge  upon  which 
they  got  into  holy  orders  not  being  improved,  is  in 
a  way  to  be  quite  lost.'  Thus  far  Bishop  Burnet. 
I  hope  this  is  some  better  testimony  than  a  copy  of 
ia  prayer,  not  yet  delivered,  from  some  short-hand 
writer. 

After  all  this,  to  make  Mr  Rhind  easy,  I  shall  in- 
genuously confess  hov/  far  his  charge  may  be  true  a- 
gainst  the  Presbyterian  Ministers.  Neither  these  of 
them  at  Edinburgh,  nor  any  of  tiiem  elsewhere,  are 
fond  of  that  which  Tillotson  calls  Rumbling  Rhe- 
toric, alias  Bombast :  Nor  are  they  careful  to 
make  their  sentences  runjike  blank  verse,  or  fall  in- 
to a  musical  cadence^  as  if  they  were  just  come  from 
reading  an  English  tragedy.  They  do  not  affect 
the  English  accent  without  the  English  phrase  :  Nor 
do  they  aspire  to  have  their  language  soaring  in  the 
clouds,  and  their  thoughts  meanwhile  creeping  on 
the  flat.  No,  they  think  it  sutiicient  to  deliver  them* 
selves  in  ])laiu  Scotch,  without  flights  of  fancy  or 
points  and  turns  of  wit  ;  being  sensible  that  such 
things  are  both  unsuitable  to  the  simplicity  of  the 
gospel ;  and  besides,  that  they  w^ould  be  thrown 
away  on  the  greatest  part  of  their  audience.  For, 
they  do  not  believe  that  every  one  that  wears  a  fine 
hat  or  a  fashionable   head-dress  is  a  deep  scholar. 

s  2 


S78 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


*  father,'  kc.     But  it  is  nonsense  to  command  us  to 

*  say  a  pattern,  therefore  we  are  to  use  it  as  a  form/ 
Thus  he  :  I  answer,  Mr  Rhind's  former  argument 
destroys  this  :  For  it  is  in  Luke's  gospel  that  w  eare 
commanded  to  sai/  '  our  Father,'  &c.  But  in  Luke's 
gospel  there  is  neither  the  doxology  nor  the  amen. 
Therefore  it  is  not  conceived  in  the  same  manner 
as  other  prayers,  in  that  place  where  we  are  bid  sai/ 
it.     Nay,  Grotius  is  of  the  mind  that  these  clauses 

*  Which  art  in  Heaven,'  and  '  Thy  will  be  done,  as 

*  in  Heaven  so  in  earth,'  and  '  deliver  us  from  evil,'' 
were  not  originally  in  Luke's  gospel,  but  crept  in- 
to it  out  of  Matthew's.  And  he  gives  this  reason 
for  it,  that  the  first  clause,  '  which  art  in  Heaven,' 
is  not  extant  in  the  old  Latin  copies.  And  the  second 
clause,  '  thy  will  be  done,  as  in  heaven  so  in  earth,' 
is  neither  extant  in  the  old  Latin  copies,  nor  in  some 
of  the  Greek  copies.  And  it  is  vejy  false  what  Mr 
Rhind  alleges,  that  '  it  is  nonsense  to  bid  us  say  a 

*  pattern  ;'  for  in  every  language,  that  I  know  any 
thing  of,   there  are  greater   elipses  usual  than  this, 

*  after  this  manner,'  or,  *  to  this  purpose.'  And  so 
Luke's   way  of  speaking  is   very  plain,  '  When  ye' 

*  pray,  say,'  viz.  after  this  manner,  or,  to  this  pur- 
pose. Upon  the  whole,  seeing  the  Lord's  Prayer 
was  at  least  mainly  intended  for  a  pattern,  which,  I 
hope,  is  now  tolerably  evident,  it  is  pretty  hard  to 
conceive  how  the  omission  of  it  as  a  form  can  be  a. 
fundamental  defect. 

In  the  second  place,  I  ask  Mr  Rhind  and  his  party, 
if  they  have  not  observed,  that  the  words  of  the 
Lord's  Prayer  in  the  original  are  not  the  same  in  both 
gospels.  In  Matthew's  we  read  ^<>i  «,**'"  ^^V-C".  In 
Luke's  ^'^»  '5,«<'i'  TO  y.nd'  yifA'ie^xK      In  Matthew's  Sipe?  «^rv  T«e 

o^c-iXi^f^XTci  'Yifiat,  cii  x.dt  YtfAeii  eitpkuiv  ni;  o^pUXiTcti;  yi^UI.  Ill  Lukc  S 
T<«j  oi^u^Tioti  itf/.m,    K.ut  yup  ccvrol  upkfAiv    Ttuiri  oipe-iXotii    tiftiv.       Jt    is 

true,  our  Saviour  probably  did  not  sjieak  in  Greek. 
But  when  the  Evangelists  have  varied  so  in  their 
wording  of  it,  it  is  plain  that  they  did  not  under- 
stand our  Saviour  as  meaning  to  bind  them  up  to 
words  and  syllables.     The  like  variation  of  phrase. 


PRESBYTEKTAN"    WOUSIIIP.  279 

•which  I  take  notice  of  for  the  Engh'sh  reader's  sake, 
is  observable  in  our  translation.  In  Matthew's  gospel 
we  read,  '  thy  will  be  done  in  earth  as  it  is  in  Hea- 
«  ven.'  In  Luke's  '  thy  will  be  done,  as  in  Heaven 
^  so  in  earth.'     In  Matthew's  '  give  us  this  day  our 

*  daily  bread.'     In  Luke's  '  give  us  day  by  day  our 

*  daily  bread,'  and  on  the  margin,  *  for  the  day-* 
In  Matthew's  *  forgive  us  our  debts,   as  we  forgive 

*  our  debtors.'     In  Luke's  '  forgive  us  our  sins,  for 

*  we  also  forgive  every  one  that  is  indebted  to  us/ 
And,  which  is  strange  enough,  the  English  liturgy 
varies  from  both  :  For  thus  it  has  it,  *  forgive  us 
'  our  trespasses  as  we  forgive  them  that  trespass 
^  against  us  ;'  and  in  it  generally  the  doxology  '  for 
'  thine  is  the  kingdom,'  &c.  is  wanting.  Now,  after 
all  this  variety,  is  it  to  be  thought  that  we  are  tied 
up  to  the  form  of  words,  or  that  the  omission  of 
them  can  be  a  fundamental  defect  ? 

In  the  third  place,  I  ask  Mr  Rhind  and  his  part}% 
if  they  are  sure,  even   supposing  it  were  a  form, 
that  the  precept  for  using  it  was  intended  for  public 
worship  ?     I  do  not  now  ask  if  it  be  lawful  there, — 
that  is  granted.     But  that  it  was  not  originally  in- 
tended for  it,  I  conceive  to  be  somewhat  more  than 
probable.     \sty  Because  in  all  the  public  ministra- 
tions related  in  the  New  Testament  we  never  find,  it 
used.    2f//y,  Because  our  Saviour  took  occasion,  from 
discoursing  on  secret  prayer,    to  prescribe   and  give 
the  command  for  it.     And  Sdly^  The  disciples  did 
not  then  look  upon  themselves  as  ministers,  nor  ex- 
pected ever  to  be  employed  as  officers  in  the  church  ; 
seeing,  not  only  now,  but  even  a  long  time  after 
this,  yea  after  Christ's  resurrection,  they  still  ima- 
gined that  the  Jewish  polity  was  to  continue,  in 
which  those  of  the  family  of  Levi  alone  were  by  di- 
vine right  church  officers.     Now,  if  it  was  not  origi- 
nally intended  for  public  worship,  how  can  the  omis- 
sion of  it  in  public  worship   be   a  fundamental  de- 
fect ?  especially,  when  we  are  sure,  that  this,  which 
I  have   given,  was   the  sense   which  the  primitive! 
church  had  of  this  matter.     For  thus  Augustine  ex- 


280  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

pressly  declares  *,  *  that  Christ,  in    the  delivery  oi' 

*  these  petitions,  did  not  teach   his  disciples  how 

*  they  should  speak,  or  what  words  they  should  use 

*  in  prayer ;  but  to  whom  they  were  to  pray,  and 

*  what  things  they  were  to  pray  for,  when  they  were 
'  in  the  exercise  of  secret  or  mental  prayer  ?' 

In  the  fourth  place,  I  ask  how  can  the  Episcopal 
party  account  for  that  sense  which  they  have  given 
of  the  precept?   And  how  can  they  justify  that  hor- 
rid doctrine  which  they  have  founded  it  on  ?   In  the 
Jirst  place,  They  make  the  sense  of  the  precept, 

*  When  ye  pray,'  say,  to  be,  *  when  ye  have  done 

*  with  your  own  prayers,  annex  this.'  This  is  such 
an  insipid  gloss,  and  so  unheard-of  among  the  an- 
cients, that  I  admire  they  are  not  ashamed  of  it. 
We  are  sure  that  the  ancients  either  used  it  alone, 
or  prefixed  it  to  their  prayers  when  they  used  it. 
Thus  Tertullian,t  after  a  large  commendation  of 
the  Lord's  Prayer,  adds  : — *  We  may  add  thereun- 
'  to;  for  since  the  Lord,  the  provider  for  all  hu- 

*  man  necessities,  has,  in  another  place,  after  he 
'  had  delivered  this  prayer,  said,  '  Ask,  and  ye 
"  shall  receive  ;'  and  every  one  has  particular  cir- 

*  cumstances   to   beg  for ;    therefore,   having  pre- 

*  mised  the   lawful  and   ordinary  prayer,  there  is 

*  place  for  accidental  requests.'  Thus  he.  But  whe- 
ther they  prefixed  it,  or  annexed  it,  they  had  no  opi- 
nion of  the  fundamental  necessity  of  doing  so ;  an 
infallible  argum.ent  of  which  is,  that  we  find  them 

•  Augustin.  de  Magistro,  cap.  1.  Aug.  Non  te  ergo  movet 
Dominus  sumnius  Magister,  cum  orare  doceret  discipulos,  verba 
quaedam  docuit,  in  quo  nihil  aliud  videtur  i'ecisse,  quam  docuisse 
quomodo  in  orando  loqui  oporteret :  Ad.  Nihil  me  omnino  istud 
movet ;  non  enim  verba,  sed  res  ipsas  eos  verbis  docuit,  quibus 
et  se  ipsi  commone  tacerent,  a  quo,  quid  esset  orandum,  cum  in 
penetrahbus,  ut  dictum  est,  mentis  orarent.  Aug.  recte  inteU 
ligis. 

t  Posse  nos  super  adjicere.  Quoniam  tamen  Dominus  pros- 
pector Jiumanarum  necessitarum  seorsim  post  traditam  orandi 
disciplinam,  petite,  inquil,  et  accipietis,  et  sunt  quae  petantur, 
pro  circunistantia  cuji.isque,  proemissa  Icgitima  et  ordinaria  ora- 
tionc  quasi  lundanicnto,  accidentiuui  jus  est  desidcriorum.  Jus 
est  superstruendi. — De  Orationc,  p.  659. 


PRESBYTEIUAN   WORSHIP.  281 

fre(|ueiuly  praying  wiliiout  tlie  Lord's  Prayer,  either 
at  tlic  beginning  or  ending  of  their  prayers.  Thus, 
as  Sir  Peter  King  has  already  noted,  *  in  the 
heavenly  prayer  of  Polycarpus  at  the  stake,  the 
Loril's  Prayer  is  neither  at  beginning  nor  ending. 
Thus  Clemens  Alexandrinus  concludes  his  last  Book 
of  Paxlagogy,  with  a  prayer,  which  neither  ends 
nor  begins  with  the  Lord's  Prayer ;  and  Origen,  t 
prescrihing  a  method  of  prayer,  speaks  not  a  word 
of  the  Lord's  Prayer  ;  but  advises  both  to  begin  and 
end  with  doxology,  or  a  giving  praise  to  God.  This 
they  would  never  have  done,  had  they  believed  that 
it  was  fundamentally  necessary  to  join  the  Lord's 
Prayer  with  their  own.  With  what  reason,  then, 
can  our  Scots  Episcopalians  make  that  the  sense  of 
the  precept  ?  But  then,  2dli/i  The  principle  upon 
which  they  found  this  sense,  is  a  most  horrid  one  : 
For  they  assert,  that  the  joining  it  with  our  own 
imperfect  prayers,  renders  them  acceptable  before 
God ;  as,  on  the  other  hand,  the  want  of  it  makes 
them  unaccei)table.  This  is  plain  from  Mr  llhind's 
words  before  cited.  Now,  what  else  is  this  but  to 
turn  that  excellent  prayer  into  an  idolatrous  charm, 
and  to  make  the  repetition  of  it  supply  the  place  of 
the  merit  and  intercession  of  our  Saviour  ?  I  ask, 
now,  whether  the  Presbyterians'  omission  of  it,  or 
the  Episcopalians'  usage  of  it,  upon  such  a  princi- 
ple, be  the  more  accountable  ? 

To  conclude  this  matter : — It  is  true  the  Lord's 
Prayer  was  early  used  in  the  public  assemblies  of 
Christians.  But  it  was  not  used  more  than  once  at 
one  assembly ;  not  in  prayers  before  or  after  ser- 
mon ;  not  at  all  in  the  Catechumen's  office,  but  in 
the  Eucharistical  office  ;  and  even  there  they  did  not 
apprehend  that  Christ  enjoined  them  to  use  the 
words.     And  thus  many  others,  X  both  of  the  Pro- 

*  Enquiry  into  the  Constitution,  &c.  of  the  Primitive  Church, 
Par.  ii.  p.  28. 

t   Dc  Orationc,  Sect.  22.  p.  134,  135. 

X  Malclonat.  in  Matth.  vi.  1).  Non  his  ncccssario  verbis,  scJ 
hac  aut  simili  scntcntia— nam  non  Apostolos  orando  his  ipsis  vcr- 


282  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

testant  and  Roman  communion,  have  understood  it. 
So  much  for  the  exceptions  against  the  matter  of  the 
prayers  of  the  Presbyterians.  Part  of  which  excep- 
tions are  manifestly  false  in  fact,  and  all  the  rest  of 
the  things  excepted  against,  justifiable,  at  least  as 
lawful,  and  for  the  most  part  as  duty. 


ARTICLE  11. 


Wherein  Mr  R hind's  E:vception  against  the  Manner 
of  the  Fresbyterians'  Prayers  is  considered'  From 
p.  156  to  P'  177. 

Mr  Rhind  frequently  affirms  them  to  be  highly 
imperfect  in  this  respect.  The  only  reason  he  gives 
is,  that  they  are  performed  in  the  extemporary  way, 
as  he  expresses  it.  For  making  this  a  high  imper- 
fection, he,  I.  Insists  upon  the  huge  disadvantages 
of  it.  II.  Essays  by  arguments  to  prove  the  excel- 
lency, if  not  the  necessity,  of  the  liturgic  way. 

I.  He  insists  upon  the  disadvantages  of  the  ex- 
temporary way  among  the  Presbyterians,  which  he 
lays  out  in  three  particulars. 

The  first  disadvantage  is,  '  That  a  man  is  dis- 
'  charged  the  use  of  all  helps,  and  is  desired  to  de- 

*  pend  only  upon  the  motion  of  the  spirit,  p.   157. 

*  The  result  of  which  is,  that  when  one  is  not  bless-* 
'  ed  with  the  gift  of  prayer,  lie  is  tempted  to  neglect 

*  it  altogether  J  or  if  he  essay  it  once,  and  finds  that 

bis  usos  fuisse  Icgimus,  aliis  leglmus.  Neque  voluit  Clin'stus,  ut 
fjuotiescunque  oraiiius,  ista  omnia,  quss  hac  oratione  continentur, 
peteremus,  sed  ut  omnia,  aut  aliqiia,  aut  nihil  certe  his  contra- 
riuni  peterem.  Casaubon.  Exercit.  2S5.  Christus  vero  non  de 
predicatione  Dei  laudum  agit,  sed  ut  recte  monet  Augustinus,  de 
mode  concipiendi  preces  privatas.  Jansen.  in  Luc.  11.  Itaque 
ut  disceremus  in  oratione,  non  tam  de  verbis,  quam  de  rebus  esse 
anxii,  ac  de  spiritu  orationis,  diversis  verbis  orationem  tradidit. 
Vide  Cjarkson  on  Liturgies. 


PRESBYTERIAX  WORSHIP.  283 

*  he  cannot  perform  it  to  any  tolerable  purpose,  he  is 
'  discouraged  from   any   further  attempt ;    and  so 

*  must  continue  in  ignorance   and   irreligion  ;  the 

*  obtaining  of  which  among  the  generality  of  peo- 
'  pie/    saith   he,  '  is  in   a  great  measure  owing  to 

*  the  want  of  forms.     Or  if  a  person  grossly  ignor- 

*  ant  yet  adventure  to  pray,   his  performance  must 

*  be  crowded  with  flat  impertinencies,   substantial 

*  nonsense  and  horrid  blasphemies,  ail  which  is  un- 
'  avoidable  in  the  extemporary  way.'     To  this  pur- 
pose he,  p.  156,  1.57.   Is  it  possible  Mr  Rhind  could 
be  22  years  among  the  Presbyterians,  and  not  know 
that  what  he  has  laid  down  for  the  foundation  of  all 
this,  is  even  a  transparent  falsehood.     Was  he  not 
sensible  that  every  one,   that  could   open  his  eyes 
and  read  English,  was  in  a  capacity  to  convince  him 
of  the  grossest  calumny  and  slander?    Do  the  Pres- 
byterians discharge  the  use   of  all  helps  in   prayer, 
either  to  ministers  or  private   Christians  ?  Was  not 
the  Directory  for  the  public  w-orship   of  God   com- 
piled on  purpose  to  give  them  both  help  and  furni- 
ture ?*  Is  not  every  Minister  therein  exhorted  to  be 
careful  to  fin-nish  both  his    heart  and  tongue   with 
farther  and  other  materials,  as  shall  be  needful  upon 
all  occasions  ?  Hath  not  the  General  Assembly  given 
directions,!  and  suggested  materials  for  private  pray- 
er? Nay,  do  they  not  expressly  recommend  forms  of 
prayer  to  the  rude  and  weaker  ?  t    What  meant  he 
then   to  say,  that  they  are  discharged   the   use   of 
all  helps ;    and  desired    to    de})end  only  upon    the 
motion    of  the   JSpirit  ?     Did  he  presume,  that  his 
party  were  given  up  to  believe  a  lie  ?    With  what 
confidence   could  he  impute  the  stupid  ignorance, 
and  height  of  impiety,  to  the  want  of  forms  ?  Does 
he  not  know,  that  in  England,  where  there  is  no 
want  of  them,   a  brutal  ignorance  })revails   among 
the  vulgar,  and  impieties  reign  ;  yet,  I  hope,  un- 

*  See  Preface  to  the  Directory. 

f   See   tlieni  annexed   to  tlie  Confess,  of  Faitli.     Edinburgh, 
printed  by  James  W'utson,  J7<J8,  J  ibid.  Sect.  9. 


284  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

known  on  this  side  Tweed.  Mr  llliind  lias  taken 
u  great  deal  ol'  pains  to  represent  tlic  gift  of  prayer 
as  an  unattainable  thing.  But  hear  Bishop  Wilkins 
upon  it.  '  As  for  the  pretended  difficulty,'  saith 
he,  *  *  I  shall,  in  this  Discourse,  make  it  evident, 

*  that  if  it  be  seriously  attempted,  (as  all  religious 

*  businesses  ought  to  be,)  it  is  easy  to  be  attained 
'  by  any  one  that  has  but  common  capacity.*  And 
I  suppose  every  body  who  has  read  his  Discourse,  is 
convinced  he  has  made  his  word  good. 

The  second  disadvantage  of  extemporary  prayer, 
is  the  danger,  or  at  least  the  uncertainty,  of  the  un- 
lawfulness of  joining  in  it.  *  For  suppose,'  saith  he, 
p.  157,  *  a  man  who  is  master  of  a  tolerable  extem- 

*  porary  faculty,  is  the  orator ;  yet,  even  in  that  case, 
'  before  he  begin,  ye  are  under  an  uncertainty,  whe- 
'  ther,  what  he  shall  say,  be  right  or  wrong :  This 
'  keeps  the  spirit  in  suspence.  Perhaps  the  third  or 
'  fourth  petition  is  dubious  or  unsound,  which  ye 
'  cannot  offer  up  to  God.    Perhaps  the  next  ye  hear, 

*  is  flat  or  impertinent,  and  therefore  grating  to  a 

*  man  of  sense.'  To  this  purpose  he.  Is  not  this 
a  pretty  way  of  arguing  by — Perhapses  ?  I  need  not 
spend  time  upon  such  chimerical  stuff.  Take  the 
answer  from  Bishop  Wilkins  in  the  place  last  cited. 

*  Whereas,'  saith  he,  *  it  is  commonly  objected  by 

*  some,  that  they  cannot  so  well  join  in  an  unknown 

*  form,   with  which   they  are  not    before-hand   ac- 

*  quainted.     I  answer,  that  is  an  inconsiderable  ob- 

*  jection,  and  does  oppose  all  kind  of  forms  that  are 

*  not  publicly  prescribed.  As  a  man  may,  in  his 
'  judgment,  assent  unto  any  divine  truth  delivered 

*  in  a  sermon,  which  he  never  heard  before  ;  so  may 

*  he  join  in  his  affections   unto    any  holy  desire, 

*  which  he  never  heard  before.  If  he  who  is  the 
'  mouth  of  the  rest,  shall,  through  imprudence,  dc- 

*  liver  that  which  we  cannot  approve  of,  God  does 
'  not  look  upon  it  as  our  prayer,  if  our  desires  do 

*  Gift  of  Prayer,  Chap.  II.  p.  10,  11. 


TRESBYTERIAN  WOUSHIP.  Z85 

'  not  say  Amen  to  it.*  Thus  lie.  Antl  notliing 
could  have  been  said  more  patly  to  the  present  ob- 
jection. 

The   third   disadvantage   attending   extemporary 
prayer,  is,  *  That  even  where  there  is  nothing  amiss 

*  in  the  matter  of  the  prayer,  yet  the  hearer  can- 

*  not  at  once  exercise  that  seriousness  and  intention 

*  with  respect  to  God,  and  that  attention  which  is 
'  necessary  to  catch  what  drops  from  him  who  prays.' 
Thus  Mr  Rhind,  p.  1.58.  But  this  is  an  objection 
of  the  same  nature  with  the  former  ;  an  objection 
to  which  his  own  whimsical  imagination  is  both  fa- 
ther and  mother.  Though  Mr  Rhind  pretends  he 
cannot  do  both  at  once,  yet  I  believe  every  man 
else  in  the  world  finds  it  not  only  possible,  but  easy 
to  do.  When  there  is  nothing  amiss  in  the  matter 
of  the  prayer,  which  is  his  supposition,  a  man  must 
be  very  glib  of  the  tongue,  if  my  thoughts  cannot 
hold  pace  with  him  ;  and  the  intenseness  of  my  af- 
fections will  be  so  far  from  being  a  hindrance, 
that  it  will  be  a  help  to  the  attention  of  my 
thoughts. 

But  now  are  not  all  these  imaginary  disadvantages 
as  frequent  and  as  obvious  in  the  liturgic  way.     For 
what  if  a  man  have  not  a  common  prayer-book,  or 
cannot  read,  or  has  not  the  form  by  heart,  all  which 
are  cases  that  must   frequently  happen  ?     Must  he 
not  quite  neglect  prayer  at  home  ?     And  is  it  not 
impossible  for  him  to  exercise   both  attention  and 
inattention  at  once  when  he  comes  to  church  ?     Is 
not  the  looking  upon  the  book  and  reading,  a  greater 
diversion  to  the  affections  than  any  thing  that  can 
be  mentioned  in   the  extemporary   way  ?     Besides, 
does  not  Mr  Rhind,  who  is  so  well  acquainted  with 
the  animal  economy,  know,  that  when  one  is  accus- 
tomed to  a  form,  there  is  the  greatest  danger  of  fall- 
ing into  lip-service  and  formality  ,  and  the  greatest 
difficulty  in  exercising  either  attention  or  inatten- 
tion ?     It  is  certainly  so.     Every  man  knows  it  who 
has  tried  it  j  and  Bishop  Wilkins,  who  was  a  great 


286  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

philosopher,  as  well  as  a  great  divine,  has  observed 
it.*  'In  this  case,'  saith  he,  *  it  should  be  specially 
'  remembered,    that  in   the  use  of  such  prescript 

*  forms,  to  u'hich  a  man  hath  been  accustomed,  he 

*  ought  to  be  narrowly  watchfid  over  his  own  heart, 

*  for  fear  of  the  lip-service  and  formality,  which  in 

*  such  cases  we  are  more  especially  exposed  unto.* 
Thus  he.  So  much  for  the  pretended  disadvantages 
that  attend  extemporary  prayer,  which,  I  think, 
are  pretty  real  in  the  liturgic  way. 

II.  Mr  Rhind  essays,  by  arguments,  to  prove  the 
excellency  of  the  liturgic  way.  And  he  argues  it 
to  be  the  best :  1.  From  the  nature  of  the  thing, 
2.  From  universal  practice.  3.  From  the  approba- 
tion of  Heaven,  both  in  the  Old  and  New  Testa- 
ment. 4.  From  the  usage  of  the  primitive  and  an- 
cient church.  And,  lastly.  From  the  practice  of  the 
reformed  churches.  And  then  he  concludes  all 
with  answering  the  objection.  That  forms  stint  the 
Spirit. 

First,  He  argues  for  the  excellency  of  the  liturgic 
way  from    the   nature  of  the    thing,  p.    159,   160- 

*  God,'  saith  he,  '  ought  to  be  worshipped  in  the 

*  best  manner  possible.'  It  is  granted-  A  form  of 
worship,  subsumes  he,  which  always  presui)poses 
fore-thought,  is  incomparably  better  than  the  extem- 
porary way,  which  requires  little  or  none  at  all. 
Who  told  him  that  the  extemporary  way  requires 
little  or  no  fore-thought?  Did  ever  the  Presbyte- 
rians teach  so  ?  Have  they  not  in  their  Directory 
enjoined  each  minister  '  to  stir  up  the  gifts  of  Christ 
'  in  himself,  and,  by  merlitation  as  well  as  by  ob- 

*  serving  the  ways  of  divine  providence,  and  other 

*  methods^  to  furnish  himself  with  materialsof  prayer? 
Does  not  every  Presbyterian  who  treats  of  that 
subject  enjoin  the  same  ?  Flave  they  ever  taught 
otherwise  than  Bishop  Wilkins  himself  has  taught 
in  this  case,t  viz.  *  That,  generally,  it  is  both   lavv- 

*  ful  and  necessary  to  prepare  ourselves,  as  for  thiaf 

*  Ubi  supra,  p.  9.         f  Ubi  supra,  p.   11. 


niESEYTERIAN    WOIISIIIP.  287 

*  this  gift  in  general,  so,  for   every  particular    act 

*  of  it,   by   premeditating,  if  we   have  leisure  for 

*  it,  both  matter  and  order  and  words  :     And  that, 

*  though  it  be  a  gift  of  the  spirit,  yet  it  is  not  to 

*  be  expected,  that  it  should   suddenly  be  infused 

*  into  us  without  any  precedent  endeavours  of  our 

*  own.'  Again,  how  shall  he  convince  us,  that  the 
liturgic  way  always  pre-supposes  fore-thought  ?  It 
is  true  it  did  so  in  the  compilers;  but  it  is  well  e- 
nough  known,  that  it  did  not  so  in  the  users.  How 
often  is  it  seen,  that  while  they  are  crying,  Be  mer- 
ciful to  us  miserable  sinners,  they  are,  as  a  late  excel- 
lent author  has  told  us,  ogling  their  sweet-hearts 
in  the  next  pew  ?  And  does  not  every  body  feel  it, 
that  when  they  know  before-hand  what  is  to  be 
said,  they  are  very  rarely  attentive  to  it.  But  let 
us  hear  him  proceed.  *  W  it  be  best,*  saith  he,  '  to 
'  have  the  prayer  formed  before  I  pronounce  it, 
'  what  is  the  harm  though  I  transcribe  it  from  my 

*  memory  ?'  None  at  all  that  I  know  of.  '  Nay,'  saitli 
he,  '  will  I  not  be  so  much  the  more  sure  of  it,  if 
'  I  do  this?'  Certainly.  For,  litera  scripla  mancty 
and  the  pocket  is  oft-times  a  surer  repository  than 
the  memory.  '  And  if  I  may  safely  write  it,*  adds 
he,  *  why  not  7'ead  it  too  ?  I  know  no  reason  why 
he  may  not,  a  hundred  times  over  if  he  pleases. 
And  yet  it  is  very  possible  he  may,  all  this  while,  not 
pray  it  once  over  :  For,  I  cannot  see  why  reading 
a  prayer,  where  there  is  no  more,  should  be  called 
praying,  any  more  than  why  reading  a  prophecy 
should  be  called  prophesying.  But  now  to  dis- 
course this  business  of  reading  prayers. 

I  ask  Mr  llhind,  where  does  he  find,  in  the  first 
place,  that  prayers  were  read  in  the  primitive 
Churcii  ?  Is  there  the  least  vestige  of  it  for  several 
hundreds  of  years  after  Christ  ?  Do  not  Tertullian, 
Clemens  Alexandiinus,  Cyprian,  Arnobins,  Lactan- 
tius,  Dionysius  Alexandriniis,  all  tell  us,  that  the 
antient  Christians  in  prayer  lifted  up  their  eyes  to 
Heaven.  *       Does  not    Chrysostom  observe  from 

*  See  Sir  Potrr  King,  ubi  supra,  I'art  II.  Cliap.  li .  Sect.  S, 
and  Claikaou  uu  Lilurjries,  p.  H.  &<.. 


288  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

Christ's  posture  in  prayer,  expressed  Jolin  xvii. 
1.  '  That  tliereby  we  are  taught  when  we  pray,  to 
'  Hft  up  both  the  eyes  of  body  and  mind?'  Is  not 
the  Emperor  Constantine  represented  on  his  coins 
and  medals  in  a  praying  posture,  yet  not  reading  on 
a  book,  but  witli  eyes  hft  up  to  heaven  ?  *  Does 
not  Augustine  intimate  as  much,  when  he  tells  us, 
upon  John  xvii.  1.  that  Christ  so  prayed,  as  mind- 
ing to  teach  us  how  we  should  pray  ?  Where  is  now 
the  warrant  from  antiquity  for  reading  prayers  ? 
"idli/,  Is  there  any  more  warrant  for  it  from  Scrip- 
ture ?  Did  the  humble  publican,  though  in  the 
Temple,  read  his  prayers  ?  Or  did  the  Pharisee  pray 
by  a  form  ?  Did  the  disciples,  when  catched  in  the 
storm,  pull  out  their  common-prayer  book,  and  read 
the  forms  to  be  used  at  sea  ?  Did  Jonah  or  the  ma- 
riners do  it  ?  Is  there  so  much  as  a  whisper  of  this 
in  the  Bible  ?  No  indeed.  A  sense  of  present  dan- 
ger is  worth  twenty  common-prayer  books  ;  accord- 
ing to  that  known  saying,  qui  nescit  orare  discat  navi- 
garCy  Who  would  learn  to  pray,  let  him  go  to  sea. 

And  it  is  a  plain  case,  no  man  wants  a  prayer 
book,  who  is  in  a  frame  for  praying  :  And  he  that  is 
not  in  such  a  frame,  may  indeed  read  prayers,  but 
I  do  not  think  he  can  be  said  to  pray. 

But  let  us  go  on  with  Mr  Rhind's  argument.  *  If 

*  that  prayer,'  saith  he,  *  which  I  form  before  hand, 
'  be  better  than  that  which  I  utter  off  hand,  then 
'  certainly  the   form  prepared  by  the  joint  endea- 

*  vours  of  many,  (allowing  each  of  them  to  be  Jiei- 
'  ther  better  nor  wiser  than  myself,)  is  by  great  odds 

*  preferable  to  my  single  endeavour.*  Here  Mr 
Rliind  and  I  differ.  For  I  have  seldom  yet  obser- 
ved a  composure  by  several  hands  so  well  done,  as 
that  wherein  only  one  was  concerned.  And  the  rea- 
son is  evident,  that  that  which  is  done  by  one,  is  usu- 
ally all  of  a  piece;  whereas,  that  which  has  many 
hands  at  the  doing  of  it,  generally  makes  but  a  liti- 
sey-woolsey  kind  of  stuff.     Besides,  though  a  prayer 

*  Eu^el...  tie  Vita  Coiistanfmi,  Uh,  IV.  Ciiap.  15. 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP. 


289 


formed  before  hand,  either  by  myself  or  others,  may 
be  more  pointed  as  to  its  wording,  and  have  more  of 
a  logical  method  in  it ;  yet,  it  is  very  possible,  that  a- 
brnpt  and  independent  sentences,  breaking  from  a 
contrite  heart,  and  a  soul  flaming  with  the  love  of  Je- 
sus, may  be  more  acceptable  to  God,  and  more  pro- 
fitable to  myself. 

From  all  this  reasoning,  Mr  Rhind  concludes,  that 
thatform  which  the  Church  hasprovided,(he  meansthe 
English  Liturgy,)  has  unspeakable  advantages  above 
any  one  man's  performance.  But  herein  Mr  Rhind's 
taste  and  mine  differ,  as  much  about  the  preference 
of  forms,  as  our  judgments  do  about  the  use  of  them. 
Por  I  am  perfectly  convinced,  that  the  devotions  of 
the  author  of  the  whole  Duty  of  Man,  or  Symon  Pa- 
trick's Devotions,  or  Jeremy  Taylor's  Devotions,  or 
even  Dorington's  Devotions,  are  incomparably  bet- 
ter than  those  of  the  liturgy ;  and  I  wonder  how 
any  man  that  has  read  both,  can  make  the  least 
doubt  of  it :  Pray  what  should  make  the  English  li- 
turgy so  preferable  ?  He  answers,  *  because  it  is  the 

*  result  of  the  wisest  council  and  most  mature  deli- 

*  beration, — the  effect  of  the  united  endeavours  of 

*  men  holy  and  wise,  who  no  doubt  implored  and 

*  obtained  the  assistance  and  direction  of  the  bless- 

*  ed  spirit,   in  compiling  a  form,   which  they  were 

*  persuaded  was  the  best  and  most  acceptable  man- 

*  nerof  worshippingGod.'  Butl5^,HasMrRhindcon- 
sidered  how  small  the  part  of  the  compilers  was?  They 
did  indeed  tack  the  severalparts  together;  but  thema- 
terials  were  formed  to  their  hand.  The  lessons  out 
of  the  Old  and  New  Testament  and  Apocrypha, — the 
Psalms  to  be  read  monthly, — thcEpistles  andGospels, 
— the  passages  of  Scripture  at  the  beginning  of  morn- 
ing and  evening  prayer, — the  Lord's  prayer  so  of- 
ten repeated,  the  Veiiite  Ed'ultemus, — the  Benedictus, 
— the  Benedicite, — the  Jubilate  Deo^ — the  Cantate 
Domino, — the  Magnijicat^ — the  Nunct  DemittiSy — 
the  Dcus  Miserea/ur, — the  Lilamj, — the  Ten  Corri' 
mandments, — the  Three  Creeds, — the  Te  Deum^  were 
all  of  them  formed  long  before  the  compilers  of  the 

T 


290  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

liturgy  were  born.     The  collects  are  generally  oiiC 
of  the  breviary  ;  tlie  prayers  in  the  standing  offices 
out  of  the  Missal  and  Ritual.     Abstract  these  parts 
from  the  liturgy,  and  1  suppose  the  compiler*s  work 
will  appear   to  be  v^ry  easy.     2^%,  Why  did  Mr 
llhind  say,  that  the  authors  of  the  liturgy  compiled 
a  form,  which,  they  were  persuaded,  was  the  best 
and  most  acceptable  manner  of  worshipping  God  ? 
Does  he  not  know  that  all  history  contradicts  this  ? 
They  did  not  so  much  as  aim  at  that  v,?hich  was  in 
itself  best,  but  at  what  the  times  could  best  bear, 
with  any  colour  of  reformation  ;  and  therefore,  com- 
posed the  liturgy  so  as  was  most  likely  to  gain  the 
Papists,  and  to  draw  them  into  their  Church   Com- 
munion, by  varying  as  little  as  well  as  they  could 
from  the  Romish  forms  before  in  use.     This,   King 
Edward  ingenuously  told    the   Devonshire  rebels. 
'  Though,'  saith  he,  *  it  seemeth  to  you  a  new  ser- 

*  vice,  yet  indeed,  it  is  no  other  but  the  old,   the 

*  self-same  words  in  English  that  were  in  Latin  : 
'  For  nothing  is  altered  but  to  speak  with  know- 
'  ledge,  that  which  was  spoken  with  ignorance,  only 

*  a    few  things  taken  out,  so   fond,  that   it    had 

*  been  a  shame  to  have  heard  them  in  English.' 
Thus  he.  *  And  indeed  the  reformers  acted  pru- 
dently, according  to  the  then  circumstances,  in 
striving  what  they  could  to  gain  the  Papists :  But 
to  go  on  in  the  same  method,  now  after  a  hundred 
and  fifty  years  experience  of  its  unsuccessfulness  , 
and  when,  it  is  plain,  that  the  altering  it  would  gain 
the  dissenters  ;  this  conduct,  I  must  needs  say,  ar- 
gues abetter  memory  than  a  judgment :  and  shews 
a  much  greater  regard  to  the  Popish  than  the  Re- 
formed interest.  2dli/,  What  assistance  of  the  spirit 
was  it  which  the  compilers  implored  and  obtained  ? 
It  was  not  assistance  as  to  the  matter.  It  was  not 
assistance  as  to  the  form :  For  Mr  Rhind  has  express- 
ly said,  p.  175,  '  that  our  prayers  are  not  dictated 
by  the  Spirit  either  as  to  matter  or  form.'     It  is  then 

*  Holinshed's  History,  Vol.  III.  p.  1005. 


PIIESCYTEUIAX    WOllSIIIP.  291 

beyond  my  compreliension  to  understand  wherein 
they  were  assisted  ;  for,  to  say  that  tliey  were  assist- 
ed in  tacking  the  several  parts  together,  were  to  as- 
sign too  low  an  office  to  the  Holy  Ghost. 

It  will  not  be  unpleasant,  before  1  leave  this  ar- 
gument, to  consider  the  motives  which,  Mr  Rhind 
alleges,  prevailed  with  the  first  compilers  and  im- 
posers  of  the  liturgy,  to  restrict  ministers  and  peo- 
ple to  the  use  thereof. 

'  They  were  sensible,'  saith  he,  p.  161,  «  of  the  dis- 
'  advantages  of  the  extemporary  way,  even  in  their 

*  own  experience.  They  observed,  moreover,  that 
'  the  ignorant,  that  is,  the  gross  of  mankind,   could 

*  not,  and,  therefore,  did  not  pray  at  all ; — that  the 

*  gifted  brethren  and  their  hearers  too  often   mis- 

*  took  the  warmth  and  quickness  of  their  fancy, 

*  and  the  readiness  of  expression,  for  the  dictates  of 

*  the  Spirit,  which  swelled  the  former  with  a  high 
'  conceit  of  themselves,  (a  frame  of  mind   of  all  o- 

*  thers  the  most  unsuitable  in  devotion,)  and  made 
'  the  latter  lie  against  the  Holy  Ghost :  Besides,  they 

*  found  that  this  liberty  which  men  were  allowed, 

*  sometimes  tempted  them  to  vent  their  new  and 

*  dangerous  notions  as  the  inspirations  of  the  Holy 
'  Ghost ;  and  therefore,  the  Church,   to  assist  the 

*  weakness  of  the  one,  and  to  clieck  the  vanity  and 
'  presumption  of  the  other,  restricted  both  to  the 
'  use  of  forms.'     Thus  he. 

A  very  pointed  speech  this !  But  is  there  the 
least  footstep  in  history  to  support  it?  Is  there 
the  least  hint  given  that  the  compilers  and  imposers 
of  the  liturgy  proceeded  upon  these  motives  ?  Nay, 
is  it  not  certain  that  they  had  not  these  motives  to 
])roceed  on  ?  Were  the  extemporizers  so  early,  as 
that  the  ill  effects  of  their  extemporizing  appeared 
even  before  the  compiling  of  the  Liturgy  ?  Is  it 
not  certain,  that  till  the  compiling  of  the  Liturgy, 
and  the  Primer  that  went  before  it,  the  people  still 
-worshipped  according  to  the  old  Popish  forms  ?  Yes. 
Every  person  that  knows  any  thing  of  the  history  of 
the  liturgy,  knows  all  this  to  be  true.     Is  it  not 

T    2 


292  DEFENCE  or  TirE 

strange,  then,  that  Mr  Rhine!  should  abuse  his  rea- 
der with  a  whole  string  of  fictions  ?  I  cannot  but 
heartily  wish,  that  our  Scotch  prelatic  writers  would 
consult  one  another  before  they  publish  their  pro- 
ductions. For,  if  Mr  Rhind  is  right,  he  has  quite 
defeated  Dr  South,  Mr  Calder,  the  late  vindicator 
of  the  fundamental  charter,  and  I  know  not  how 
many  more  of  them,  who  make  Faithful  Gumming 
and  Thomas  Heath,  a  Jesuit,  the  first  authors  of  ex- 
temporary prayer  in  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign,  about 
twenty  years  after  the  compiling  of  the  liturgy. 
Plainly,  the  Other  writefs  of  the  party  make  extem- 
porary prayer  an  invention  to  put  the  liturgy  out  of 
request  after  it  was  formed.  JBut  Mr  Rhind  makes 
extemporary  prayer  to  have  been  first,  and  the  li- 
turgy to  have  been  compiled  and  imposed,  on  pur- 
pose to  remead  the  ill  effects  of  it,  and  to  prevent 
them  for  the  future.  Did  ever  any  party  before 
blow  thus  cold  and  hot  ?  Was  ever  party  so  doom- 
ed, as  they  are,  to  contradict  one  another,  or  to 
blurt  out  what  comes  first,  without  regarding  what 
they  say  or  whereof  they  affirm. 

Some  perhaps,  may  allege,  in  excuse  of  M( 
Rhind,  that  he  meant  all  this  of  the  Scots  Liturgy, 
sent  down  by  King  Charles  I.,  anno  16S7.  No. 
Through  all  his  book,  he  does  not  so  much  as  once 
mention  that  Liturgy ;  the  English  Liturgy  he  does, 
and  sets  it  in  opposition  to  the  Westminster  Direc- 
tory, p.  174.  Besides,  there  was  no  need  of  the  as- 
sistance of  the  Spirit  in  composing  that :  For,  ex- 
cept in  some  things  wherein  it  comes  nearer  to  Po- 
pery, and  some  few  other  things  utterly  indifferent^ 
it  was  copied  verbatim  from  the  English  Liturgy* 
And  as  they  did  not  need,  so  the  event  plainly 
shewed,  that  they  had  not  the  assistance  of  the  Spi- 
rit either  in  composing  or  imposing  of  it.  It  was 
imposed  without  law  by  the  arbitrary  will  of  the 
Prince  ;  and  I  am  sure  the  Spirit  of  God  never  as- 
sists men  in  illegal  practices.  And  for  the  com- 
poser of  it,  it  is  know'n  Archbishop  Laud  was  the  fa- 
ther of  it,  with  the  consent  of  some  others  no  whit 

3 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  293 

better  than  himself;  and  that  common  prayer 
proved  indeed  the  common  fire  of  both   nations. 

*  We  shall  find  them,'  (the  Bishops)  saith  the  ex- 
cellent Lord  Falkland  in  his  forecited  speech,  '  to 

*  have  kindled  and  blown  the  common  hre  of  both 

*  nations ;  to  have  both  sent  and  maintained  that 

*  book ;  of  which  the  author,  no  doubt,  hath  long 

*  since  wished,  with  Nero,  Utinam  nescissem  Uteras  ! 

*  And  of  which,  more  than  one  kingdom  hath  cause 

*  to  wish,  that  when  he  wrote  that,  he  had  rather 

*  burned  a  library,  though  of  the  value  of  Ptole- 

*  my's.*  Plainly,  the  great  intendment  of  that  book 
,was  a  conformity  with  England,  by  which  we  were 
never  much  gainers  in  former  times ;  though  no 
doubt  we  shall  be  so,  now  that  we  are  upon  the 
footing  of  an  union,  so  legally  founded,  and  whose 
articles  have  hitherto  been  so  sacredly  maintained. 
But  enough  of  this  argument. 

Secondlij,  Mr  Rhind  argues  for  the  excellency  of 
the  Liturgic  way  from  universal  practice.     '  It  has 

*  been,'  saith  he,  p.  161,  *  undeniably  tlie  practice 

*  of  all  men,  in  all  nations  and  ages,  (if  we  shall 
'  only  except  these  who  truly  were,  or  falsely  pre- 

*  tended  to  be  inspired,)  to  address  the  true  God, 

*  or  their  supposed  deities,  by  certain  forms.'  Mr 
Rhind  is  too  positive.  For  as  he  cannot  but  know 
that  this  has  been  denied,  so,  without  the  spirit  of 
prophecy,  I  can  foretel,  it  will  be  denied  to  the  end 
of  the  world.  '  The  practice  of  all  men,'  saith  he, 
in  all  nations  and  ages  ?'  Why,  first,  did  our  first 
parents,  in  the  estate  of  innocence,  worship  by 
forms  ?  No  man  ever  dreamed  it ;  and  I  think  Mil- 
ton would  charm  any  body  from  the  belief  of  it,  by 
his  incomparably  beautiful  lines,  wherein  he  des- 
cribes their  morning  devotions,  which  they  paid  to 
their  Maker  at  the  door  of  their  bower.  * 

Lowly  they  bow'd  adoring,  and  began 
Their  orisons,  each  morning  duly  paid 
In  various  stile,  for  neither  various  stile 

*  Paradise  Lost,  Book  V.  1,  144. 


294 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


Nor  holy  rapture  wanted  they  to  praise 

Their  Maker,  in  fit  strains  pronounced  or  sung 

Unmeditated,  such  prompt  eloquence 

Flovv'd  from  their  lips  in  prose  or  numerous  verse 

More  tuneable  than  needed  lute  or  harp 

To  add  more  sweetness. 

This  was  the  original  practice,  and  it  is  to  that  we 
ought  to  aspire.     2r%,  Did  any  of  the  other  ante- 
diluvian patriarchs  worship  by  forms  ?     Not  a  word 
of  this  in  the  Scripture,  and  that  is  the  only  book 
which  gives  us  the  history  of  that  time.     It  is,  in- 
deed said,  Gen.  iv.  26.  '  Tlien  began  men  to  call 
'  upon  the  name  of  the  Lord.'     But,  waving  other 
senses  of  that  text.  Bishop  Patrick  tells  us,  that  a 
great  number  of  the  Jewish  writers,  with  whom  Mr 
Selden  joins  in  his  De  Diis  Syris^  and  the  Arabic 
interpreter,  expound  it  thus  :  *  Then  was  there  pro- 
*  fanation,  by  invoking  the  name  of  the  Lord,'  viz. 
by  giving  it  impiously  to  creatures.     Whether  that 
be  the  exact  right  sense  and  translation  or  not,  is  not 
to  our  present  purpose  ;  yet  thence  we  may  gather, 
that  it  is  impossible  ever  to  hammer  a  liturgy  out  of 
it.     3f//z/,  Did  Abraham,  Isaac,  Jacob,  or  any  other, 
down  to  Moses,  use  a  liturgy,  or  worship  by  forms  ? 
No.    Tliere  is  not  the  least  intimation  thereof  in  the 
Scripture.     Here,  then,  we  find  2000  years  ;   that 
is,  the  third  part  of  the  vv^orld's  age  fully  spent,  with- 
out so  much  as  a  hint  of  forms-     How,  then,  could 
it  be  the  practice,  in  all  ages,  to  worship  by  them  ? 
Yet,  further,  4:ilily,  Is  there  any  hint  of  forms  for 
the  space  of  five  hundred  years  after,  viz.  from  Mo- 
ses to  David  ?  It  is  true,  we  read  of  a  form  of  words 
used  upon  some  solemn  occasions,  such  as  the  Priest's 
blessing  the  people,  Numb,  vi,  and  the  thanksgiving 
at  the  offering  of  the  first  fruits,  Deut.  xxvi. ;  and 
when  the  ark  went  forward  or  rested,  Numb.  x. — 
But,  that  there  was  a  stated  form  for  their  daily  ser- 
vice, there  is  a  deep  silence  in  the  Scripture ;  which 
is  a  certain  argument,  that  there  was  none,  seeing 
the  Scripture  is  so  minute  in  observing  particulars  of 
niuch  less  moment.     It  is  hardly  to  be  thought,  that 


FRESBYTEUIAN    WORSHIP.  295 

the  Scripture,  which  noticed  almost  every  pin  in  the 
tahcrnacle,  and  every  fringe  and  plait  in  the  priest's 
vestments,  would  have  omitted  the  form  of  words  to 
be  used  in  the  daily  service,  if  any  such  had  been 
prescribed. 

As  there  is  no  mention  of  any  liturgy  among  God*s 
peculiar  for  so  long  a  time ;  so,  I  believe,  it  is  as 
plain  that  there  was  none  used  elsewhere.  Homer, 
in  his  Iliad,  is  the  most  ancient,  authentic,  and  ju- 
dicious witness  extant,  of  the  devotions  of  the  Pa- 
gans, both  Greeks  and  Barbarians,  fie  hardly  ever 
brings  forth  his  heroes  to  fight,  or  leads  the  armies 
into  the  field,  but  he  sets  them  a-praying  ;  and  in- 
deed he  makes  them  pray  very  well,  according  to 
the  then  theology.  Yet  he  never  makes  the  parti- 
cular prayers  of  the  heroes,  nor  even  the  public 
prayers  of  the  army,  such  as  any  form  directed,  but 
such  as  their  present  circumstances  suggested  :  And 
Homer  knew  the  rules  of  decorum  better  than  to 
have  made  them  pray  eMempore,  if  it  had  been  the 
then  custom  to  pray  by  form. 

Thirdly^  He  argues  for  the  preference  of  the 
liturgic  way  from  heaven's  approbation  of  it,  both 
under  the  Old  and  New  Testament,  p.  162.  Well, 
where  is  this  approbation  to  be  found.  *  Why,' 
saith  he,  *  what  else  are  the  greatest  part  of 
'  the    Psalms    but    forms    of  prayer    and   praises, 

*  which  were  composed  for,  and  used  in  the  service 

*  of  the  Temple  V  Right.  And  the  Presbyterians 
make  use  of  them  to  this  day  in  their  public  wor- 
ship, as  much,  perhaps  more,  than  ever  the  Jews  did. 
So  that,  thus  far  we  are  for  ibrms  as  much  as  they. 
And  it  is  a  most  horrid  and  gross  calumny,  that 
the  Presbyterians  assert  the  unlawfulness  of  set 
forms.  I  desire  the  reader  to  advert  to  this, 
because,  not  only  Mr  Rhind,  but  his  whole  fellow 
writers  charge  them  with  it,  without  so  much  as 
offering  at  proof  of  it.  The  restricting  either 
ministers  or  people  to  forms,  to  pray  so  and  no 
otherwise,  they  avow  to  be  impious  tyranny  :  But, 
that  forms  are  in  themselves  unlawful,  they  never 


296  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

assert. — Besides,  it  is  ridiculous  to  argue  from  in* 
spired  forms  to  imman  compooures.  '  But,'  adds 
Mr  Rhind,  '  the  Jews  used  forms  of  their  own 
'  composure  in  the  synagogue,  where  our  Lord  was 

*  so  often  present,  and   yet  he  never  declared  a- 

*  gainst  them.'  But,  Ist,  Why  did  not  Mr  Rhind 
point  us  to  where  these  forms  might  be  found?  There 
is  not  the  least  mention  of  them  in  the  four  Gospels. 
'  The  curious,'  saith  he,  *  may  consult  them  in  the 

*  original  Hebrew,  or  as  they  are  translated   into 

*  the  more  known  languages.'  But  why  did  he 
not  name  the  book  ?  Every  body  knows  that  many 
of  their  pretended  ancient  forms  of  devotion  are  mere 
forgeries  ; — and  their  modern  forms  are  ridiculous 
in  the  last  degree.  2dhj,  Why  has  he  not  prov- 
ed that  these  synagogue  forms  were  imposed,  and 
that  such  as  officiated  were  restricted  to  them  ? 
Without  this  his  argument  signifies  nothing.  3dl?/, 
Was  every  thing  lawful  which  our  Lord  did  not 
declare  against  ?  By  the  law  of  God,  the  High  Priest- 
hood was  fixed  in  the  eldest  of  Aaron's  family. 
In  Christ's  time,  it  was  set  to  sale  in  the  most  mer- 
cenary manner.  Caiaphas  was  both  sacrilegious  and 
an  usurper.  But  where  did  Christ  declare  against 
either  tlie  person  or  the  practice  ?  '  But,'  urges 
he,  '  Christ  himself  prescribed  a  form,  which  is  a 
'  precedent,   whereas,    for   the  extemporary   way, 

*  there  is  neither  precept  nor  warrantable  example 

*  in  Scripture.'  Is  not  this  strange  confidence  ? 
Are  there  no  examples  of  prayer  in  the  New  Tes- 
tament but  the  Lord's  Prayer  ?  Is  there  the  least 
hint  that  any  one  of  them  was  made  by  a 
form  ?  Is  there  the  least  iiint  that  the  Lord's 
Prayer  itself  was  used  as  a  form  ?  Does  he  think 
none  of  the  prayers  in  the  New  Testament  were 
warrantable  ?  Let  him  find,  if  he  can,  from  the 
beginning  of  Matthew  to  the  end  of  the  Revela- 
tion, so  much  as  any  one  prayer  made  by  a  form, 
and  i  will  quit  him  the  cause.  Even  the  Lord's 
Prayer  itself,  when  it  was  prescribed  by  Christ,  yet 
V\'nit  not  put  up  to  God  by  him  j  nay,  indeed  he 


PRESBYTERIAN  WORSHIP. 


297 


could  not  put  it  up  to  God — he  could  not  say,  For- 
give us  our  sins,  because  he  had  no  sins  to  be  for- 
given. And  as  for  his  prayer  in  the  garden,  will 
any  man  say  that  Christ  followed  a  form  in  it  ? 
Nay,  indeed,  is  not  an  agony  incompatible  with  a 
form  ?  A  form  is  too  cold  a  kind  of  service  for 
such  a  violent  exercise  of  the  soul.  Besides,  it  is 
certain  that  Christ  did  not  thrice  repeat  the  same 
prayer  in  the  same  very  words.  Nor  does  the  Scrip- 
ture assert  any  such  thing  as  has  been  lately  made 
out  *  beyond  possibility  of  reply.  And  to  make 
an  argument  for  stated  and  prescril)ed  forms,  as 
Mr  Rhind  does,  p.  173,  and  his  brethren  common- 
ly do,  from  the  Apostles  using  frequently  the  same 
form  of  blessing,  is  below  even  meanness  itself. 
The  Apostle  Paul,  himself,  does  not  always  use  the 
very  same  words,  and  the  Apostles  Peter  and  John 
difter  in  their  words  both  from  him  and  from  one 
another.  Suppose  they  had  all  three  used  the  same 
words  always,  it  could  not  have  so  much  as  the 
semblance  of  an  argument  for  a  liturgy. 

Fourilily,  He  argues  for  the  Liturgic  way,  from 
the  usage  of  it  in  the  primitive  and  ancient  Church, 

*  Certain  stated  forms,'  saith  he,  p.  IGG",  *  being  then 

*  universally  used  in   the   most  solemn   administra- 

*  tions.'  It  were  some  comfort  to  have  to  do  with 
an  adversary,  who  at  least  pretended  to  proof;  but, 
to  be  obliged  still  to  dispute  against  mere  asser- 
tion, is  the  most  irksome  thing  in  the  world.  Our 
Episcopal  Liturgists,  a  considerable  while  ago,  gave 
advertisement  to  the  nation,  t  that  they  were  to  re- 
print a  body  of  liturgies,  to  shew,  (I  keep  their  own 
words),  '  that  in  all  churches  and  ages  of  Christi- 
'  anity,  liturgies  have  been  used.'  They  were  in- 
stantly taken  up  on  this,  X  and  desired  to  begin  at 
the  right  end,  and  to  publish  the  liturgies  of  the 
three  first  centuries,  which  would  be  a  more  pre- 

*  See  Calder's  Ans.  to  the  I.  Dialogue  Examined,  p.  36,  37. 

f    Scots  Courant,  Number  1087. 

%  Sec  Letter  to  a  Friend  concerning  Mr  Calder's  Kctiun,  p.  15. 


298  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

vailing  argument  with  the  Presbyterians,  than  the 
liturgies  of  ten  centuries  immediately  back  from 
ourselves  can  be.  But  nothing  of  this  have  they 
done ;  and  I  am  very  well  assured  it  cannot  be 
done.  They  are  so  far  from  being  able  to  give  us 
the  liturgies  of  all  Churches,  that  I  here  defy  them 
to  give  us  the  liturgy  of  any  one  Church,  through 
the  broad  earth,  during  that  period.  But  this  is  the 
ordinary  politic  of  the  writers  of  that  side,  to  gull 
their  lay  friends  with  promises,  of  what  every  man 
in  the  world,  who  knows  any  thing  of  these  matters, 
knows  to  be  impossible  to  be  performed.  Certainly 
the  Lord's  Supper  is  the  most  solemn  of  all  the 
Christian  administrations  ;  and  if  prescribed  forms 
had  been  used  any  where,  they  would  be  most  like- 
ly to  be  found  there.  The  Liturgical  party,  then, 
is  desired,  as  they  value  the  reputation  of  their  judge- 
ment or  learning,  and  as  tliey  would  not  be  held  for 
meer  quacks  and  mountebanks,  to  publish  the  pre- 
scribed forms  that  were  used  in  the  administration 
of  the  Lord's  Supper  for  the  first  three  centuries  : 
Nay,  to  make  their  task  easier,  to  prove  that  there 
were  prescribed  forms  used  in  the  administration  of 
it.  In  the  mean  time  let  the  reader  say,  what  un- 
paralleled confidence  it  was  in  Mr  llhind,  to  boast  of 
universal  usage,  and  yet  not  to  adduce  so  much  as 
one  small  instance  for  the  proof  of  it.  But  there  is 
a  people  in  the  world  that  make  lies  their  refuge, 
and  therefore  we  are  not  to  wonder  at  it. 

Lastly,  he  argues  from  the  practice  of  the  reform- 
ed churches  p.  167.  It  is  very  true  the  reformed 
churches  have  their  Liturgies.  But  I  have  already  * 
proved,  that  the  Scots  were  not  restricted  to  Knox's 
liturgy,  but  allowed  to  use  their  own  freedom.  The 
like  is  plainly  observable  in  the  Belgic,  French, 
Geneva  and  German  liturgies.  Nay,  some  of  the 
foreign  liturgies  are  not  so  much  liturgies  as  direc- 
tories. Such  is  the  Liturgia  Tigurmay  published  by 
Lavater.  The  Reformers  found  it  necessary,  in  the 
beginning  of  the  Reformation,  both  upon  the  ac- 

*  Sec  beloic,  p.  9. 


rUESlJYTEllIAN  Vv^ORSHIP.  299 

count  of  people's  ignorance,  being  newly  come  out 
of  tlie  Popish  darkness,  and  upon  account  of  their 
having  been  accustomed  to  forms,  to  continue  on 
in  the  same  method  of  worship  ;  and  things  not 
being  yet  come  to  a  settlement  in  England,  and  the 
clergy  being  exceeding  weak,  Calvin,  in  his  letter 
to  the  Protector,  advised  a  stated  form  of  prayers. 
But  that,  when  things  are  brought  into  a  regular 
channel,  and  the  church  furnished  with  able  mi- 
nisters, they  should  yet  be  boiuid  up  from  praying 
to  God  as  his  Spirit  should  direct  them,  and  as  the 
emergent  necessities  of  their  people  might  require, 
the  reformers  never  intended,  Calvin  never  advised. 
On  the  contrary,  immediately  after  he  has  advised 
the  Protector  to  settle  a  stated  Ibrm  of  prayers,  he 
excites  him,  by  all  means  to  seek  out  for  able  mi- 
nisters, that  so  the  native  vigour  of  the  gospel  might 
not  languish  through  occasion  of  that  political  set- 
tlement.* S(j  much  for  Mr  ilhind's  arguments  for 
the  Liturgic  way,  which  this  nation,  I  am  sure,  has 
no  reason  to  be  fond  of,  when  it  is  remembered  that 
we  never  knew  in  earnest,  from  the  first  dawnino- 
of  the  Reformation,  what  war,  confusion,  and 
bloodshed  meant,  till  a  certain  headstrong  party 
would  needs  impose  it  upon  us  in  an  arbitrary  man- 
ner, and  restrict  the  nation  to  it,  not  only  without 
reason  or  argument,  but  even  without  shadow  of 
law. 

He  proceeds  next,  p.  169,  &:c.  to  answer  the  ob- 
jection against  restricting  people  to  forms,  vrz.  that 
they  stint  the  Spirit.  And  in  answer  to  this,  he  ab- 
solutely denies  that  the  Spirit  of  God  dictates  the 
substance  and  manner  of  prayer.  A  doctrine  hi- 
therto, I  believe,  unheard-of  among  Christians.    For, 

*  Sic  igitur  statum  esse  catcchismum  oportct,  statani  sa- 
cramentorum  adiiiinistralionern,  publicani  item  precum  for- 
inuiain.  Scd  non  hoc  eo  pertinct  ut  istius  politici  ordinis  in 
Ecclesia  occasione,  vigor  ille  nativiis  pra^dicationis  Kvangelii 
uUo  inodo  conscncscat.  la  illud  potius  incunibcnduni  est  tibi, 
ut  idouci  ct  soaori  BucciiuUoicti  cou(j[uirautur. — Calv.  Ep.  ad 
I'rotcct.  Angliic. 


300  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

it  is  one  of  the  peculiar  titles  of  the  Holy  Ghost 
to  be  styled  the  Spirit  of  supplication,  because  of 
that  special  influence  wliich  lie  hatli  in  the  bestow- 
ing of  this  gift.  And  as  a  Spirit  of  grace  and  sup- 
plication he  is  promised,  Zech.  xii.  10.  to  all  God'sf 
people.  And  Gal.  iv.  6.  it  is  given  as  the  charac- 
ter of  all  true  Christians,  that  '  God  hath  sent  forth 

*  the  Spirit  of  his  Son  into  their  hearts,  crying  Abba 
'  Father.'  But  Mr  Rhind  does  not  find  this  gift,  viz. 
the  Spirit  of  prayer,enumerated,  iCor.  xii. among  the 
other  extraordinary  gifts  which  were  bestowed  upon 
the  Church  at  Pentecost.  IS'o  wonder,  truly.  For 
it  is  none  of  the  extraordinary  gifts,  but  what  every 
good  Christian,  without  exception,  is  endued  with. 
Nor  did  ever  any  man  (before  Mr  Rhind)  that  wor- 
shipped the  true  God,  since  the  creation  of  the 
world,  deny,  that  ever  there  was  any  good  prayer 
which  was  not  suggested  by  the  Spirit  of  God.  But 
why  do  I  speak  of  the  worshippers  o£the  true  God? 
Even  the  Pagan  idolaters  had  a  better  sense  of  re- 
ligion than  Mr  Rhind.  Thus  Homer,  in  his  ninth 
Iliad,  brings  in  old  Plioenix  preaching  to  Achilles, 

*  Prayers  are  the  daughters  of  Almighty  Jove.' 

Upon  which  Madame  Dacier  comments  thus  :  *  For 
«  it  is  God  inspires  prayers,    and  teaches  men  to 

*  pray.'  The  Apostle  Paul  asserts  expressly,  Rom. 
viii.  26.   *  That  we   knew  not  what  we  should   pray 

*  for  as  we  ought :'  But  '  that  the  Spirit  helpeth  our 

*  infirmities,    and  maketh   intercession   for  us   with 

*  groans  that  cannot  be  uttered.'  But  if,  according 
to  Mr  Pthind's  doctrine,  the  Spirit  dictates  neither 
matter  nor  words,  neither  substance  nor  manner  of 
prayer,  how  can  he  be  said  to  help  our  infirmities  ? 
Mr  Rhind  saw  how  cross  this  text  lay  to  his  doc- 
trine, but,  to  avoid  the  force  of  it,  he  puts  such  a 
connnent  upon  it  as  was  never  heard  of  before,— 
such  a  connnent  as  is  heretical  in  the  highest  de- 
jr,ec, — nay,  such  a  comment  as  subverts  tlie  very 
ioundation  of  the  gospel.  I'lainly,  he  affirms  that 
men's  fervency  and  sincerity  in  })rayer  is  the  sole 
effect  of  their  own  endeavours;  and  that  the  cflice 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  301 

of  the  Holy  Ghost  is  not  to  excite  to,  or  assist  in 
prayer,  but  to  intercede  for  the  acceptance  of  it. 

That  I  may  not  be  thought  to  aggravate  matters, 
take  his  own  words,  p.  170,  171. 

*  And  if  the  Spirit  helpeth   our  infirmities,  it  is 

*  supposed  that  we  do  sometliing  ourselves,  and  that 

*  whatever  is  wanting  to  make  our  prayers  accept- 

*  able,    that,    and   that   only,    the  Spirit   supplies. 

*  Now,  that  the  Spirit  does  not  furnish  the  matter 

*  or  words  of  our  prayers,  appears  from  the  very 

*  text,  where  we  are  told,  that  the  assistance  which 

*  it  affords,  is  its  intercession,  which  is  not  made  in 

*  words,  but  with  groanings  that  cannot  be  uttered. 
'  Thus  you  see  this  text  is  so  flir  from  serving  their 

*  purpose,  that  it  rather  proves  against  them,  see- 

*  ing  it  plainly  supposetli  that  men  use  their  endea- 
'  vours.     Now,  what  endeavours  can  they  use,  but 

*  to  prepare  the  matter,  to  reduce  it  to  a  form,  and 

*  to  carry  along  with  them  as  much  fervency  and 
'  sincerity  as   they  can,  ctiid  then  the  Holij  Ghost 

*  does  in  an  ineffable  manner  intercede  for  the  ac- 

*  ceptance  of  the  'wliole*     Thus  he. 

Here  is  doctrine  for  Christians  wath  a  witness. 
Firsts  an  absolute  denial  of  all  internal  operation  of 
the  spirit  of  God  in  us ;  not  only  in  opposition  to 
the  Scripture,  which  it  appears  to  have  no  regard 
to,  but  in  direct  contradiction  to  the  English  litur- 
gy, which  teaches  *  that  all  holy  desires  proceed 
from  God.  Secondly,  An  inverting  the  office  of  the 
persons  in  the  sacred  Trinity,  by  making  the  Holy 
Ghost  our  Mediator  for  acceptance  instead  of  Christ. 
Hear    Dr  Whitby  on  the   fore-cited  text.      *  The 

*  spirit  of  God,'  saith  he,  *  is  said  to  intercede  for 

*  us,  not  as  an  advocate  or  intercessor  betwixt  God 

*  and  us,  that  being  the  office  of  our  great  High  Priest^ 

*  but  as  an  exciter  or  director  of  us  in  our  addresses 
«  to  God,  to  render  them  for  mailer  according  to 

*  the  will  of  God,  and  for  manner  fervent  and  ef- 

*  fectual.'  Thus  he,  in  a  peremptory  contradiction 
to  Mr  lihind's   doctrine.     To  Dr   Whitby,  let  ui 

*  Second  Collect,  at  Evening  Prayer. 


302  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

join  BIsllop  Wilkins.  t  «  The  spirit  of  God,'  saith 
lie,  '  must  be  our  guide  and  assistance  in  this  duty. 

*  He  must  lielp  our  iniirmities  and  make  interces- 

*  sion  for  us.  Not  that  the  Holy  Gbiost  is  our  Medi- 
'  ator  of  intercession,  tliat  is  properly  tlie  office  of 

*  the  Son,  who  is  therefore  stiled  our  advocate. — 

*  There  is  one  Mediator  betwixt  God  and  Man,  tlie 

*  Man  Christ  Jesus.     It  is  he  only  that  in  respect  of 

*  his  merits  and  sufferings  does  make  intercession 
'  for  us,  Rom.  viii.  34.     Eut  now,  because  the  spi- 

*  ritof  God  does  excite  our  hearts  to  pray,  and  in- 

*  fii^e  in  us  holy  desires,  stirring  us  up  to,  and  in- 

*  structing  us  in  our  duty,  t'nerefore  he  is  said  to  in- 
^  tercede  for  us.'  Thus  he,  and  thus  all  the  Chris- 
tian world  ever  taught. 

And  thus  now  I  have  laid  out  this  particular  with 
all  fairness.  Mr  Rhind's  doctrine  is  evidently  he- 
retical and  subversive  of  the  gospel :  and  I  lay  it 
before  the  Episcopal  clergy  for  their  censure.  If 
they  shall  in  a  pubhc  manner  disown  it,  it  is  not  to 
be  imputed  to  them,  nor  any  more  noise  to  be  made 
about  it.  But  if  not,  they  must  excuse  us,  if  we 
look  upon  them  as  abettors  of  the  avowed  enemies 
of  Christianity. 

Whatever  else  Mr  Rliind  has  advanced  on  this 
head  is  like  the  talk  of  a  man  troubled  with  a  deli- 
rium. Such  as,  Jir.st,  *  that  means  are  useless  if  our 
'  prayers  be  immediately  inspired,  and  that  they 
'  ought  to  be  registrated  among  the  infillible  dic- 

*  tates  of  the  spirit  which  the  modern  prophets  pre- 

*  tended  to.'  p.  17 J,  172.  For  the  Presbyterians  nei- 
ther do,  nor  ever  did  pretend  to  an  unerring  dicta- 
ment  of  the  spirit  in  their  prayers,  but  to  such  gra- 
cious infusions,  excitations  and  directions,  in  the 
use  of  means,  both  as  to  the  matter  and  manner  of 
our  prayers,  as  we  have  just  now  heard  Dr  Whitby 
and  Bishop  Wilkins  pleading  for.  And  as  to  the 
modern  prophets,  he  ought,  out  of  respect  to  his 
own  party,  to  have  been  silent  about  them,  seeing 
all  their  proselytes  were  gained  from  the  Episcopal 

■f  Ul)i  snpra,  p.  4,  5. 


rnESBYTElUAN    WOUSIIIl'.  303 

side,  according  to  tlie  best  information  I  can  liave. 
Of  the  same  nature  is  what  he  says,  2dlij,  '  That  the 
*  Presbyterians  can  have  no  title  to  the  influences  of 
«  the  Spirit,  because  they  have  departed  from  the 
'  communion  of  the  church.' p.  172.    I  hope  indeed 
there  is  no  Presbyterian  within  the  communion  of 
Mr  Rhind's  church.     For  to  deny  the  assistance  of 
the  Spirit  as  to  the  matter  and  manner  of  our  prayers, 
making  them  the  fruit  of  our  own  endeavours  allen- 
arly  ;  and  to  assign  to  the  Spirit  the  office  (which  is 
Christ's  peculiar)  of  pleading  with  God  for  his  ac- 
ceptance of  our  prayers  ;  is,  I  affirm,  such  execrable 
doctrine,  as  is  inconsistent  with   the  possibility  of 
salvation,  if  continued  in.     To  as  good  purpose  is 
what  he  adds,  Sdly,  *  That  the  Presbyterians  praise 
'  God  by  certain  forms,  without  regard  to  the  stint- 
'  ing  of  the  Spirit,  vv|ien   it  is  undeniable  that  the 
'  Spirit  can  as  freely  dictate  praises  as  prayers,  and 
*  metre  as  well  as  prose.'  p.  173.     Right,  he  can  do 
so.     And   has  he  not  dictated  the  matter  of  the 
psalms  ?     And  does  he  not  assist  as  to  the  manner, 
I  mean,  with  fervency  and  sincerity  in  singing  them  ? 
And  is  not  every  minister  in  this  congregation  left 
at  freedom  to  pitch  upon   such  a  portion   of  them, 
for  the  spiritual  solace  of  his  people,  as  the  spirit  of 
God,  in  the  use  of  rational  consideration,  suggests 
to  him  to  be  most  suitable  to  their  case  ?     Here  is 
all  the  freedom  was  ever  pleaded  for  by  the  Presby- 
terians.   Whereas  by  the  liturgy,  ministers  are  oblig- 
ed to  such  particular  psalms,  according  to  the  day 
of  the  month  appointed  by  the  book,  how  unsuitable 
soever  tliey  may  be  to  the  present  case  of  the  con- 
gregation.    4//(!/7/,  He  would  know  of  his  adversaries 
what  they  understand  by  stinting  the  Spirit,  p.  173. 
He  had  reason  indeed  to  ask  them,  because  it  is 
very  plain  he  himiself  knew  not.     I  can   impute  it 
to  nothing  but  vapours,  that  he  imagines  they  con- 
stitute the  Spirit  of  prayer  in  a  freedom  of  changing 
the  phrases,  and  transposing  the  petitions.     But  I 
shall  explain  the  matter  to  him  by  some  few  instan- 
ces which  may  make  it  easily  understood.     A  mini- 


302  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

join  Bisliop  Wllkins.  1      '  The  spirit  of  God,'   salth 
he,  '  must  be  our  guide  and  assistiinee  in  this  duty- 

*  He  must  help  our  infirmities  and  make  interces- 

*  sion  for  us.  Not  that  the  Holy  Ghost  is  our  Medi- 
'  ator  of  intercession,  that  is  properly  tlie   office  of 

*  the  Son,  who  is  therefore  stiled  our  advocate. — 

*  Tliere  is  one  Mediator  betwixt  God  and  Man,  the 

*  Man  Christ  Jesus.     It  is  he  only  that  in  respect  of 

*  his  merits  and  sufferings  does  make  intercession 
'  for  us,  Rom.  viii.  34.     But  now,  because  the  spi- 

*  ritof  God  does  excite  our  hearts  to  pray,  and  in- 

*  fu^e  in  us  holy  desires,  stirring  us  up  to,  and  in- 

*  structing  us  in  our  duty,  therefore  he  is  said  to  in- 

*  tercede  lor  us.'  Thus  he,  and  thus  all  the  Chris- 
tian world  ever  taught. 

And  thus  now  I  have  laid  out  this  particular  with 
all  fairness.  Mr  Rhind's  doctrine  is  evidently  he- 
retical and  subversive  of  the  gospel :  and  I  lay  it 
before  the  Episcopal  clergy  for  their  censure.  If 
they  shall  in  a  public  manner  disown  it,  it  is  not  to 
be  imputed  to  them,  nor  any  more  noise  to  be  made 
about  it.  But  if  not,  they  must  excuse  us,  if  we 
look  upon  them  as  abettors  of  the  avowed  enemies 
of  Christianity. 

Whatever  else  Mr  Rhind  has  advanced  on  this 
head  is  like  the  talk  of  a  man  troubled  with  a  deli- 
rium. Such  as,  Jirsl,  *  that  means  are  useless  if  our 
'  prayers  be  immediately  inspired,  and  that  they 
'  ought  to  be  registrated  among  the  infallible  dic- 

*  tates  of  the  spirit  which  the  modern  prophets  pre- 

*  tended  to.*  p.  17J,  172.  For  the  Presbyterians  nei- 
ther do,  nor  ever  did  pretend  to  an  unerring  dicta- 
ment  of  the  spirit  in  their  prayers,  but  to  such  gra- 
cious infusions,  excitations  and  directions,  in  the 
use  of  means,  both  as  to  the  matter  and  manner  of 
our  prayers,  as  we  have  just  now  heard  Dr  Whitby 
and  Bishop  Wilkins  pleading  for.  And  as  to  the 
modern  prophets,  he  ought,  out  of  respect  to  his 
own  party,  to  have  been  silent  about  them,  seeing 
all  their  proselytes  were  gained  from  the  Episcopal 

-]-  Uhi  supra,  p.  4,  5. 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  303 

side,  according  to  tlie  best  information  I  can  have. 
Of  the  same  nature  is  what  he  says,  'Zdlij,  '  That  the 
*  Presbyterians  can  liave  no  title  to  the  influences  of 
'  the  Spirit,  because  they  have  departed  from  the 
'  communion  of  tlie  church.' p.  172.    I  hope  indeed 
there  is  no  Presbyterian  witliin  the  communion  of 
Mr  Rhind's  cluuxh.     For  to  deny  the  assistance  of 
the  Spirit  as  to  the  matter  and  manner  of  our  prayers, 
making  them  the  fruit  of  our  own  endeavours  allen- 
arly  ;  and  to  assign  to  the  Spirit  the  office  (which  is 
Christ's  pecuHar)  of  pleading  with  God  for  his  ac- 
ceptance of  our  prayers  ;  is,  I  affirm,  such  execrable 
doctrine,  as  is  inconsistent  with  the  possibility  of 
salvation,  if  continued  in.     To  as  good  purpose  is 
wliat  he  adds,  Sdly,  *  That  the  Presbyterians  praise 
'  God  by  certain  forms,  without  regard  to  the  stint- 
'  ing  of  the  Spirit,  wjien   it  is  undeniable  that  the 
'  Spirit  can  as  freely  dictate  praises  as  prayers,  and 
*  metre  as  well  as  prose.'  p.  173.     Right,  he  can  do 
so.     And   has   he  not  dictated  the  matter  of  the 
psalms?     And  does  he  not  assist  as  to  the  manner, 
I  mean,  with  fervency  and  sincerity  in  singing  them  ? 
And  is  not  every  minister  in  this  congregation  left 
at  freedom  to  pitch  upon   such   a  portion   of  them, 
for  the  spiritual  solace  of  his  people,  as  the  spirit  of 
God,  in  the  use  of  rational  consideration,  suggests 
to  him  to  be  most  suitable  to  their  case  ?     Here  is 
all  the  freedom  Avas  ever  pleaded  for  by  the  Presby- 
terians.   Whereas  by  the  liturgy,  ministers  are  oblig- 
ed to  such  particular  psalms,  according  to  the  day 
of  the  month  appointed  by  the  book,  how  unsuitable 
soever  they  may  be  to  the  present  case  of  the  con- 
gregation.    4/A/y,  He  would  know  of  his  adversaries 
what  they  understand  by  stinting  the  Spirit,  p.  173. 
He  had  reason  indeed  to  ask  them,  because  it  is 
very  plain  he  himiself  knew  not.     I  can   impute  it 
to  nothing  but  vapours,  that  he  imagines  they  con- 
stitute the  Spirit  of  prayer  in  a  freedom  of  changing 
the  phrases,  and  transposing  the  petitions.     IJut  I 
shall  explain  the  matter  to  him  by  some  few  instan- 
ces which  may  make  it  easily  luidcrstood.     A  mini- 


304  tSETE^CK   OF    THE 

ster,  [  shall  suppose,  is  to  meet  with  his  congregation 
for  worshipping  God.  Before  he  comes  forth  to 
them,  he  has  taken  pains  to  get  his  soul  impressed 
with  a  deep  sense  of  the  particular  sins  and  wants 
of  the  people  committed  to  his  charge.  When  he  is 
come  to  church,  according  to  the  Presbyterian  way, 
he  is  at  freedom  in  prayer  to  break  out  into  a  par- 
ticular confession  of  their  sins,  with  their  particular 
aggravations  ;  and  to  make  a  particular  representa- 
tion of  their  case  before  God,  and  to  use  such  plead- 
ings with  him  for  them,  as  are  warranted  or  prece- 
dented  in  Scripture  in  the  like  case.  This  is  surely 
the  most  reasonable  service,  most  acceptable  to  God, 
and  most  likely  to  affect  and  edify  both  the  minister 
and  people.  But  on  the  other  hand,  by  the  litur- 
gic  way,  a  minister  must  not  so  much  as  venture  on 
any  thing  of  this,  but  is  obliged  to  content  himself 
with  that  dry  and  general  confession  which  is  in  the 
book,  and  that  under  all  the  pains  of  nonconformi- 
ty ;  which,  how  heavy  they  are,  many  thousands 
have  felt,  in  the  ruin  of  all  their  worldly  concerns. 
Is  not  this  a  stinting  of  the  spirit  with  a  witness  ? 

Cant  is  a  term  of  reproach,  which  the  Episcopa- 
lians (Mr  Rhind  too,  among  the  rest,  p.  190,  lOv), 
never  fail  to  twit  the  Presbyterians  with.  This 
they  improve  so  mightily  upon,  that  if  some  young 
fellow  of  them,  when  setting  out  into  the  world, 
have  picked  up  that  word  any  where  at  a  conversa- 
tion over  a  bottle,  the  empty  thing  concludes  him- 
self stocked,  and  strait  commences  both  wit  and 
atheist  upon  it ;  and  thenceforth  pronounces  all  se- 
rious piety,  especially  the  Presbyterian  prayers,  to  be 
cant;  because,  forsooth,  there  was  one  Mr  Cant 
once  a  Presbyterian  minister  at  Aberdeen.  I  confess 
it  is  not  through  any  defect  of  duncery,  any  more 
than  of  debauchery,  that  they  talk  at  this  rate.  Cant 
is  truly  a  term  borrowed  from  the  begging  trade. 
When  the  idle  feigned  fellows  are  got  into,  and  chime 
over  to  every  passenger,  a  rote  of  words,  not  which 
the  sense  of  want  suggests;  but  which  they  have 
contrived  and  conned  for  their  purpose.     This  is 


TRESBYTERlAX  WORSHIP.  305 

indeed  cant,  and  there  is  too  much  cause  to  impute 
this  to  the  liturgic  worship,  wliere  they  still  tone 
over  the  self-same  thing  the  self-same  way,  whatever 
disposition  they  find  their  souls  in.  But  on  no  ac- 
count can  it  he  charged  on  the  Presbyterian  way, 
even  in  sense,  much  less  in  justice  :  For  it  is  their 
case  and  their  want  which  is  their  prompter ;  and 
they  think  it  a  ridiculous  thing  to  be  obliged  to  beg 
by  rule.  *  Yet  further,  that  I  may  make  Mr  Rhind 
understand  what  the  Presbyterians  mean  by  stinting 
the  spirit,  I  shall  suppose  the  minister  has  read  the 
morning  prayers  in  the  liturgy  with  his  congrega- 
tion ;  and  now  he  intends  to  preach  to  them.  Is  it 
not  reasonable  that,  ere  he  begin,  he  should  put  up 
a  particular  petition  for  assistance,  to  himself  in 
speaking,  and  to  the  people  in  hearing  ?  There  is  no 
such  petition  in  the  prayers  which  he  has  read  ; 
and  if  he  venture  upon  a  prayer  of  his  own  ;  strait 
all  the  highflyers  are  on  his  back,  and  Dr  South  tells 
him,  t  that  it  is  senseless  and  absurd  practice,  and 
that  the  canons  and  constitutions  of  the  church 
are  not  responsible  for  it ;  and  he  shall  be  sure  not 
to  escape  without  being  branded  for  a  puritan. 
The  same  will  his  fate  be,  if  he  adventure  to  pray 
over  his  sermon   after    he   has    preached  it.     *  We 

*  heartily  desire'  (said  the  eleven  bishops  and  other 
dignitied   cler<>:y   at  the   Savoy    conference)  t  '  that 

*  great  care  may  be  taken  to  suppress  those  private 

*  conceptions  of  prayer  before  and  after  sermon.'  § 
Is  not  this  to  stint  the  spirit  ?  Are  general  peti- 
tions enough,  as  Mr  Rhind  would  persuade  us,  p. 
174,  when  we  are  called   to  be   particular?     If  so, 

*  Men''  moveat  quippe,  et  Canlet  si  Naufragus  assem 
Prutulerim?  Canlas,  cum  Jr  ad  a  te  in  trabe  pictum 
Ex  liumero  partes.      Veruni,  7iec  node  paratum 
Plorabit,  qui  me  volet  incurvasse  quterela. 

F£KS.  Sat.  I.  I.  88. 
•f"    Sermon,  Vol.  IT.  on  F.ccles.  v.  2. 
\  bee  the  Conference,  j).  o?* 

§  ijee  Second  Dialogue  on  the  Liturgy,  p.  6,  7. 


306  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

then  I  propose  this  prayer  as  sufficient  for  tlie 
whole  :  *  Ahnighty  and  merciful  God,  we  beg  tliat 
'  thou  may  give  us  whatever  thou  knowest  to  be  iie- 

*  cessary  arid  convenient  for  us,  through  Jesus  Christ 

*  our  Lord,  Amen.'  I  will  undertake,  this  prayer  is 
as  comprehensive,  not  only  as  any,  but  even  as  all 
the  prayers  of  human  composure  in  the  liturgy  : 
Yet,  who  would  endure  to  be  restricted  to  such  a. 
general  ?  Yet,  farther,  when  people  are  restricted 
to  the  liturgic  way,  not  only  necessary  petitions  are 
omitted,  but  they  are  oft-times  forced  upon  petitions 
which  are  either  absurd  in  themselves,  or  against 
which  their  conscience  recoils,  so  they  cannot  put 
them  up  in  faith.  To  give  an  instance  or  two, 
when  the  Prince  of  Orange  landed  in  England, 
1688,  it  was  very  well  known  the  body  of  the  Eng- 
lish clergy  favoured  his  attempt,  yet,  for  several 
months  after,  they  not  only  were  obliged  in  law, 
but  actually  did  pray  for  King  James,  begging,  in  the 
words  of  the  liturgy,  that  God  would  confound  the 
devices  of  his  enemies.  Once  more,  when  Prince 
George  of  Denmark,  her  Majesty^s  husband,  was 
dead,  the  clergy  continued  as  formerly  to  pray  for 
issue  to  her  Majesty,  till  that  clause  of  the  liturgy 
was  discharged  by  an  order  of  the  Council.  This  is 
no  secret,  for  we  had  it  in  the  public  news  prints. 
"Were  these  petitions  either  reasonable  or  decent  ? 
I  hope  by  this  time  Mr  Rhind  understands  what 
the  Presbyterians  mean,  when  they  say,  the  spirit  is 
stinted  by  forms.  SiJilij,  He  objects,  p.  174,  that 
^  if  the  preparing  the  substance  of  a  prayer  does 

*  stint  the  spirit,  then  are  they  who  are  obliged  to 
'  follow  the  Westmiinster  Directory,  no  less  guilty 

*  than  they  who  use  the  liturgy  of  the  Church  of 

*  England/  It  is  answered  :  No  man  is  obliged 
to  follow  the  Westminster  Directory  so  closely,  but 
that  he  may  leave  out  some  of  the  petitions  men- 
tioned in  it,  or  insert  others  as  in  prudence  he  shall 
think  meet.  Thus  itself  directs,  *  We  judge  this  to  be 

*  a  convenient  order,  in  the  ordinary  public  prayers, 
'  yet  so,  as  the  minister  may  defer  (as  in  prudence 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  307 

*  he  shall  think  meet),  some  part  of  these  petitions, 

*  till  after  his  sermon,  or  offer  up  to  God  some 
'  of  the  thanksgivings  hereafter  appointed   in  his 

*  prayer  before  his  sermon.'  And  as  to  the  very 
words  in  the  Directory,  the  minister  is  not  at  all  re- 
stricted to  them,  but  only  to  call  upon  the  Lord  to 
this  effect.  But  Mr  Rhind  has  resolved  to  be 
throughout  chimerical.     Lastly^  He  objects,  p.  176, 

*  that  all  public  prayers  are  unavoidable  forms  to  the 

*  congregation,  and,   therefore,  stint  the  spirit  as 

*  much  as  any  liturgy  in  the  world.'  Senseless  stuff! 
The  people  meet  in  the  congregation,  not  to  offer 
up  their  own  separate  prayers,  but  to  join  with  the 
minister,  who  is  their  mouth  to  God  in  prayer,  as  he 
is  God's  mouth  to  them  in  preaching.  There  is,  then, 
nothing  required  of  them,  in  that  case,  but  fervency 
and  sincerity  in  joining  with  the  petitions  that  are 
put  up  for  them  ;  nor  does  the  spirit  operate  other- 
wise, in  that  case,  than  to  help  them  to  such  sinceri- 
ty and  fervency,  not  at  all  to  suggest  to  them  prayers 
of  their  own,  distinct  from  the  public  prayers. 

Thus,  now,  I  have  gone  through  Mr  Ilhind's  argu- 
ments, which,  thougTi  contemptible  in  the  last  de- 
gree, yet  are  not  only  the  best,  but,  indeed,  the  whole 
of  what  the  party  have  to  offer.  They  are  either  ig- 
norant of,  or  wilfully  mistake  the  Presbyterian  prin- 
ciples concerning  prayer,  and  then,  instead  of  dis- 
puting against  them,  they  dispute  against  their  own 
frantic  notions.  They  still  dispute,  as  we  heard 
Mr  Rhind  doing,  against  the  infallible  inspiration  of 
the  spirit  in  prayer.  But  such  as  cannot  conceive 
how  one  may  be  assisted  by  the  S])irit  either  in  pray- 
er, or,  indeed,  in  any  holy  exercise,  without  being 
under  his  infallible  conduct,  so  as  to  be  kept  alto- 
gether from  error  of  imperfection,  such,  I  say,  who 
cannot  conceive  this,  are  beyond  arguing  with,  and 
should  be  left  to  themselves.  That  every  good  man 
is  actuated  by  the  spirit  of  God,  is  the  common  belief 
of  the  whole  Christian  world.  But  if  any  man  should 
deny  this,  and  allege  that  it  would  follow  thence, 
that  every  good  man  were  perfect  and  infallible, 

u2 


308 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


what  else  should  people  do  but  pity  and  pray  for 
the  foolish  objeclor?  How  often  does  the  Church 
of  England  herself  pray  for  inspiration  ?  Thus,  in 
the  Collect  before  the  communion,  «  Cleanse  the 

*  thoughts    of    our    hearts    by   the   inspiration    of 

*  Thy  holy  Spirit.'  Thus,  in  the  Collect  on  the  fifth 
Sunday  alter  Easter,  *  Grant  to  us,  thy  humble  ser- 

*  vants,  that  by  Thy  holy  inspiration  we  may  think 

*  those  things  that  be  good.*  Thus,  in  the  prayer 
for  the  whole  state  of  Christ's  Church  militant,- — 

*  Beseeching  Thee  to  inspire  continually  the  univer- 
'  sal  church  with  the  spirit  of  truth.'  Does  any 
body  think  that  those  prayers  import  an  infallible 
guidance  and  assistance  ?  As  little  do  the  Presby- 
terians mean,  that  they  are  under  an  infallible  con- 
duct, when  they  say  their  prayers  are  inspired.  But 
our  Scotch  Episcopal  Clergy  neither  know  the  Scrip- 
tures, nor,  indeed,  the  English  Liturgy,  which  they 
are  so  fond  of.  Let  them  tell  us  in  what  sense 
they  understand  what  is  said  in  the  preamble  to 
the  Liturgy,  viz.   '  That  by  an  uniform   agreement 

*  it  was  concluded  on  by  the  aid  of  the  Hohj  Ghost/ 
and  then  we  shall  easily  explain  to  them  how 
our  prayers  are  inspired. 

I  shall  conclude  my  defence  of  conceived  prayer 
(which  I  have  hitherto  called  extemporary,  only  in 
compliance  with  Mr  Rhind's  phrase),  with^the  words 
of  Bishop  Wilkins,  who  at  once  shews  the  meanness 
of  Mr  lihind's  objections,  and  reproves  the  pro- 
faneness  of  his  spirit.* 

*  But  now,  in  the  second  place,  for  any  one  so  to 

*  sit  down  and  satisfy  himself  with  this  book-prayer, 

*  or  some  prescript  form,  as  to  go  no  farther,  this 

*  were   still  to  remain   in  his  infancy,  and   not  to 

*  grow  up  in  his  new  nature  :  This  would  be,  as  if  a 

*  man  who  had  once  need  of  crutches,  should  always 

*  afterwards  make  use  of  tliem,  and  so  necessitate 

*  himself  to  a  continual  impotence.     It  is  the  duty 

*  of  every  Christian  to  grow  and  encrease  in  all  the 

*  Ubi  Supra,  p.  9,  10. 


TRESBYTERIAN   WORSHIP.  309 

'  parts  of  Christianity,  as  well  gifts  as  graces  ;  to 
'  exercise  and  improve  every  iioly  gift,  and  not  to 

*  stifle  any  of  those  abiHties  wherewith  God   hath 

*  endued  them  :  Now,  how  can  a  man  be  said  to 
'  live  suitable  unto  these  rules,  who  does  not  put 
'  forth  himself  in  some  attempts  and  endeavours  of 

*  this  kind  ?     And  then,  besides,  how    can  such  a 

*  man  suit  his  desires  unto   several   emergencies  ? 

*  What  one  says  of  counsel  to  be  had  from  books, 
'  may  be  fitly  applied  to  this  prayer  by  book ;  that 
'  it  is  commonly,  of  itself,  something  flat  and  dead, 

*  floating,  for  the  most  part,  too  much  in  generalities, 

*  and  not  particular  enough  for  each  several  occa- 
'  sion.  There  is  not  that  life  and  vigour  in  it  to 
f  engage  the  affections,  as  when  it  proceeds  imme- 

*  diately  from  the  soul  itself,  and  is  the  natural  ex- 

*  pression  of  those  particulars  whereof  we  are  most 

*  sensible.     And  if  it  be  a  fault  not  to  strive  and 

*  labour  after  this    gift,    much  more  is  it  to  jeer 

*  and  despise  it  by  the  name  of  extempore  prayer, 
'  and  praying  by  the  spirit ;  which  expressions  (as 

*  they  are  frequently  used  by  some  men  by  way  of 

*  reproach),  are,  for  the  most  part,  a  sign  of  a  pro- 

*  fane  heart,  and  such  as  are  altogether  strangers 

*  from  the  power  and  comfort  of  this  duty.*  Thus 
Bishop  Wilkins.  And  had  others,  more  nearly  con- 
cerned, treated  Mr  Rhind  with  the  same  freedom, 
he  had  never  published  such  a  book ;  so  much  to  the 
scandal  of  religion,  and  the  shame  of  the  party  he 
writes  for. 


StCT.   II. 


Wherein  Mr  Rhind's  Objections  against  the  Presbyterian 
Doctrine  concerning  the  Sacraments,  and  his  Exceptions 
against  their  Manner  of  Dispensing  them^arc  considered ;  from 
p,  ill  to  p.  185. 

BAPTISM. 

To  begin  with  baptism.      Concerning  this,  Mr 
Rhind  asserts  roundly,  and  without  fsai  Firsts  That 


310  DEFENCE   OF    THE 

baptism  with  water  is  indispensibly  necessary,  see- 
ing without  it  none  can  reasonably  expect  to  be 
baptized  with  the  spirit,  or  tliat  they  shall  enter  into 
the  kingdom  of  God — nay,  that,  if  God*s  extraordi- 
nary mercy  does  not  interpose,  they  shall  be  damned 
without  it.  Secondly,  That  the  water  is  the  vehicle 
of  the  spirit,  and  that  the  inward  grace  does  always 
accompany  the  outward  mean,  when  it  encounters 
with  no  renitency  in  the  recipient.  Having  laid 
down  these  principles,  he  objects,  \st.  That  the 
Presbyterians  teach  that  baptism  is  of  no  efficacy. 
2dlij,  That  they  suffer  children  to  die  without  it. 
2>dl2jy  That  their  Confession  of  Faith,  whereof 
some  doctrines  are  dubious  and  some  impious 
and  false,  is  the  creed  into  which  they  baptize. 
4//z/j/,  That  the  genuine  Presbyterians  urge  the  obli- 
gation of  the  Solemn  League  and  Covenant,  and 
press  it  as  a  necessary  condition  of  the  child's  ad- 
mission to  baptism. 

As  for  his  first  assertion,  that  baptism  with 
water  is  indispensibly  necessary,  it  is  directly  Popish. 
The  Presbyterians  willingly  grant  that  the  contempt 
or  wilful  neglect  of  baptism  is  damnable — I  mean  in 
an  adult  person,  or  to  the  parent  who  neglects  to 
procure  it  for  his  child.  But  that  the  mere  want  of 
it  is  damnable  to  the  child,  or  to  an  adult  person, 
when  he  cannot  have  it  in  an  orderly  way,  that  is, 
according  to  Christ's  institution,  this,  I  affirm,  is  a 
damnable  error — an  error  which  gives  one  the  most 
unworthy  notions  of  God,  an  error  which  hath  been 
the  fruitful  mother  of  many  others,  and  of  the  most 
scandalous  practices.  It  is  to  this  error  the  Umhus 
infantum  owes  its  being — to  this  is  owing  the  practice 
of  lay  baptism,  by  women  as  well  as  men,  in  the 
Church  of  England;  yea  by  Jews,  Turks,  and  Pagans, 
as  well  as  by  Christians,  as  is  allowed  in  the  Church 
of  Rome.  It  is  to  this  error  these  hasty  baptisms 
are  owing,  where  there  is  no  profession  by,  no  spon- 
sion for  the  party  baptized ;  than  which  there  can 
hardly  be  a  greater  scandal  on  the  Christian  religion  ; 
for  it  exposes  that  holy  mystery  to  the  same  re- 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  311 

proaches  wherewith  the  heathen  lustrations  were 
so  justly  loaded.*  But  I  need  not  insist  on  this. 
The  excellent  Forbes  a  Corse,  before  cited,  has  suf- 
ficiently exposed  that  execrable  doctrine,  at  large, 
in  six  chapters.!  The  Church  of  Rome  has  found 
it  too  hard  for  her  to  answer  him  on  that  head. 
But,  indeed,  there  is  nothing  too  hard  for  our  mo- 
dern Episcopalians,  who  do  all  their  business  by  as- 
sertion, proof  being  too  great  a  drugery. 

Mr  Rhind's  second  assertion  is  like  unto  the  first. 
When  the,  Council  of  Trent  decreed,  1:  that  the  Sa- 
craments confer  grace,  N(m  'ponentlhus  obicem,  it 
gave  scandal  to  all  the  world.  For  it  turns  these 
sacred  ordinances  into  mere  charms.  Yet  Mr  Rhind 
has  new  vamped  it,  requiring  nothing  else  but  a  non- 
renitency  in  the  recipient ;  whereas  the  Scripture 
expressly  requires  the  positive  qualifications  of  faith 
and  repentance.  Yea,  the  Scots  Episcopal  Liturgy 
supposes  these  qualifications  even  in  infants.  Thus, 
in  the  Catechism : 

«  Q.   What  is  i^e  quired  of  persons  to  he  baptized? 

*  Ans.  Repentance,  whereby  they  forsake  sin  :  and 
faith,  whereby  they  stedflistly  believe  the  promises 
of  God,  made  to  them  in  the  sacrament. 

'  Q.  Why  then  are  infants  baptized,  zchen,  by  rea- 
son of  their  tender  age,  they  cannot  perform  them  ? 

«  Ans,  Yes  :  They  do  jJejform  them  by  their  sure- 
ties, who  promise  and  vow  them  both,  in  their  names  : 
which,  when  they  come  to  age,  themselves  are  bound 
to  perform." 

Thus  also  it  was  in  the  English  Liturgy :  but  af- 
ter the  Restoration,  they  altered  it,  and  dashed  out 
the  word  perform  in  the  beginning  of  the  answer  to 
the  last  question.     And  they  had  good  reason  to  do 

•  Omne  ncfas,  omnemque  mali  purgamine  caumm 

Credebant  nostri  tollere  posse  Series. 
Grcccia  principiutn  maris Jidt  :  ilia  nucentes 

Impia  lustratos  ponerejacla  pittat. 
Ah  nirniumjacdcs,  qui  tristia  criminn  ccedis 

Flumiiiea  toUi posse pufniis  aqua. — Ovid,  Fast.  Lib.  II. 
f   Instruct.  Hist.  Thcol.  Lib.  x.  Cap.  vi. — xi. 
i  Can.  vi.  Dc  Sacramentis  in  Gcncre. 


S12 


DEFENCE   OF    THE 


SO  :  For  a  vicarious  performance  of  faith  and  re* 
pentance  is  a  pretty  dark  mysteiy.  I  am  sure  it 
would  be  nonsense  in  a  Presbyterian  ;  and  yet  the 
alteration  they  have  made,  mends  not  the  matter  a 
whit.  But  that  is  not  it  we  are  at  present  concern- 
ed about :  It  is  plain  that  the  doctrine  of  non-reni- 
tency  is  a  stranger  to  the  Scriptures.  But  Mr  Rliind 
was  for  brushing  forward  in  his  chat ;  displease 
whom  he  will,  he  has  the  Church  of  Rome  on  his 
side.  So  much  for  his  assertions.  Next  to  his  ob- 
jections. 

Firsts  He  objects,  That  the  Presbyterians  teach 
that  baptism  is  of  no  efficacy,  p.  178.  What  an- 
swer is  to  be  given  to  this  ?  None  so  proper  as  that 
of  the  Psalmist ;    *  What  shall  be  given  unto  thee  ? 

*  Or   what   shall   be    done    unto   thee,    thou   false 

*  tongue  ?     Sharp  arrows  of  the  mighty,  with  coals 

*  of  juniper,*  Psalm  cxx.  3, 4.  Hear  the  Presbyte- 
rians declare  themselves  in  their  Confession  of 
Faith.  *     *  The  efficacy  of  baptism  is  not  tied  to  that 

*  moment  of  time  wherein   it  is  administered:  yet, 

*  notwithstanding,  by  the  right  use  of  this  ordinance, 

*  the  grace  promised  is  not  offi^red,  but  really  exhi- 
'  bited  and  conferred  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  to  such 

*  (whether  of  age,  or  infants)  as  that  grace  belongeth 

*  unto,  according  to  the  counsel  of  God's  own  will, 

*  in  his  appointed  time.'  The  Presbyterians  have 
no  where  declared  that  any  baptised  infants  are 
damned  :  but  to  assert,  as  the  English  liturgy  does,t 

*  That  children  which  are  baptised,  dying  before  they 
^  commit  actual  sin,  are  undoubtedly  saved,  is  so  far 

*  from  being  certain  by  God's  Word,*  that  I  affirm 
there  is  not  one  tittle  from  the  beginning  of  Genesis 
to  the  end  of  the  Revelation  to  support  it.  God  has 
his  own  way  of  dealing  with  infants,  which  we  are 
sure  is  most  just  and  holy.  But  it  is  secret  to  us. 
And  therefore  to  determine,  that  all  that  die  in  that 
state  unbaptized  are  damned,  and  that  all  that  are 

*  Chap,  xxvlli.  sect.  6. 

+  Penult  Uuhrick  in  the  office  for  public  baptism  of  infant*. 


P/IESBYTERIAX    WORSHIP.  3\3 

baptized  are  undoubtedly  saved,  is  very  iiigli  pie- 
sumption.  It  is  a  very  usual  thing  among  the  Po- 
pish missionaries  to  baptize  the  infants  of  the  native 
Indians  clancularly,  without  the  knowledge  or  con- 
sent of  their  parents,  when  they  can  find  any  secret 
occasion.  Will  any  Protestant  determine,  that  such 
of  them  thus  baptized  as  die  in  their  infant  state, 
are  therefore  undoubtedly  saved  ?  Must  the  absurd 
and  unwarrantable  action  of  a  vagrant  fellow  con- 
clude God  as  to  the  disposal  of  his  creatures  ?  This 
is  such  nonsensical  doctrine  as  is  fit  only  for  the 
Church  of  Rome,  which  God  has  given  up  to  delu- 
sions. 

Secondly^    He  objects,  '  That  the   Presbyterians 

*  cruelly  suffer  wretched  children  to  die  without 
'  baptism,  than  which  nothing  can  be  more  opposite 

*  to  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  who  expressly  says,  John 

*  iii.  5.  That  except  a  man  be  born  of  water  and  of 

*  the  spirit,  he  cannot  enter  into   the  kingdom  of 

*  God.'  Might  not  one  have  expected,  that  he 
would  have  adduced  so  many  instances  as  might  have 
made  his  charge  presumably  true,  and  justiried  it  so 
far,  as  that  it  might  affect  the  body  of  the  Presby- 
terians ?  Nay,  but  he  has  not  even  offered  at  so 
much  as  one  instance.  It  is  very  true,  Presby<^eriau 
ministers  will  not  baptize  children  in  a  hurry,  nor 
content  themselves  with  pronouncing  the  solemn 
words  without  a  previous  profession  or  sponsion. 
And  in  this  both  scripture  and  reason  justify  them. 
They  are  still  ready  to  baptize  children,  when  it  is 
desired,  in  a  regular  and  orderly  way :  but,  when 
it  cannot  be  done  but  in  such  a  manner  as  represents 
baptism  as  a  charm,  and  exposes  the  Christian  mys- 
teries to  the  contempt  and  reproach  of  profane  per- 
sons ;  they  do  not  think  it  lawful  for  them  to  dis- 
pense it,  and  herein  they  are  justified  by  Bishop 
Hall,  *  who  expressly  says,  *  that  as  baptism  is  not 

*  to  be  negligently  deferred,  so  it  is  not  to  be  su- 

*  perstitiously   hastened.'     But,  which   is  of  much 

•  Dcciid>  V.  Ep.  if. 


314  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

more  import,  they  are  very  sure  tliat,  In  such  a  case, 
the  want  ot'  baptism  is  not  prejudicial  to  the  salva- 
tion of  the  child  ;  for  it  were  most  horrid  to  think, 
that  a  merciful  God  should  damn  infants  for  what 
was  not  their  own  fault  in  any  respect. 

As  for  that  text  which  Mr  Ilhind  insists  on,  '  Ex- 
'  cept  a  man  be  born,'  &c.  it  is  most  ridiculously 
applied  in  this  case.  For  that,  as  well  as  all  scrip- 
ture declarations  of  the  like  nature,  are  calculated, 
not  for  infants,  but  for  adult  persons,  and  such  as 
are  come  to  the  exercise  of  their  reason.  To  such 
it  is  not  only  necessary  (as  it,  is  also  to  infants),  that 
they  be  internally  sanctified,  but  also  that  they  make 
an  outward  profession  of  receiving  baptism.  For 
Christ  will  own  none  for  his  disciples  that  are  asham- 
ed of  him  before  men.  Plainly,  the  import  of  that 
text  may  be  easily  gathered  from  the  occasion  of  it- 
Nicodemus  was  a  discreet  person,  and  had  a  honour- 
able opinion  of  our  Saviour,  that  he  was  a  teacher 
come  from  God.  But  then  he  had  come  to  Jesus 
by  night,  Avhich  argued  that  he  was  timorous,  and 
loath  to  profess  publicly  the  inward  sentiments  of 
his  soul.  Wheretbre  Christ  knowing  his  weak  side, 
and  understanding  the  reason  of  his  night  visit,  in- 
stantly, and  at  first  dash,  tells  him  the  iiselessness 
of  internal  persuasion  without  an  open  profession; 
that  it  was  necessary  he  should  be  born  again  (which 
is  a  phrase  taken  from  the  Jewish  doctrine  about 
proselytism),  not  only  of  the  spirit  by  sanctification 
and  the  renewing  of  the  inner  man,  but  of  water, 
too,  by  an  open  and  undaunted  profession  before 
the  world,  of  which  baptism  would  be  the  badge 
and  token,  without  v/hich  latter  he  could  not  own 
him  for  his  disciple,  any  more  than  without  the  for- 
mer. This  is  the  plain  sense  of  that  text ;  but  what 
relation  has  this  to  infant  baptism,  which  is  not 
tbunded  upon  the  text,  nor  indeed  reasonably  can  be, 
but  upon  other  scripture  grounds  which  I  need  not 
now  mention.  And  that  the  said  text  does  not 
})rove  the  damnation  of  infants  dying  without  bap- 
tisii),  I  shall  pioduee  the  judgment  of  two  bishops. 


rUESBYTEllIAN    WOllSIllP.  315 

Tlie  first  is  of  Hopkins,  late  Bishop  of  Londonderry, 
in  his  sermon  upon  it.  Having  narrated  that  com- 
ment upon  it  which  Mr  Rhind  has  given  us,  he  adds, 

*  but  this  opinion  is  unwarrantable,  and  contrary  to 
'  tlie  received  judgment  of  the   church  in  the  pri- 

*  mitive  tinges,  who,  if  they  had  thought  the  bap- 

*  tismal  regeneration  was  indispensibly  necessary  to 
'  salvation,  woukl  not  certainly  have  stinted  and 
'  confined  the  administration  of  it  only  to  two  times 

*  of  the  year,  Easter  and  Pentecost,  thereby  to  bring 

*  upon  themselves  the  blood  of  their  souls  that 
'  should  in  that  interim  have  died  without  ba})tism.* 
Thus  he.  The  other  is  Joseph  Hall,  Bishop  of  Exe- 
ter, in  hisjetter  to  the  Lady  Honoria  Hay,  just  before 
cited  on  the  margin.  Throughout  all  that  epistle, 
which  I  recommend  to  the  reader's  perusal,  he  dis- 
putes with  the  greatest  force  of  reason  against  that 
opinion,  of  the  damnation  of  infants  dying  without 
baptism,  and  in  terms  called  it,  *  The  hard  sentence 
'  of  a  bloody  religion.' 

All  this  doctrine  of  the  damnation  of  infants  dy- 
ing without  baptism,  is  founded  upon  another  false 
doctrine  licked  up  by  Mr  Rhind,  viz.  That  the 
water  is  the  vehicle  of  the  spirit,  and  that  the  very 
act  of  baptism  carries  alvv^ays  with  it  an  inward  rege- 
neration, and  that  none  can  have  the  spirit  without 
or  before  baptism.  This  is  plainly  contrary  to  the 
whole  tenor  of  the  Scripture,  and  though  it  was  too 
early  entertained  by  some  of  the  Fathers,  yet  it  is 
certain  it  was  not  the  received  doctrine  of  the  pri- 
mitive church  ;  as,  besides  many  particular  testimo- 
nies that  might  be  adduced,  will  appear  liom  these 
three  general  considerations. 

Isty  It  was  a  very  prevailing  custom  among 
them  to  delay  their  baptism  till  they  were  in  ca'lre- 
mis.  In  some  indeed  this  proceeded  from  a  tinc- 
ture of  the  Novatian  heresy  :  But  others,  for  in- 
stance, Constantino  the  Great,  who  was  no  Nova- 
tian, delayed  it  upon  other  considerations.  But 
now,  if  Christians  had  believed  that  they  could  not: 
have  the  spirit,  nor  be  internally  regenerated,  nor 
be  members  of  Christ  or  the  children  of  God,  till 


516 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


tbey  were  made  such  in  baptism,  and  that  thej 
should  certainly  become  such  in  baptism ;  would 
all  the  world  have  been  able  to  persuade  them  to 
delay  it  ?     It  is  very  hard  to  think  so. 

2dli/,  The  same  appears  from  the  history  of 
the  Catechumens.  During  that  state  they  were 
pr")bntioneis,  not  only  as  to  their  knowledge,  but 
likewise  their  piety  and  manners  ;  and  were  obliged, 
betbre  they  could  be  admitted  to  baptism,  to  givp 
moral  evidence  of  the  grace  of  God  in  their  hearts ; 
in  a  word,  to  have  every  thing  in  Christianity,  but 
the  solemn  investiture,  which  both  confirmed  what 
they  had,  and  entitled  them  to  further  degrees. 

3dh/f  Thougii  infant  baptism  was  still  allowed 
as  lawful  in  the  Catholic  church,  yet  it  did  not  uni^ 
versally  obtain  for  several  centuries ;  so  that,  (if  I 
am  not  much  mistaken,)  the  necessity  thereof  was 
not  asserted  before  the  council  of  Carthage,  in  the 
year  418.  Certainly,  had  Christians  believed,  that 
the  water  is  the  vehicle  of  the  spirit,  and  that  we 
cannot  be  spirituallyregenerated  without  it,  or  before 
it,  and  that,  in  the  very  act  of  it,  w^e  are  spiritually 
regenerated,  they  would  never  have  omitted  it-  I 
do  not  adduce  this  to  justify  them  in  that  omis- 
sion, but  only  thereby  to  shew  that  Mr  Rhind*s 
doctrine  was  not  the  belief  of  the  primitive  church, 
as  he  without  proof  alleges. 

In  a  word,  faith  and  repentance  are  pre-required 
to  baptism  in  adult  persons  at  least.  If  they  can 
have  faith  and  repentance,  without  the  spirit  and 
spiritual  regeneration,  which  is  not  obtained  (as 
they  say)  but  in  and  by  baptism,  1  do  not  see  why 
they  may  not  go  to  heaven,  without  the  spirit  or 
spiritual  regeneration.  For,  1  am  sure,  repentance 
towards  God,  and  fiiith  towards  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  is  the  sum  of  the  gospel.  But  enough  of 
this  for  this  time. 

Thirdly,  Mr  Rhind  objects,  *  That  the  Confession 

*  of    Faith,    whereof  some    doctrines    are  dubious, 

*  some  impious  and  false,  is  the  creed  into  which 

*  the  PreLshyterians  baptize.'     1  answer,   \st^  That 
however  dubious,  false  and  impious  these   doctrines 


PRESBYTERIAN  WORSHIP.  S17 

are,  yet  I  have  already  proved  them  to  be  the  doc- 
trines of  the  Catholic  Church  of  Christ.  2dli/^  It 
is  false  that  the  Confession  of  Faith  is  the  creed  in- 
to which  they  baptize.  They  baptize  into  the  belief  of 
the  Scriptures  of  the  Old  and  NewTestament,  and  on- 
ly declaratively  assert  their  Confession  of  Faith  to  be 
agreeable  thereto.  Sdlij,  Suppose  they  did  baptize 
into  their  Confession  of  Faith  ;  why  is  that  not  as 
lawful  as  baptizing  into  the  Apostle's  creed  ?  Are 
they  not  both  human  composures  ?  Or  does  he 
dream  that  the  Apostles  themselves  were  the  au- 
thors of  it?  But  this  only  ad  hominem.  For  my 
own  part  I  assert,  that  it  is  unlawful  to  baptize  into 
the  belief  of  any  human  composure  otherwise  than 
as  I  have  explained  above. 

Lastlij,  He  objects,  *  That  the  genuine  Presby- 
'  terians  press  the  obligation  of  the  solemn   league 

*  and   covenant   as  a    necessary    condition   of   the 

*  child's  admission  to  baptism.'  It  is  denied,  and 
Mr  Rhind  is  challenged  to  prove  it.  I  affirm,  far- 
ther, that  there  is  no  Presbyterian  Minister  in  the 
nation  who  will  refuse  to  baptize  in  the  terms  of  the 
Directory,  among  which  terms,  there  is  not  so  much 
as  mention  of  the  solemn  league  and  covenant.  Mr 
llhind  is  challenged  to  disprove  this  if  he  can.  So 
much  for  baptism. 

I  proceed  next  to  consider  his  objections,  relat- 
iw^  to  the  other  sacrament,  viz. 

THE  lord's  SUrPER. 

As  to  this  he  objects  upon,  I.  The  infrequency 
of  it  among  the  Presbyterians.  II.  The  indecency 
wherewith  they  celebrate  it.  III.  The  hard  terms 
upon  which  they  admit  to  it.  IV.  That  it  is  in- 
deed no  sacrament  at  all  as  dispensed  by  them.  Of 
these  in  order. 

I.  He  objects  upon  the  infrequency  of  the  Lord's 
supper  among  the  Presbyterians.  In  the  Presbyte- 
rian communion,  saitli  he,  p.  1»2,  '  my  lot  might  fall 

*  in  a  place  where  the  Holy  Eucharist  would  not  be 

*  administered  once  in  a  dozen  of  years.'     For  an- 


318  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

swer,  Isf,  Has  lie  given  Instance  of  any  siicli  place  ? 
No,  not  so  much  as  one.  2dlj/,  Su})pose  he  had  gi- 
ven one,  two,  tliree,  iKiy  even  a  score  of  instances, 
were  the  constitution  to  be  charged  with  that? 
Tliere  are,  no  doubt,  careless  ministers  among  the 
Presbyterians,  as  well  as  in  other  communions,  but 
none  but  a  mean  malieious  soul  will  load  the  wliole 
body  with  the  defects  of  a  few.  3dlj/,  Was  the  Episco- 
]>al  Clerg)',  during  their  reign  before  the  Revolution, 
Jess  guilty  than  the  Presbyterians  are  ?  I  am  content 
it  be  put  to  a  trial'through  the  nation.  And,  to  be- 
gin the  work  ;  within  the  Presbytery  of  Dumbarton, 
where  I  serve,  there  are  seventeen  parishes.  I  af- 
firm, that  in  these  seventeen  parishes  taken  com- 
plexly, the  better  to  mend  the  worse,  the  commu- 
nion has  been  celebrated  three  times  oftener  within 
these  dozen  years  last  bypast,  than  it  was  during 
the  whole  twenty-eight  years  under  the  Episcopal 
reign  before  the  Revolution,  ^thh/.  Is  the  Church 
of  England,  to  which  Mr  Rhind  is  gone  over,  inno- 
cent in  this  particular  ?  Hear  Dr  Wetenhall,  late 
Bishop  of  Kilmore,  in  his  book,  entitled,  *  Due  fre- 
'  quency  of  the  Lord's  Supper,'  dedicated  to  her 
Majesty,  and  printed  at  Edinburgh,  170G. '  Amongst 
'  the  laws  of  our  church  (saith  he  in  his  Dedica- 
'  tion),  as  there  is  none  perhaps  more  excellent  and 
'  truly  Christian,   than  those  touching  the    Lord's 

*  Supper ;  so  it  is  hard  to  assign  a7ii/  more  neglected 
'  than  the  rubricks  whicli  enjoin  due  frequency  of 

*  it ;  and  the  neglect  is  not  only  in  country  'parhhes, 

*  but  even  in  some  greater  chircltes.'  Thus  the 
Bishop.  Why  then  would  Mr  Rhind  leap  out  of 
the  frying-pan  into  the  lire  ?  Why  would  he  charge 
the  Presbyterians  with  that  whereof  his  brethren, 
both  in  Scotland  and  England,  have  been  so  notori- 
ously gnilty  ?  But  an  impudent  way  of  writing  is 
become  the  characteristic  of  the  modern  Episcopal 
authors. 

IL  He  objects  upon  the  indecency  v/herewith  the 
Lord's  Supper  is  celebrated  among  tlie  Presbyte- 
rians.    Wherein  lies  this  indecencv  ?  '  Whv,'  saith 


IKESBYTERIAN    WORSIIIF.  319 

he,  p.  182,   *  the  convocation  has  more  of  tlie  con- 

*  fusion  of  a  fair,  than  of  the  order  and  decency  of 

*  a  rehgious  assembly.     And  how  can  it  otherwise 

*  be,  when  they  not  only  allow,  but  encourage,  on 

*  these  occasions,  such  rendezvouses  of  the  promis- 

*  cuous  rabble,  who  desert  their  own  churches,  to 
'  the  great  hindrance  of  their  devotion,  who  com- 

*  municate,  and  scandal  too,  when  they  see  so  many 
'  professed  Christians  neglect  their  Lord's  express 

*  command  of  keeping  up  the  memorial  of  his  death 

*  and  passion  for  them.*  For  answer,  15/,  It  is  true, 
communicants  have  been  very  numerous  among 
the  Presbyterians  ever  since  the  revolution.  Not  only 
the  inhabitants  of  the  parish  in  which  the  communion 
is  celebrated,  but  many  from  the  neighbouring  parish- 
es, attested  by  their  respective  ministers,  have  usual- 
ly joined  in  it;  but  is  the  numerousness  of  communi- 
cants either  a  fault  or  an  indecency  ?  So  far  from  it, 
that  could  the  whole  Christian  church  communicate 
at  once,  it  would  be  so  much  the  more  of  the  nature 
of  a  communion,  and  tend  so  much  the  more  to  the 
lionour  of  our  blessed  Saviour.  But  this  objection  of 
Mr  llhind's  proceeds  from  silliness,  or,  which  is  the 
same  thing,  from  ens^y;  because,  during  the  Episco- 
pal CJovernment,  in  many  places,  the  minister  and 
his  family,  with  the  sexton  and  his,  and  perhaps  two 
or  three  more,  made  up  the  whole  communicants. 
2f////,  It  is  true,  likewise,  that  there  are  many  others 
prescntoft-times  besides  those  thatcommunicate.  But 
where  is  the  harm  of  this  ?  Does  it  hinder  the  devo- 
tion of  the  communicants,  that  others  are  looking 
on  them  ?  Is  it  not  ratlier  an  encouragement  upon 
tliem  to  carry  themselves  with  the  more  solemn 
gravity  ?  Or  how  can  the  presence  of  such  as  do  not 
commimicate  be  a  scandal  to  those  that  do?  For 
thougli  they  do  not  communicate  at  that  time,  it 
cannot  infer  a  neo-lect  of  our  Lord's  command,  see- 
ing  people  are  not  at  all  times  in  a  frame  for  com- 
municating. And  when  a  minister  comes  to  assist 
his  neighbour  minister  in  dispensing  the  commimion, 
is  it  either  fault  or  scandal  tor  his  people  to  follow 


'LO 


BEPE'SCE  OF  THE 


him  where  they  are  furnished  with  sermon  ?  Is  not 
this  better  than  that  they  should  loiter  idly  at  homa 
all  the  Lord's  day,  which  would  be  both  a  sin  in 
them,  and  give  scandal  to  others  ?  But  this  objec- 
tion of  his  was  indeed  too  mean  to  have  been 
noticed. 

I  would  only  ask  Mr  Rhind,  if  there  are  not  in- 
comparably greater  indecencies  in  the  way  of  the 
Cliurch  or  jLiigland,  to  which  he  has  separated  ?  Is 
it  possible  there  can  be  a  greater  scandal,  than  to 
see  a  known  rake,  notour  for  all  manner  of  vice  and 
lewdness,  partaking  of  those  holy  mysteries,  before 
he  has  given  the  least  proof  or  evidence  of  his  re- 
formation ?  Yet  this  is  every  day  seen  in  the 
church  of  England,  and  the  priests  cannot,  dare  not 
help  it. 

1  am  not  to  allege  this  without  proof :  that  were 
the  Episcopal  way  of  writing,  which  I  do  not  envy. 
I  shall  give  good  and  sufficient  documents  of  it.  Mr 
Bisset,  a  presbyter  of  the  Church  of  England,  has 
lately  told  us  *  *  of  a  minister  who  was  worried  out 

*  of  his  living,  and  life  too,  for  denying  the  commu- 

*  nion  to  a  rake,  before  the  chancellor  had  excom- 

*  municated  him.'     Again,  '  though  the  rubric  re- 

*  quire,  that  so  many  as  intend  to  be  partakers  of 

*  the  holy  communion  shall  signify  their  names  unto 

*  the  curate,  at  least  sometime  the  day  before  ;*  yet 
(says  the  same  author,  p.  51.)  *  this  is  more  than  I 

*  ever  knew  done.     I  am  sure  it  is  omitted  in  all  or 

*  most  of  the  London  churches.'  Yet  further  he 
tells  us,  p.  54.  '  that  Dr  F r  was   suspended  for 

*  denying  the  sacrament  to  such  as  only   came  to  it 

*  as  a  qualification  to  sell  ale  and  brandy.'  Lastly, 
He  tells  us,  (ibid.)  of  a  solution  that  was  given  to  one 
(who  doubted  of  coming  to  the  communion),  in  these 
w  ords,  '  what  damage  is  it  to  pledge  the  parson  in  a 

*  cup  of  wine,  supposing  only  the  wine  be  good.* 
To  ivlr  Bisset,  let  us  add  the  author  of  the  Case  of 
the  iiegaie  and  Pontificate,  who  is  known  to  be  most 
vioiemly  iiigh  church.     He  roundly  asserts,  p.  17y, 

*  Modem  Fanatic,  p.  4-S. 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP.  321 

'  tliat  an  action  lies  against  the  minister  who  shall 

*  refuse  the  sacrament,  to  them  who,  he  knows,  sees 

*  and  hears,  in  their  conversation  and  principles,  to 
'  be  never  so  much  unquahfied.'  These  are  not 
Presbyterian  allegeances,  but  true  Episcopal  history. 

III.  He  objects,  p.  183,  upon  the  hard  terms 
on  which  the  Presbyterians  admit  to  the  communion 
ill  two  particulars.  The  first,  relating  to  the  persons, 
the  second  to  the  posture.  First,  As  to  the  persons. 
He  alleges,  *  they  will  admit  none  who  in  the  least 
'  favour  tlie  hierarchy  and  liturgy  of  the  Church  of 

*  England,  but  excommunicate  them  with  the  vilest 
'  blasphemers  and  adulterers.*  I  ask  him,  does  he 
know  any  of  the  favourers  of  the  hierarchy  and  li- 
turgy who  were  ever  denied  the  sacrament  on  that 
account  ?  Has  he  given  any  instance  of  this  ?  Not 
one.  The  Presbyterians  debar  none  from  commu- 
nion with  them  in  the  sacrament,  whose  principles 
and  life  do  not  debar  them  from  the  Christian  com- 
munion. They  do  not  look  upon  that  holy  ordi- 
nance as  the  distinguishing  badge  of  a  party  or  of 
any  particular  communion  of  Christians ;  but  as  the 
common  privilege  of  all  the  faithful.  And  therefore 
tliey  usually  fence  the  Lord's  table  in  the  words  of 
the  Scripture,  1  Cor.  vi.  9,     '  Know  ye  not  that  the 

*  unrighteous  shall  not  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God? 
'  Be  not  deceived  :     Neither  fornicators,  nor  idola- 

*  tors,'  or  some  such  like  Scripture ;  or  by  going 
through  the  ten  commandments.  If  Mr  llhind  can 
name  any  Presbyterian  ministers  who  do  otherwise, 
I  suppose  the  church  will  not  think  herself  obliged 
to  defend  them.  But,  to  exclude  the  impenitent 
breakers  of  any  of  the  ten  commandments  from  the 
privilege  of  gospel  mysteries;  to  debar  those  from 
tile  Lord's  table,  whom  the  Lord  has,  by  the  ex- 
press sentence  of  his  word,  debarred  out  of  the  king- 
dom of  Heaven  ;  is,  what  every  one,  who  is  not 
quite  lost  in  impiety,  must  own  to  be  not  only  law- 
ful but  a  duty. 

This  is  sutticient  to  vindicate  the  Presbyterians  : 
But  who  shall  vindicate  the  Church  of  England  con- 


322 


DEFEXC2  OF  THE 


stitution  ?  Mr  Rhind  is  the  most  unlucky  man  in  the 
world.  He  has  separated  from  the  Presbyterians/ 
upon  a  chimerical  imagination  of  the  narrowness  of 
their  charity,  that  they  admit  none  to  the  commu- 
nion, who  in  the  least  favour  the  hierarchy  and  li- 
turgy;  though,  I  suppose,  there  is  no  one  living  can 
bring  an  instance  where  ever  they  refused  it,  on  that 
score,  to  any  who  desired  it :  And  yet  he  has  gone 
over  to  the  Church  of  England,  whose  divines,  I 
mean  the  high  church  party  of  them,  have  declared 
in  the  strongest  terms,  that  they  will  not  admit  to  it 
dissenters  or  Presbyterians,  whom  they,  in  their 
equally  wise  and  charitable  style,  call  notorious  scliis- 
maticSi  at  the  same  time  that  they  declare  them  to  be 
without  the  church.  This  is  plain  from  the  repre- 
sentation made  by  the  lower  house  of  convocation 
to  the  archbishops  and  bishops  in  the  month  of  De- 
cember 1704,  which  the  reader  may  consult.  And 
Mr  Barclay,  a  teacher  of  the  party,  just  come  from 
London,  has  told  his  mind  very  honestly  in  this  case. 

*  1  shall  not,'  says  he,  *  *  stick  to  say  that  I  would 

*  not  admit  a  notorious  schismatic  to  Catholic  com- 

*  munion,   till  he  recanted  his  error,  upon  any  con- 

*  sideration  of  laws  or  statutes.'  I  do  not  think  but 
Mr  Barclay  may  be  easy  on  that  head  :  For,  I  sup- 
pose, these  7iotorious  schismatics  he  speaks  of  will  not 
give  him  much  trouble  that  way.  However,  it  is 
plain  that  high  church  has  made  the  communion  a 
badge  of  a  party.  Was  not  Mr  Rhind,  then,  very 
well  advised  in  ffoins;  over  to  her  ? 

Secondlij,  As  to  the  posture.     Mr  Rhind  objects, 

*  that  the  Presbyterians  discharge  that  as  idola- 
'  trous,  which  others  think  most  expressive  of  their 

*  inward  devotion,  and  debar  such  from  the  com- 

*  munion  who  would  use  it.'  There  is  no  doubt 
he  means  the  posture  of  kneeling,  which  is  enjoined 
both  by  the  Scotch  Episcopal  and  the  English  Litur- 
gies. And  as  to  that,  I  here  engage,  that  no  one 
Presbyterian  minister  in  the  nation  shall,  on  that 
account,  refuse  the  communion  to  any  person  who 

*  Persuasive  to  the  Peoole  of  SrA^-^on^.  p.  ig-^. 


tUESBYTERIAN    VVOKSHII\  323 

tan  prove,  or  find  any  other  to  prove  for  him, 
either,  1st,  That  that  posture  was  commanded  by 
Christ.  Or,  2nd/jj,  That  it  was  used  by  the  Apostles 
when  they  cominunicated  in  Christ's  presence.  Or, 
3^/y,  That  there  is  any  hint  of  its  usage  in  the  New 
Testament.  Or,  4////<7,  That  it  was  practised  in  the 
primitive  church  for  the  first  five  centuries  at  least 
after  Christ.  If  none  of  these  things  can  be  prov- 
ed, as"  1  am  sure  none  of  them  can,  and  which 
ievery  writer  on  the  Episcopal  side,  of  any  charac- 
ter, owns  ;  why  should  a  church  break  her  order 
to  gratify  people  in  their  fancies,  when  it  is  con- 
fessed on  all  hands,  that  that  posture  of  kneeling  in 
the  sacrament  has  been  used  to  the  most  idolatrous 
purposes.  But  Mr  Rhind  alleges,  *  that  such  as 
'  are  for  that  posture  are  ready  to  attest  the 
'  Searcher  of  hearts,  that  their  adoration  is  only 

*  directed  to  one  true  and  living  God,  and  his  Son 

•  Jesus  Christ,  who  is  exalted  at  his  Father's  right 

•  hand.'  I  answer :  So  is  the  Church  of  Rome 
ready  to  attest  with  the  same  solemnity,  that  when 
she  worships  before  the  picture  of  an  old  man,  she 
does  not  worship  the  image,  but  God  the  Father  by 
it.  Yet  who  will  excuse  her  from  idolatry  on  that 
account  ?  And,  which  renders  this  business  of 
kneeling  still  so  much  the  more  suspicious,  the  late 
vindicator  of  the  fundamental  charter  of  Presbytery 
is  angry  at  the  rubric  o[  the  liturgy,  which  explains 
the  reason  of  kneeling  at  the  Lord's  Supper,  and 
expressly  says,  p*  79,  '  That  neither  hath  the  Church 
'  gained,  nor  can  the  liturgy  be  said  to  have  been 

*  made  better  by  it.'  But  of  this,  and  the  dread- 
ful blunder  in  history  he  has  committed  to  support 
this  his  opinion,  the  reader  may  perhaps  hear  more 
elsewhere.  Yet  farther,  why  may  not  Presbyte- 
rians confine  ))eople  to  the  table  posture  in  the  Sa- 
crament, wiiich  the  Episcopal  divines  themselves 
own  was  the  posture  used  by  the  Disci})le3  in 
Christ's  presence ;  when  the  Church  of  England 
coniincs  people  to  the  posture  of  kneeling,  loi  which 

X  2 


324 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


there  is  no  warrant,  and  appoints  *  every  minister 
to  be  suspended  who  wittingly  gives  the  commu- 
nion to  any  that  do  not  kneel.  Some  may  perhaps 
think,  that  our  Scotch  Episcopalians  are  milder  in 
that  matter,  and  indeed  the  above  mentioned  Vin- 
dicator of  the  Fundam.ental  Charter  would  have  us 
'beheve  so.  '  It  is  true,'  saith  he,  p.  34,  '  all  com- 
'  municate  in  the  Sacrament  of  the  Eucharist,  kneel- 
^  ing ;  but  I  know  none,  that  would  deny  the  Sa- 
'  crament  to  one,  who  could  not  without  scruple 
'  take  it  in  that  posture.'  This  is  spoken  with  a- 
bundance  of  gravity,  but  Vv'ith  what  integrity  let 
the  reader  judge,  when  he  considers,  1^4  That  the 
rubric  in  the  Scotch  Episcopal  liturgy  is  as  strict  for 
kneeling  as  the  English  liturgy.  And,  2f//?/,  the 
Scotch  Episcopal  canon,  with  respect  to  that  pos- 
ture, is  equally  strict  with  the  English,  as  may  be 
seen,  both  in  the  canon  itself,  and  in  Clarendon's 
history.  Does  not  this  shew  their  spirit  and  prin- 
ciples, though  they  yield  at  present  to  gull  unwary 
people  ? 

Before  I  proceed  to  Mr  Rhind's  next  objectiony 
there  is  one  thing  I  cannot  but  take  notice  of. 
The  Episcopal  people  have  lately  caused  re-print 
the  liturgy  which  was  sent  down  for  Scotland  by 
King  Charles  I.  and  which  began  the  troubles,  anno 
1637,  and  lam  informed,  that  it  is  begun  to  be 
practised  in  some  of  their  meeting-houses  instead  of 
the  English  liturgy.  I  think  myself  obliged  in  chari- 
ty to  advertise  people,  t  that  that  liturgy,  in  the 
office  for  the  communion,  is  a  great  deal  v/orse  than 
the  English,  and  is  plainly  calculated  for  beget- 
ting in  people  the  belief  of  the  corporeal  presence. 
1  shall  at  this  time  give  three  evidences  of  this. 
1st,  The  English  liturgy  has  a  long  rubric,  declar- 
ing, that  by  the  posture  of  kneeling  no  adoration 
is  intended,  or  ought  to  be  done,  either  unto  the 
sacramental  bread  and  wine  there  bodily  received,: 
or  unto  any  corporeal  presence  of  Christ's  natural 

»  Canon  XXVII.  l603,-  f  N.  B.. 


PRESBYTERIAN    WORSHIP. 


3^ 


flesh  and  blood.  The  Scotch  liturgy  neither  hath  this 
declaration,  nor  any  thing  equivalent  to  it.  2dlij<, 
The  English  liturgy  has  a  rubric,  enjoining  the 
minister  at  the  saying  these  words  in  the  consecration, 
■*  when  he  had  given  thanks  he  brake  it,'  to  break 
the  bread.  The  Scotch  liturgy  has  no  such  rubric, 
nor  any  appointment  for  breaking  the  bread,  any 
more  than  tiic  Roman  ritual  has.  Sdli/,  The  Eng- 
lish liturgy  enjoins  the  minister  to  deliver  the  bread 
to  the  people  in  order,  into  their  hands,  all  meekly 
kneeling;  but  the  Scotch  liturgy  words  it,  all  humbly 
kneeling,  tliat  we  might  know  they  intend  adora- 
tion by  that  posture,  though  they  have  not  told  to 
what.  I  may  possibly  have  occasion,  sometime 
after  this,  to  show,  particularl}^,  how  much  worse 
the  Scotch  liturgy  is  than  the  English.  But  I 
thought  it  needful  to  give  these  hints  now,  because 
the  Episcopal  clergy  bear  their  people  in  hand, 
that  it  is  upon  the  matter  one  and  the  same  with 
the  English.  Particularly  Mr  Smart,  one  of  their 
teachers  at  Edinburgh,  in  his  short  discouz'se  after 
sermon,  commending  the  service,  told  them,  p.  8, 

*  that  there  is  no  material  difference  between  the 
'  Scotch  and  English    books    of   common-prayer ; 

*  and  that  they  differ  as  little  as  the  Scotch  and 
*-  English  tongues.'  The  first  of  which  assertions 
is  false,  as  I  have  just  now  made  out ;  and  the  latter 
nonsense.  For,  so  far  as  it  follows  the  English  in 
matter,  it  is  the  very  same  in  words  and  phrase ; 
and  no  wonder,  for  every  body  knows  it  was  of 
English  birth,  which  perhaps  made  it  take  so  ill 
with  the  Scotch  air.  But  enough  for  Mr  Smart, 
whose  name  and  pamphlet  are  so  very  ill-suited,  and 
whose  character  seems  to  be  the  very  reverse  of  the 
Apostle's  precept,  •  being  in  understanding  a  child, 

*  hovvbeit  in  malice  he  is  a  man.' 

IV.  Mr  Rhind  objects,  p.  184,  That  it  is  no  Sa- 
crament at  all,  as  dispensed  by  the  Presbyterians. 
Pray  why  ?  *  There  is,*  saith  he  *  no  due  appli- 
'  cation  of  the  form  to  the  matter.'  Very  strange  ! 
They  always  read  the  words  of  institution,  either 


326  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

out  of  the  Gospels  or  out  of  ].  Cor.  xl.  They  bave 
still,  after  our  Lord's  example,  a  prayer,  thanksgiv- 
ing or  blessing  of  the  bread  and  wine.  Is  not  this 
a  due  application  of  the  form  to  the  matter?  *  No,' 
savs  Mr  Rhind  ;  *  the  form  in  the  Sacrament  of  the 

*  Lord's  Supper,  are  the  same  words  by  which  our 
'  Lord  did  at  iirst  constitute  the  Sacrament,  viz. 
'  Take,  eat,  this  is  my  body,  do  this  in  remem- 

*  brance  of  me,  and  drink  ye  of  this  cup,  for  this  is 

*  my  blood :  Do  this — as  oft  as  ye  drink  it  in   re- 

*  membrance  of  me,'  Very  weU.  Do  not  the  Pres- 
byterians use  these  words  ?  Are  they  not  in  the 
institution  ?  : '  Nay,  but,'  saith  he,  *  if  they  be 
'  at  all,  they  ought  to  be  used  in   that  prayer,  by 

*  which  they  intend  to  consecrate  the  elements  ?'  Is 
there  any  precept  for  this  in  the  Scripture  ?  No. 
Any  example  there  ?  None.  Any  evidence  for  the 
practice,  for  at  least  four  or  five  centuries  after 
Christ,  in  the  writings  of  the  Fathers  ?  Not  any. 
The  first  account  we  have  of  it,  is  in  the  books  of  the 
Sacraments,*  which  pass  under  the  name  of  Ambrose, 
and  are  inserted  among  his  works.  But  1  hope  Mr 
Rhind  knows,  that  these  books  were  not  wrote  till 
som6  ages  after  Ambrose's  death.  And  if  Mr  Rhind's 
doctrine  be  true,  the  Church  of  England  herself,  for 
a  long  time  after  abolishing  the  Mass,  had  not  the 
Sacrament  of  the  Lord's  Supper.  For,  that  which  is 
called  the  Prayer  of  Consecration,  and  in  which  the 
words,  *  take,  eat,  this  is  my  body,'  &c.  are,  was  not 
in  King  Edward's  first  Liturgy  ;  but  instantly  after 
the  prayer,  *  We  do  not  presume,'  &c.  they  pro- 
ceeded to  the  distribution.  Nay,  which  is  worst  of 
all,  we  are  assured,  from  the  infallible  chair,  that 
the  Apostles  used  no  other  prayer  of  consecration 
but  the  Lord's  Prayer.f  And,  1  suppose  every  body 
knows  that  these  words,  *  take,  eat,  this  is  my  body,* 
are  not  in  that  prayer  j   and   I  think  it  is  plain  they 

*  Lil).  iv.  Cap.  V. 

f  Gregor.  Lib.  7-  Ep.  63.  Oratlonem  autem  Domlnicam  id- 
circo  mox  post  precera  dicimus,  quia  mos  Apostolorum  fuit,  u% 
ad  ipsam  solunamodo  orationem  oblationis  hostiarn  consccracent. 


PRESBYTERIAN  WORSHIP.  527 

were  never  intended  to  stand,  in  that  form,  in  any 
prayer. 

But  now,  to  gratify  Mr  Rhind,  let  us  suppose 
that  these  words  should  be  in  the  prayer  of  con- 
secration, what  follows  ?  *  Why,  there,*  saith  he, 
'  they  are  never  once  mentioned  by  the  Presby- 

*  terians,  and  too  often  ther«  is  nothing  equivalent 
'  to  supply  the  defect.'  Did  he  ever  consider  what 
he  said  ?  Did  he  ever  regard  whether  it  was  true 
or  filse  ?  Is  not  every  minister  directed,*  upon 
that  occasion,  to  pray,  '  That  God  may  sanctify  the 

*  elements,  both  of  bread  and  wine,  and  so  bless  his 
'  own  ordinance,  that  we  may  receive,  by  faith,  the 

*  body  and  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  cruciHed  for  us, 
.*  and   so  to  feed  upon  Him,  that  He  may  be  one 

*  with  us,  and  we  with  him ;  that  He  may  live  in  us 

*  and  we  in   Him  and  to  Him,  who  hath  loved  us 

*  and  given  himself  for  us.*  Is  not  here  something 
equivalent  to  these  words  ?  And  can  Mr  Rhind 
name  that  minister  who  does  not  pray  either 
thus  or  to  the  same  purpose  ?  But  proving  was  none 
of  his  business,  all  he  had  to  do  was  to  assert. 

I  doubt  not  but,  after  all  this,  the  reader  will 
think  it  strange  that  Mr  Rhind  should  have  men- 
tioned such  an  objection.  But  the  case  is  plain, 
as  he  was  avowedly  popish  on  the  other  sacrament, 
so  is  he  upon  this  ;  and  would  insinuate  upon  people 
the  very  rational  doctrine  of  transubstantiation,  to 
be  effected  by  the  pronouncing  of  these  particular 
xvords.  And  Bellarmine  led  the  way  to  him,t  so  that 
lie  has,  indeed,  a  man  of  a  very  considerable  name 
for  his  master. 

Thus,  now,  I  have  gone  through  the  Episcopal 
objections  against  th6  Presbyterian  worship,  both  as 
to  prayers  and  sacraments.  And  I  hope  I  have 
made  it  plain  that  there  is  not  any  one  of  the  things 
objected  against  but  what  (so  far  as  the  objection  is 
true)  is  so  far  from  being  a  ground  of  separation, 

*  Sec  the  Directory,     f  De  Sacram.  Eucharist,  Cap,  xii.  xiii. 


S28  DKFENCi:  01'   THE 

that  it  IS  highly  justifiable.  But,  then,  I  must  ask 
Mr  Rhind,  why,  as  he  has  given  us  the  grounds  of 
his  separating  from  the  Presbyterian  worship,  he  has 
not  also  answered  the  other  halt'  of  the  title  of  his 
book,  and  justified  the  known  objections  against  the 
worship  of  that  church  whose  communion  he  pre- 
tends to  have  embraced.  I  have  hinted  at  several 
of  them  as  I  came  along;  and  they  may  be  found 
more  at  length  in  some  small  tracts  lately  published.* 
Was  there  nothing  in  the  Liturgy  that  he  startled 
at  ?  I  observe  the  above-cited  Mr  Smart,  p.  9,  with 
much  assurance,  bids  his  audience  '  read  it  all  over, 

*  and  among  all  the  prayers  that  are  in  it,  see  if  there 

*  be  any  prayer  for  the  dead^any  worshipping  of  ima- 

*  ges — any  praying  to  saints  and  angels.'  I  do  not 
say  that  there  are  any  prayers  for  the  dead  in  it, 
but  the  famous  author  of  *  The  Case  Stated,'  express- 
ly says,  p.  1 89,  there  are,  and  proves  it  from  the  order 

*  for  the  burial  of  the  dead,'  and  from  the  prayer  for 
the  church  militant  in  the  communion  office.  I  do  not 
say  that  there  is  any  worshipping  of  images  in  it.  But 
I  say,  that  many  of  the  Common  Prayer-Books  are 
filled  with  such  pictures  as  are  conc^emned  by  the 
Homilies  of  the  Church  of  England,  yea,  and  by  the 
High  Church  divines  themselves  j  witness  the  last 
cited  author,  (supposed  to  be  Dr  Lesley),  who,  in  his 
conversation  with  the  Roman  Catholic  nobleman, 
tells  him,  p.  1 35,   *  We  abstain  from  the  pictures  or 

*  images  of  the  saints  in  our  churches,  because  they 

*  have  been  abused   to  superstition,  and  to   avoid 

*  ofience.'  Now,  if  they  are  unlawful  in  churches, 
liow  is  it  possible  they  can  be  lawful  in  books  ap- 
pointed for  the  church  service  ?  That  same  author, 
likewise,  in  the  same  place,  approves  of  the  zeal  of 
Epiphanius,  who  finding  a  linen  cloth  hung  up  in 
a  church  door,  (it  is  likely  to  keep  out  the  wind), 
whereon  was  a  picture  of  Christ  or  of  some  saint, 
tore  it  and  ordered  a  dead  corpse  to  be  buried  in  it, 

*  JSee  the  Dialogues  between  the   Curate  and  the  Country- 
mnu,  &c. 


PilESUYTEUlAX    WORSHIP.  329 

aiul  lamented  tlie  superstition  he  saw  coming  by 
these  pictures  and  images,  then  beginning  to  creep 
into  the  church.  Yet  in  England,  not  only  the 
Common-Prayer  books,  but  even  the  Bible  itself,  is 
filled  with  pictures  of  Christ  and  the  saints;  witness 
the  Bible,  printed  in  London  by  Charles  Bill,  and 
the  executrix  of  Thomas  Newcomb,  deceased,  print- 
ers to  the  Queen's  most  excellent  Majesty,  1708, 
many  copies  of  which  impression  are  stufi'ed  with 
such  pictures.  Arc  they  more  innocent  in  the  Bible 
than  upon  a  linen  ciotii  hanging  in  the  church  door  ? 
Yea,  which  is  most  abominable,  there  are  several 
obscene  pictures  among  them,  particularly  that  of 
Noah  uncovered, Gen.  ix;  Lot  and  his  two  daughters. 
Gen.  xix. ;  David  and  Bathsheba,  2  Sain.  xi.  Finally, 
I  do  not  say  there  is  any  praying  to  saints  and  an- 
gels in  the  Common-Prayer  Book.  But  I  do  say, 
that  the  consecrating  churches  and  days  to  them,  and 
the  appointing  particular  offices  upon  these  days  to 
their  honour,  is  the  likeliest  thing  to  worshipping  them 
that  I  can  conceive.  Besides,  did  Mr  Rhind's  nice 
and  scrupulous  conscience  never  bogle  at  the  cere- 
monies of  human  invention  ?  If  the  church  have 
power  to  institute  such,  she  has  certainly  power  to 
make  a  new  Bible  j  for  there  is  no  such  power  given 
her  in  the  old  one  ;  or  if  tliere  is,  certainly  Protes- 
tants have  been  much  in  the  wrong  to  the  Church 
of  Rome.  But  I  am  not  now  to  insist  on  these 
things. 


CHAP.     V. 

WHEIIEIN  MR  RI1IND*S  FOmiTII  REASON  FOR  IIIS  SEPA- 
RATINC:  FROM  THE  PRESBY TERfANS,  VIZ.  THAT  THEIR 
SPIRIT  IS  DIAMETRICALLY  OPPOSITE  TO  THAT  OF 
THE  GOSPEL,  IS  EXAMIHED.  FROM  P.  185  TO  THE 
END. 

The  meaning  of  this  reason  is,  that  Presbyterians 
ure  incarnate  devils :  And  the  intendment  of  it  is, 


330  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

That  all  persons  who  re<?ard  conscience  or  dutjr 
should  hang  out  a  bloody  flag  against  them,  and  rise 
up  with  one  accord,  and  spoil  their  goods  and  de- 
stroy their  persons  ;  or,  to  speak  in  Dr  Sacheverel's 
much  more  elegant  stile,  '  That  the  Bishops  ought 
'  to  thunder  out  the  ecclesiastical  anathemas  against 
'  them,  and  let  any  power  on  eartii  dare  reverse 
theiii ;  and  that  the  people  should  treat  them  like 
growing  mischiefs  or  infectious  plagues.'*  This  is 
indeed  somewhat  hard  ;  but  such  is  the  Episcopal 
charity,  such  are  the  merciful  principles  wherewith 
they  season  their  new  converts,  and  such  is  the  usage 
we  are  to  expect  v;henever  the  sins  of  the  nation 
shall  ripen  to  that  height  as  to  provoke  a  holy  God 
to  let  in  prelacy  upon  it.  But  to  make  way  for  par- 
ticulars. 

The  Presbyterians  neither  are  nor  desire  to  be  of 
those  who  justify  themselves.  They  know  and  con- 
fess that  there  are  tares  in  their  field  as  well  as 
wheat ;  and  are  sensible  that  they  have  the  utmost 
reason  to  cry,  with  the  publican,  '  God  be  merciful 

*  to  us  sinners:'  But  they  think  it  a  very  shameless 
thing  in  the  Episco})alians,  that  they  should  be  the 
jHrst  who  take  up  stones  to  cast  at  them :  For,  if  the 
Presbyterians  are  great  sinners,  I  am  afraid  (were 
that  the  enquiry)  the  Episcopalians  would  not  be 
found  to  be  very  great  saints. 

Our  Saviour  has  given  us  an  excellent  rule  where- 
by to  judge  of  mens'   sj)irits :  '  By  their  fruits  ye 

*  shall  know  them.'  I  hope  it  needs  not  be  deemed 
a  reflection  upon  them,  or  an  immoderate  flattering 
of  ourselves,  to  affirm,  that  the  Presbyterians,  gene- 
rally speaking,  are  as  devout  towards  God,  as  fre- 
quent at  their  prayers  ;  and,  to  outward  appearance 
(for  God  only  knows  the  heart),  as  fervent  in  them 
as  tlie  prelatists.  That  they  swear  as  seldom  by  the 
name  of  God,  as  seldoni  tear  open  the  wounds  of 
our  blessed  Saviour,  and  as  seldom  imprecate  damna- 
tion upoiTi  themselves  or  others  as  the  Episcopalians. 

*  Sermon,  '  False  Brethren,"  p.  38. 


TRESCYTERIAN   SPIIIIT.  331 

That  they  are  as  sober  and  temperate,  go  as  seldom 
drunk  to'bed,  are  as  mild  in  their  carriage,  as  little 
given  to  bullying  or  blustering,  as  those  of  High 
Church:  That  they  are  as  just  in  their  dealings 
with  their  neighbours,  as  open-handed  to  the  indi- 
gent, their  poor  as  content,  their  rich  as  humble, 
that  they  make  as  kind  husbands,  as  dutiful  wives ; 
as  careful  parents  and  as  obedient  children  ;  as  just 
masters  and  as  faithful  servants,  as  those  that  live  in 
communion  with  the  Bishop.  No  man  that  is  ca- 
pable of  making  observations,  and  is  not  quite  lost 
to  ingenuity,  will  deny  any  of  these  things.  If  I 
had  said  more,  and  affirmed,  that  *  outrage,  murder, 

*  and  assassinations  are  the  known  practice  of  the 

*  highflyers,  as  well  as  of  the  bigotted  Papists,  and 

*  that  their  true  mother  tongue  is,  I  will  not  fail 

*  to  cut  your  throat  by  G — d,  it  would  be  thought 

*  hard  ;'  yet  I  might  be  very  well  excused,  because 
Mr  Bisset,  a  Presbyter  of  the  Church  of  England 
has  said  every  word  of  it  before  me.* 

But,  that  Mr  Rhind  may  have  all  due  advantage 
against  the  Presbyterians;  there  are  many  things 
he  has  charged  them  with  as  very  odious,  which  they 
not  only  freely  confess,  but  boldly  avow.  Such  as, 
for  instance :  First,  When  he  charges  them, 
p.  189,  that  they  believe  '  uncommon  measures  of 

*  the  Spirit  of  our  Lord  to  be  still  necessary  in  the 

*  work  of  conversion.'  The  whole  Catholic  Church 
of  Christ  in  all  ages  still  believed  so  ;  and  1  never 
suspected  but  that  those  of  the  Episcopal  communion 
had  believed  so  too,  till  their  new  disciple,  whom, 
no  doubt,  they  have  instructed  in  all  their  arcana, 
informed  me  otherwise.  The  Scripture  tells  us, 
'  That  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ  he  is 

*  none  of  his.'  But  to  say,  that  the  Spirit  is  com- 
mon to  all  the  baptized  swearers,  cursers,  whore- 
mongers, and  adulterers,  through  the  country,  or 
that  it  is  common  to  such  who  live  in  a  habitual 
neglect  of  God,    or   unconcernedness  about  their 

*  Ubi  supra,  p.  8. 


SSO  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

That  all  persons  who  rep^ard  conscience  or  duty 
should  hang  out  a  bloody  flag  against  them,  and  rise 
up  with  one  accord,  and  spoil  their  goods  and  de- 
stroy their  persons  ;  or,  to  speak  in  Dr  Sacheverel's 
much  more  elegant  stile,  '  That  the  Bishops  ought 

*  to  thunder  out  the  ecclesiastical  anathemas  against 
'  them,    and    let   any  power  on  eartli  dare  reverse 

*  tliem ;  and  that  the  people  should  treat  them  like 

*  growing  mischiefs  or  infectious  plagues.'*  This  is 
indeed  somev/hat  hard  ;  but  such  is  the  Episcopal 
charity,  such  are  the  merciful  principles  wherewith 
they  season  their  new  converts,  and  such  is  the  usage 
we  are  to  expect  whenever  the  sins  of  the  nation 
shall  ripen  to  that  height  as  to  provoke  a  holy  God 
to  let  in  prelacy  upon  it.  But  to  make  way  for  par- 
ticulars. 

The  Presbyterians  neither  are  nor  desire  to  be  of 
those  who  justify  themselves.  They  know  and  con- 
fess that  there  are  tares  in  their  field  as  well  as 
wheat ;  and  are  sensible  that  they  have  the  utmost 
reason  to  cry,  with  the  publican,  '  God  be  merciful 
■'  to  us  sinners:'  But  they  think  it  a  very  shameless 
thing  in  tlie  Episcopalians,  that  they  should  be  the 
iirst  who  take  up  stones  to  cast  at  them  :  For,  if  the 
Presbyterians  are  great  sinners,  I  am  afraid  (were 
that  the  enquiry)  the  Episcopalians  would  not  be 
found  to  be  very  great  saints. 

Our  Saviour  has  given  us  an  excellent  rule  where- 
by to  judge  of  mens'   spirits:  '  By  their  fruits  ye 

*  shall  know  them.'  I  hope  it  needs  not  be  deemed 
a  reflection  upon  them,  or  an  immoderate  flattering 
of  ourselves,  to  affirm,  that  the  Presbyterians,  gene- 
rally speaking,  are  as  devout  towards  God,  as  fre- 
quent at  their  prayers  ;  and,  to  outward  appearance 
(for  God  only  knows  the  heart),  as  fervent  in  them 
as  the  prelatist.s.  That  they  swear  as  seldom  by  the 
name  of  God,  as  seldom  tear  open  the  wounds  of 
our  blessed  Saviour,  and  as  seldom  imprecate  damna- 
tion upon  themselves  or  others  as  the  Episcopalians. 

*  Sermon,  *  False  Brethren,'  p.  38. 


rilESCYTERIAN   SPIJIIT.  331 

That  they  are  as  sober  and  temperate,  go  as  seiJom 
drunk  to'bed,  are  as  mild  in  their  carriage,  as  little 
given  to  bullying  or  blustering,  as  those  of  High 
Church:  That  they  are  as  just  in  their  dealings 
with  their  neighbours,  as  open-handed  to  the  indi- 
gent, their  poor  as  content,  their  rich  as  humble, 
that  they  make  as  kind  husbands,  as  dutiful  wives ; 
as  careful  parents  and  as  obedient  children  j  as  just 
masters  and  as  faithful  servants,  as  those  tliat  live  in 
communion  with  the  Bishop.  No  man  that  is  ca- 
pable of  making  observations,  and  is  not  quite  lost 
to  ingenuity,  will  deny  any  of  these  things.  If  I 
had  said  more,  and  affirmed,  that  '  outrage,  murder, 

*  and  assassinations  are  the  known  practice  of  the 

*  highflyers,  as  well  as  of  the  bigotted  Papists,  and 

*  that  their  true  mother  tongue  is,  I  will  not  fail 

*  to  cut  your  throat  by  G — d,  it  would  be  thought 

*  hard  ;'  yet  I  might  be  very  well  excused,  because 
Mr  Bisset,  a  Presbyter  of  the  Church  of  England 
has  said  every  word  of  it  before  me.* 

But,  that  Mr  llhind  may  have  all  due  advantage 
against  the  Presbyterians;  there  are  many  things 
he  has  charged  them  with  as  very  odious,  which  they 
not  only  freely  confess,  but  boldly  avow.  Such  as, 
for  instance :  First,  When  he  charges  them, 
p.  189,  that  they  believe  '  uncommon  measures  of 

*  the  Spirit  of  our  Lord  to  be  still  necessary  in  the 

*  work  of  conversion.'  The  whole  Catholic  Church 
of  Christ  in  all  ages  still  believed  so  ;  and  I  never 
suspected  but  that  those  of  the  Episcopal  communion 
had  believed  so  too,  till  their  new  disciple,  whom, 
no  doubt,  they  have  instructed  in  all  their  arcana, 
informed  me  otherwise.  The  Scripture  tells  us, 
'  That  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of  Christ  he  is 
'  none  of  his.'  But  to  say,  that  the  Spirit  is  com- 
mon to  all  the  baptized  swearers,  cursers,  whore- 
mongers, and  adulterers,  through  the  country,  or 
that  it  is  common  to  such  who  live  in  a  habitual 
neglect  of  God,   or   unconcernedness  about  their 

*  Ubi  supra,  p.  9, 


332  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

souls  and  eternal  state,  even  though  they  are  free 
of  scandalous  sins,  this  I  judge  to  be  the  rankest 
blasphemy.  And  if  that  Spirit  be  not  common  to 
all  such  persons,  then  certainly  it  is  an  uncommon 
Spirit,  or  there  are  uncommon  measures  thereof,  by 
which  good  and  pious  men  are  actuated.  Secondli/y 
When  he  charges  them,  (ibid.  J  with  teaching,  that 
'  the  best  actions  of  men  before  the  grace  of  God 
'  are  but  so  many  splendid  sins.*  They  own  they 
do  believe  this,  as  we  have  seen  before,  p.  10,  the 
Church  of  England  does.  Tliirdlij,  When  he 
charges  them,   p.  195,  that  they  '  have  a   hidden 

*  spice  of  devotion  in  their  tempers:*  They  are  so 
far  from  being  ashamed  of  this,  that  they  pray, 
would  to  God  there  were  more  of  it.  FuurthJjj^ 
When  he  charges  them,  (ibid.),  '  That  upon  the 
'  commission  of  some  grievous  sin,  they  are  affect-. 
'  ed  with  horrible  apprehensions  :*  The  Presbyte- 
rians own  that,  in  that  case,  they  ought  to  be  so  : 
For,  they  know  that  it  exposes  them  to  the  wrath 
of  God  ;  and  believe,  *  that  it  is  a  fearful  thing  to 
'  fall  into  his  hands.'  And  though,  in  that  case, 
'  Their  souls  (that  1  may   use  Mr  lihind's  words, 

*  p.   189),  and  commonly  their  bodies  too,  are  in 

*  the  greatest  disorder  ;*  yet,  they  find  that  the  holy 
men  of  God,  upon  Scripture  record,  have  been  the 
same  way  affected  in  the  like  case.  Thus  David, 
Psalm  xxxviii.  3,  4,  5  ;  *  There  is  no  soundness  in 
'  my  flesh,  because  of  thine  anger  :  neither  is  there 

*  any  rest  in  my  bones,  because  of  my  sin.    For  mine 

*  iniquities  are  gone  over  mine  head  :  as  an  heavy 
'  burden  they  are  too  heavy  for  me.     My  wounds 

*  stink,  and  are  corrupt ;  because  of  my  foolish- 
'  ness.*  In  like  manner  Heman,  Psalm  Ixxxviii.  14, 
15;  'Lord,    why  castcst  thou    off  my  soul?  Why 

*  hidest  thou  thy  face  from  me  ?    I  am  afflicted  and 

*  ready  to  die,  from   my  youth  up  :  While  I  suffer 

*  thy  terrors  I  am  distracted.'  The  Bishop  of  Sa- 
rum,  when  instructing  ministers  *  how  to  deal  with 

»  Pastoral  Care,  M\\  Edition,  p.  176. 


PRESIiYTERIAN  SPIIUT.  3S3 

those  of  their  people  that  are  troubled  in  mind,  de- 
livers himself  thus :  '  Some  have  committed  enor- 
'  mous  sins,   which  kindle   a   storm  in   their  con- 

*  sciences  ;  and  that  ought  to  be  cherislied,  till  they 

*  have  completed  a  repentance  proportioned  to  the 

*  nature  and  degree  of  their  sin.*  Thus  he,  and  thus 
every  one,  who  is  not  quite  abandoned  of  God, 
would  teach.  But  Mr  Rhind  is  not  for  having 
{)eople  allected  with  horrible  apprehensions  upon 
the  commission  of  grievous  sins,  much  less  for  ha- 
ving these  apprehensions  cherished  till  tliey  are 
brought  to  repentance.  What  times  are  we  re- 
served to  !  Fifthljj,  When  he  charges  them  with  a 
serious  air,  p.  202,  with  a  peculiar  vehemency  in 
preaching,  with  a  preciscness  of  conversation,  p. 204, 
with  *  discourses   of  the    love  of  God   and  Christ, 

*  and   sweet  communion  with  the   Father  and  the 

*  Son,*  p.  205  :  T!ie  Presbyterians  are  so  far  from 
being  angry  at  this  charge,  that  they  are  sorry 
there  is  too  little  ground  for  it ;  and  they  are  hear- 
tily sorry  that  the  Episcopal  Clergy  should  have 
had  so  little  regard  to  piety,  to  the  honour  of  reli- 
gion, and  to  their  own  reputation  with  all  serious 
peoj)le,  as  to  have  cherished  such  a  book. 

lor  besides  these  instances,  is  it  possible  any  thing 
can  be  more  profane,  than  to  jest  as  he  does,  p, 
194,  he.  upon  people's  exercise  of  soul  about  their 
eternal  concerns  ?  Does  not  the  Apostle  command 
Timothy,  I  Eph.  iv.  7.  to  exercise  himself  unto 
godliness  ?  Nay,  does  he  not  command  all  Chris- 
lians   to  '  work  out  their  salvation  with  fear  and 

*  trembling  V  Has  the  Episcopal  party  found  out 
an  easier  way  of  getting  to  heaven  ?  Is  it  possible 
any  thing  can  be  more  profane  than  his  charging 
Presbyterians,  p.  200,  with  resolving  much  of  the 
spirit  of  religion  into  amorous  recumbencies,  and 
that  they  think  that  they  will  recommend  themselves 
to  God  after  the  very  same  manner  as  to  their  mis- 
tresses ?  Was  not  this  plainly  intended  to  burlesque 
the  Scripture?  Is  there  any  thing  more  familiar  in 
the  Scripture  than  to  represent  the  intercourse  be- 


5.34  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

twixt  God  and  the  soul  by  the  love  of  the  bride- 
groom and  the  bride,  of  the  husband  and  the  wife  ? 
And  if  these  study  to  recommend  themselves  to 
each  other  by  an  agreeableness  of  temj)er,  and  do- 
ing what  they  know  will  be  well  pleasing  to  each 
other,  is  it  culpable  in  the  soul  to  study  to  be  assi- 
milated to  God,  to  be  made  partaker  of  the  divine 
nature,  and  to  do  what  is  well  pleasing  in  his  sight  ? 
What  are  his  amorous  recumbencies  but  a  comical 
phrase  whereby  he  designed  to  ridicule  the  Scrip- 
ture expression,  Cant  viii.  5.  Meaning  upon  her  be- 

*  loved,'  which  is  literally  the  English  of  it  ?  Is  it 
possible  any  thing  could  be  more  profane  than  to 
strike  at  (as  he  does,  p.  190,)  the  work  of  regenera- 
tion through  the  sides  of  the  Presbyterians,  whom 
he  represents  as  talking  of '  Their  feeling  the  strug- 

*  glings  of  the  babe  of  grace,  in  the  place  of  bring- 
'  ing  furth  of  children,    a   passage,*  saith  he,    '  of 

*  the  prophet  impertinently    applied    by    them  to 

*  this  purpose  ?*  For  was  there  ever  any  Christian 
that  denied  the  turning  of  the  soul  to  God  to  be  ex- 
pressed in  the  Scripture  by  the  birth  of  a  child? 
Do  not  the  Arminians,  does  not  the  Church  of  Rome 
herself,  own  this  ?  And  is  there  not  the  greatest 
reason  for  it,  if  we  consider  either  the  difficulty  or 
the  greatness  of  the  change  wrought  upon  the  soul 
thereby?  Was  there  ever  any  Christian  who  applied 
that  passage  of  the  prophet  to  any  other  purpose 
than  that  of  the  turning  the  soul  to  God?  Even  Gro- 
tius  himself,  upon  the  place,  applies  it  thus  :  *  That 

*  Ephraim  was  not  wise  who  so  long  delayed  to  re- 
'  pent  and  turn  to  God,  and  so  to  deliver  himself 
'  out  of  his  calamities.'  Could  there  be  any  thing 
more  wicked  than  to  load  the  Presbyterians  (as  he' 
does,  p.  197,)  with  the  scandal  of  Major  Weir,  that 
son  of  perdition,  who,  saith  he,  prayed  those  who' 
joined  with  him  into  raptures :  for,  supposing  it 
were  true  he  had  done  so,  which  yet  Mr  llhind  and 
all  his  party  can  never  prove,  how  could  this  affect 
the  Presbyterians  ?  Was  there  not  a  Judas  among 
the  twelve  disciples  ?     Can  any  man  prove  but  that 


rilESBYTEIlIAN  SPIRIT.  335 

he  was  equally  gifted  with  the  rest  ?  Yet  who  ever 
reproached  either  Christ  or  the  college  of  the  apostles 
on  this  account  ?  Or  who  dare  say  but  that  God 
may  employ  such  as  are  sons  of  perdition  themselves 
as  instruments  of  salvation  to  others  ?  Could  any 
thing  be  more  wicked  than  to  represent  (as  he  does, 
p.  I'JO,  196,)  the  Presbyterians,  as  doing  execution 
upon  themselves  through  despair  ?  There  is  no  doubt 
but  Presbyterians  are  liable  to  be  oppressed  with 
melancholy  as  well  as  others,  and  that  some  in  that 
communion  may  sin  themselves  so  far  out  of  the  fa- 
vour of  God,  as  that,  in  his  just  judgment,  he  may 
give  them  up  as  a  prey  to  ^atan.  But  why  should 
the  Presbyterian  Spirit  be  reproached  with  this  ? 
Though  tlie  news  prints  from  London  *  tell  us  that, 
last  year,  from  the  1 6th  of  December  1712,  to  the 
15th  of  December  1713,  there  were  thirty-four  per- 
sons, within  the  bills  of  mortality,  guilty  of  self-mur- 
der, will  any  body  therefore  charge  prelacy  and  li- 
turgy therewith,  though  rampant  there  ?  Because 
I  can  name  a  famous  divine  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land, who  trussed  up  himself  in  his  canonical  belt, 
were  it  therefore  just  that  I  should  load  the  spirit  of 
the  Church  of  England  therewith  ? 

Mr  Rhind  does  indeed  name  two  books,  viz.  Shep- 
herd's Sincere  Convert,  and  Guthrie's  Trial  of  a  Sav- 
ing Interest  in  Christ,  as  leading  men  into  that 
course,  or  into  deceitful  hopes  founded  upon  animal 
impressions.  As  for  Mr  Shepherd's  book,  I  am  not 
so  much  concerned  about  it ;  he  was  a  man  that,  as 
I  am  informed,  had  Episcopal  orders,  and  was  some- 
times of  Emanuel  College  in  Cambridge.  And  I 
will  not  undertake  to  defend  some  peculiarities  he 
has  in  his  writings ;  let  Mr  llhind,  who  is  more 
obliged,  do  it  at  his  best  leisure.  But  that  there  is 
any  thing  in  that  book  that  has  the  least  tendency 
either  to  drive  men  into  despair,  or  to  encourage 
them  to  bottom  their  hopes  of  heaven  upon  false 
grounds,  I  absolutely  deny,  and  challenge  Mr  lihind 

*  See  the  Evening  Post,  Numb.  6S3. 


336  13EFENCE  OF  THE 

to  prove  it :  for  hitherto  he  has  acted  as  an  avowed 
calumniator,  in  not  daring  to  cite  scj  nnicli  as  one 
passage  of  the  said  book  for  making  good  his  charge. 

As  for  Mr  Guthrie,  he  was  a  genuine  Presbyterian, 
his  book  is  written  in  a  most  famiHar  stile,  adapted 
to  the  capacity  of  every  common  reader,  and  to  the 
i'eehng  of  every  good  Cluistian  :  and  God  has  so 
signally  blessed  it  with  success,  that  no  one  book  can 
be  named,  written  by  any  Scotsman  of  either  com- 
munion, tliat  has  been  so  instrumental  in  bringing 
off  peo})le  from  a  course  either  of  vice  or  indifferen- 
cy,  and  in  engaging  them  to  thoughtfulness  and  a 
concern  about  their  eternal  interest,  as  this  has  been. 
Can  then  Mr  Rhind  instance  wherever  the  flither  of 
lies  was  guilty  of  a  greater  than  what  he  has  alleged 
against  that  book  ?  No.  He  was  self-condemned, 
and  therefore  dared  not  adventure  to  cite  so  much 
as  one  line  of  it  for  verifying  his  charge.  But  we 
are  not  to  wonder  at  this  his  conduct.  For  when 
once  a  man  proclaims  hostility  against  piety  in  the 
general,  he  finds  it  necessary  to  blow  upon  every 
serious  book  that  tends  to  promote  it.  I  thought  it 
necessary  to  give  these  hints  by  tlie  bye,  that  the 
world  may  see  what  men  they  are  that  separate  from 
the  Presbyterians,  and  are  received  by  the  E])iscopal 
party. 

I  am  now  to  consider  his  argument  as  he  has  laid 
it.  First,  As  to  its  weight,  and  then  as  to  its  truth. 

In  the  Jlrst  place,  as  to  its  weight.  Supposing  it 
were  tru5,  that  the  spirit  of  the  Presbyterians  is  dia- 
metrically opposite  to  that  of  the  gospel,  would  that 
alo?ie  justify  a  separation  ?  Mr  Rhind  affirms  it 
would  ;  and  positively  says  in  his  ])enult  page,  '  that 
*  each  of  his  arguments  separately  is  sufficient  to 
'  warrant  the  change  he  has  made ;  and  as  to  this 
'  argument  particularly,'  he  says,  p.  185,  'that  it 
'  might  serve  instead  of  all  these  he  hath  urged.'  I 
affirm  the  contrary  ;  and  that,  even  supposing  its 
truth,  it  could  not  justify  a  separation,  abstracting 
from  the  rest.  The  truth  or  being  of  a  church  is 
never  to  be  measured  by  the  manners  of  the  mem- 


PKESBYTERIAN    SPIRIT.  337 

bers,  which  may  be  good  and  bad  at  different  times, 
and  vary  as  men  do.      Tiie  church  of   Israel  was 
always,  as  God  had  framed  it,  a  true  church.     But 
if  hohness  of  hfe  had  been  made  a  note  of  it,  it  might 
in  some  junctures  have  been  called  no  church  at  all. 
When  our  Saviour  visited  the  world,  he  could  scarce 
find  any  probity  in  it ;  and  the  formal  religion  of  the 
Pharisees  had  made  void  real  and  solid  piety.     The 
blood  of  all  the  prophets  was  lying  upon  them,  and 
through  their  own  traditions  they  had  made  void  the 
commandments  of  God.     And  yet,  notwithstanding 
all  this,  Cinist  did  not  separate  from  them.     Conse- 
quently the  like  objection  cannot  be    a  justifiable 
ground  of  separation  in  any  other.     Thus  Dr  Teni- 
son,  now  primate  of  all  England,  and  who  is  at  once 
the  honour  as  well  as  head  of  his  order,  reasoned  * 
against  the  Romanists,urging  (with  the  same  modesty 
as  Mr  Rhind  does),  holiness  of  life  as  a  note  of  their 
church.     And  I  suppose  the  reasoning  will  still  hold 
good.    It  was  then  a  very  unchristian  act  in  Mr  Rhind 
to  separate  from  the  Presbyterians,  when  his  shining 
virtue  and  bright  example  could  not  have  failed  to 
have  reclaimed  them,  or  at  least  to  render  them  in- 
excusable.    But  it  is  not  the  first  sad  loss  they  have 
sustained  and  overcome  too  ;  as,  I  hope,  they  shall 
do  this. 

However,  supposing  the  w^eight,  let  us  consider 
the  truth  of  his  argument.  This  1  shall  do  by  exa- 
mining the  particulars  he  insists  on.  Having  spent 
two  or  three  pages  in  describing  the  spirit  of  the 
gospel,  and  what  he  means  by  the  spirit  of  a  party  : 
He  alleges,  I.  That  the  Presbyterian  spirit  is  enthu- 
siastical.  11.  That  it  is  a  mere  animal  or  mechani- 
cal spirit.  III.  That  it  is  a  partial  spirit,  damning 
and  denying  grace  to  all  but  their  own  party.  IV. 
That  it  is  a  narrow  and  mean  spirit.  V.  That  it  is  a 
malicious,  unforgiving  spirit.  VI.  That  it  is  an  un- 
conversible  spirit.  V'li.  That  it  is  a  disloyal,  rebel- 
lious spirit.     VIII.    That  it  is  a  spirit  of  division. 

*  On  Bcllarmine's  X.  Note  of  the  Church. 

y 


SS8  DEFENCE   OF   THE 

-'^X.    That  it  is  an  iinneii^hbourlv,  cruel  and  barbar- 
ous  spirit. 

Here  is  a  very  formidable  muster  ;  yet,  after  all, 
not  very  dangerous.  For,  Mr  Rhind  lias  been  so 
well  naUired  as  not  to  cite  so  much  as  one  line  out 
of  any  Presbyterian  author  for  proving  any  tiling  of 
all  tliis ;  though  that  was,  I  am  sure,  the  most,  per- 
liaps  the  only  habile  way  of  doing  his  business  effec- 
tually. Nay,  thougli  the  greatest  part  of  his  charge 
turns  upon  matter  of  fact ;  yet  he  has  not  cited  so 
much  as  one  historian,  great  or  small,  of  either  side^ 
for  making  it  good.  But  such  is  the  Episcopal  way 
of  writing,  and  we  must  not  complain.  Harangue 
and  declamation  are  all-powerful  engines  when  play- 
ed by  a  canonical  hand  :  And  when  they  are  at  so 
much  pains  to  laboiu-  their  periods  into  a  cadence, 
it  is  rudeness  and  ill  manners  in  us  to  ask  for  proof, 
the  insisting  on  which  v/ould  spoil  the  harmony  of 
their  rhetoric.  However,  we  must  crave  leave  to 
enquire  a  little  into  the  particulars  of  this  charge. 

THE    PRESBYTERIAN    SPIRIT    NOT    EMTIIUSIASTICAL. 

I.  He  charges  the  Presbyterians  with  an  enthu- 
siastical  spirit.  But  on  what  grounds  ?  1st,  Saith 
he,  p.  200,  '  their  most  admired    practical  systems 

*  contain  nothing  but  the  very  dreg   of  mysticism, 

*  and  a  jargon  no  less  unintelligible,  than  that  of 

*  Jacob  Behmen  or  Molino.'  Well,  what  are  these 
practical  systems  ?  He  is  so  far  from  citing  any  thing 
out  of  them,  that  he  does  not  so  much  as  name  any 
of  them,  except  the  two  already  mentioned,  viz. 
Shepherd  and  Guthrie.  For  vindication  of  Mr 
Guthrie's  book,  I  ask  no  more  of  any  person,  but 
that  he  will  peruse  it  seriously  ;  and  if,  after  he  has 
done,  he  can  say  there  is  any  other  mysticism  or 
enthusiasm  in  it,  than  what  the  gospel  teaches  :  nay, 
than  what  every  man  who  is  concerned  about  his 
soul  feels,  I  will  frankly  forgive  him. 

Plainl)^  the  import  of  that  system  is  this.  That 
the  great  work  every  man  has  to  do  in  this  world, 
is  to  secure  eternal  happiness  to  himself.     That  there 


rUESBYTEKIAN    SPIRIT.  339 

are  Indeed  some  persons  blessed  with  the  advantage  of 
a  rehgious  education,  and  the  grace  of  God  falling  in 
therewith  ;  they  are  insensibly  trained  up  to  piety  and 
\irtue,and  find  themselvesinaiixedhabltthcreor,  with- 
out being  able  to  give  a  distinct  account  how  it  be- 
gan, or  by  what  sensible  steps  it  has  arrived  at  such  a 
heiglit.  But  then  the  far  greater  part  of  baptised 
persons,  spend  a  great  part  of  their  life,  either  in 
a  course  of  vice  and  lewdness,  or  at  best  in  indlffe- 
rency  and  carelessness  about  their  eternal  salvation. 
God,  who  is  an  infinite  lover  of  souls,  and  wills  not 
that  they  should  perish,  is  graciously  pleased,  in  his 
own  good  time,  by  his  spirit,  working  by  those  ways 
lie  has  appointed,  to  w^eaken  them  into  a  thoughtful 
temper,  and  to  alarm  them  of  their  danger.  lie  en- 
gages them  seriously  to  compare  their  heart  and  life 
with  the  law  of  God.  And,  upon  the  doing  this, 
they  cannot  but  discover  a  vast  contrariety  and  con- 
tradiction between  them.  He  engages  them  like- 
wise seriously  to  lay  to  heart,  the  threatenlngs  of  God, 
and  the  dreadful  things  his  law  has  awarded  against 
such  criminals  as  they  are  :  And  this  cannot  but  af- 
fect them  with  the  most  horrible  apprehensions. 
For,  who  can  be  easy  either  in  body  and  mind  under 
the  thought  of  having  God  for  his  enemy ;  and  un- 
der the  thouglit  of  getting  hell  for  his  portion  ?  God 
is  pleased  to  exercise  them  with  such  thoughts,  till 
lie  sees  they  are  duly  humbled,  and  in  caniest  con- 
vinced that  it  was  a  bitter  and  evil  thing  to  depart 
from  the  living  God.  But  then,  God  does  not  pro- 
ject for  the  uneasiness  of  his  creatiu'es  ;  nor  require 
sorrow  for  sorrow's  sake,  but  that  they  may  be  the 
more  watchful  against  sin  in  time  coming,  and  the 
more  affected  with  his  goodness  in  providing  a  me- 
thod of  delivery  lor  them.  And,  therefore,  when  he 
has  exercised  them  so  long,  and  to  such  a  height  as  is 
needful  for  attaining  these  ends  upon  them  ;  he  is 
pleased  to  begin  their  relief  by  intimating  to  them, 
by  means  of  the  gospel,  a  possibility  of  salvation 
through  Jesus  Christ.  Yet  even  this  is  not  suffi- 
cient to  determine  the  soul   to  God.     For,  be  the 

Y  2 


340  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

remedy  never  so  sovereign,  yet  it  can  do  no  good  to 
such  as  do  not  apply  it ;  whether  through  despair, 
that  it  will  not  be  effectual,  or  through  a  false  hope 
that  the  wound  will  not  prove  deadly.  And,  there- 
fore, yet  further  God,  by  the  internal  operation  of 
his  spirit,  in  the  way  of  gospel  means,  gives  a  new 
turn  and  bias  to  the  soul ;  not  only  persuades  it  that 
it  is  possible  to  be  saved,  and  that  it  is  absolutely 
needful  to  fall  in  with  the  gospel  method  of  salva- 
tion, but  effectually  determines  it  to  do  so ;  so  that 
the  soul  heartily  renounces  all  sin,  sincerely  engages 
in  a  course  of  universal  holiness,  and,  in  that  me- 
thod, trusts  to  the  merit  and  righteousness  of  Christ 
allenarly  for  acceptance  with  God,  pardon  of  sin^ 
and  coming  to  heaven  at  last.  Now,  when  a  person 
finds  his  case  altered  thus  so  much  to  the  better  ;  is 
it  possible  but  that  he  must  needs  rejoice  with  joy  un- 
speakable and  full  of  glory?  While  he  goes  on  in  the 
way  of  holiness,  is  it  possible  but  he  must  find  that  the 
ways  of  wisdom  are;ways  of  pleasantness,  and  her  paths 
peace  ?  When  he  is  sensible  that  his  eternal  hap- 
piness is  secured  by  an  interest  in  Christ,  is  it  pos- 
sible but  that  he  must  rejoice  in  the  hope  of  the 
glory  of  God  ?  If  at  any  time  he  slack  his  diligence, 
and  fall  into  sin,  through  the  infirmity  of  nature,  or 
the  violence  of  Satan's  temptations,  and  thereupon 
the  consolations  of  the  Holy  Ghost  are  withdrawn, 
has  he  not  the  greatest  reason  to  be  dejected  both 
in  body  and  mind,  and  to  pray  with  the  Psalmist, 
Psalm  li.  8.  11. '  Make  me  to  hear  joy  and  gladness  : 
'  That  the  bones  which  thou  hast  broken  may  rejoice. 

*  Cast  me  not  away  I'rom  thy  presence  :     Take  not 

•  thy  Holy  Spirit  from  me.'  Or,  if  God,  even  in  a 
sovereign  way,  overcast  his  soul  ;  that  he  may  longso 
much  the  more  for  the  uninterrupted  joys  of  hea- 
ven :  Is  this  any  other  than  what  the  most  holy 
men  recorded  in  Scripture  have  felt  ? 

This  is  the  import  of  Mr  Guthrie's  book,  and 
indeed  of  all  the  other  practical  systems  written  by 
the  Presbyterians  on  the  same  subject.      Is  there 


PRESBYTEKIAN    SPIRIT.  341 

any  thing  of  enthusiasm  in  all  this  ?  Any  irregular 
heats  ?  Why,  then,  would  Mr  Rhind  adventure  to 
expose  the  internal  part  of  religion  in  so  ludicrous 
a  manner  as  he  has  done  ?  Certainly,  if  ever  any 
man  was  guilty  of  the  sin  of  doing  despite  unto 
the  Spirit  of  Grace,  he  is  so.  This,  wliich  I  have  told, 
is  that  which  he  calls  the  '  long  and  senseless  sto- 
*  ry  of  the  manner  of  God's  dealing  with  the  souls 
'  of  his  elect.'  These  the  strange  ihings  they  talk 
of  their  manifcstaiions  and  desertioiis.  This  the 
sudden  and  irresistible  manner  of  God's  influencing 
them  by  his  Spirit,  which  Mr  Rhind  thinks  so  much 
a  jest;  but  which  no  man  that  fears  God  will  allow 
himself  to  think  the  same  way  of.  It  is  true,  the 
determining  turn  that  the  Spirit  of  God  gives  to 
the  soul,  is  acknowledged  by  the  Presbyterians  to 
be  instantaneous  ;  but  then  they  acknowledge,  too, 
a  great  deal  of  preparatory  work;  and  Mr  Guthrie, 
In  particular,  largely  insists  on  it :  So  that  Mr 
Rhind's  representing  the  Presbyterians,  p.  193,  as 
pleading  for  conversions ;  attended  with  such  cir- 
cumstances as  these  of  Paul,  &c.  were,  is  only  an  in- 
stance of  that  calumny  to  which  he  has  so  entirely 
given  up  himself. 

2dlij,  Another  ground,  whereon  Mr  Rhind  would 
found  the  charge  of  enthusiasm  against  the  Presby- 
terians, is,  That  they  pretend,  as  he  alleges,  p.  190, 
to  Illum'malions  and  Raptures^  and  to  the  most  ex- 
traordinary inspirations ;  and  then  he  falls  a  dispu- 
ting very  weightily,  in  order  to  disprove  their  being 
extraordinarily  inspired,  and  very  frequently  com- 
pares them  to  the  modern  prophets  in  their  agita- 
tions. But  how  does  he  prove,  that  they  pretend  to 
any  such  thing  ?  No  way.  He  has  not  so  much  as 
offered  at  doing  so,  nor  adduced  one  syllable  for 
that  purpose.  What,  then,  is  to  be  thought  of  him 
and  his  fellow-writers,  who  ordinarily  talk  at  the 
same  rate  ?  Is  it  not  plain,  that  they  are  under  the 
power  of  hypochondriacal  melancholy,  whereof  wild 
and  extravagant  imaginations,  for  which  there  is  no 
ground,  are  a  most  infallible  symptom  ? 


242  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

But  why  did  Mr  Rliind  cliarge  the  Presbyterians 
with  enthusiasm,  when  his  own  party  had  been  so 
scandalously  guilty  of  it  ?  In  thejirsl  place,  when  en- 
thusiasm was  in  fashion,  in  the  time  of  the  late  civil 
•wars,  who  were  the  great  masters  of  it  ?  The  Presby- 
terians in  Scotland  preached  and  wrote  against  it ; 
but  the  Episcopalians  in  England  cherished  it;  and 
some  of  their  clergy  were  the  principal  writers  for 
it — for  instance,  Mr  William  Erbery,  who  owns  him- 
self to  have  been  Episcopally  ordained.  There  is  a 
thick  quarto  volume  of  his  lucubrations  extant,  under 
the  title  of  hisTestimony,from  which  it  is  evident  that 
Jacob  Beluiien  might  have  gone  to  school  to  him  to 
learn  enthusiasm.  2f//^,  Does  not  Parker,  who  writes 
against  the  Confession  of  Faith,  and  has  prefixed 
to  it  a  poem  against  the  Synod  of  Dort,  and  in 
praise  of  Arminius,  and  who  was  just  such  another 
Protestant  as  Mr  Rhind— does  not  he,  I  say,  avow 
"himself  an  enthusiast,  and  recommend  Jacob  Bell- 
men, and  such  others,  as  divinely  inspired  ?*  Sdlj/^ 
"Who  knows  not  that  Dr  George  Garden,  one  of  the 
first  characters  among  the  Episcopal  clergy,  is  the 
great  promoter  of  the  Borignian  principles  ?  4////7/, 
Who  were  they  that  were  mostly  carried  away  by 
the  modern  prophets,  and  seized  with  their  agita- 
tions? 1  suppose  the  ]']pisco])al  ciergy  cannot  purge 
their  own  tamiiies.  5////7/,  Does  not  the  author  of 
MrDodwell's  life  confess,  that,  towards  the  latter 
part  of  it,  '  he  seems  to  grow  not  a  little  enthu- 
*  siasticai  ;'  And  is  it  possible  any  one  can  read 
his  epistolary  discourse  and  not  be  convinced  of 
this  ?  For  instance,  when  he  teaches  that  our  Sa- 
viour preached  to  the  separate  souls  who  deceased 
before  his  incarnation.  Sect.  41  :  When  he  teaches 
that  water  baptism  was  given  to  the  separate  souls 
of  them  who  had  no  means  of  obtaining  it  when 
livinar.  Sect.  42  :  When  he  teaches  that  the  renun- 
ciation  of  the  devil  vvaspertormable  in  the  separate 
Mate  by  those  who  could  not  know  their  duty  before. 

*  Fagrs  6,  11,  <5:c. 


PUESUYTIIUIAN   SPIRIT.  343 

Sect.  43  :  When  he  teaclies,  that  the  Gentiles  re- 
ceived the  spirit  of  oiir  JSaviour's  baptism  in  their 
separate  state,  Sect.  44  :  Wiien  he  teaches  that  the 
Apostles,  being  themselves  deceased,  preached  to  the 
deceased  Gentiles,  Sect.  45  : — Were  their  ever  more 
distracted  notions  than  these  vented  in  Bedlam  ? 
I  think  then  it  were  the  wisdom  of"  the  Episcopal 
party,  for  their  own  sakes,  to  drop  the  charge  of 
i^nthusiasm  a^rainst  the  Presbyterians.  I  shall  con- 
elude  this  with  observing,  by  tlie  bye,  that  Mr  Rhind 
writes  inaccurately  when  he  yokes  Jacob  Behmen  and 
Molino  together.  Molino's  greatest  errors,  lor 
which  he  seems  to  be  too  severely  persecuted 
by  the  Church  of  Rome,  were,  according  to 
the  best  information,  the  doctrines  of  predestina- 
tion and  its  dependencies,  and  his  teaching  people 
to  place  their  devotion  rather  in  internal  prayer  and 
communion  with  Gotl,  than  in  numbering  their 
beads  :  *  Whereas,  all  the  enthusiasts  are  mortal 
enemies  to  the  doctrine  of  predestination,  &c.  and 
Mr  Pioret  owns  that  he  levelled  his  Econom'ie  Di- 
tin  mainly  against  these  doctrines  ;  and  Dr  Gar- 
den does  the  same  in  his  writings.  So  much  for 
the  charge  of  an  enthusiastical  spirit, 

NOT  MERELY  ANIMAL  OR  MECHANICAL. 

II.  He  charges  the  Presbyterians  with  a  merely 
Animal  or  Mechanical  spirit,  and  that  all  their 
hopes  and  fears,  joys  and  sorrows  in  religion,  are 
mere  mechanism,  the  effect  of  melancholy,  ima- 
gination, and  animal  impressions.  Hear  him  a  little, 
p.  196.  *  He  (that  is,  a  Presbyterian,  after  the 
'  commission  of  some  grievous  sin),  dreams  of  no- 
'  thing  but  of  hell  and  damnation,  v/hich,  in  the  hurry 

*  of  his  passions,  perhaps,  forces  him  to  dispatch  him- 

*  self.  But  if  the  black  blood  shall  chance  to  be 
'  sweetened  by  a  mixture  of  bitter,  and  if  the  vio- 
'  lence  of  his  passions  is  abated,  he  begins  to  conceive 

*  better  hopes.     And  if  he  shall  chance  to  recover 

*  See  Supplement  to  Dr  Burnet's  Travels. 


314  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

'  from  tliis  fever,  so  that  his  blood  does  again  glide 

*  after  its  due  manner,  he  concludes  that  all  is  well 
'  with  him.'  Thus  he,  and  a  great  deal  more  to  the 
same  purpose.  It  is  true,  the  Presbyterians  own 
themselves  to  be  compound  beings,  and  that  they 
consist  of  flesh  as  well  as  spirit,  and  believe  that 
God  applies  himself  to  them  according  to  the  make 
of  human  nature,  and  discovers  infinite  wisdom  and 
goodness  in  doing  so  ;  '  for  he  knows  our  frame,  and 

*  remembers  we  are  dust.'  But,  because  the  animal 
affections  operate  sensibly,  either  upon  the  com- 
mission of  some  grievous  sin,  or  upon  our  having 
made  peace  with  God,  does  it  therefore  follow,  that 
the  Spirit  of  God  did  not  excite  them  ?  Or  that, 
because  the  inferior  and  bodily  faculties  do  operate, 
therefore  the  superior  faculties  do  not  ?  Is  it  pos- 
sible, but  that  the  soul  and  body  must  work  mutual- 
ly upon  and  affect  each  other  while  we  are  in  the 
embodied  state  ?  Nay,  will  they  not  do  so  even 
after  the  resurrection,  which  is  the  most  perfect 
state  ?  Does  he  not  know  that  a  separate  state  is  a 
preternatural  one,  which  sin  alone  has  made  us  liable 
unto.  The  truth  is,  I  think  Mr  Rhind,  after  all  his 
boasts,  to  be  but  very  indifferently  qualified  to  write 
lectures  upon  the  animal  economy,  and  that  he  is  a 
perfect  stranger  to  Solon's  precept  nosce  teipsum,  as 
well  as  to  the  exercise  of  piety.  And,  therefore,  ere 
he  begin  to  write  his  lectures,  I  cannot  but  recom- 
mend to  him  the  perusal  of  that  excellent  discourse 
concerning  [the  mechanical  operation  of  the  spirit, 
annexed  to  that  very  pious  book  called  *  A  Tale  of 
'  a  Tub.'  If  Mr  Rhind  can  recover  the  papers 
necessary  for  the  filling  up  the  Lacuna,  p.  303,  his 
business  is  done ;  for  the  bookseller  has  assured  us, 
that  *  in  them  the  whole  scheme  of  spiritual  mechan- 

*  ism  was  deduced  and  explained,  with  an  appear- 
'  ance  of  great  reading  and  observation  ;  though  it 

*  was  thought  neither  safe  nor  convenient  to  print 
'  them.'  Such  devout  books  tend  mightily  to  the 
promoting  of  religion,  and  many  such  the  Church  of 
England  clergy  has  blessed  this  sinful  age  vt'ith  j  and 


PRESBYTERIAN   SPIRIT.  345 

it  cannot  but  raise  Mr  Rhind's  character  to  comTu- 
nicate  such  laudable  productions  of  his  brethren  for 
the  benefit  of  the  public.     But,  to  go  on, 

If  Mr  Rhind  was  so  great  an  enemy  to  every  thing 
of  animal  exercise  in  rehgion,  why  did  he  join  the 
Church  of  England  ;  for,  of  all  other  Protestant 
Churches  in  the  world,  she  has  aimed  most  at  the 
raising  of  the  animal  affections  by  her  way  of  wor- 
jship,  though  she  is  so  unhappy  as  to  attempt  it  by 
methods  which  our  blessed  Saviour  never  instituted; 
for  what  else  means  the  pompousness  of  her  service? 
What  else  is  designed  by  the  cope,  surplice,  ro,tchet, 
&c.  ?  What  else  by  the  ceremonies,  and  all  that 
mimical  cringing  and  bowing  (so  much  practised  in 
the  chapel  and  cathedral  worship),  which  is  below 
the  gravity  of  a  man,  much  more  of  a  minister  ? 
Can  there  be  any  thing  else  designed  by  all  this  but 
to  bear  upon  the  senses  and  afi'ect  the  imagination  ? 
What  is  the  surplice  and  all  the  other  sacred  accou- 
trements intended  for,  but  to  dazzle  the  eyes  ?  What 
are  the  organs  and  singing  boys  designed  for,  but 
to  charm  the  ears?  AVhy  are  the  prayers  and  the 
whole  devotions  parcelled  into  such  shreds,  but  that 
the  animal  part  may  be  gratified  with  variety  ?  Mr 
Rhind,  then,  ought  to  have  been  aware  of  touching 
upon  this  point ;  for,  after  all  the  abstraction  he  and 
his  party  pretend  to,  the  world  sees  well  enough 
that  they  are  but  flesh  and  blood  like  their  neigh- 
bours. 

NOT  A  PARTIAL  DAMNING  SPIRIT. 

III.  He  charges  the  Presbyterians  with  a  partial 
spirit,  damning  and  denying  grace  to  all  but  their 
own  party.  *  So  few,'  saith  he,  p.  191,  *are  they  to 
'  whom   they  allow  this  saving  grace,  that,  if  we 

*  shall  except  the  Apostles  and  those  of  that  extra- 

*  ordinary  age,   and   St  Augustine,  they  will  allow 

*  none  to  have  been  blessed  with  it,  till  it  was  vouch- 

*  safed  to  some  Presbyterians  in  the  west  of  Scotland, 

*  about  a  hundred  years  ago,   who  conveyed  it  to 

*  their  successors,  and  infected  some  of  their  En- 


346  DEFENCE   OF    THE 

'  glish  brethren  tlicrewith.*  And,  p.  204, '  they  con- 

*  line,'  saith  be,  *  the  grace  of  conversion,  and  con- 

*  sequently  election,  to  tbeir  own  party.'  This  is  in- 
deed a  heinous  charge.  But  how  lias  he  proved  it  ? 
Nay,  not  so  much  as  the  least  document  has  he  offer- 
ed to  produce  for  that  purpose.  The  Episcopal  ve- 
racity must  stand  for  all.  But  the  Presbyterians 
deny  the  charge  till  they  shall  see  it  proved. 

In  the  meantime,  I  charge  Mr  Khind,  and  his 
party,  with  a  partial,  damning  spirit,  and  shall  prove 
it  ere  I  go  further.  1^^,  I  charge  Mr  Rhind  with  it. 
For,  speaking  of  the  spirit  of  the  Presbyterians,  p. 
216,  he  expressly  says,  that  *  it  drives  them  from 
'  the  communion  of  the  church,   and  cuts  them  off 

*  from  the  ordinary  communications  of  the  Holy 
'  Ghost.'  Besides,  he  has  (as  we  have  heard  before) 
damned  the  w4iole  Protestant  Churches  that  want 
Episcopal  government.  Nay,  he  has  damned  the 
whole  Catholic  Church  of  Christ,  by  declaring  her 
doctrines  fundamentally  false  and  pernicious.  2r%, 
I  charge  his  party  with  it.  Besides  many  shoals  of 
lesser  authors,  I  instance,  for  the  purpose,  Mr  Dod- 
well,  the  standard-bearer  of  the  party.  In  his  book 
of  schism,  the  sum  of  the  fifteenth  chapter  is,  that  the 
Spirit  of  God  is  not  given,  nor  his  graces  commu- 
nicated, nor  pardon  of  sin  bestowed,  nor  salvation 
to  be  expected  without  the  sacraments.  The  design 
of  his  eighteenth  chapter  is  to  prove,  that  the  vali- 
dity of  the  sacraments  depends  on  the  authority  of 
the  persons  by  whom  they  are  administered.  The 
design  of  his  nineteenth  chapter  is  to  prove,  that 
no  other  ministers  have  this  authority  of  adminis- 
tering the  sacraments,  but  only  they  who  receive 
their  orders  in  the  Episcopal  communion.  The  sum 
of  all  is,  no  bishop  no  minister  ; — no  minister  no  sa- 
crament ; — -no  sacrament  no  salvation  ;  ErgOy  no 
bishop  no  salvation.     Or,  take  it  in  his  own  words,* 

*  the  alone  want  of  commimion   with   the  bishop 

*  makes  persons  aliens  from  God  and  Christ,  stran- 

*  gers  to  the  covenant  of  promise  and  the  common- 

f  One  Priesthood;  Chap.  xiii.  Sectj  14. 


PRESDYTERIAN'    SPIfvIT.  S47 

*  weallh  of  Lrael. — They  must  certainly  be  deprived 

*  of  all    those    real    enjoyments  and  lioly   rehshes 

*  winch  devout  souls  experience,  even  in  this  life, 

*  in  the  communion  witii  thefr  best  beloved.'  In  a 
word,  he  tells  us,  that,  on  that  account,  we  must 
want  the  comforts  of  religion  here,  and  lose  the  hopes 
of  enjoying  tlicni  hereafier.  ISay  now,  good  reader, 
if  it  is  not  modest  in  the  Episcopal  ])arty  to  charge  the 
Presbyterians  with  a  damning  sj)irit.  V/hethcr 
atheism,  laziness,  or  uxoriousness  (as  Mr  llhind  al- 
leges against  the  Presbyterians),  can  engage  men  of 
sense  to  entertain  such  fantastic  principles,  I  shall 
not  say  ;  but,  sure  1  am,  they  come  not  from  the 
.Spirit  of  God,  nor  are  consistent  with  the  peace  of 
ihe  church  or  nation. 

NOT     A    KARllOW  oil    MEAN    SrilllT. 

IV.  He  charges  the  Presbyterians  with  a  narrow 
and  mean  spirit.  Upon  what  evidence  ?  1^^,  *  Christ,' 
saith  he,  *  died  for  all  men,  but  the  Presbyterians 
'  confine  the  merit  of  his  death  to  a  predestinated 

*  few,'  p.  207.  I  answer,  the  Presbyterians  ac- 
knowlediiethat Christ  died  for  all  men  in  all  that  sense 
the  Scripture  meant  ever  that  expression.  It  is 
true,  they  confine  the  efficacy  of  his  death  to  the 
predestinated,  and  acknowledge  that  Christ's  flock 
(comparatively  speaking),  is  but  a  little  one  ;  but  it  is 
ialse  that  they  confine  it  to  a  few ;  on  the  contrary, 
they  believe  the  redeemed  to  be  past  numbering, 
and  hope,  upon  theassuranceof  the  Scripture, '  Rev. 
'  vii.  9.  to  behold  one  day  a  great  multitude,  which 

*  no  man  can  number,  of  all  nations,   and  kindreds, 

*  and  people,  and  tongues,  standing  before  the  throne, 

*  and  betbre   the  Lamb,  clothed  with  white   robes, 

*  and  i)alms  intheir  hands,  and  hynmsin  their  mouths.' 
2dl(ji  '  Christ  meant,'  saith  he,  *  that  liis  grace  should 

*  extend  universally,  which  the  Presbyterians  re- 
'  strain  to  their  own  parly.'  I  answer,  the  first  part 
of  this  charge  is  false  doctrine,  the  latter  impudent 
calumny.  The  first  part  of  it  1  say  is  false  doctrine, 
for  which  (waving  other  arguments  at  this   time,)  1 


348  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

appeal  to  the  Church  of  England,  which,  in  her  cate* 
chism,  thougli  she  teaches  her  catechumens  to  say- 
'  I  beheve  in  God  the  Son,  who  hath  redeemed  me 

*  and  all  mankind,'  yet  she  expressly  restricts  the 
object  of  sanctifying  grace;  and  teaches  tlie  cate- 
chumen to  say,   'I  believe  in  God  the  Holy  Ghost, 

*  who  sanctilietli  me  and  all  the  elect  people  of  God.' 
The  latter  part  of  the  charge,  I  add,  is  impudent 
calumny.  The  Presbyterians  are  so  flu-  from  re= 
straining  grace  to  their  own  party,  that  they  both  be- 
lieve and  profess  that  '  in  every  nation  he  that  fear- 
'  eth  God  and  worketh  righteousness  is  accepted  of 

*  him/ 

But  then,  who  knows  not  that  high-church  is  guilty 
of  this  narrowness  and  meanness  of  spirit  even  to  the 
last  degree  of  scandal  ?  Is  it  not  known  that  they 
not  only  deny  grace  to  Presbyterians,  but  even  con- 
fine the  Church  of  England  to  their  own  party,  and 
reckon  all  such,  even  of  the  Episcopal  communion, 
schismatics,  as  fall  in  with  the  government ;  nay,  in 
their  most  solemn  offices,  rank  their  episcopal  bre- 
thren of  the  lower  form  in  the  very  same  class  with 
pagans.  Thus,  in  their  new  liturgy  *  which  they 
formed  after  King  William's  accession  to  the  throne, 
they  })rayed  in  terms,  *  restore  to  us  again  the  public 

*  worship  of  thy  name,  the  reverend  administration 
'  of  thy  sacraments :  raise  up  the  former  govern- 
'  ment  both  in  church  and  state,  that  we  may  be  no 
'  longer  without  king,  without  priest,  without  God 

*  in  the  world.*     3<//y,  '  Christ's  charity,*   saith  he, 

*  relieved  all  men  indifferently,  enemies   as  well  as 

*  friends,   while   the  Presbyterian  bias  visibly  sways 

*  them  to  favour  the  godly,  that  is,  those  of  their 
'  own  way.'  It  is  answered,  the  Presbyterians,  as 
they  have  opportunity,  do  good  unto  all  men  ; 
though  indeed,  according  to  the  Apostles  precept, 
'  especially  unto  them  who  are  of  the  household  of 

*  faith,*  whether  of  their  own  or  any   other  way ; 

♦  See  a  pamphlet,  entitled  Reflections  upon  a  Form  of  Prayer 
lately  set  forth  for  the  Jacobites  of  the  Church  of  England, 
printed  for  liichard  Baldwin^  1690. 


FRESBYTERIAN    SPIRIT.  549 

though,  no  doubt,  they  love  those  of  their  own  way- 
best;  and  I  suppose  all  the  world  does  the  like. 

In  the  mean  while,  though  it  is  both  vain  and  sin- 
ful to  boast  on  this  head,  yet  for  stopping  the  mouth 
of  cahunny,  the  Presbyterians  are  content  it  be  put 
to  a  trial,  which  of  the  parties  have  gone  furthest 
in  their  public  deeds  of  charity  to  the  other  in  their 
distress.  By  all  the  information  I  can  have,  the  Epis- 
copal clergy,  during  the  whole  28  years  of  their  late 
reign,  never  relieved  any  of  their  Presbyterian  bre- 
thren with  so  much  as  one  shilling.  The  truth  is, 
they  durst  not  ask  it,  but  thought  themselves  happy 
enough,  if  they  escaped  without  being  relieved  out 
of  all  their  miseries  at  once,  by  \\\e  compendious  way 
then  in  fashion  :  whereas,  to  my  certain  knowledge, 
the  Presbyterians  have  often  relieved  the  Episcopa- 
lians, and  I  hope  shall  always  continue  to  do  so,  in 
imitation  of  their  heavenly  Father,  who  *  is  kind  even 
'  to  the  bad  and  the  unthankful,'  and  in  spite  of  the 
apocryphal  prohibition,  Eccles.  xii.  5.  '  Give  not  to 
'  the  ungodly :  hold  back  thy  bread  and  give  it  not 

*  unto  him.' 

NOT    A    MALICIOUS    OR  UNFORGIVING  SPIRIT. 

V.  He  charges  them  with  a  malicious  and  unfor- 
giving spirit,  p.  209,  so  contrary  to  that  which  our 
Saviour  and  the  blessed  martyr  St  Stephen  exempli- 
fied. Well,  how  does  he  quality  or  prove  this  charge  ? 
Why,  *  their  rebellious    martyrs,'  saith  he,   *  never 

*  expressed  their  forgiveness  of  the  injuries,  which 

*  they  thought  were  done  them  by  their  supposed 

*  persecutors  ;  their  last  speeches,   so  faithfully  re- 

*  corded  in  Naphtali,  and  so  much  admired  by  the 
'  party,  containing  rather  too  plain  indications  of  the 

*  malice  and  rancour  of  their  souls,  when  they  were 

*  stepping  into  eternity.'  Thus  he.  It  is  true, 
these  rebellious  martyrs  did  not  allow  themselves  to 
die  as  a  fool  dieth,  though  their  hands  were  bound 
and  their  feet  (and  legs  too)  were  oft-times  put  into 
the  most  pinching  fetters.  They  boldly  avowed  the 
cause  for  which  they  died,  and  with  all  freedom 


350  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

told  their  persecutors  of  their  injustice  and  the  wick- 
ed course  tliey  were  in.  And  ibr  this  practice  they 
had  the  example  of  tlie  blessed  martyr  Stephen,  who 
treated  the  Sanhedrim  with  sharper  langiiao^e  thaii 
any  that  is  to  be  found  in  Naphtali.  *  Ye  stia-neck- 

*  ed,  and   uncircumcised  in  lieart  and  ears,  ye   do 

*  always  resist  the  Holy  Ghost:  As  your  fathers  did» 

*  so  do  ye.     Which   of  the  prophets  have  not  your 

*  fathers  persecuted  ?     And   they  have  slain  them 

*  which   shewed  before  of  the   coming  of  the  just 

*  One,  of  whom  ye  have  been  now  the  betrayers  and 
'  murderers.'     Acts  vii.  51,  52. 

But  now  as  to  the  charge  itself.  If  v;e  shall  find 
these  rebellious  martyrs  expressing  their  forgiveness 
of  their  enemies — if  we  shall  find  them  doing  this  in 
their  last  speeches  recorded  in  Naphtali  ;  wiil  not 
this  discover  what  a  spirit  of  truth  and  modesty,  that 
is,  the  Episcopal  party,  are  possessed  with  ?  l.et  us 
try  it  then. 

The  Marquis  of  Argyle,  who  suflered  May  27th 
lG6l.  '  And,'  saith  he,  *  as  I  go  to  make  a  reckon- 

*  ing  to  my  God,   I  am  free  as  to  any  of  these  ca- 

*  lumnies  that  have  gone  abroad  of  me,  concerning 
'  the  king's  person  or  government.     I  was  real  and 

*  cordial  in  my  desires  to  bring  the  king  home,  and 

*  in  my  endeavours  for  him  when  he  was  at  home, 

*  and  I  had  no  correspondence  with  the  adversaries 

*  army,  nor  any  of  them,  in  the  time  when  his  ma- 

*  jesty  was  in  Scotland;  nor  had  I  any  accession  to 
'  his  late  majesty's  horrid  and  execrable  murder,  by 

*  counsel  or  knowledge  of  it,  or  any  other  manner  of 
'  way.  This  is  a  truth,  as  I  shall  answer  to  my  Judge 

*  — 1  desire  not  that  the  Lord  should  judge  any  man  ; 

*  nor  do  I  judge  any  but  myself:  I  wish,  as  the  Lord 
'  hath  pardoned  me,  so  he  may  pardon  them  for 
'  this  and  other  things,  and  that  what  they  have 
'  done  to  me,  may  never  meet  them   in  their  ac- 

*  counts. 'And  I  pray  the  Lord  preserve  his  ma- 

*  jesty,  and  to  pour  out  his  best  blessings  on  his  per- 


niESBYTERIAN  SriRIT.  351 

*  son  and  government.*     Naph.  Edit.  1G93,  p.  2'B5, 
&c. 

Mr  James  Guthrie,  minister  of  the  gospel  at  Stir- 
ling, who  suffered,  June  1,  1661.  *  God  is  my  re- 
cord,' saith  he,  '  that  in  these"  things  for  which 
sentence  of  death  had  passed  against  me,  I  have 
a  good  conscience.  I  hless  God  they  are  not  mat- 
ters of  compliance  with  sectaries,  or  designs  or 
practices  against  his  majesty's  person,  or  govern- 
ment of  his  royal  father  :  my  heart,  (I  bless  God) 
is  conscious  unto  no  disloyalty  ;  nay,  loyal  I  have 
been,  and  I  commend  it  unto  you  to  be  loyal  and 
obedient  in  the  Lord. — Tiie  mistake,  or  hatred  or 
reproach  of  my  enemies  I  do  with  all  my  heart  for- 
give, and  wherein  I  have  offended  any  of  them,  do 
beg  their  mercy  and  forgiveness. — I  forgive  all 
men  the  guilt  of  my  death,  and  I  desire  you  to  do 
so  also  :  '  Pray  for  tliem  that  persecute  you,  and 

bless  them  that  curse  you  ;  bless,  I  say,  and  curse 

not."     Ibid.  p.  29 J,  &c. 

The  Lord  Warriston,  who  suffered  July  22,  1  ^Q3. 
The  good  Lord  give  unto  them  (liis  enemies,)  re- 
pentance, remission,  and  amendment,  and  that  is 
the  worst  wish  I  wish  them,  and  the  best  wish  I 
can  wish  unto  them. — I  am  free  (as  I  shall  now 
answer  before  his  tribunal)  from  any  accession,  by 
counsel  or  contrivance,  or  any  other  way,  to  his 
late  majesty's  death,  or  to  their  making  that  change 
of  government :  and  I  pray  the  Lord  to  preserve 
our  present  king  his  majesty,  and  to  pour  out  his 
best  blessings  upon  his  royal  posterity.'  Ibid.  p. 
SOI,  he. 

Captain  Andrew  Arnot,  who  suffered  December 
7th,   1666.  *  And  whoever  they  be    that  any  way 

*  have  been  instrumental  or  incensed  against  me  to 
'  procure  this  sentence  against  me,  God  forgive 
'  them  and  1  forgive  them.'  Ibid.  p.  316.  And  in 
his  joint  testimony  which  he,  with  nine  others  who 
were  })nt  to  death  the  same  day  with  him,  subscrib- 
ed in  prison  immediately  before  they  were  brought 
to  the  scaft')ld,  he  and  they,  in  terms,  acknowledge 


352  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

tlie  king's  authority.     *  We  are/  say  they,  *  con- 

*  demned  by  men,  and  esteemed  by  many  as  rebels 

*  against  the  king,  whose  authority  we  acknowledge  : 

*  but  this  is  our  rejoicing,  the  testimony  of  our  con- 

*  science.'     Ibid,  p.  307,  &c. 

Mr  Alexander  Robertson,  preacher  of  the  gospel, 
who  suffered   December   14th,  1666.  •  I  wish  that 

*  they  may  lay  the  matter  to  heart  and  repent  of  it, 

*  that  God  may  forgive  them,  as  I  forgive  all  men, 

*  and  particularly  Morton,  who  did  apprehend  me.' 
And  he  is  sofar  from  entertaining  rebelliousthoughts, 
that  he  declares,  *  There  was  just  reason  to  think, 

*  that  if  these  rigid  oppressions    had    been   made 

*  known  to  his  majesty,  his  justice  and  clemency 

*  would  have  provided  a  remedy.'  Ibid.  p.  320,  he, 

Mr  Hugh  M'Kaile,  preacher  of  the  gospel,  who 
suffered  December  22d,   1666.  *  I  do  freely  pardon 

*  all  that  have  accession  to  my  blood,  and  wish  that 

*  it  be  not  laid  to  the  charge  of  this  sinful  land,  but 

*  that  God  would  grant  repentance  to  our  rulers, 

*  that  they  may  obtain  the  same  reconciliation  with 

*  him,  whereof  I  myself  do  partake.'  Ibid.  p.  330, 
&c. 

John  Wilson,  who  suffered  at  the  same  time  with  Mr 
M'Kaile.     '  For  my  part,  I  pray  that  the  Lord  may 

*  bless  our  king  with  blessings  from  heaven.     And 

*  I  pray  for  all  that  are  in  authority  under  his  lla- 
'  jesty.  I  can  forgive  the  wrong  done  to  me  in 
'  taking  away  my  life  for  this  cause,  and  wish  God 
'  to  be  merciful  to  those  that  have  condemned  me, 

*  or  have  had  any  hand  in  my  death.'  Ibid.  p.  351. 
&c. 

Mr  James  Mitchell,  while  under  the  torture  of  the 
boots,  anno  1676,  *  And  now,  my  Lords,^  I  do 
'  freely  from  my  heart  forgive  you,  who  are  judges 

*  sitting  upon  the  bench,   and  the  men  who  are  ap- 

*  pointed  to  be  about  this  piece  of  horrid  work,  and 

*  also  these  who  are  vitiating  their  eyes  beholding 

*  the  same.  And  1  do  intreat,  that  God  may  never 
«  lay  it  to  the  charge  of  any  of  you,  as  I  beg  God 


rilESBYTEKIAN  SPIRIT.  352 

*  may  be  pleased  for  his  son  Christ's  sake,   to  blot 

*  out  my  sins  and  iniquities.*     Ibid.  p.  431. 
James  Learmont,    who   suffered   September  27, 

167S.   *  As  for  Alexander  Maitland,    who   appre- 

*  hended  me,  my  blood  lies  directly  at  his  door, 
'  who  promised  me  then,  that  nothing  should  reach 

*  my  life,  as  he  swore  by  faith  and  conscience  ;  and 

*  his  brother  is  also  guilty  of  my  blood.  I  desire 
'  the  Lord  to  give  them  repentance  and  mercy,  if 
'  it  be  possible.'  Ibid.  p.  44-5.  And,  in  his  large 
speech,  p.  4.50,  he  thus  delivers  himself:  *  I  here 
'  most  freely,  before  I  go  hence,  (without  desire  of 

*  revenge  upon  the  forenamed  persons,  or  any  other, 

*  who  have  been  the  occasion  of  my  blood  shed- 

*  ding,  now  in  my  last  words,  after  the  example  of 

*  my  Lord  and   Master,)  say,  as  is  mentioned  in 

*  that  Scripture,  Luke  xxiii.  34  :  '  And  Jesus  said, 
*'  Father,  forgive  them,  for  they  know  not  what  they 
"  do.*  My  dear  friends,  I  give  my  testimony  against 
'  that  calumny  cast  upon  Presbyterians,  that  they 

*  are  seditious  and  disloyal  persons,  the  which  as- 
'  persion  I  do  abhor.  Therefore,  I  exhort  all  peo- 
'  pie,  that  they  will  shew  loyalty  to  the  King,  and 

*  all  lawful  Magistrates,  and  all  their  just  and  law- 
'  ful  commands.' 

Mr  John  King,  minister  of  the  gospel,  who  suf- 
fered August  14,  1679.    *  The  Lord  knows,  who  is 

*  the  searcher   of  hearts,  that   neither  my   design 

*  nor  practice  was  against  his  Majesty's  person  and 

*  just  government,    but   I  always  intended    to  be 

*  loyal  to  lawful  authority  in  the  Lord.  I  thank 
'  God,  my  heart  doth  not  condemn  me  of  any  dis- 

*  loyalty ;  I  have  been  loyal,  and  do  recommend  it 

*  to  all  to  be  obedient  to  higher  powers  in  the 
'  Lord. — I  bless  the  Lord,  I  can  freely  and  frankly 
'  forgive  all  men  the  guilt  of  it,  even  as  I  desire  to 

*  belbrgiven  of  God.  '  Pray  for  them  that  persecute 
**  you,  and  bless  them  that  curse  you.'*  Ibid.  p.  469. 
475. 

John  Neilson  of  Corsack,  who  suffered  December 
14>  1666.     '  I  pray  that  the  Lord  for  Christ's  sake 

z 


354  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*'  may  freely  forgive  me,  as  I  have  forgiven  them'that 
'  have  wronged  me.*     Ibid.  p.  327. 

Thes3  are  the  rebellious  martyrs  recorded  in 
Naphtali,  who  never  expressed  the  forgiveness  of 
the  injuries  they  thought  were  done  them.  Re- 
bellious martyrs  they  were  ;  for,  when  stepping  into 
eternity,  they  not  only  denied  and  disowned  any  act 
of  rebellion,  but  spent  their  last  breath  in  praying 
for  the  King,  and  in  recommending  loyalty  to  their 
survivors.  These  last  words  of  theirs,  which  I  have 
cited,  are  no  doubt  as  good  evidence  of  the  Presby- 
terian malice,  as  their  sufferings  are  of  the  Episco- 
pal mercy.  I  cannot  but  wish  that  the  Episcopal  au- 
thors would  retain,  at  least,  some  relic  of  modesty, 
and  not  advance  things,  not  only  without  all  ground, 
but  contrary  also  to  the  clearest  and  amplest  testimo- 
ny. I  am  sure  they  cannot  but  be  sensible  how 
odious  such  a  way  of  writing  must  needs  make  any 
party,  that  uses  it,  to  God  and  all  good  men. 

They  very  frequently  insist  on  this  topic  of  for- 
giving enemies  against  the  Presbyterians  ;  but  it  is 
in  such  a  way  as  sufficiently  discovers  their  meaning. 
I  remember  betwixt  the  year  1680  and  1688,  there 
was  no  doctrine  more  frequently  insisted  on  from 
the  pulpits  of  Edinburgh,  than  that  of  forgivin  gene- 
mies.  In  the  mean  time,  the  gibbet,  to  save  ex- 
pences,  was  left  standing  in  the  open  street,  from 
one  market  day  to  another,  for  hanging  the  Whigs. 
People  were  mightily  puzzled  for  a  while  to  recon- 
cile the  Episcopal  preaching  and  practice  together. 
At  last  the  secret  was  found  out,  that  the  meaning 
was,  that  their  enemies  should  forgive  them :  but 
then,  that  they  should  forgive  their  enemies  was  a 
different  case.  They  must  then  take  the  sponge  to 
their  late  books,  in  which  they  have  so  often  libel- 
led the  Presbyterians  on  this  head,  and  wait  till  the 
memory  of  the  late  times  is  worn  out,  ere  they 
can  })ersuade  people  that  their  insisting  on  the  for- 
giveness of  enemies,  is  any  other  than  most  odi- 
ous affectation  J  just  as  when  the   inquisition   turns 


niBSBYTElJIAN    SPIRIT.  S55 

over  a  poor  wretch   to  the  secular  arm,  entreating, 
in  the  bowels  of  Jesus  Christ,  to  be  tender  to  him  j 
the   meaning  of  which   is,  tliat  Secular  Arm  must 
burn  the  poor  creature  quick,  on  pain  of  excommu- 
nication, and  a  worse  turn  besides.     And  is  there 
any  other  proof  needful   to  shew  what  a  jest  the 
Episcopal  insisting  on  forgiveness  of  enemies  is,  than 
to  read  over  Mr  lihind's  book,  especially  the  latter 
part  of  it,  which  breathes  pure  unmixed  malice  for 
thirty  pages  together,  and  that  too  which   makes  it 
so  much  the  more  ridiculous,  without  the  least  sha- 
dow of  truth  or  proof.     If  a  man  treat  me  harshly, 
however  bitter  the  things  may  be  he  says  against 
me,  yet,  if  they  are  true,  and  he  convinces  me  that 
they  are  so,  I  ought  to  bear  with  him,  and  it  is  my 
own  fault  if  I  do  not  profit  by  the  reproof.     But  if 
he  charges  me  with  the  worst  things,  without  so 
much  as  offering  to  convince  me,  I  contemn  the  ma- 
lice of  the  poor  impudent  thing,   and  cannot  re- 
venge myself  better  than  by  suffering  him   to  fry  in 
his  own  grease,  and  to  prey  upon  his  own  spleen. 

KOT  AN  UNCONVERSIBLE  SPIRIT. 

VI.  He  charges  the  Presbyterians,  p.  209,  with 
an  unconversible  spirit,  in  that  they  value  themselves 
upon  the  suUenness  of  their  tempers.     A  very  great 
fault  truly.      For   certainly    Ciuistianity   is   super- 
structed  upon  humanity,  and  the  grace  of  God  was 
intended  not  to  destroy,  but  to  improve  and  refine 
it.     And  the  Apostle  has  expressly  commanded  us, 
1  Peter  iii.   8.    '  Love  as  brethren  ;   be  pitiful,  be 
*  courteous.'      Nor   does   piety  ever  appear  more 
charming  anil  engaging  than  when  adorned  with  a 
good  behaviour.     But  hov/  does  Mr  Ilhind  prove 
liis  charge  ?      Why,  good  reader,  he  does  not  so 
much  as  attempt  this,  nor  has  offered  so  much  as  one 
syllable  for  that  purpose.     Is  it  not,  then,  as  easily 
denied  as  affirmed.     And  is  not  the  defender,  in 
all   such    odious    cases,    presumed    to  be  innocent 
till  the  contrary  is  proved.     It  is  true,  our  Saviour's 
ilesire  (as  Mr  ilhind  suggests)  of  doing  good,  car- 

z2 


S56  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

ried  him  into  the  company  of  the  men  of  loose,  as 
well  as  regular  lives^  and  1  believe  all  Presbyterians,, 
whether  ministers  or  others,  who  are  piously  inclin- 
ed, are  carried,  by  the  same  desire  of  doing  good, 
into  the  company  of  men  of  loose  lives,  when  there 
is  the  least  hope  that  their  doing  so  will  not  rather 
harden  them  in,  than  reclaim  them  from  their  loose- 
ness. But  then,  that  they  keep  at  a  distance  from 
them  in  their  revels,  study  a  preciseness  of  con- 
versation, and  will  not  run  with  them  to  the  same 
excess  of  riot,  however  strangely  they  may  be  thought 
of  on  that  account :  This  they  are  so  far  from  reckon- 
ing a  fault,  that  they  avow  it,  and  are  sorry  there 
is  not  more  ground  for  charging  them  with  it.  Mr 
Rhind  may  call  them  puritans  on  that  score,  or  give 
them  what  other  ill  names  he  pleases  :  But  then  what 
comforts  them  is,  that  the  Apostle  Paul  was  just 
such  another  puritan  ;  and  not  only  warrants  them 
in,  but  obhges  them  to  such  preciseness  and  ab- 
straction, commanding  them,  1  Cor.  v.  11.  'With 
'  such  persons  not  so  much  as  to  eat.'  And, 
2  Thessalonians  iii.  14.  '  To  note  such  persons,  and 
•  have  no  company  with  them.'  Our  blessed  Saviour 
was  such  a  physician  as  was  not  in  danger  of  catch- 
ing the  disease  from  the  patient.  But  when  virtu- 
ous persons  allow  themselves  to  haunt  bad  company 
in  their  bottle  conversation,  I  am  afraid  it  too  oftei> 
falls  out,  that  they  themselves  are  infected,  and  the 
vicious  not  reformed. 

However,  whatever  unconversibleness  the  Presby- 
terians may  be  guilty  of,  I  suppose  Mr  Rhind  might 
have  kept  at  home,  and  reserved  his  lecture  foe 
High-Church  i  Not  that  they  are  very  nice  in  their 
practice  ;  for,  I  believe,  the  best  that  can  be  said  of 
them,  as  to  that,  is,  that  they  are  (if  I  may  use  our 
country  phrase)  hut  like  ii^eighbour  and  other.  But,, 
if  the  Church  of  England  divines  themselves  may  bs 
believed — MrBisset,for  instance — the  height  of  their 
principle  makes  them  so  much  enemies  to  the  rest 
of  mankind,  that  neither  Presbyterians  nor  evens 
Low-Church  can  walk  the  streets  in  safety,  but  are^ 


PUESBYTERIAM    SPIRIT. 


357 


every  moment  in  danger  of  being  jostled  into  the 
kennel  by  High-Church. 

Tanlum  religio  pqtuit  suadere  Malorum  1 

But  it  is  not  this  or  that  man's  particular  testi- 
mony we  need  depend  on.  It  is  plain  their  prin- 
ciples obHge  them  to  such  hostility  against  the  rest 
of"  mankind  ;  for,  were  I  of  Mr  Rhind's  faith,  and 
believed  all  the  same  ill  things  of  the  Presbyterians 
that  he  does,  I  would  not  only  reckon  it  unlawful 
to  converse  with  them,  but  I  should  think  myself 
obliged  in  conscience  to  destroy  them.  If  they  are 
schismatics,  heretics,  and  their  spirit  diametrically 
opposite  to  that  of  the  gospel,  he.  what  should 
men  do,  but  treat  them  as  mad  dogs,  knock  them  on 
the  head,  and  rid  the  world  of  such  nuisances  ? 

NOT  A  DISLOYAL  OR  REBELLIOUS  SPIRIT. 

VII.  He  charges  them  with  a  disloyal,  rebellious 
.spirit,  p.  210.  I  hope,  every  man  ought  not  to  be 
believed  a  rebel  who  has  been  at  any  time  called 
one.  I  have  observed  before,  p.  29,  that  Mr  Dod- 
.well  was  proclaimed  a  rebel  by  King  James,  yet  who, 
for  all  that,  believes  he  was  such  ?  Perhaps  the 
Presbyterians  will  be  found  as  innocent. 

Mr  Ilhind  founds  his  charge  both  upon  their 
principles  and  practices. 

First,  Upon  their  principles.  But,  had  he  thought 
that  any  part  of  his  business,  I  suppose  he  would 
have  found  the  proof  of  this  a  very  hard  task.  The 
principles  of  a  church  are  to  be  gathered  from  her 
TpuhVic  formulas.  And  I  appeal  to  every  body  who 
has  read  the  Westminster  Confession  of  Faith,  and 
the  Thirty-nine  Articles  of  the  Church  of  England, 
if  the  first  is  not  as  loyal  as  the  latter.  But  they  are 
private  authors,  not  public  confessions  that  Mr 
Ilhind  was  to  build  on.  And,  for  his  purpose,  he 
names,  (for  he  cites  nothing)  Buchanan's  Treatise  de 
jure  Regnif  Rutherford's  Le.v  Rei\  Naphtali,  and 
the  Hind  let  Loose.  *  Which  books,'  saith  he,  p. 
211,  '  the  Presbyterians  have  not  to  this  day  brand- 


S5S  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  ed  with  any  public  censure,  though  they    haVe 
'  been  often  upbraided,  and  solemnly  challenged  to 

*  condemn,   otherwise    to  be  counted   abettors   of 

*  them.*     The  answer,  I  hope,  will  be  pretty  easy* 
The  Presbyterians  love  to  walk  by  example,  and  to 
give  place  to  their   betters.     Mr   Rhind  certainly 
knows,  that  the   Bishops   and  other   clergy  of  the 
Church  of  England,  have  published  at  least  a  hun- 
dred books  and  pamphlets  with  the  same  principles 
and  schemes  of  government  as   are  in    Buchanan, 
Kutherford,   &c.     Let  the   convocation   once  con- 
demn these,  and  begin  with   the  Bishop   of  Sarum, 
Dr  Higden,  and   MrHoadley;    and  then   possibly 
the  General  x'^ssembly   may  write  after  their  copy. 
It  is   certain  the  Presbyterians  maintain  no  other 
principles  of  government,  than  what  the   Church  of 
England    has   practised — no  other    principles   than 
these  upon   which   she,   with   the   assistance  of  her 
good  neighbours,  preserved  the  Protestant  religion 
in  1688.     I  am  not  ibr  prying  into   the   power   of 
princes,  remembering  to  have  read  somewhere,  Pe- 
riculi  plenum  est  de  Us  disputore  qui  possunt  ampu- 
tare,  de  iis  scrihere  qui  2^ossunt  proscribere  ;  but  I 
think  the  principles  of  our  Scots  Episcopalians  are 
beyond  the  power  of  all  natural  understanding  to  ac- 
count for.     Claudius  and  Nero,  who  reigned  succes- 
sively in  the  time  of  writing  the  New  Testament, 
"Were  both  usurpers  and  tyrants,   had  neither  heredi- 
tary nor  parliamentary  right ;  yet  both  the  apostles 
Peter  and  Paul  enjoined  subjection  to  them,  and 
commanded  prayers  for  them.     Pier  present  Ma- 
jesty  has  both  the  fullest  and    clearest  right   any 
prince  possibly  can  have.     She  has  exercised  it  in 
the  most  obliging  manner,   particularly  with  respect 
to  them.     Now  ihat,  notwitli standing  all  this,  they 
should  have  so  long  refused  to  pray  for  her,   and 
that  most  of  them  should  do  so  still  ;  this  I  affirm  is 
unaccountable  in  point  both  of  duty  and  gratitude. 
Nor   have  the  actings  of  High  Church  of  England 
been  more  accountable,  as  1  hope  we  shall  hear  af- 
terwards. 


PRESBYTEIUJk.N    SPIRIT.  359 

*  'Secondly,  He  ciiarges  us  with  disloyal  practices. 
'  They  were  no  sooner  hatched,'  saith  he,  p.  212, 

*  than  they  rebelled.'  Sweet  Popery  !  What  a 
charming  thing  art  thou ;  wlicn  even  Protestants, 
nay,  those  that  will  needs  be  the  only  Christians 
among  them,  affirm  that  a  reformation  from  thee 
was  rebellion  ?  But  let  us  hear  his  instances  of  their 
rebellion  ? 

7  5/,  PI»  begins  where  the  reformation  began,  viz. 
at  Queen  Mary's  reign,  '  whose  reputation,'  saith 
h=e,  *  they  blackened,  whose  authority  and  govern- 

*  ment  they  resisted  and  reviled,  whose  person  they 
'  imprisoned,    and  whom    they  obliged  to  fiy,  in 

*  hopes.t^o  save  that  liie  which  she  cruelly  lost.' 
Thus  he.  Every  body  must  needs  own,  that  of  all 
others,  the  Episcopal  writers  are  the  nimblest  dis- 
putants. When  we  dispute  with  them  about  the 
government  of  the  Church  in  Queen  Mary's  days, 
by  no  means  will  they  allow  that  it  was  Presbyte- 
rian. No.  Superintendents  were  the  same  thing 
with  bishops.*  Well,  be  it  so.  And  let  us  dis- 
pute a  little  about  loyalty  in  the  government  of  the 
state.  How  came  it,  that  under  an  Episcopacy, 
Queen  Mary  was  so  ill  treated  ?  Oh,  now  the  case  al- 
ters, the  whole  government  was  then  in  the  hands 
of  the  Presbyterians.  Rebellion  was  the  verj  egg 
out  of  which  they  were  hatched  i 

Q,tio  teneam  vultus  muiantem  protea  nodo  ? 

But  let  us  suppose  the  Presbyterians  had  then  the 
government, — what  did  they  ?  *  Why,  first,'  saith 
he,  *  they  blackened  her  reputation.*  For  ansv/er, 
I  ask,  ha^  Archbishop  Spottiswood  whitened  it? 
Does  not  he  tell  the  story  of  Signior  Davie  much 
after  the  same  way  with  Buchanan  ?  Does  he  not 
tell  of  the  horrid  abuse  the  King  met  with  at  Stir- 
ling— how  he  was  neither  admitted  to  be  present 
at  the  baptism  of  his  son,  nor  suffered  to  come  to 
the  feast  ?  How  the  foreign  ambassadors  were  dis- 
charged to  see  or  salute  him,   and  such  of  the  no- 

*  See  the  Fundamental  Charier   of  Presbytery,  ^vith  many  o. 
ther  authors, 


360 


DEFENCE  OF  THE 


bility  as  vouchsafed  him  a  visit  were  frowned  upon  by 
the  Court,  and  he  at  last  dismissed  with  a  dose  of  poi- 
son in  his  guts.  Does  he  not  expressly  tell  that 
the  King  was  murdered  by  Bothwell  and  the 
Queen's  domestics  ?  Does  not  all  the  world  know, 
that  her  Majesty  afterwards  married  the  murderer, 
and  that  too,  upon  a  divorce  from  the  Lady  Jean 
Gordon,  his  wife,  obtained  in  the  most  scandalous 
manner  ?  Does  not  Spottiswood,  I  say,  -relate  all 
these  things  ?    Was  Spottiswood  Presbyterian  ? 

Nor  is  Spottiswood  alone  in  the  relation  of  them. 
For,  not  to  mention  other  Scotch  or  English  histo- 
rians, Ruggerius  Tritonius,  Abbot  of  Pignerol, 
who  was  a  zealous  papist,  a  hearty  friend, t»  Queen 
Mary,  lived  in  the  time,  was  secretary  to  Vincentius 
Laureus,  Cardinal  de  Monte  Regali,  who  was  sent 
nuncio  from  the  Pope  to  the  Queen,  for  assisting 
her  with  his  counsel  in  the  extirpation  of  heresy,  and 
was  lying  in  Paris  waiting  for  orders  from  the  Queen 
to  come  over  to  Scotland,  at  the  time  when  the  King 
was  murdered,  and  kept  an  exact  correspondence 
with  the  Roman  Catholics  there  :  This  author,  I 
say,  thus  every  way  qualified  for  bearing  witness 
in  this  case,  expressly  relates,*  and  that  with  the 
permission  of  his  superiors,  that  when  the  nobility 
told  her  Majesty  that  they  had  taken  up  arms  for 
bringing  Bothwell  to  punishment  for  murdering  the 
King,  &c.  her  Majesty  justified  Bothwell,  and  told 
them  he  had  done  nothing  without  her  consent. 
Did  then  the  Presbyterians  forge  any  of  these 
things  r 

But,  2dlj/,  saith  Mr  Rhind,  <  they  resisted  and 
*  reviled  her  authority  and  government,'  that  is  to 

*  Interrogati  quanam  de  causa  armati  illiic  accessissent,  non 
alia,  respondisse  feruntur,  nisi,  ut  atrocem  injuriam  a  Bodueliio 
factum,  ac  crudelem  et  indij|nam  regis  necem,  vimqueipsiniet,  re- 
ginas  illatam  vindicarent.  At  regina  noxam  Boduelli  purgare  :  Ni- 
hil non  ipsa  assentiente  commissum.  See  Vila  Vinceiiti  Laurei 
S.  R.  E.  Cardinalis  Montis  Eegaiis.  Ruggerio  Tritonio  Pinaro- 
Ji  Abbate  Auctore.  Impress  Canonize,  4to,  apud  Heeredes  Jolian- 
nis  Kossji,  Clj  Jj  IC  fcjuperiorum  Permissu,  p.  19.  31. 


PRESBYTERIAN  SPIRIT.  SGI 

say,  they  would  not  allow  her  to  restore  popery, 
nor  would  they  commit  the  young  Prince  to  the 
custody  of  Bothwell,  who  had  murdered  his  father. 
Were  not  these  very  unpardonable  faults  ? 

Yet  farther,  Sdly^  Queen  Elizabeth  took  off*  her 
head  ;  and  no  doubt  she,  and  her  council  that  ad- 
vised her  to  it,  were  staunch  Presbyterians.  So 
much  for  Queen  Mary's  reign. 

Secondly,  In  King  James  Vl.*s  reign.  Mr  Rhind 
owns  (which  is  very  much  from  him)  that  in  his  days 
they  did  not  break  out  into  open  rebellion.  Why, 
then,  they  cannot  havebeen  so  rebelliously  disposed  as 
he  would  represent  them  :  For  if  they  had,  it  is  not 
quite  improbable  but  they  might  have  made  their 
own  terms  of  peace  :  '  But,'  says  Mr  Rhind,  '  they 
*  occasioned  vexations  and  disturbances  to  him  j' 
that  is  to  say,  they  protected  him  in  his  cradle,  set 
the  crown  on  his  head,  fought  for  him,  and  kept 
the  country  in  greater  peace,  when  he  went  to  fetch 
home  his  queen,  than  it  had  been  known  to  be  in 
for  many  years  before  ;  which  he  himself  acknow- 
ledged, and  gave  public  thanks  to  God  for.  It  is 
true,  they  grudged  the  receiving  bishops  and  the 
five  articles  of  Perth ;  which  he  would  need  press 
upon  us,  in  order  to  a  conformity  with  England. 
But  I  cannot  think  either  England,  or  we,  or  the 
royal  family,  could  have  been  much  losers,  though 
he  had  never  fallen  into  that  politic. 

Before  I  proceed  to  the  next  reign,  I  must  beg 
leave  for  a  short  digression,  which,  1  hope,  the  reader 
will  the  more  easily  excuse,  that  it  is  not  so  much 
from  the  subject  as  from  the  author  ;  and  is  intended 
to  do  justice  to  the  memory  of  the  dead,  who  are  not 
in  capacity  to  redress  themselves.  The  matter  is 
this : — 

The  Right  Honourable  the  Earl  of  Cromarty, 
very  lately,  viz.  in  May  last,  1713,  published  a  book 
bearing  this  title, — An  Historical  Account  of  the 
Conspiracies  hy  the  Earls  of  Gonry,  and  Robert  Lo- 
gan  of  Restalrig,  against  King  James  J  I.  Therein 
(preface,  p.  8.)  his  Lordship  writes  thus  : — 


362  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*   As  to  the  truth   of   my  present    subject,   tlie 

*  malicious  designers  against  the  Royal   Family  in 

*  Scotland,  did  at  first  invent,  and  then  foment,  a 
'  most  improbable  falsehood,  making  it  their  busi- 
'  riess  to  suggest,  that  Gowry  and   his  brother  did 

*  never  conspire  against  the  King ;  but  that  the 
'  King  did  murder  them   botii.     This  was  invented 

*  and  clandestinely  propagated  by  Bruce,  I-loUock, 

*  Dury,  Melville,  and  other  Presbyterian  ministers.' 
Thus  his  Lordship. 

It  is  hugely  afflicting  to  the  Presbyterians  to  find 
their  forefathers  represented,  by  a  person  of  his 
Lordship's  figure,    under  the  odious  character   of 

*  Malicious  designers  against  the  Royal  Family.*  What 
is  usually  advanced  against  them  by  the  common 
herd  of  Episcopal  writers  they  can  securely  contemn: 
For,  why  should  that  give  them  any  concern, 
which  their  enemies  blurt  out  without  any  care  ? 
But  such  a  charge  from  his  Lordship  cuts  them  to 
the  heart,  and  would  leave  them  inconsolable, 
were  it  not  that  (as  kind  Providence  wx)uld  have 
it),  they  find  his  Lordship's  much  weightier  affairs 
have  hurried  him  into  some  mistakes,  which,  they 
make  no  doubt,  he  will  rectify  upon  advertisement  j 
which  I  now  humbly  crave  leave  to  give. 

In  the^r.s^  place,  as  for  Mr  Rollock  ;  that  he  did 
neither  invent  nor  clandestinely  propagate  such  a 
story  as  his  Lordship  alleges,  it  is  certain,  by  this 
token,  that  Mr  Rollock  was  dead,  and  rotten  too, 
before  the  conspiracy.  Every  one  knows  that 
Gowry's  conspiracy  fell  out  August  5th,  1600.  But 
Mr  Rollock  died  in  the  month  of  February  1598. 
Thus  Clerk  relates  in  his  life:  Thus  Melchior  Adams 
relates  in  his  lives  of  foreisrn  divines :  Thus  the 
manuscript  Caldervvood,  in  the  University  library 
in  Glasgow,  relates. — Nay,  thus  Spottiswood  relates 
in  his  history,  p.  454.  And  thus,  I  presume,  every 
body  else  relates  that  writes  of  Mr  Rollock. 

For  preventing  mistakes,  I  must  advertise  the 
reader,  that,  as  Spottiswood  informs  us,  p.  456,  the 
year  among  us  used  to  begin  at  25th  March,  till  a 


PRESBYTEllIAN  SPIRIT.  563 

public  ordinance  was  made,  appointing  that  the  be- 
ginning of  the  year  1600,  and  so  on  thenceforward, 
should  be  reckoned  from  the  first  of  January  as  now. 
It  is  then  no  objection  against  what  I  have  advanc- 
ed, though  one  find  Mr  Rollock  writing  books,  or 
spoken  of  in  history  as  living,  in  January  or  Febru- 
ary 1599.  The  different  ways  of  computation  quite 
remove  that  difficulty.  And  though  historians  differ 
about  the  day  of  the  month  on  which  he  died,  Spottis- 
Wood  making  it  the  last  day  of  February,  whereas 
all  the  rest  whom  I  have  seen,  make  it  the  8th  day 
of  that  month  :  yet,  that  is  not  of  any  import  in  this 
case  :  for,  even  by  the  lowest  account,  he  was  dead 
at  least  seventeen  months  before  the  conspiracy,  and 
therefore  could  not,  without  a  miracle,  invent  or 
propagate  false  stories  concerning  it. 

^dly.  His  Lordship  is  in  like  mistake  concerning 
Mr  Dury.  For  he  died,  as  Spottiswood  also  relates, 
p.  457,  upon  the  last  day  of  February  1600,  that  is 
to  say,  five  months  and  five  days  before  the  conspi- 
racy, and  so  could  not  be  guilty. 

These  observes,  concerning  Rollock  and  Dury, 
the  public  owes  not  to  me,  but  to  that  worthy  per- 
son, and  my  very  good  friend  Mr  Matthew  Crawford, 
minister  at  Inchinan,  in  the  shire  of  Renfrew  ;  who, 
in  an  accidental  conversation,  first  gave  me  notice 
of  his  Lordship's  book,  and  that  he  had  observed 
the  said  mistakes  in  it.  Which  observes,  upon  exa- 
mination, 1  found  to  be  just- 

His  Lordship  is  not  only  out  as  to  his  reckoning, 
but  is  mistaken  also  in  the  characters  of  the  men  : 
for,  they  were  so  far  from  being  designers  against 
the  royal  family  ;  that  as  Spottiswood  relates  in  the 
places  above  cited,  they  spent  their  last  breath, 
Rollock,  in  exhorting  his  brethren  in  the  ministry, 
to  carry  dutifully  towards  the  king  ;  and  Dury,  in 
advising  them  to  comply  with  his  majesty's  designs 
for  restoring  prelacy. 

I  do  not  in  the  least  incline  to  aggravate  these  his 
Lordship's  mistakes.  So  much  the  less,  ,that  I  find 
it  is  usual  with  great  men,  when  writing  against  the 


364  DEFENCE  OP  THE 

Presbyterians,  to  fall  into  the  like.  The  famous 
Mo.isieur  Varillas  very  gravely  tells  it  as  a  singulari- 
ty *  concerning  jBuchanan,  that,  *  After  having  de- 
'  clared  himself  against  his  sovereign  lady,  so  far  as 

*  to  go  into  England  to  depose   against  her  in  the 

*  criminal  process  then  depending,  he  continued  to 

*  persecute  her  after  she  was  beheaded.  This,'  saith 
he,  *  is  a  crime  which  they,  who  are  most  partial  in 

*  favour  of  Buchanan,  must  own  he  was  guilty  of.' 
And  yet  after  all  this,  it  is  certain,  that  Buchanan 
"was  not  guilty  of  that  crime,  for  this  good  reason, 
that  he  died  some  three  or  four  years  before  the 
queen  was  beheaded.  But  there  is  a  short  and  ob- 
vious apology  to  be  made  for  such  mistakes  in  Va- 
rillas or  his  Lordship, — aquila  non  capiat  Muscas. 
To  go  on. 

3dlij,  As  to  Mr  Melville.  It  is  true  he  was  in  life 
at  that  time,  yet  I  cannot  find  in  any  history  that  he 
was  guilty  of  inventing,  fomenting,  or  propagating 
such  a  story,  or  that  he  made  any  the  least  noise 
about  that  matter.  His  lordship  therefore  would 
oblige  his  country,  if  he  would  vouchsafe  to  give 
his  authors. 

4thlij,  As  to  Mr  Bruce.  It  is  true,  he  refused  to 
give  public  thanks  for  the  king's  deliverance  from 
that  conspiracy,  declaring,  as  Spottiswood,  p.  46, 
relates,  '  that  he  would  reverence  his   Majesty's  re- 

*  ports  of  that  accident,  but  could  not  say  he  was 

*  persuaded  of  the  truth  of  it  :*  For  which  he  was 
banished  the  king's  dominions,  and  went  into  France. 
But  this  is  a  very  different  thing  from  what  his  Lord- 
ship charges  him  with.  For,  to  suggest,  'that  Gowry 

*  and  his  brother  did  never  conspire  against  the  king, 

*  but  that  the  king  did  murder  them  both,'  had  been 
a  crime  ;  because  it  was  not  possible  certainly  to 
know  that ;  and  yet  much  less,  to  prove  such  a  sug- 
gestion. But  to  declare,  that  he  could  not  say 
that  he  was  persuaded  of  the  truth  of  the  conspi» 
racy,  which  is  all  that  the  historians  of  that  time 

*  Preface  to  the  5th  Tom.  of  the  Ilistoire  dc  L'lleiesie. 


PRESBYTERIAN  SPIRIT.  S65 

charge  him  with,  was,  at  the  worst,  but  a  w^eakness  ; 
it  not  being  in  a  man's  power  to  beUeve  a  story, 
but  according  to  the  impression  which  the  grounds 
of  it,  and  credibihty  of  its  circumstances,  make 
upon  his  mind.  And  no  one  knows  better  than  his 
lordship,  that  there  are  several  circumstances  in  tlie 
story  of  the  conspiracy,  which  are  not  so  perfectly 
clear,  but  that  they  require  time  to  believe  them  : 
Though  indeed,  1  think  his  majesty's  testimony, 
with  the  presumption  that  the  Earl  and  his  brother 
were  out  of  their  wits,  as  his  majesty,  before  the  at- 
tempt, suspected  the  EarPs  brother  to  be,  is  suffi- 
cient to  determine  the  matter.  For  what  may  not 
mad  men  do?  However  it  was,  it  does  not  appear 
that  Mr  Bruce  was  guilty  of  what  his  Lordship  charges 
him  with  ;  there  being  a  very  great  odds  betwixt 
contradicting  a  report,  and  being  reverently  silent 
about  it. 

5ihlj/i  As  for  other  Presbyterian  ministers  whom 
bis  Lordship  indefinitely  involves  in  the  same  guilt, 
the  accusation  can  be  of  no  weight  till  his  Lordship 
is  pleased  to  name  them.  It  is  true  the  ministers  of 
Edinburgh,  viz.  Mrs  Walter  Balcanqual,  William 
Watson,  James  Balfour  and  John  Hall,  demurred  at 
first  to  give  thanks  for  the  king's  deliverance,  upon 
this  excuse,  as  Spottiswood,  p.  461,  informs  us,  that 
they  were  not  acquainted  with  the  particulars,  nor 
how  those  things  had  fallen  out.  But  how  soon 
they  were  informed  of  the  particulars  of  the  con- 
spiracy, they  complied.  Now,  implicit  faith  ha- 
ving been  cried  down,  ever  since  the  reformation, 
it  seems  hard  to  blame  such  a  conduct :  And  it  is 
no  less  hard  to  blame  Presbyterian  ministers  for  a 
fault  which  was  common  to  so  many  others  at  that 
time  :  Spottiswood  telling  us  that  many  doubted  that 
there  had  been  any  such  conspiracy.  This  may  be 
sufficient  for  vindication  of  the  Presbyterian  minis- 
ters against  his  lordship's  charge.  I  crave  leave 
only  to  add  two  remarks  more  on  his  Lordship's  book. 

I.  His  Lordship,  p.  30,  31,  has  advanced  a  piece 
of  history  in  these  words :— *  Upon  the  information 


S66  DEFENCE   OP   THE 

'  of  Henderson,  and  other  witnesses,  Cranston  and 
'  Craigengelt  were  pannelled  before  the  Justiciary 
'  at  St  Johnston ;  and  upon  clear   testimonies,  and 

*  on  their  own   confession  at  the  bar  (which  they 

*  also  adhered  to  on  the   scaffold)  they  were  both 

*  executed  :  Only  alleging  that  they  did  not  know 
'  of  the  design  to  murder  the  king ;  but  that  they 

*  intended  to  force  the  king  to  make  great  repara- 
'  tions  for  the  late  Earl  of  Gowry's  death  ;   and  that 

*  this  Earl  of  Gowry  was  to  be  made  a  great  man.' 
Thus  his  Lordship. 

But  his  Lordship  has  not  thought  fit  to  document 
this ;  and  Spottiswood,  who  lived  in  the  time,  has 
flatly  contradicted  it,  in  these  words,  p.  459 :  '  An- 

*  other  of  Gowry's  servants,  surnamed  Craigengelt, 

*  was  some  two  days  after  apprehended,  and  both 
'  he  and  Mr  Thomas  Cranston  executed  at  Perth ; 
'  though  at  their  dying  they  declared  that  they  knew 

*  nothing  of  the  Earl's  purpose,  and  had  only  fol- 
'  lowed  him,  as  being  their  master,  into  that  room  ; 

*  where,  if  they  had  known  the  king  to  have  been, 
'  they  would  have  stood  for  him  against  their  master 
'  and  all  others.'  Thus  Spottiswood.  I  do  not,  for 
all  this,  say,  that  the  Earl  of  Cromarty  is  wrong  j 
but  if  he  is  not,  certainly  the  Archbishop  is. 

U.  His  Lordship  has  also  given  us,  in  his  book,  a 
large  and  particular  account  of  the  process  and  trial 
of  Robert  Logan  of  Restalrig.  No  one  will  suspect 
his  Lordship's  exactness  in  the  extracts  of  the  docu- 
ments of  that  process,  which  he  has  produced.  But 
though  his  Lordship's  faithfulness  is  beyond  ques- 
tion, yet  the  truth  of  the  story  itself  is  not.  I  shall 
give  my  reason  why  I  say  so. 

Spottiswood  was  at  that  time  at  man's  age, — was 
Archbishop  of  Glasgow, —  was  one  of  his  Majesty's 
privy-council, — was  upon  the  scaffold,  when  Sprot, 
the  notary,  from  whom  that  whole  process  flowed, 
was  hanged ;  and  signs  the  account  of  Sprot's  be- 
haviour on  the  scaffold,  which  we  have,  p.  115,  of 
his  Lordship's  book  :  Spottiswood,  I  say,  who  was 
thus  every  way  quaUfied  to  give  judgment  upon,  and 


PRESBYTERIAN  SPIRIT.  367 

a  true  narration  of  this  process  j  yet,  in  his  history, 
tells  the  story  in  such  a  manner,  as  would  tempt  any 
body  shrewdly  to  suspect  that  the  whole  business 
was  a  fiction.     For  thus  his  words  are,  p.  509  : 

'  Whether  or  not  I  should  mention  the  arraign- 
'  ment  and  execution  of  George  Sprot,  notary  in  Eye- 
'  mouth,  who  suffered  at  Edinburgh  in  the  August 
'  preceding,  I  am  doubtful  :  his  confession,  though 

*  voluntary  and  constant,  c^vrymg  small  probability. 

*  This  man  had  deponed,  that  he  knew  Robert  Lo- 

*  gan,  of  llestalrig,  who  was  dead  two  years  before,  to 

*  have  been  privy  to  Gowry's  conspiracy,  and  that 
'  he  understood  so  much  by  a  letter  that  fell  in  his 

*  hand,  written  by  Restalrigto  Gowry,  bearing,  that 
'  he  would  take  part  with  him  in  the  revenge  of  his 

*  father's  death,  and  that  his  best  course  should  be 

*  to  bring  the    King  by  sea  to  Fascastle,  where  he 

*  might  be  safely  kept,  till  advertisement  came  from 

*  those  Vvith  whom  the  Earl  kept  intelligence.     It 

*  seemed  a  very  fiction^  and  to  be  a  mere  hweniion 
'  of  the  man's  own  brain  j  for  neither  did  he  shew 
'  the  letter,  nor  could  any  wise  man  think  that  Gow- 

*  ry,  \\\\o  went  about  that  treason  so  secretly,  would 

*  have  communicated  the  matter  with  such  a  man 
'  as  this  Restalrig  was  known  to  be.*  Thus  far  his 
Grace,  who,  as  we  are  told  in  his  life,  had  not  only 
the  use  of  all  the  registers,  both  of  Church  and 
.State,  in  Scotland,  but  of  all  letters  of  state  that 
could  any  way  concern  the  work  he  was  about.  And 
yet  his  account  not  only  differs  from  his  Lordship*s, 
but  plainly  contradicts  it.  It  is  certain,  then,  there 
must  be  a  mistake  somewhere,  which  I  must  leave 
to  the  reader  to  judge  upon  as  he  lists. 

I  do  not  design  by  these  two  remarks  to  derogate  in 
the  least  from  the  truth  of  the  conspiracy.  For,  in 
the  light  wherein  it  now  stands,  I  cannot  conceive 
why  any  man  should  suspect  it.  The  Earl  of  Gow- 
ry used  the  black  art,  wore  magic  spells  in  his  gir- 
dle, which  his  Lordship  himself  was  once  master 
of,  and  has  very  well  proved  in  his  letter  to  his 
printer,  prefixed  to  his  book.     What  crime  was  not 


S68  DEFENCE   OF    THE 

such  a  person  capable  of?  His  brother's  whole  conduct 
ill  the  management  of  the  conspiracy  speaks  him  fran- 
tic. For,  lit,  That  he  should  have  shut  up  Henderson 
in  the  chamber,in  order  to  perpetrate  the  murder,  and 
yet  not  have  told  him  before-hand  that  this  was  the  de- 
sign. 2dli)y  That  after  having  held  the  whinger  to  the 
King's  breast,  he  should  have  fallen  a  parleying  with 
him,  and  gone  down  stairs  to  consult  with  the  Earl 
his  brother  whether  he  should  murder  him  or  not. 
Zdly^  That  he  should  have  taken  the  King's  promise 
not  to  open  the  window  or  cry  out  till  he  should  re- 
turn.    4//^/?/,  That  when  he  had  returned  and  sworn 

*  by  Go(i  there  is  no  remedy,  you  must  die  ;'  he  should 
have  essayed  to  tie  the  king's  hands  with  a  garter, 
when,  it  is  probable,  he  might  have  more  easily  dis- 
patched him  without  that  ceremony.  Could  there 
be  greater  symptoms  of  a  man  distempered  in  his 
wits  than  these  and  a  great  many  other  circumstan- 
ces that  might  be  added?  Why  then  should  we  any 
longer  doubt  whether  a  man  in  compact,  and  his 
brotiier  nun  compoSy  would  attempt  the  greatest  vil- 
lany  ? 

But  then,  both  the  Earl  and  his  brother  had  al- 
ways, till  that  very  day,  passed  under  the  character 
of  wise,  sober  and  virtuous  gentlemen — two  youths 
of  great  hope,  says  Spottiswood,   '  at  whose  hands 

*  no  man  could  have  expected  such  an  attempt.' 
Was  it  any  wonder  then,  if  Mr  Bruce,  and  the  other 
ministers  of  Edinburgh,  who  demurred  a  little,  could 
not  at  first  dash  be  persuaded,  that  they  had  all  of 
a  sudden  become,  the  one  of  them  a  devil,  the  other 
distracted  ?  It  is  plain  there  was  a  difficulty  here  : 
And  this  is  more  than  enough  to  vindicate  the  Pres- 
byterian ministers.     Quod  erat  Faciendum, 

I  go  on  with  Mr  Rhind,  and  proceed  to  consider 
his  charge  of  rebellion. 

Thirdly,  In  King  Charles  I.'s  time,  I  believe  there 
is  no  wise  man  will  undertake  to  justify  all  that  was 
done  on  either  side  during  those  troubles.  The  only 
question  is,  who  were  the  first  authors  of  them,  and 
A\ho  gave  the  greatest  cause  of  them  ? 


PIlESJBYTlilllAN  SPIlllT.  569 

Was  it  the  Scots  Presbyterians  ?  My  Lord  Holies 
has  assoilzied  them.     *  It  was  proposed/  saith  he,* 

*  that  our  brethren  of  Scotland  might  be  called  in, 

*  who  were  known  to  be  a  wise  people,  lovers  of 
'  order,  firm  to  the  monarchy :     Who  had  twice 

*  before  gone  through  the  misfortune  of  taking  up 
'  arms,  and  wisely  had  laid  them  down  again  j  still 

*  contenting  themselves  with  that  which  was  neces- 

*  sary  for  their  security,  avoiding  extremities.  Their 

*  wisdom  and  moderation,  as  was  presumed,  might 

*  then  have  deUvered  us  from  that|  precipice  of  mi- 

*  sery  and  confusion,    into  which  our  charioteers 
'  were  hurrying  us  amain.     But  these  men  would 

*  none  of  it  at  that  time.'     Thus  his  Lordship. 

Were  not  the  Scots  Prelates  the  first  authors  of 
those  troubles  ?  Did  they  not  raise  the  fire  ?  Yes. 
Gilbert  Burnet  has  expressly  loaded  them  with  it.  t 
It  is  true,  that  person  has  made  a  vigorous  appear- 
ance these  twenty  or  thirty  years  bygone  against  Po- 
pery,, and  in  behalf  of  the  Protestant  interest,  which 
is  a  fault  never  to  be  forgiven,  in  this  world,  or  in 
the  next,  if  some  mens  doom  hold.  And,  on  that 
score,  any  testimony  he  could  give  now,  since  he 
was  Bishop  of  Sarum,  could  be  of  no  weight.  But 
this  testimony  he  gave,  when  he  was  plain  Gilbert 
Burnet,  and  was  as  thorough-paced  in  the  principles 
of  passive  obedience  and  non-resistance  as  ever  Mr 
Dodwell  was,  or   Mr  Lesley  is.     Plainly  he   tells, 

*  That  the  Scots  Bishops,  by  reflecting  on  the  Re- 

*  formers ;    commending  the  persons,  and  mollify- 
'  ing  the  opinions  of  Papists  ;  defending  the  Arnii- 

*  nian  tenets,  advancing  a  liturgy  without  law  j  pro- 

*  voking  the  nobility,  by  engrossing  the  King's  fa- 
'  vour  ;  crying  down  the  morahty  of  the  Sabbath, 

*  and    profaning    it   by  their   practices ;     making 

*  themselves  insupportable  to  the  ministry  by  Simo- 

*  naical  })actions,  and  encroacliing  upon  their  juris- 

*  dictions,  by  relinquishing  their  dioceses,  and  med-. 

*  IMemoirs,  p.  1 1. 

f  Mcr.'.oirs  of  the  Home  of  Hamilton,  p  2f>,  .W,  d-c. 

A  a 


310  DEFENCE    OF    THE 

*  dling  in   all  secular  affairs,  and  by  advising  the 

*  King  to  introduce  innovations  into  the  Church, 

*  without  consent  of  the  Clergy.  By  these,  and 
'  such  like  things/  saith  he,  '  the  Scots  Prelates 
'  raised  that  fire  in  the  nation,  which  was  not  so  ea- 

*  sily  extinguished.' 

Is  there  any  other  account  to  be  brought  from 
England  ?  No.  Those  of  the  greatest  character, 
and  most  unshaken  loyalty,  have  told  the  story  as  to 
that  kingdom  the  very  same  way.  I  shall  produce 
two  of  them  for  the  pur})ose.  The  first  is  the  Lord 
Falkland,  in  his  speech  before  cited  before  the 
House  of  Commons,  than  which  a  more  exact  piece 
of  eloquence,  with  such  rigid  truth,  even  ancient 
Kome  herself  cannot  boast  of.  '  Mr  Speaker/  saith 
he,  '  He  is  a  great  stranger  in  Israel,  who  knows  not 
'  that  this  kingdom  hath  long  laboured  under  many 
'  and  great  oppressions,  both  in  religion  and  liber- 

*  ty.     And  his  acquaintance  here  is  not  great,  or 

*  his  ingenuity  less,  who  doth  not  both  know  and 
'  acknowledge,  that  a  great,  if  not  a  principal  cause^ 

*  of  both  these  have  been  some  Bishops,  and  their 

*  adherents.' — The  reader  may  peruse  the  rest  at 
his  leisure.  To  him,  let  us  add  my  Lord  Claren- 
don, an  avowed  enemy  to  the  Presbyterians  ;  an 
author,  who  hardly  ever  allows  himself  to  speak  one 
good  word  of  any  Scotsman ;  and  who,  even  when 
he  has  the  brightest  charactersof  our  nation  a-draw- 
ing,  yet  lays  on  the  shadowing  so  thick,  that  the 
piece  appears  but  a  very  indifferent  one.  Even  this 
noble  historian,  I  say,  has  expressly  charged  the 
troubles  of  those  times  upon  the  unaccountable  and 
fiery  measures  of  the 'Court  and  High  Church  party. 

*  No  less  unjust  projects  of  all  kinds,'  saith  he,* 

*  many  ridiculous,  many  scandalous— all  very  grie- 
'  vous,  were  set  on  foot.     The  Council  Chamber, 

*  and  Star  Chamber,  held  for  honourable  that  whicb 

*  pleased,  and  for  just  that  which  profited;  and  be- 
'  ing  the  same  persons,  in  several  rooms,  grew  both 

*  Hist.  Rebell.  B.  i.  p.  5't,  55. 


rRESBYTEIlIAN    SPIRIT. 


211 


'  courts  of  law  to  determine  right,  and  courts  of  re- 
'  venue,  to  bring  in  money  to  the  Treasury.     The 

*  Council  Table,  by  proclamation,  enjoining  to  the 

*  people  what  was  not  enjoined  by  the  law,  and  pro- 

*  hibiting  wliat  was  not  prohibited  ;  and  the  Star 

*  Chamber,  censuring  the  breach  of  those  procla- 

*  mations,  by  very  large  fines  and  imprisonment.' 
And,  p.  '223,  That  '  there  were  very  few  persons  of 
'  quahty,  who  had  not  suffered,  or  been  perplexed, 

*  by  the  weight  and  fear  of  these  judgments  and 

*  censures  ;  and  that  no  man  could  hope  to  be  longer 
'  free  from  the  inquisition  of  that  Court,   than   he 

*  resolved  to  submit  to  extraordinary  courses.'  So 
much  for  the  Court. 

Was  High  Church  more  innocent  ?  No  ;  on  the 
contrary,  she  was  the  great  spring  of  all.  The  same 
Lord  Clarendon  owns,  *  That  *  when  Laud  was 
made  Archbishop,  (which  was  in  J  633,)  it  was  a 
timeof  great  ease  and  tranquillity.  The  King  had 
made  liimself  superior  to  all  those  difficulties  he 
had  to  contend  with,  and  was  now  reverenced  by 
all  his  neighbours;  the  general  temper  and  hu- 
mour of  the  kingdom  little  inclined  to  the  Papist, 
and  less  to  the  Puritan.  The  Church  was  not  re- 
pined at,  nor  the  least  inclination  shewn  to  alter 
the  government  or  discipline  thereof,  or  to  change 
the  doctrine  ;  nor  was  there  at  that  time  any  con- 
siderable number  of  persons,  of  any  valuable  con- 
dition throughout  the  kingdom,  who  did  wish  ei- 
ther. And  the  cause  of  so  prodigious  a  change, 
in  so  few  years  after,  was  too  visible  from  the  ef- 
fects. The  Archbishop's  heart  was  set  upon  the 
advancement  of  the  Church,  &c.  He  never  abat- 
ed any  thing  of  his  severity  and  rigour  towards 
men  of  all  conditions,  or  in  the  sharpness  of  his 
language  and  expressions  ;  and  that  he  entertain- 
ed too  much  prejudice  to  some  persons,  as  if  they 
were  enemies  to  the  discipline  of  the  Church,  be- 
cause they  concurred  with  Calvin  in  some  doctri- 
A  a  2 
*  Ubi  supra,  p.  61,  71. 


372  DEFENCE  OF  TUK 

*  nal  points,  when  they  ahhorred  his  discipline,  and 

*  reverenced   the  government  of  the  Church,  and 

*  prayed  for  its  peace  with  as  much  zeal  and  ferven- 

*  cy  as  any  in  the  kingdom,  as  they  made  manifest 
'  in  their  lives,  and  in  their  sufferings,  with  it,  and 

*  for  it.'  Thus  he,  and  a  great  deal  more  to  the 
same  purpose,  for  which  any  body  may  consult 
the  history  itself.  Say  now,  good  reader,  who  were 
the  first  and  greatest  causes  of  the  troubles  in  King 
Charles  I.'s  time  ? 

But,  says  Mr  Ilhind,  '  They  betrayed  him  into- 

*  the  hands  of  his  enemies,  when  he  had  entrusted 
'  them  with  his  sacred  person.'  Let  us  hear  my 
Lord  Holies  upon  this,  p.  68.     '  The  wisdom  of  the 

*  Scotish  nation  foresaw  the  inconveniences  which 

*  must    have  necessarily  followed,  had  they  been 

*  positive  at  that  time,  how  they  had  played  their 
'  enemies  game  to  their  own   ruin,  and  even  ruin 

*  to  his  majesty.     Therefore  they  made  for  him  the 

*  best  conditions  they  could,  that  is,  for  the  safety 

*  and  honour  of  his  person,  and,  to  avoid  great  mis- 

*  chief,  were  necessitated  to  leave  him  in  England, 

*  and  so  march  away.     Here  then  the  very  mouth 

*  of  iniquity  was  stopped  ;  malice  itself  had  nothing 

*  to  say  to  give  the  least  blemish  to  the  faithfulness 
'  and  reality  of  the  kingdom  of  Scotland.'   Thus  he. 

Mr  Ehind  urges,  that  *  they  entered  into  the  So^ 
'  lemn  League  and  Covenant,  and  in  pursuance  of 
*■  the  design  thereof,  brought  matters  to  that  pass, 
'  that  the'king's  death  was  unavoidable.'  That  the 
English  sectarians  intended  the  Solemn  League  lor 
nothing  else  but  a  decoy,  I  firmly  believe.  It  is 
plain  that  they,  with  Cromwell  their  ring-leader, 
were  as  very  villains  as  ever  trode  God's  earth,  since 
the  days  of  Judas.  But  that  the  Scots  entered  into 
it  upon  the  most  sincere  and  laudable  designs,  the 
said  Lord  Holies  has  amply  testified.  And  that  it 
was  not  the  Scots  entering  into,  but  the  English 
breaking  of  that  league,  that  was  the  cause  of  the 
king's  death,  is  manifest  as  light.    And  therefore  the 


PRESCTTUrilAN    SPIRIT.  S73 

Scots  justly  reproached  them  with  breach  of  cove- 
nant in  all  that  they  intended  or  acted  against  the 
king's  person. 

Thus,  in  the  paper  of  the  5th  of  July  1648,  which 
was  given  in  to  the  Speaker  of  the  House   of  Com- 
mons, the  Commissioners  for  the  Kingdom  of  Scot- 
land declared,  *  that  they  would    endeavour,    that 
the  rights  and  privileges  of  Parliament  may  be  pre- 
served, that  there  be  no  change  in  the  fundamen- 
tal government,  and  that  there  be  no  harm,  inju- 
ry, or  violence  offered  to  his  majesty's  person,  the 
very  thought  whereof  the  kingdom   of  Scotland 
hath  always  abhorred,  as   may  appear  by  ail  their 
proceedings  and  declarations.     And  the  Houses  of 
Parliament  have  often,  upon  several  occasions,  ex- 
pressed a  detestation  thereof  in  their  declarations. 
Wherefore  we  do  expect  that  there  shall  be  no  pro- 
ceeding against  his  person,  which  cannot  but  con- 
tinue and  increase  the  great  distractions  of  these 
kingdoms,  and  involve  us  in  many  difficulties,  mi- 
series, and  confusions.'     Thus  they.     And  accord- 
ing to  this  declaration  they  made  their  protest.  Again, 
The  Commissioners  of  the  General  Assembly,  Ja- 
nuary 16,  1649,  emitted  their  necessary  and  solemn 
testimony  against   the  proceedings  of  the  sectaries, 
wherein  they  have  these  words  :  '  If,  after  so  many 

*  public  professions  and  solemn  attestations  to  the 

*  contrary,  the  foundation  shall  be  razed,  monarchy 

*  be    destroyed,  and  parliaments   subverted   by  an 

*  imaginary  and  pretended  agreement  of  the  people  : 

*  as  it  w'ould  destroy  the  League  and  Covenant,  and 

*  cause  the  adversary  to  blaspheme  and  insult,  so  it 

*  cannot  but  be  the  cause  of  many  miseries  and  ca- 

*  lamities  unto  these  kingdoms.'  Thus  they.  Once 
more. 

Upon  the  18th  of  January,  1649,  the  estates  of 
Parliament  gave  a  return  upon  the  said  testimony, 
wherein  we  have  these  words :  *  Therefore  the  estates 

*  of  Parliament,  after   diligent  enquiry  at  all  the 

*  members  of  this  court,   upon  their  public   and  so- 

*  lemn  oath,  both  concerning  themselves  and  others, 


374  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  do  declare,  and  can  assure  their  brethren  of  Eng- 
'  land,  that  they  cannot  find  tliat  either  this  l<in<z;- 
'  dom,  or  any  person  thereof,  had  any  knowledge  of, 

*  or  accession  unto,    the  late  proceedings   of  the 

*  English  army  in  relation  to  the  king's  person,  or 
'  the  houses  and  restrained  members  thereof,  but 

,  *  are  very  confident  there  is  no  ground  for  such  as- 

*  persions.'  Thus  they.  And  accordingly  they  in- 
stantly instructed  their  commissioners,  that  they 
should  enter,  in  the  name  of  this  kingdom,  their 
dissent  and  protest,  '  That  as  this  nation  is  free  from 
'  all  knowledge  of,  and  accession  to  these  designs 

*  and  practices,  so  they  may  be  free  of  all  the  ca- 

*  lamities,  miseries,  and  confusions  which   may  fol-. 

*  low  thereupon  to  these  distracted  kingdoms.* 
These  are  the  most  public  and  substantial  eviden- 
ces that  possibly  can  be  brought  to  document  any 
matter  of  fact,  and  will,  1  hope,  be  allowed  to  be 
of  somewhat  more  weight,  than  the  furious  decla- 
mations of  Mr  llhind,  and  such  others  of  the  like 
veracity,  who  stick  to  assert  nothing,  and  yet  cite 
not  to  prove  any  thing.  So  much  for  King  Charles 
I.'s  time.  '  ^ 

Foiirlhlify  In  King  Charles  I  I.'s  time.  After  the 
English  had  murdered  tiie  father,  the  Scots  pro- 
claimed his  son  king,  invited  him  home,  crowned 
and  fought  for  him.  And  what  thanks  got  they  ? 
Why,  the  cavaliers  were  glad  that  they  had  left  so 
many  of  their  carcases  at  Dunbar  and  Worcester. 
And  MrL — \ey,  speaking  of  the  sectaries,*  *  They 
'  banged,*  saith  he,  '  the  Presbyterians  heartily  at 

*  Dunbar,  whose  word  that  day  was  Tlie  Covenant^ 

*  the  best  victory  ever  the  king  lost.'  Yet  so  ob- 
stinate were  they  in  their  loyalty,  that  when  the 
king  had  fied  beyond  sea,  and  they  were  oppressed 
"with  a  raging  enemy  in  their  bowels,  yet  they  still 
continued  to  own  him,  their  ministers  prayed  for 
him  even  in  the  face  of  the  English  forces,  and  en- 
couraged and  assisted  General  Monk  to  bring  him 

*  Cassandra,  Numb.  I.  p.  60. 


rRESBYTERIAN  SPIRIT.  375 

iliome ;  and  all  this,  notwithstanding  they  might 
have  had  their  own  terms  from  Cromwell  when  he 
was  in  Scotland,  in  case  they  would  have  submitted. 
So  untrue  is  it  what  Mr  Rhind  says,  that  they  were 
serving  their  own  private  ends. 

*  But,'  says  he,  '  they  made  the  Act  of  the  West 

*  Kirk,  wherein  they  declared,  that  they  would  not 
'  own  him  nor  his  interest,  otherwise  than  with  a 

*  subordination  to  God,  and  so  far  as  he  owned  and 

*  prosecuted  the  cause  of  God,  and  disclaimed  his 

*  and  his  father's  opposition  to  the  work  of  God  and 

*  the  covenant.'     Well:    And  was  this  a  cause  why 
Mr  Rhind  should  separate  from  the   Presbyterians  ? 
AV^ith  what  conscience,  then,  could  he  join  with  the 
Church  of  England  ?     It  is  within  the  memory  of 
man  that  the   Prince  of  Orange  came  over  to  Eng- 
land in  opposition   to  King  James,  and  that  upon 
the  invitation  of  the  Lords  Spiritual  as  well  as  Tem- 
poral.    He  sent  his   declaration  before  him,  con- 
taining the  reasons  and  intent  of  his  coming.     The 
king  foresaw  what  a  storm  was  brewing,  and  how 
heavy  it  was  like  to  fall  on  his  head.     He  called  for 
the  bishops,  and  desired  of  them  a   paper  under 
their  hands,  in  abhorrence  of  the  Prince's  intended 
invasion.     Did  they  comply  with  this  desire  ?    No. 
They,  even  the  loyal  and  afterwards  nonjuring  bi- 
shops— the  bishops  who  had  carried  the  doctrine  of 
loyalty  to  such  an  extravagant  height,  as  had  delud- 
ed the  king  mto  all  those  false  steps  of  government 
which  ruined  him;  even  they,  1  say,  flatly  refused  his 
desire  ; — yes,  they  refused  it  when  he  besought  them 
in  the  anguish  of  his  soul.    The  Episcopalians  are  de- 
sired, always,  when  they  tell  the  story  ofthe  West  Kirk 
Act,  to  tell  this  too  as  a  counterpart  to  it.    Salmasius 
wrote  I'alsein  the  case  of  King  Charles  I.  when  he  wrote 
that  the  Presbyterians  bound,  and  the  Independents 
killed  the  sacrifice.     Even   PJilton,  his  adversary, 
though  a  bitter  enemy  ofthe  Presbyterians,  has  ob- 
served, that,  in  saying  so,  he  has  contradicted  him- 
self, having  elsewhere  wholly  loaded  the  independ* 

*  Dcfensio  pro  populo  Anglicano,  cap,  lO. 


S76 


DEFINCE  or  THE 


ents  with  it.  But  it  is  plain,  beyond  denial,  tliat  in 
the  case  of  King  James,  the  Episcopalians  both 
bound  and  killed  the  sacrifice.  For,  to  be  deposed, 
and  after  live,  is  something  worse  than  death,  i 
am  fully  persuaded,  that  what  they  did  was  abso- 
lutely necessary  for  preserving  the  Protestant  reli- 
gion. But  it  is  a  very  immodest  thing  in  them 
to  upbraid  the  Presbyterians  with  such  acts  as  them- 
selves were  guilty  of.  But  to  go  on  with  King 
Charles  II.'s  reimi. 

It  IS  true  that  a  small  handful  of  people,  enrag- 
ed with  the  most  horrid  oppression,  made  an  insur- 
rection, first  in  the  year  1666  at  Penthmd,  and  after- 
wards, in  the  year  1679,  at  Bothwell.  But  first  to 
exasperate  men  with  cruel  usage,  and  then  to  up- 
braid them  for  resenting  it,  is  the  utmost  barbarity 
the  most  spiteful  nature  can  be  guilty  of;  and  that 
they  were  thus  exasperated,  simply  upon  the  account 
of  non-conformity,  before  the  rising  at  Pentland, 
I  refer  for  proof  to  a  small  tract,  entitled,  A  short 
Memorial  of  the  Grievances  and  Sufferings  of  the 
Presbyterians  in  Scotland,  since  the  year  16O0. 
But  indeed  we  need  not  refer  to  any  book  ;  there 
are  many  thousands  yet  living  who  remember  it  to 
their  cost.  So  much  for  King  Charles  II.'s  time,  and 
as  much  as  is  necessary  for  King  James  VII. 's  time. 
In  the  present,  and  preceding  reigns,  Mr  Rhind 
himself  cannot  charge  them  vi'ith  rebellion  ;  but  he 
falls  a  prophesying,  that  they  would  rebell  if  put  to 
the  trial,  and  if  their  interest  did  not  oblige  them  to 
live  in  peace.  This  is  one  of  his  visionary  flights,  so 
necessary  to  make  up  Dry  den's  character  of  the 
English  Corah  : 

*  Some  future  truths  are  mingled  in  his  book, 

'   And  where  the  witness  failed,  the  prophet  spoke.' 

But  if  Mr  Rhind  act  the  prophet  upon  the  Presby- 
terians, may  not  I  act  the  historian  upon  the  Epis- 
copalians ?  I  gave  a  hint  before  of  their  new  liturgy. 
Now  h-ear  tlieir  intercession  in  it.  '  We  pray  thee 
'  to  be  grncious  to  our  prince,  who,  for  the  sins,  both 


rnESBTTBniAK  spirit.  3*77 

*  of  priests  and  people,  is  now  kept  out.    Raise  him 

*  friends  abroad,  convert  or  confound  the  hearts  of 

*  his  enemies  at  home.   And  by  the  secret  windings 

*  and  powerful  workings  of  thy  providence,   make 

*  the  stone  which  these  foolish  builders  have  reject- 

*  ed,  the  head  stone  of  the  corner.'  Was  not  tliis  a 
very  loyal  prayer  ?  And  has  not  their  practice  been 
agreeable  ?  For,  whence  all  the  insurrections  under 
Dundee,  Cannon  and  Buchan  ?  Whence  the  assas- 
sination plot  against  King  William  ?  I  doubt  not, 
but  they  will  affirm  all  those  efforts  were  acts  of  loyal- 
ty, and  so,  I  am  sure,  the  worst  of  rebels  generally 
excuse  themselves.  Even  Satan  himself  does  not 
usually  shew  his  horns,  or  put  forth  his  cloven  foot. 
But  enough  of  this  part  of  the  charge.  And  to  con- 
clude it,  it  is  very  true,  the  Presbyterians  do  not  a- 
scribe  an  unlimited  power  to  any  prince  on  earth. 
And  for  my  own  part,  I  freely  declare,  that  an  un- 
limited power,  without  an  unlimited  wisdom  to  di- 
rect it,  and  an  unlimited  goodness  to  qualify  it, 
raises  a  more  frightful  idea  in  me,  than  is  that  of  the 
devil  himself.  Let  the  Episcopal  party  make  as 
much  of  this  as  they  ever  can. 

NOT  A  SPIRIT  OF  DIVISION. 

VIII.  He  charges  them,  p.  216,  with  a  spirit  of 
division,  which,  saith  he,  '  drives  them   from  the 

*  communion  of  the  church,  and  cuts  them  off  from 
'  the  ordinary  communications  of  the  Holy  Ghost.* 
For  answer ;  it  is  true  it  drives  them  from  the  com- 
munion of  ]\Ir  Rhind's  church  :  and  I  hope  a  mer- 
ciful God  will  still  keep  them,  and  every  good  Chris- 
tian, from  such  a  communion  ; — a  communion,  as  I 
have  shewn,  so  absolutely  void  of  the  spirit  of  cha- 
rity, that  we  are  as  sure  it  is  not  the  spirit  of  Christ 
by  which  they  have  acted,  as  we  are  sure  that  Christ 
the  Son  of  God  taught  charity.  And  *  better  it  were,' 
(as  Archbishop  Tillotson  has  most  truly  taught)  * 

*  there  were  no  revealed  religion,  and  that  human  n/, 

•  Tillotion's  Strin.  Vol.  III.  p.  19. 


S7S  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  ture  were  left  to  the  conduct  of  its  own  principles 

*  and  inclinations,  which   are  much  more  mild  and 

*  merciful,  much  more  for  the  peace  and  happiness 
«  of  human  society;  than  to  be  actuated  by  a  religion 
*•  that  inspires  men  with  so  vile  a  fury,  and  prompts 
'  them  to  commit  such  outrages.'  This,  then,  is  the 
only  answer  needs  be  given,  that  the  more  the  spirit 
of  Presbytery  drives  people  from  Mr  Rhind's  church, 
the  more  it  drives  them  into  the  church  of  Christ. 

He  adds  further,  that  this  their  spirit  throws  them 
(like  the  Demoniac  in  the  gospel,)  sometimes  in- 
to the  fire  and  oft  into  the  water.  By  this,  I  sup- 
pose, lie  means,  that  they  are  sometimes  divided 
among  themselves,  which,  indeed  in  the  former 
times  i)f  Presbytery,  was  too  true,  and  I  believe  they 
all  desire  to  be  humbled  for  it  before  God  ;  and  I 
hope  the  present  generation  will  make  so  good  a  use 
of  the  failings  of  their  fathers,  as  to  keep  united  a- 
raong  themselves  henceforth,  as  they  have  done 
liitherto,  to  the  great  mortification  of  their  adver- 
saries. The  best  of  men  will  ditier  in  some  things, 
both  as  to  judgment  and  practice.  But  I  hope  we 
shall  never  diifer  so  far  as  to  divide. 

Non  eadem  sentire  honos  dc  rebus  iisdenf, 
Jncolnmi  licidt  semper  Jlniicitia. 

In  the  meantime,  it  is  shamefully  immodest  in  a 
man  that  pretends  to  have  joined  the  Church  of 
Enoland,  to  upbraid  the  Presbyterians  with  their 
div'isions.  For,  pray  what  has  Low  Clmrch  and 
High  Church  been  doing  these  score  of  years 
by-past,  but  damning  eacli  other  and  separating 
from  other  ?  What  have  the  upper  and  lower 
liouses  of  convocation  been  doing,  but  managing  a 
civil  war  in  the  most  furious  manner  ;  the  hiuer  ac- 
cusing the  former  of  treachery,  and  the  former  up- 
braiding the  latter  with  ecclesiastical  rebellion  ?  If 
Mr  Ilhind  knows  nothing  of  this,  I  reconnnend  to 
his  perusal  the  books  cited  on  the  margin.  * 

—  Tantccne  aniinis  ccalcstibus  irce  ? 
*  Rights  of  an   English  Convocation.      Reflections  on   that 


PIIESBYTEUIAX  sriiiiT.  379 

NOT   AN    UNNEIGHBOURLY,  CRUEL,   OR  BARBAROUS 
SPIRIT. 

IX.  In  the  last  place,  he  charges  the  Presby- 
terians, p.  216,  217,  with  an  unneighbourly,  cruel, 
and  barbarous  spirit,  *  That  they  slander  their  Ca- 
'  tholic  neighbours,  exert  their  ill  nature  in   a  spe- 

*  cial  manner  against  their  •ecclesiastical  superiors, 

*  pry  into  their  lives,  and  aggravate  their  frailties, 
'  gladly  hearken  to,   readily  believe,   and  zealously 

*  propagate  the  most  idle,  false  and  malicious  stories 
'  of  them.*  I  know  no  other  answer  this  needs, 
])ut  that  it  is  an  idle,  false  and  malicious  representa- 
tion :  And  when  he  subjoins  his  proofi  it  will  be 
time  enough  to  make  a  more  particular  reply. 

In  the  mean  time,  he  hints  at  five  things  which 
are  to  be  taken  some  notice  of,  viz.  1st,  The  con- 
*duct  of  the  General  Assembly  in  1638.  2d//j,  The 
attempts  made  upon  the  lives  of  Bishops.  3d/j/,  The 
barbarous  murder  of  that  venerable  old  man,  the 
Archbishop  of  St  Andrews.  4-thljj,  The  rabbling  of 
so  many  ministers  at  the  revolution.  And,  la^tly^ 
The  deposing  so  many  of  them  by  the  Church  Ju- 
dicatories. These  are  the  particular  grounds  of  his 
charge,  and  I  shall  consider  each  of  ihem  in  order. 

book.  The  authority  of  Christian  Princes  over  their  ecclesiasti- 
cal synods.  Appeal  to  all  the  true  members  of  the  Church  of 
England,  in  behalf  of  tlie  King's  Ecclesiastical  Supremacy.  An- 
swer to  that  appeal.  The  rights,  liberties,  and  authorities  of  the 
Christian  Church  asserted.  Ecclesiastical  Synods,  and  Parliamen- 
tary Convocations  in  the  Church  of  England,  historically  stated. 
Tiie  principles  of  Mr  Atterbury's  book  considered,  lieniarks 
upon  the  temper  of  the  late  writers  about  Convocations.  Occa- 
sional letter  on  the  subject  of  English  convocations.  A  letter  to 
a  friend  in  the  country,  concerning  the  proceedings  of  the 
present  Convocation.  The  power  of  the  lower  house  of 
Convocation  to  adjourn  itself,  vindicated  from  the  misiepre- 
sentations  of  a  late  paper,  Narrative  of  the  proceedings 
of  the  lower  house  of  Convocation  relating  to  prorogations 
and  adjournments.  The'right  of  the  Archbishop  to  continue  or 
prorogue  the  whole  Convocation.  Vindication  of  the  proceedings 
of  the  nien)bers  of  the  lower  house,  with  relation  to  the  Arch- 
bishop's prorogation  of  it.  Letter  to  a  clergyman  in  the  coun- 
try, concerning  the  choice  of  members,  &c.  The  case  of  the 
Vrcmunicnic   considered.       Third  letter  to  a  clergyman  in  the 


S80  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

First,  As  for  the  conduct  of  the  General  Assem- 
bly, anno  163S,  he  compkiins,  that  *  they  trod  un- 
^  der  foot  the  Bishops  of  the  Church,  and  pretend- 
*  ed  to  excommunicate  them,  while  they  were  with- 
'  out  the  communion  of  the  Church  themselves.' 
To  which  it  is  answered,  1st,  That  they  themselves 
could  not  be  without  the  communion  of  the  church, 
even  by  Mr  Rhind's  own  principles  :  For,  they 
were  generally,  if  not  all  of  them,  episcopally  or- 
dained, and  no  sentence  had  as  yet  passed  against 
them,  declaring  them  schismatics,  when  they  de- 
posed all,  and  excommunicated  the  most  part  of  the 
bishops.  2dlij,  That  they  had  just  reason  to  depose, 
and,  upon  their  obstinacy,  to  excommunicate  them, 
Gilbert  Burnet  has  assured  us.  For,  if  they  were 
guilty  of  crying  down  the  morality  of  the  Sab- 
bath and  profaning  it  by  their  practices  ;  if* 
they  were  guilty  of  Simonaical  pactions,  of  relin- 
quishing their  dioceses  and  introducing  innova- 
tions without  law,  without  consent  of  the  church  ; 
who  can  be  so  hardened  as  to  deny,  that  such  per- 
sons were  justly  dealt  with?  How  could  they  be 
Governors  of  the  Church  who  were  not  worthy  to 
be  members  of  it  ? 

country,  in  defence  of  what  was  said  in  the  two  former,  about  the 
entry  of  the  parliament  writ  in  the  Journals  of  the  Convocation, 
&c.  History  of  the  Convocation,  17OO.  History  of  the  English 
Councils  and  Convocations,  and  of  Clergy's  sitting  in  Parliament. 
A  faithful  account  of  what  passed  in  the  Convocation,  in  three 
letters.  An  expedient  proposed.  Narrative  of  the  lower  house 
vindicated  from  the  exceptions  of  a  letter  entit.  The  right  of 
the  Archbishop  to  continue  or  prorogue  the  whole  convoca- 
tion. Vindication  continued.  Reconciling  letter  upon  the  late 
difference  about  Convocational  rights  and  proceedings.  Faithful 
accounts.  The  present  state  of  Convocation  in  a  letter.  The 
case  of  a  Schedule  stated.  The  Schedule  reviewed.  The  parlia- 
mentary original,  and  rights  4'  the  lower  house  of  Convocation 
cleared.  Sj/nodus  Anglicana.  The  new  danger  of  Presbytery. 
A  short  state  of  some  present  quei^tions  in  Convocation.  A  sum- 
mary defence  of  the  lower  house  of  Convocation.  A  letter  from 
a  Convocation-man  in  Ireland  to  a  Convocation-man  in  England. 
The  state  of  the  Church  and  Clergy  of  England  in  their  councils, 
Synods,  Convocations,  &c.     Cum  muUis  aliis. 


fllESliTTKUIAN    SPIIllT.  381 

Secondly,  As  to  the  attempts  made  by  them  up- 
on the  Uves  of  Bishops.  I  suppose  he  means  by 
this,  Mitchell's  wounding  the  13ishop  of  Orkney  in 
the  arm  with  a  pistol  shot,  anno  1668.  Jt  was  no 
doubt  a  most  unjustifiable  act.  But  is  the  body  of 
the  Presbyterians  to  be  charged  with  it  ?  Hear  him 
in  his  letter,  after  he  was  sentenced  to  die-  *  I  ad- 
'  ventured  on  it,'  saith  he,*  '  from  my  own  pure  and 

*  proper  motion,  without  the  instigation  of  any,  yea, 

*  without  so  much   as   the  privity  of  any  of  that 

*  party ;    whom,    therefore,  I    earuesly  desire  that 

*  none  may  charge  with  it.       And  if  any  shall, 

*  I  do  with  confidence  aver,  that  they  deal  with 
'  them  vnost  unjustly.*  Thus  he.  This,  I  hope, 
is  sufficient  to  vindicate  the  Presbyterians.  Mr 
Rhind  is  desired  to  vindicate  the  Episcopalians  in 
taking  his  life  upon  this  extrajudicial  confession, 
after  he  had  emitted  it  upon  the  public  faith  that 
itsliould  not  be  brought  in  judgment  against  him. 

TldrcUy^  As  to  the  murder  of  that  venerable  old  man, 
the  Archbishop  of  St  Andrews.  It  is  acknowledged 
that  the  killing  of  him  (whoever  did  it)  was  mur- 
der, and  a  most  barbarous  murder.  But  I  crave 
leave  to  put  in  a  word^Jirst,  upon  the  bishop's  charac- 
ter; Secondhjy  Uj)on  the  weight  of  the  argument,  sup- 
posing Presbyterians  had  been  the  murderers.  And, 
Thirdly^  u])on  the  truth  of  that  allegeance. 

As  lor  the  first,  viz.  The  Bishop's  character. 
It  is  true  he  was  an  old  man  :  There  is  no  denying 
of  it,  and,  therefore,  the  flic t  was  the  more  inexcusa- 
ble. Nor  sliall  we  grudge  him  the  style  of  venera- 
ble. In  Tilidh  Honorariis  non  est  Falsitas.  Why 
may  not  even  a  Festus  be  called  Most  Noble  ? 
But  then  as  to  the  moral  part  of  his  character,  I 
suppose  his  best  friends  cannot  deny,  but  that  he 
was  guilty  of  the  greatest  perfitly  a  man  could  be 
guilty  of  The  question  now  is  not,  whether  Prela- 
cy or  Presbytery  be  the   righter  government  j  but 

*  Napthali,  p.  410. 


3S2-  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

whether  treacliery  under  trust  be  a  vice  or  a  virtue, 
a  crime  or  commendable  jjractice.  It  Mr  iSharp 
was  under  convictions  that  the  Presbyterians  were 
wrong,  and  thereupon  had  designed  to  revolt  from 
them  ;  as  nobody  could  have  hindered  him,  so  no- 
body could  have  blamed  him  any  farther  than  some 
hundreds  of  his  brethren  who  did  the  same.  But 
to  undertake  the  management  of  the  whole  Presby- 
terian interest,  which  was  then  lying  at  stake,  to 
give  the  most  solemn  promises  to  be  faithful  in  it ; 
yea,  to  take  their  money  for  bearing  his  charges  in 
that  service  ;  and  yet,  after  all,  instead  of  managing 
that,  to  manage  over  the  primacy  to  himself  ; — this 
was  so  very  foul  an  act,  that  as  I  am  sure  it  cannot 
be  justified,  so  I  doubt  if  it  can  be  paralelled. 

Whether  he  was  guilty  of  other  things  which  were 
afterwards  laid  to  his  charge,  I  shall  not  say  :  But 
I  hope  I  may  be  allowed  to  tell  a  story  which  Church 
of  England  men  have  published  to  the  world.  Mr 
L — y  has  given  the  world  an  account  *  of  a  certain 
history  yet  unpublished,  and,  therefore,  called  by 
him,  *  'rhe  Secret  History,'  but  by  the  author  him- 
self, '  The  History  of  his  own  Time.'  This  secret  his- 
torian, who  was  no  Presbyterian,  but  of  an  eminent 
character  in  the  Church  of  England,  tells  us,  '  That 

*  one  of  the  murderers  fired  a  pistol  at  the  Bishop 

*  which  burned  his  coat  and  gown,  but  the  shot  did 
'  not  go  into  his  body  ;  upon   which   a   report  was 

*  afterwards  spread,  that  he  had  purchased  a  magi- 

*  cal  secret,  for  securing  him   against  shot,   and  his 

*  murderers  gave  it  out  that  there  were  very  suspi- 
'  cious  things  found  in  a  purse  about  him.  This 
'  was  the  dismal  fate  of  that  unhappy  man,  who 
'  certainly  needed  a  little  more  time  to  have  fitted 
'   him  for  an  unchangeable  state.     But  I  would  fain 

*  hope  that  he  had  all  his  punishment  in  that  terrible 
'  conclusion  of  iiis  life.'  Thus  far  the  secret  histo- 
rian, as  reported  by  Mr  L — hy, 

*  Cassandra,  Number  II.  p.  29. 


PRESBYTEI5IAX  SPIRIT.  S83 

^dly^  Supposing  Presbyterians  had  been  the  mur- 
derers, of  what  weight  woukl  tliat  allegeance  be  a- 
gainst  the  body  of  that  communion,  or  against  the 
Presbyterian  principles  ?  How  many  ill  things  are 
done  every  day  \\\  every  nation  by  professed  Chris- 
tians ;  but  were  it  just  to  load  the  whole  Christian 
(-hurch  with  them,  or  to  impute  to  the  spirit  of 
Christianity  ?  It  is  equally  unjust  to  load  Pres- 
bytery with  the  Bishop's  murder  :  And  so  much  the 
more,  that  the  secret  historian  just  now  cited  tells 
us,  '  that  the  murderers   (whoever  they  were)  had 

*  not  resolved  on  doing  this  any  time  before  ;  but, 
'  seeing  his  coach  appear  alone  on  the  moor,  they 
'  took  their  resolution  all  on  a  sudden.'     But, 

Sdly,  Is  it  true  that  Presbyterians  tvere  the  mur- 
derers ?  Mr  L — ley  tells  us,*  of  a  narrative  that 
was  published  shortly  after  committing  the  fact, 
wherein  it  is  said,  *  that  five  of  their  accomplices, 

*  complotters,  and  abettors  of  the  murder,  chose  to 
'  die,  and  to  be  hung  up  in  chains  upon  the  place,  ra- 

*  ther  than  confess  the  sinfulness  of  the  action,  by 
'  acknowledging  it  was  murder  or  a  sin.'  This  I 
suppose  is  the  best  evidence  for  charging  the  fact 
upon  the  Presbyterians,  and  Mr  L — ley  triumphs 
upon  it.  Now,  it  is  very  true,  there  were  five  men 
put  to  death  on  Magus  Moor  (where  the  Bishop 
was  murilered)  on  that  account,  and  all  the  live 
owned  themselves  Presbyterians.  But  now,  let  us 
liear  them  in  their  last  words, while  they  were  upon,  or 
at  the  foot  of  the  ladder,  just  a-stepping  into  eternity. 

Andrew  Sword.     *  The  Bishop  of  St  Andrew's 

*  death  I  am  free  of,  having  lived  four  or  five  score 
«  of  miles  from  this,  and  never  was  in  this  place  be- 

*  fore  :     Neither  did  1  ever  see  a  bishop  in  the  face 

*  that  I  knew  to  be  a  bishop.' 

James  Wood.     '  As  for    our  coming  here  upon 

*  the  account  of  the  bishop's  death  :  lor  my  own 

*  part,  I  was  never  in  this    place  of  the  country 

f  Ibid,  ubi  supra. 


384  DEFIiNCIi    OF    THIi 

'  before ;  neither  ever  saw  I  a  bishop  in  my  life, 

*  that  I  could  say,  There  was  the  man.' 

John  Waddel.      '  As   for    my  accession    to  the 

*  Bishop's  death,  wherefore  we    are   sentenced  to 
*'  die  in  this   place,    I  declare  I  was    never   over 

*  the  water  of  Forth  in    this  country  before  this 
<  time/ 

Thomas  Brown.     *  Some  of  you  may  judge  our 
'   dying  and  hanging  here,  is  upon  the  account  of 

*  the  bishop's  death,  and  that  I  was  accessary  there- 

*  unto.     But  I  must  tell  you  as  to  that,  that  I  was 

*  never  in  this  country  before  this  time.' 

John    Clyde.     '  I   shall    say   no  more  but  only 

*  two  or  three  words  anent  the  thing  I  was  accus- 

*  ed  of  by  those  that  pursued  me,  and  that  was  the 

*  King's    Advocate    and    Bishop    Sharp's   brother, 
'  anent  the  Bishop's  killing.     I  wish  the 

*  Lord  may   not   lay   it  to  their    charge.      For  I 

*  never    saw    that    man,    whom    they  called    the 

*  Bishop  of  St  Andrew's,   that  I  knew  by  another 

*  man.' 

Thus  these  five  men,  who  ventured  their  eternity 
upon  their  innocence  as  to  the  Bishop's  death. 
Whether  the  Episcopalians  can  purge  themselves 
of  their  innocent  blood,  I  leave  it  to  their  own 
consciences.  So  much  for  the  Presbyterians  bar- 
barous usage  of  Bishops. 

But,  can  the  High  Church  purge  herself  of  using 
Bishops  barbarously  r  AVho,  then,  were  they  that 
assaulted  the  Bishop  of  Worcester,  broke  his 
coach  windows,  pelted,  abused,  and  put  him  in 
danger  of  his  liie  ^  Does  not  the  forecited 
Mr  Bisset  tell  us,  page  8,  that  it  was  High 
Church.  Who  was  it  called  Archbishop  Grindall 
a  perfidious  prelate  from  the  pulpit  ?  Is  Dr  Sache- 
verell  a  Presbyterian  ?  Who  was  it  wrote  ail  the 
scurrilous   lampoons   against    Bishop    Burnet,    viz. 

*  Salt   for   the    leech.'     *  Sham  sermon  dissected.' 

*  Good  old  cause.'  '  Proper  defence.'  '  Evil,  be  thou 

*  my  good  ?'    Is  Mr  L ley  Presbyterian  ?    Who 

is  it  affirms,  That  the  Spirit  of  Grace  is  conferred 


PRESBYTERIAN  SPIRIT.  385 

in  baptism,  after  a  manner  which  neither  Bishop 
Burnet,  nor  the  autlior  of  tlie  Dialogues  between 
the  Curate  and  the  Countryman  knows  any  thins^ 
of?  Is  Mr  Barclay  Presbyterian  ?*  Who  says  that 
all  that  Bishop  Burnet  preached   in  1688,  was  not 

gospel  ?     Is   Mr  G n    Presbyterian  ?     But  I 

should  never  come  to  an  end,  should  I  touch  upon 
every  thing  High  Church  has  both  said  of,  and 
done  to  Bishops  these  score  of  years  bye-past.  Had 
Mr  Rhind,  then,  no  shame  to  charge  us  with  the 
abusing  of  Bishops  ?  Let  such  as  have  abused 
them  be  all  reckoned  Presbyterians,  and  I  am 
sure  we  shall  be  fifty  thousand  stronger  than  we 
are  ordinarily  reckoned  to  be.     But  I  proceed. 

Fourtlily,  As  to  the  rabbling  so  many  of  their 
clergy  in.  the  beginning  of  the  Revolution.  It  is 
true,  some  of  them  were  rabbled  out,  and  no  man 
can  or  ought  to  undertake  to  justify  the  rabble  in 
doing  so.  But  had  not  the  clergy  exasperated 
them  to  the  greatest  height  ?  How  often  had  the 
Government,  upon  their  delation,  or  by  their  in- 
stigation, driven  the  poor  people's  cattle,  shut  up 
their  shops,  spoiled  their  goods,  imprisoned  their 
persons,  squeezed  the  marrow  out  of  their  bones, 
with  boots  and  thumbkins,  hanged  up  their  hus- 
bands, fathers,  brothers,  and  other  relations,  and 
all  this  upon  the  account  of  nonconformity?  It 
is  true,  the  people  ought  to  have  forgiven  them 
all  these  injuries,  as  indeed,  generally,  they  did. — 
But  was  it  to  be  expected,  but  that  corruption 
in  some  of  them  would  prevail  over  principle,  or 
that,  upon  a  turn  of  affairs,  their  resentment 
would  not  vent  itself  against  the  authors  of  these 
injuries  ?  I  do  not  talk  without  book  when  I  say 
the  clergy  were  the  authors  of  these  injuries.  No, 
Dr  Canaries  will  justify  me  beyond  the  need  of 
other  documents,  which  yet  might  be  produced  by 
hundreds.  The  doctor,  when  lately  returned  from 
Rome,  published,  in  the  year  1684,  a  book  enti- 
tled,  '  A  Discourse  representing  the  sufficient  M^* 

*  See  Barclay's  Persuasive,  page  149,  15C« 

B  b 


SS6  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

*  nifestation  of  the  Will  of  God,'  &c.,  which  he  de-^ 
dicated  to  the  Earl  of  Perth,  then  Chancellor  : 
Therein,  page  lS7j  he  draws  the  Presbyterians  in 
all  the  odious  characters  that  malice  could  devise, 
as  *  light  and  wild  extravagants,  the  very  dregs 
«  and  feculency  of  mankind,  on  the  account  both 
'  of  their  birth  and  breeding,  but  especially  so,  be- 

*  cause    of  their   very  souls  and  immoralities  ;  as 

*  being  such   a  herd  of  dull  and  untractable,  and 

*  whining  and  debauched  animals,  as  scarcely  go  be- 

*  yond  those  of  the  hogs  and  goats,  whichever  any 

*  of  them  was  ever  born  for  to  attend.'  Thus  he. 
Now,  when  he  had  thus  dressed  them  up  in  the  skins 
of  brutes,  was  it  not  natural  that  the  next  step 
should  be  to  set  the  dogs  at  them  to  worry 
them  ?  Yes,  that  he  does  with  a  witness.  He  is 
at  so  much  pains  to  smooth  over  all  the  severities 
of  the  Government  against  them,  that  he  reckons 
hanging  itself  but  a  trifle.  The  worst,  says  he,  p. 
VJz,  *  is  to  be  flung  over  a  ladder,  or  for  one's 
'  neck  to  be  tied  to  a  beamj  and  then  to  have  a 

*  sledge  driven  out  under  him.'  Was  there  ever 
a  clearer  comment  than  this  upon  Solomon's  words, 

*  The  tender  mercies  of  the  wicked  are  cruel  1* 
"Was  it  any  wonder  that  people  were  irritated 
against  such  furies  ?  As  the  clergy  then  excited 
the  Government  to  those  severities,  so  they  have 
justified  them  ever  since,  and  complained  that  our 
princes  were  too  merciful.  Thus  Mr  Rhind,  in  his 
sermon  on  loyalty,  preached  and  printed  1711, 
speaking  of  King  Charles  I. — '  Others,  again  (saith 

*  he,  p.  49,  50,)  find  fault  with  his  too  great  cle- 
'  mency  and  indulgence  ;  and,  truly,  I  must  own 

*  that  this  was  his  fault :  And,  indeed,  there  is  too 

*  murh  of  it  in  the  blood  of  his  family :'  Of 

such  a  gospel  strain  are  the  episcopal  sermons  ! 

But  why  are  the  Presbyterians  alone  charged 
with  rabbhng  ?  Do  the  Episcopalians  know  nothing 
of  that  trade  ?  Did  Mr  Rhind  never  hear  of  Sache- 
verell's  mobs,  and  ihe  burning  down  the  dissenters' 
meeting-houses?  Did  he  never  hear  of  the  rabbling 
Mr    luiiidalf  at  Errol,    May  10,  1691  ?    Did  he 


PRESBYTERIAN   SPIRIT.  387 

never  hear  of  the  rabble  at  Old  Deer  ?  *  Did  he 
never  hear  of  t!ie  Episcopal  treatment  of  Mr  Chis- 
helm,  in  March  17U,  sent  to  read  the  Presbytery's 
edict  for  planting  the  vacant  church  of  Gair- 
loch  ?t  No  Pagan  history  can  fiu'nish  such  an  in- 
stance of  barbarity.  But  why  do  1  insist  on  parti- 
culars ?  Even  under  King  William's  reign,  their 
rabblings  were  so  frequent,  that  the  Parliament 
found  it  needful  to  make  a  very  strict  act  against 
them  ;  t  and  even  notwithstanding  that,  they  are 
still  continued  with  the  greatest  insolence,  where- 
ever  they  can  hope  to  Iiiake  any  hand  with  them. 
Is  it  not  modest,  then,  in  the  Episcopalians  to  ob- 
ject rabbling  to  the  Presbyterians  ? — In  the  Episco- 
palians, I  say,  who  persecute  while  they  are  in,  and 
rabble  when  they  are  out. 

Lastly,  As  to  the  deposing  so  many  of  their  clergy 
by  church  judicatories.  Let  us  hear  Dr  Edwards, 
an  eminent  divine  of  the  Church  of  England,  in  his 
sermon  on  the  union,  concerning  the  present  esta- 
blished Church  of  Scotland.     «  They  have,*  saith  he, 

*  wuth  the  patience  of  confessors  and   martyrs  (and 

*  such  a  great  number  of  them  were)  borne  the  suf- 

*  ferings  which  the  High-Church  men  brought  upon 

*  them,  and  now  when   they   are  able  to  retaliate, 

*  they  study  not  revenge,  but  let  the  world  see,  they 
'  can  forgive  as  well  as  suffer.'  This  testimony  ig 
of  some  more  weight  than  Mr  Rhind's  malicious  in- 
sinuations. I  suppose  the  Presbyterians  will  be  able 
to  defend  themselves  upon  a  condescendence  on  par- 
ticulars. In  the  mean  time,  the  difference  between 
the  Episcopal  and  Presbyterian  conduct  in  this  is 
pretty  remarkable.  In  the  year  1662,  three  hun- 
dred Presbyterian  ministers  were  turned  out  of  their 
churches  simply  upon  the  account  of  nonconformi- 
ty, because  they  would  not  receive  collation  from 
the  Bishop  (upon  a  presentation  from  the  patron), 
without  any  other  fault  proven  or  alleged  against 

*  See  the  present  State  of  Parties,  page  181. 

■j-  See  State  of  Parties,  page  171. 

X  See  Act  11,  Session  7,  Parliament  King  William. 


388  DEFENCE  OF  THE 

them.     At  the  revolution  there  was  not  one  man  of 
the  Episcopal  clergy  either  deprived  or  deposed  upon 
the  account  of  his  principle  concerning  church  go- 
vernment.    Say,  good  reader,  which  of  these  two 
ways  of  acting  was  the  more  Christian  and  account- 
able ?    At  the  restoration,  not  one  man,  that  I  can 
hear  of,  was  left  in  possession  of  any  church  in  Scot- 
land, who  either  had  not  episcopal  orders,  or  at  least 
received  collation  from  the  Bishop.     At  the  revolu- 
tion, above  two  hundred  of  the  Episcopal  clergy  were 
still  continued  in  their  charges,  many  of  which  are 
alive,  and  in  possession  at  this  day,  though  in  many 
places  insolent  to  the  last  degree  in  their  behaviour 
against  the  established  church.     So  that,  if  those 
who  were  still  kept  in,    those  who  voluntarily  de- 
mitted,  those  who  were  deprived  by  the  council  upon 
the  account  of  their  disloyalty,  those  who  were  out- 
ed  by  act  of  Parliament,  April  25th,  1690,  restoring 
the   Presbyterian   ministers    who   were   thrust  from 
their  charges  since  the  first  of  .January  1.661  ;  when 
all  these,  t  say,  are  deduced,  with  those  that  com* 
plied,  and,  upon  doing  so,  were  assumed,  I  suppose 
the  number  of  the  deposed  will  appear  very  small. 
And  if  Mr  Pthind  can  prove  them  to  have  been  in- 
nocent, I  doubt  not  but  he  will  oblige  them  and  his 
whole  party.     Let  me  only  add,  that  a  severe  treat- 
ment of  ministers  is  the  thing  in  the  world  a  church 
of  England  man  should  be  most  loath  to  upbraid 
others  with,  as  knowing  how   easy  it  is  to  reply. 
Were  not  three  hundred  ministers  deposed,  deprived, 
excommunicated,    imprisoned  or   banished    in  two 
years  time  after  the  conference  at  Hampton  Court, 
1603,    simply    for   nonconformity    to    the  liturgy, 
though  otherwise  they  weie  episcopally  ordained?  * 
Were  not  two  thousand  ministers  ejected  at  once  by 
the  Bartholomew  act   I662?t     Ail  the    Protestant 
Churches  in  Europe  put  together  cannot,  1  suppose, 
furnish  so  many  instances  of"  ministers  deprived  or 
deposed  on  any  account  whatsoever,  as  England  can 
for  simple  nonconformity  to  prelacy  and  paltry  ce- 
remonies.    Though,  then,  the  deposing  or  depriving 
*  Vide  Alt.  Damasc.  Prefat.    f  See  Dr  Calamy's  Account, 


PRESBYTERIAN    SPIRIT.  389 

of  clergymen  might  have  tempted  Mr  Rhine!  to  se- 
parate from  the  Presbyterians  ;  yet,  had  not  his  af- 
fection been  much  more  partial,  than  his  conscience 
was  nice,  he  had  never  been,  on  that  account,  sway- 
ed to  the  episcopal  side,  which  has  been  vastly  more 
guilty.  So  much  for  the  unneighbourly,  cruel  and 
barbarous  spirit  of  the  Presbyterians. 

Thus  I  have  gone  through  all  the  particulars  of 
Mr  Rhind's  charge,  wherein  he  essays  to  make  the 
Presbyterian  spirit  diametrically  opposite  to  that  of 
the  gospel.  Every  reader,  I  suppose,  will  easily  dis- 
cern the  difference  betwixt  his  accusation  and  my 
defence.  The  accusation  (though  that  is  always  an 
odious  part)  is  neither  qualified  nor  proven.  The 
defence  is  made  good,  and  the  charge  disproved  from 
the  very  books  the  accuser  appeals  to,  or  by  the  tes- 
timony of  the  most  eminent  Episcopalians. 

And  now  to  come  to  an  end,  who  can  but  pity  Mr 
Rhind  ?  Who,  besides  the  schism,  heresy  and  super- 
stition he  has  run  into,  has  brought  himself  under 
the  crying  guilt  of  the  most  wretched  prqfaneness 
and  impiety  against  God,  and  the  most  malicious 
calumny  against  his  neighbours  and  benefactors.  I 
heartily  wish  he  may  '  repent  of  this  his  wickedness, 
*  and  pray  God,  if  perhaps  the  thoughts  of  his  heart 
'  may  be  forgiven  him.' 

Upon  the  whole  I  conclude,  that  the  Preshytcrian 
Government  is  of  divine  institution.  Their  Articles 
of  Faith  taught  by  the  Scripture,  and  believed  by 
the  Catliolic  Church.  Their  worship  pure  and  per- 
fect in  all  essentials.  And  their  sjnrit  and  practice 
at  least  as  becoming  the  gospel  as  that  of  their  neigh- 
bours. 


TlIC    F.Nn. 


Pritireion  Theological  Seminarj-Spei 


1    1012  01128  9842